The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Journey through Persia, Armenia, and Asia Minor, to Constantinople, in the Years 1808 and 1809 This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this eBook. Title: A Journey through Persia, Armenia, and Asia Minor, to Constantinople, in the Years 1808 and 1809 Author: James Justinian Morier Release date: April 21, 2016 [eBook #51819] Most recently updated: June 14, 2020 Language: English Credits: E-text prepared by MWS, Les Galloway, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images generously made available by Internet Archive/American Libraries (https://archive.org/details/americana) *** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A JOURNEY THROUGH PERSIA, ARMENIA, AND ASIA MINOR, TO CONSTANTINOPLE, IN THE YEARS 1808 AND 1809 *** E-text prepared by MWS, Les Galloway, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images generously made available by Internet Archive/American Libraries (https://archive.org/details/americana) Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this file which includes the original illustrations. See 51819-h.htm or 51819-h.zip: (https://www.gutenberg.org/cache/epub/51819/pg51819-images.html) or (https://www.gutenberg.org/files/51819/51819-h.zip) Images of the original pages are available through Internet Archive/American Libraries. See https://archive.org/details/gri_journeythrou00more Transcriber’s note: Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_). Text enclosed by equal signs is in bold face (=bold=). A carat character is used to denote superscription. A single character following the carat is superscripted (example: Bar^t). Multiple superscripted characters are enclosed by curly brackets (example: Mess^{rs}). [Illustration: _SKETCH OF THE COUNTRIES_ _Situated between SHIRAZ and CONSTANTINOPLE; Shewing the ROUTE of HIS_ MAJESTY’S _MISSION under Sir_ Harford Jones _Bar^t. in_ 1809, _from_ Bushire _to_ Teheran; _and of_ M^r. Morier _from thence to_ Constantinople. _As also the_ Route _of_ Col. Malcolm, _in_ 1801. _By_ J. Rennell. _Published 20 May 1811 by Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row._] A JOURNEY THROUGH PERSIA, ARMENIA, AND ASIA MINOR, TO CONSTANTINOPLE, IN THE YEARS 1808 AND 1809; IN WHICH IS INCLUDED, SOME ACCOUNT OF THE PROCEEDINGS OF HIS MAJESTY’S MISSION, UNDER SIR HARFORD JONES, BART. K. C. _TO THE COURT OF THE KING OF PERSIA_. BY JAMES MORIER, ESQ. HIS MAJESTY’S SECRETARY OF EMBASSY TO THE COURT OF PERSIA. WITH TWENTY-FIVE ENGRAVINGS FROM THE DESIGNS OF THE AUTHOR; A PLATE OF INSCRIPTIONS; AND THREE MAPS; _ONE FROM THE OBSERVATIONS OF CAPTAIN JAMES SUTHERLAND: AND TWO DRAWN BY MR. MORIER, AND MAJOR RENNELL_. _LONDON_: PRINTED FOR LONGMAN, HURST, REES, ORME, AND BROWN, PATERNOSTER-ROW. 1812. PREFACE. Finding, on my arrival in England, that curiosity was quite alive to every thing connected with Persia, I was induced to publish the Memoranda which I had already made on that country; more immediately as I found that I had been fortunate enough to ascertain some facts, which had escaped the research of other travellers. In this, I allude more particularly to the sculptures and ruins of _Shapour_; for although my account of them is on a very reduced scale, yet I hope that I have said enough to direct the attention of abler persons than myself to the investigation of a new and curious subject. Imperfect as my journal may be, it will, I hope, be found sufficiently comprehensive to serve as a link in the chain of information on Persia, until something more satisfactory shall be produced; and it claims no other merit than that of having been written on the very spots, and under the immediate circumstances, which I have attempted to describe. Having confined myself, with very few exceptions, to the relation of what I saw and heard, it will be found unadulterated by partiality to any particular system, and unbiassed by the writings and dissertations of other men. Written in the midst of a thousand cares, it claims every species of indulgence. The time of my absence from England comprehends a space of little more than two years.--On the 27th of Oct. 1807, I sailed from Portsmouth with Sir HARFORD JONES, Bart. K. C. His Majesty’s Envoy Extraordinary and Minister Plenipotentiary to the Court of Persia, in H. M. S. _Sapphire_, Captain GEORGE DAVIES: after having touched at Madeira and at the Cape of Good Hope, we reached Bombay on the 26th of April, 1808: owing to some political arrangements we did not quit Bombay till the 12th September. We arrived at _Bushire_ on the 13th October, and proceeded towards the Persian capital on the 13th December. H. M. Mission reached _Teheran_ on the 14th February, 1809: on the 12th March the preliminary treaty was signed between Sir HARFORD JONES and the Persian Plenipotentiaries; and on the 7th May I quitted _Teheran_ with MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, the King of Persia’s Envoy Extraordinary to the Court of London, with whom I reached _Smyrna_ on the 7th September, and embarked there on board H. M. S. _Success_, Captain AYSCOUGH. Having at Malta changed the _Success_ for H. M. S. _Formidable_, we finally reached Plymouth on the 25th November, 1809. I should be wanting in gratitude, if I did not here express the obligations which I owe to my fellow traveller, MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, the late Persian Envoy Extraordinary, for much information on subjects relating to his own country, and for all the facilities of acquiring his language, which his communicative and amiable disposition afforded me. As this personage was distinguished, during his stay in England, by attentions more marked and continued than, perhaps, were ever paid to any foreigner, I have conceived that I should not trespass too much on the patience of my readers by inserting a sketch of his life;[1] I feel at least that it will prove very acceptable to those who have shown him, as a stranger, so much friendship and hospitality. In my narrative I have confined myself to relate our proceedings from the time we left Bombay to my arrival at Constantinople. The sea voyages, from England to India, and from Constantinople to England, are too well known to require any thing more to be written about them. The engravings that are inserted are made from drawings which I took on the spot; they are done in a slight manner, and therefore are more intended to give general ideas, than to enter into any nicety of detail. For the map from _Bushire_ to _Teheran_ I am indebted to my friend Captain JAMES SUTHERLAND, of the Bombay army; and for the general one of the countries, through which my route carried me, I must here return my thanks to Major RENNELL, who has furnished me with this valuable document, and who has kindly assisted me in this, as well as on other occasions when I found myself deficient, with his advice and information. The map from _Teheran_ to _Amasia_ is the result of my own observation, corrected by the same masterly hand. It terminates at _Amasia_, because my journey from that place to _Constantinople_ was performed as much by night as it was by day, and prosecuted with too great speed to permit me to observe with accuracy. Besides which, in Turkey, where the people are much more jealous and watchful of travellers than in Persia, I found that I could not make my remarks so much at my ease as I wished, although assisted by the disguise of a Persian dress. The courses and distances, noted in the journal, are only to be regarded as a kind of _dead reckoning_, subject to correction by the application of latitudes in certain places, and of approximated positions in others; and, in all, by allowances for the inflexions and inequalities of the roads. I am indebted to Messrs. JUKES and BRUCE, of the Bombay service, for the information which they furnished me whilst I was in Persia, and I have not failed to make my acknowledgments, wherever such information has been inserted. But I must, in particular, express my gratitude to Mr. ROBERT HARRY INGLIS, for the kindness with which he offered to correct and arrange my memoranda, and prepare my journals for the press.[2] I beg leave to repeat that this volume is meant merely as provisional, and that I am far from entertaining the presumption that it will class with the valuable pages of CHARDIN, LE BRUN, HANWAY, NIEBUHR, or OLIVIER. It is to be expected, that the extensive communication that will be opened with Persia, in consequence of our late political transactions with its court, will throw the whole extent of that very interesting part of the globe under our cognizance; and that, among other subjects of inquiry, its numerous antiquities, which have as yet been but imperfectly explored, will throw new lights upon its ancient history, manners, religion, and language. INTRODUCTION. The history of Persia from the death of NADIR SHAH to the accession of the present King, comprehending a period of fifty-one years, presents little else than a catalogue of the names of tyrants and usurpers, and a succession of murders, treacheries and scenes of misery. After the assassination of NADIR, one of the most formidable of the competitors for the vacant throne, was MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN, the head of the _Cadjar_ tribe, and a person of high rank among the nobles of SHAH THAMAS, the last king of the SEFFI race.[3] MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN had several sons: HOSSEIN KOOLI KHAN, the eldest, was father to the present King of Persia, and was killed in a battle with the _Turcomans_: AGA MAHOMED KHAN, the second son, was the immediate predecessor of his nephew on the throne. MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN had not long assumed the crown, when he was opposed by KERIM KHAN, a native of _Courdistan_; who, under pretence of protecting the rights of ISMAEL,[4] a lineal descendant of the SEFFI family, and then a child, secured to himself so large a share of influence and authority in the state, that he very soon supplanted virtually the pageant that he had erected; and, while he still concealed his ambition under the name of _Vakeel_ or Regent, exercised all the real powers of the sovereign of Persia. The birth of KERIM KHAN was obscure; but the habits of his early years qualified him for the times in which he lived, and the destiny to which he aspired. His family, indeed, was a low branch of an obscure tribe in _Courdistan_, that of the _Zunds_, from which his dynasty has been denominated; and his profession was the single occupation of all his countrymen, robbery,[5] which, when it thus becomes a national object, loses in reputation all its grossness. Here he acquired the talents and hardihood of a soldier; and was renowned for an effectual spirit of enterprise, and for great personal skill in the exercise of the sword, a qualification of much value among his people. The long revolutions of Persia called forth every talent and every passion; and the hopes of KERIM KHAN were excited by the partial successes of others, and by the consciousness of his own resources. He entered the field; and eventually overcame MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN, his principal competitor, who fled and was killed in _Mazanderan_. The conqueror having seized and confined the children of his rival, proceeded to quell the several inferior chiefs, who, in their turns, had aspired to the succession. His superior activity and talents finally secured the dominion: and having, in 1755, settled at _Shiraz_, he made that city the seat of his government. He beautified it by many public buildings, both of use and luxury; and their present state attests the solid magnificence of his taste. His memory is much lamented in Persia; as his reign, a reign of dissipation and splendor, was congenial to the character of the people. In his time prostitutes were publicly protected; their calling was classed among the professions; and the chief, or representative, of their numbers, attended by all the state and parade of the most respected of the _Khans_ and _Mirzas_, used daily to stand before the Sovereign at his _Durbar_. On the 13th of March, 1779, KERIM KHAN died a natural death, an extraordinary occurrence in the modern history of Persia, having reigned (according to the different dates assigned to his accession, from the deaths of different competitors) from nineteen to thirty years. From the fall of MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN the better epoch, his conqueror lived nineteen years, with almost undisputed authority. After his death all was again in confusion; and the kingdom presented a renewal of blood and usurpation. It is scarcely necessary to state the short-lived struggles of his successors: their very names have ceased to interest us. It is sufficient therefore to add, that his sons and brothers, and other relatives, attacked each other for fourteen years after his death; till the fortunes of the whole family were finally overwhelmed in the defeat of LOOLF ALI KHAN, the last and greatest of these claimants; and the dominion was transferred, in the year 1794, to his conqueror, AGA MAHOMED KHAN, of the present royal race of Persia. In latter years, during the war between the East India Company and TIPPOO SAIB, under the administration of the Marquis WELLESLEY, the political relations of England and Persia were renewed. An embassy, which TIPPOO sent to FATTEH ALI SHAH, the present King of Persia, was followed soon after by a rival mission, which the Indian government confided to the care of MEHEDE ALI KHAN, a man of Persian extraction. In the mean time, indeed, TIPPOO was killed; and his death left us in possession of the Persian councils. After this Captain MALCOLM, in the year 1801, was sent to solicit the alliance of Persia against ZEMAUN SHAH, King of the _Afghans_. That gentleman concluded a treaty,[6] by which it was stipulated that Persia should attack _Khorassan_ and the _Afghan_ States, and that we should contribute our assistance in the expences of the war. The King of Persia carried his arms into _Khorassan_, and conquered that province. The mission of Captain MALCOLM was returned by one from the King of Persia to the Indian Government. HAJEE KELIL KHAN was sent as the embassador, but unfortunately he was killed in a fray at _Bombay_, as he was attempting to quell a disturbance between his servants and some Indians. To explain this untoward event, Mr. LOVETT, a gentleman in the Bengal civil service, was dispatched; but he proceeded no further with his mission than to _Bushire_, and delivered it over to Mr. MANESTY, the East India Company’s Resident at _Bussorah_. Another embassy was now sent from the Persian Court; and MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN, the Envoy appointed, luckily reached _Calcutta_ without any accident. Some time after, French agents were traced into Persia, and the views of France begun to be suspected. _Monsieur_ JOUANNIN, an intelligent Frenchman, succeeded in getting the Persian Court to send a mission to BUONAPARTE. The Envoy, by name _Mirza_ REGA, went from Persia in 1806; and concluded a treaty with France at _Finkinstein_, in May 1807. On his return, a large embassy, confided to General GARDANNE, was sent from France to Persia: this gave rise to the mission of Sir HARFORD JONES, who, arriving at Bombay in April 1808, found that Brigadier-General MALCOLM had been previously sent by the Governor-General to Persia. General MALCOLM having failed of success, Sir HARFORD JONES proceeded. PLATES. DIRECTIONS TO THE BINDER. PAGE I. General Map of the Countries to face the Title. II. Cape _Arubah_ 3 III. Island of _Ashtolah_ 4 IV. Cape _Posmee_ 4 V. Cape _Musseldom_ 6 VI. View of _Bushire_ 58 VII. Map from _Bushire_ to _Teheran_ 68 VIII. Persian on horseback smoaking 70 IX. View of _Shapour_ 86 X. Sculpture at _Shapour_ 88 XI. Sculpture at _Shapour_ 90 XII--XIII. Sculptures at _Shapour_ 91 XIV. View of _Shiraz_ 106 XV. Sculpture at _Nakshi Rustam_ 127 XVII. Sculpture at _Nakshi Rustam_ 128 XVIII. View of _Persepolis_ 132 XIX. Sculpture at _Nakshi Radjab_, near _Persepolis_ 137 XX. Sculpture at _Nakshi Radjab_, near _Persepolis 138 XXI. Tomb of _Madré Suleiman_ 145 XXII. View of _Ispahan_ 169 XXIII. View of _Teheran_ 185 XXIV. _Takht-a-Cadjar_ 226 XXV. Map from _Teheran_ to _Amasia_ 249 XXVI. _Sultaniéh_ 257 XXVII. Bridge over the _Kizzil Ozan_ 267 XXVIII. _Mount _Ararat_ 306 XXIX. Plate of Inscriptions 357 ERRATA. P. 176. Twenty-two lines from the top, for _twelve_, read _sixteen_. P. 257. Sixteen lines from the top, for _four_, read _five_. (Transcriber's note: These have been implemented) JOURNEY THROUGH PERSIA, &c. &c. &c. CHAP. I. BOMBAY TO BUSHIRE. DEPARTURE FROM BOMBAY--LAND OF GUZERAT--COAST OF MEKRAN--BALOUCHES--ENTRANCE OF THE GULPH OF PERSIA--IMAUM OF MUSCAT: HIS FLEET--SOUNDINGS IN THE GULPH--BUSHIRE--VISIT OF THE SHEIK--LANDING IN PERSIA. On the 6th of September 1808, when His Majesty’s Mission to the court of _Teheran_ was still at _Bombay_, the Envoy extraordinary, Sir HARFORD JONES, received dispatches from the Governor-general at _Calcutta_, which determined him to proceed immediately to Persia. The establishment of the mission had been changed since our arrival in India; Major L. F. SMITH, who left England as public Secretary, on landing at this settlement proceeded to BENGAL; and the duties of Secretary of the Legation were annexed to those, which, as private secretary to the Envoy, I had originally discharged. The suite was augmented at _Bombay_ by Mr. THOMAS HENRY SHERIDAN, and Captain JAMES SUTHERLAND, severally of the civil and military establishments of that presidency, by Cornet HENRY WILLOCK, of the _Madras_ cavalry, commander of the body guard; and was subsequently joined by Lieutenant BLACKER, of the _Madras_ cavalry, and Mr. CAMPBELL, surgeon to the mission. Besides three European and some Indian servants, the Envoy carried washermen and tailors, and some artificers, as carpenters, blacksmiths, and locksmiths. On the 12th Sept. Sir HARFORD JONES, accompanied by Mr. SHERIDAN and myself, embarked on board his Majesty’s frigate _Nereide_, Captain CORBETT; Capt. SUTHERLAND and Mr. WILLOCK went in the _Sapphire_, Capt. DAVIS: and the H. C. cruizer _Sylph_ carried the Persian secretary, &c. The Governor of _Bombay_ drew out the troops of the garrison to salute the Envoy on his embarkation: they formed a lane from the government-house to the entrance of the dock-yard; and as He passed the troops presented arms, and the music played “God save the King.” A salute of fifteen guns was fired on his quitting the shore, and was answered by another from the frigate; a ceremony which always excites a powerful feeling of respect in the minds of the natives. In the afternoon of the 12th, the squadron left the harbour of _Bombay_: on the 13th, the _Nereide_ had out-stripped the _Sapphire_, and had lost sight of the _Sylph_. The winds were variable and squally: the thermometer in the cabin stood at 82°. About ten o’clock, on the morning of the 14th. we made the land of _Diu_; we stood close in shore, and tacked at twelve o’clock; the Portuguese colours were flying on the fort. The thermometer was this day 80°. 15th. calms. The land of the _Guzerat_ is extremely low. _Diu_ Point is studded with towns and pagodas. 16th. we made but little way; tacked off and on shore, and distinguished a variety of buildings and towns on the coast. The largest place, which we marked in our progress, was _Pour-bundar_. The coast itself continued flat, with scarcely an inequality. On Sunday, the 18th. Capt. CORBETT read prayers to the ship’s company on the quarter-deck. The scene struck me as more simple and more impressive than any that, for a long time, I had witnessed. The cleanliness of the ship, the attention of the sailors, the beauty of the day, all conspired to heighten the solemnity of the service, and I felt persuaded that the prayers, offered up to God by such men and in such a manner, would be favourably accepted. [Illustration: _Cape Arubah_ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] As the coast of _Mekran_, (taken largely, from the _Indus_ to the entrance of the gulph of Persia,) along which we now sailed, is so little visited in this age, and has, indeed, been so seldom described since the days of ALEXANDER, it may, perhaps, be acceptable to insert even the few and incomplete notices of the country which my journal affords. On the 18th. we lost sight of the coast. On the 24th we again saw land, which in appearance was remarkable. It was a very long range of table land, the soil of which, though light coloured, was strongly marked in horizontal strata. As we approached it, we discovered several curious capes, rising in a varied succession of grotesque forms; and among them one so very singular, that we were surprised that it had not been particularly described by those who have compiled the directories for navigating these seas. By our chronometers we took this land to be Cape _Moran_.[7] The shore gradually shallows from twelve to five fathoms, when we tacked and stood off again in the evening, expecting a land breeze to spring up, but were disappointed. The sea is here very much discoloured, the effect probably of black mud at the bottom. 25th. Sept. Cape _Arubah_ is a long slip of table land, which on its first appearance looks like an island.[8] Its soil seems to be clay, and of a colour a few shades darker than Portland stone. We did not discover, among the head-lands into which it was broken, the particular cape which might have given its name to the whole; but the highest point to the westward appeared to deserve the preference. Beyond that western extremity of the table land, the coast immediately recedes into a bay, which is terminated by a long range of extremely rugged mountains. In one of the recesses of the cliffs of _Arubah_, we fancied that we had discovered a village, and even through our glasses were still positive that we could mark its white buildings; but as we drew closer to the shore, we ascertained that the houses in appearance were in reality large clods of white soil, which had fallen from the cliffs above, and were arranged so happily, some in separate piles, and some in rows, as to give to the whole the full effect of a town. A number of small boats with white _lateen_ sails were creeping quietly along the shore, as we passed; but we could not get close enough to them, to ascertain the people who managed them, or the nature of the goods which they carried. On the 26th. the weather was very foggy; the thermometer was 75°. On the 27th. as the fog still increased, we came to an anchor in nine fathoms. On the 28th. as the fog cleared away, we discovered the small island of _Ashtola_, which is of an equal height along its whole extent, a length perhaps of about two miles, and seems to be of the same soil as the capes on the mainland. Not far from the island, we caught turtle. The continent as seen from _Ashtola_, appears extremely high, in long continued ranges; but the lands which more immediately border on the sea, are very low. The soundings are regular, and there is no danger, as long as the lead is going. At eight o’clock we were off _Cape Posmee_, a remarkable head-land. [Illustration: _Island of Ashtola._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown. Paternoster Row. May 1, 1811._] On the 1st of October, we made _Cape Guadel_, a piece of land of a moderate and rather equal height, which projects far into the sea, and is connected with the continent by an isthmus less than half a mile in breadth. Close under the north side of the cape, there is still a town; and on the isthmus, as we could perceive from the ship, are the remains of an old fort. In the neighbourhood are the vestiges of a town also, built with stone, and some wells.[9] But the more modern village of _Guadel_ is composed of mat houses, and the greater part of the inhabitants (the number of the whole is very small) are weavers, who manufacture coarse linen and carpets of ordinary colours. From _Crotchey_ to _Cape Monze_ the people call themselves _Balouches_; and from _Monze_ to _Cape Jasques_, they take the name of _Brodies_: there is some difference in their language, perhaps in their religion also, but none in their dress or manners. The high lands about _Cape Guadel_ are all extremely remarkable, rising in spires and turrets so correctly formed, as to give to many parts of the coast, an appearance of towns with their churches and castles. Their rocky summits, split and rent, Form’d turret, dome, and battlement, Or seem’d fantastically set With cupola or minaret, Wild crests as pagod ever deck’d Or mosque of eastern architect. _Lady of the Lake, Canto_ I. xi. p. 14. [Illustration: _Cape Posmee._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] One piece of land in particular, forming an entrance to the bay behind _Cape Guadel_, has the most striking resemblance to a long range of gothic ruin. We perceived three camels grazing on the heights of the cape, and some few signs of cultivation, which we had discovered on no other spot along the coast before. On the 3d. we saw the town of _Chubar_; and plainly distinguished among other objects a walled building, which we at first took to be a fort, but which according to the Directory, is a place of burial. We saw several boats with _lateen_ sails, of a canvas very conspicuously white, cut exactly like the sails of the boats on the coast of Italy and Sicily. The thermometer was 84°. The 5th. was very sultry, and the thermometer was 90°. On the 6th. a hot wind came from off the land, and warped the tables, mathematical rulers, and the furniture in the cabin, besides slackening all our rigging. This wind brought with it a thick mist of an impalpable sand, which gradually cleared away, and left us the first view of _Cape Jasques_. Oct. 7th. at about one o’clock in the morning, a breeze sprung up from the southward, and in five hours we had passed the _Quoins_, in the Gulph of Persia, and were abreast of the island of _Kishmis_. We saw at the same time the high land of the Arabian shore, terminating in a lofty and marked peak; it is the land about _Cape Musseldom_. The entrance of the gulph may be properly marked between _Cape Bombareek_ and _Cape Musseldom_. I call these places by their names, as laid down in our sea charts; because their more proper appellations would probably not be understood. _Bombareek_ for instance, which by sailors is also called _Bombay rock_, is derived originally from “_Moobarek_, happy, fortunate.” _Musseldom_ is still a stronger instance of the perversion of words. The genuine name of this head-land is _Mama Selemeh_, derived according to the story of the country from _Selemeh_, who was a female saint of Arabia, and lived on the spot or in its neighbourhood. The Indians, when they pass the promontory, throw cocoa nuts, fruits or flowers into the sea, to secure a propitious voyage. My informer added, that the superstition was not practised by the Persians. On the shore of _Cape Bombareek_ is an insulated and very singular mass of rock, in which we could perceive from the ship a large natural aperture. To me the shape of the whole mass appeared like a tankard, and the aperture formed its handle. After having rounded _Cape Musseldom_ (which is eighteen leagues to the westward of _Bombareek_), we came to the five small islands generally called altogether the _Quoins_. _Kishmis_ is the largest island in the gulph; and, according to the account which I received, is capable of being made very productive: it is at present in almost total abandonment, though still nominally the property of Persia. We next passed two small and low islands, called the Great and Little _Tomb_. [Illustration: _Cape Museldom._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman Hurst Rees Orme & Brown Paternoster Row May 1 1811._] The strong south wind, with which we were now favoured, was at this season considered extraordinary. It blew so strong that the Nereide, with every sail set, went ten and eleven knots. It is accompanied with much haze, not indeed to be compared to that which came with the hot wind from off the shore, though in the same manner it warped the furniture and slackened the rigging. On the 8th. we passed the island of _Busheab_, which, in HEATHER’S map, is placed much too far to the eastward, and which ought to be called “_Khoshaub_, or pleasant water,” from the fresh spring in its territory. It is a long and low slip, but the land on the continent behind it is extremely high. We had a light sea breeze all day, that carried us off _Cape Nabon_, a part of the province of _Farz_. The thermometer stood at 93° in the cabin after dinner. On the morning of the 9th. it was reported that a fleet of five ships were seen from the mast-head. We conjectured that they might be Arab ships, bound from _Muscat_ to _Bussorah_, which about this season proceed on their voyages. They carry thither annually eight thousand bales of coffee; and in return get cargoes of dates. The sea breeze of the day was extremely light, and set in at noon. In the evening the _Barnhill_, a remarkable piece of land, (which derived its name from its resemblance to an old and decayed thatched building, and which is situated over the town of _Congoon_,) bore N. and by W. of us. Here the whole coast is very high. On the morning of the 10th. we were off the _Barnhill_. The five ships had thus far kept us in a state of suspense; as we imagined that they might be the fleet of the _Imaum_ of _Muscat_, who possesses thirty sail of different descriptions. Some of his ships, indeed, are of a thousand tons burthen; and one of forty guns, built at _Bombay_, is rather a formidable vessel.[10] The _Imaum_ in person frequently parades about the Persian gulph with his armament. He is an independant prince, and his jurisdiction, though principally confined to _Muscat_, extends yet generally over the province of _Oman_. At present he is friendly to us, and we have a resident at his court, who seldom remains there long, for the badness of its air has rendered it the burial place of too many Englishmen. At length we boarded the Arabs, and they proved to be, as we had originally expected, a fleet of the _Imaum’s_ merchantmen, laden with coffee, rice, &c. bound to _Bushire_ and _Bussorah_. They had been fifteen days from _Muscat_. One of the five was a fine vessel of six hundred tons burthen, which about four years before was purchased by the _Imaum_ at the _Isle of France_, and was then called the _Sterling Castle_. There were also two _grabs_, which are ships in every respect like the others, except that they have lengthened prows instead of rounded bows. These _grabs_ the Arabs can manage to build themselves in their own ports, as it is easy to extend the timbers of a ship, until they connect themselves into a prow; but they have not yet attained the art of forming timber fit to construct bows. Before the sun-set of the preceding day, we had discovered through our glasses, the town of _Congoon_, under a peak, close in the eastern vicinity of the _Barnhill_. It then appeared in a wood of dates, above which rose the domes of mosques. The _Sheik_ of _Congoon_ is represented as a young and spirited Arab, who can raise a body of two thousand cavalry, and who is able to lead them. His town is resorted to for wood, but, as far as we could judge at a distance, the date is the only tree of the neighbourhood. We suffered much from the heat in the night, but when the moon rose over the _Barnhill_, a little refreshing breeze sprang up, which gave us much relief. An Arab ship was not far from us, and I could just hear their singing on board. It brought to my recollection some of the moonlight scenes in the _Archipelago_; for the music of these Arabs struck me as being very similar to that which I have heard on board a Greek or Sclavonian ship, when the _lyra_ accompanies the voice of some naval Apollo, and is followed by a chorus of his shipmates. We were off _Cape Verdistan_ this morning, and descried the _Hummocks_ of _Kenn_. The shoal that runs out from _Cape Verdistan_, is rendered dangerous by a reef of rocks which extends itself about six or seven miles from the shore. There are good mud soundings on the shoal, and a ship may cross its extremity without danger, though it is as well to give it a good birth. We stood off in the night of the 12th. The soundings in the shoal as laid down by _Mac Cluer_ are not all correspondent to those which we got. We were in seven fathoms for more than an hour, and he has not got such a sounding amongst his. From seven we got to half six, and then to four, when we thought it time to tack. The cause which has been assigned for our ignorance of the gulph, is the prudential reserve which has influenced our Indian governments in their transactions with the states of Persia and Arabia. To avoid suspicion and complaint, they have never professedly made surveys of the shores, though much might yet have been done indirectly, if the object had been considered of sufficient importance. Few, except merchant vessels visited the gulph; and as the charts, which they already possessed (and what is better, their own experience) served their purpose sufficiently in the line of their own navigation, there was seldom any particular demand for more correct surveys. The geographer and philosopher indeed require something more, and therefore it is still matter of regret, that we are comparatively ill-informed in countries, where we have had easy opportunities of acquiring knowledge. 13th Oct. We were becalmed all night under the _Asses Ears_. These are points of land, which stand a little more erect, and are more conspicuous than the other points which surround them. The whole displays a line of coast the most rugged, barren, and inhospitable that I ever saw; and constitutes, after we passed _Verdistan_ shoal, a very bold shore. We sailed along it, keeping in eleven and twelve fathoms. In the evening we opened _Hallilah_ peak, which is a high and remarkable point of land. As we crept along the coast, we marked some ruined walls embosomed among the date trees.[11] At sun-set we just discovered the low land on which stands the town of _Bushire_. In the calms which followed during the night, we were unable to make much way, and on the morning of the 14th we were still at the same distance from _Bushire_, as on the preceding evening. We fired two shots at a small vessel, to bring her to, but without effect. These boats are employed mostly in carrying wood to _Bushire_. They find it on the coast, probably in recesses of the land, for we could scarcely see a shrub in the whole passage of the gulph. At about half past three o’clock on the 14th October, we anchored in _Bushire_ roads, where we found one of the Company’s cruizers, and a merchantman. Before we cast anchor, a boat came off from the shore, the captain of which, a little sharp Persian, answered Sir HARFORD JONES’S interrogations with much vivacity, and swore to the truth of every assertion ten times over by his head and eyes. Having learnt that the East India Company’s assistant resident, Mr. BRUCE, was at _Bushire_, the Envoy sent a letter to desire his attendance on board immediately, and at the same time requesting that he would notify the arrival of the mission to the _Sheik_, ABDALLAH RESOUL, who then governed _Bushire_. We could see with our glasses Mr. BRUCE’S residence, which was at some distance without the town, and could observe that the letter had been safely delivered; for in a few minutes we discovered Mr. BRUCE on horseback, riding full speed to the boat. In an hour he was on board. He commenced by informing us of a report of the death of our King, which had reached _Bushire_ from _Bagdad_; and which, originating from an article in a French paper, had been circulated in Persia by the French, for an obvious purpose. The Envoy delivered to Mr. BRUCE, a paper containing all the communications which he wished to be made to the _Sheik_ of _Bushire_. He then added, desiring that his object might be clearly explained, that He expected from the _Sheik_ all the respect due to the station which he filled, and that if he did not receive those honours to which the King of England’s Mission was entitled, the _Sheik_ should be held responsible till the wishes of the court of Persia were known. Mr. BRUCE assured Sir HARFORD that the _Sheik_ would make no difficulty in coming off the next day to pay his respects, and the hour of his visit was in consequence fixed at ten o’clock. The colours of the New Factory in the country, and of the Old one in the town, were hoisted on the morning of the 15th. While we were expecting the arrival of the _Sheik_, we regaled ourselves with the grapes, citrons, and pomegranates, which had been sent to us from the shore. At length we espied a boat with a crimson awning, and apparently much filled with passengers. It was beating against the sea breeze, which, rather unfortunately for the party, had set in uncommonly fresh. When she came in a line with our ship, the sail was lowered, and the men took to their oars. In a short time however we observed from the frigate, that the boat got very slowly a-head, and that the strength of the crew was nearly exhausted. Captain CORBETT then sent his barge to tow up the _Sheik_ to the ship, which was done in a very masterly style; and we were delighting in the idea of the enjoyment which the Persians must have received in the close at least of such an excursion, when we were mortified at discovering the misery in every face, which the unusual voyage had too evidently produced. But the sea-sickness was forgotten as soon as they were on board the frigate. The _Sheik_ was received with a salute of five guns; the number was esteemed a mark of particular distinction, as three are considered in Persia a sufficient allowance for a great man. The marines were under arms; Captain CORBETT with much courtesy handed him across the quarter-deck, and assisted him with some difficulty to descend from the deck to the cabin by a steep and narrow ladder, which, however, no attention could render convenient to a man encumbered with an immense large cloak and slip-shod slippers. At the bottom he was received by Sir HARFORD JONES. The ship was immediately filled by the suite of the _Sheik_, who, with all the curiosity and effrontery of Asiatics, spread themselves through every part. Our guest was attended on his visit by the principal men and merchants of _Bushire_, among whom the Envoy recognised the face of many an early friend. All the party seemed much pleased with their reception, and expressed their high admiration of the beauty, order, and cleanliness of the ship. The conversation was general, and consisted mostly in inquiries after former friends, and in reviving the recollection of the histories of old times. Sir HARFORD JONES had known the _Sheik_ when he was a fine boy: there was now indeed little left to be admired; his face was inanimate, and his body bent double with excessive debauch. The whole party were generally but a rude sample of the elegance of Persians, nor indeed is the true Persian to be found at _Bushire_, where the blood is mostly mixed with that of Arabia. The only man of the party, whose face interested me, and exhibited signs of intelligence, was a Turk, by name ABDULLA AGA, an old friend of the Envoy’s, who had been _Musselim_ of _Bussorah_, and had ruled that part of the country for many years, with great respectability and eclat. He had been driven by injustice to take refuge at _Bushire_; though from the known integrity of his character, and the attachment of the people of _Bussorah_ and _Bagdad_ to his person, many still expect that he will one day attain the _Pachalick_ of _Bagdad_. After this good Mussulman, spreading his carpet near one of the twelve pounders, had said his prayers, (with a fervency, undisturbed by the busy, novel and noisy scene around him) the visit broke up. The _Sheik_ and ABDULLA AGA, who both had suffered by their long excursion in the morning, preferred to return on shore in the _Nereide’s_ boat with Sir HARFORD JONES. We had not long put off from the ship, when a salute of fifteen guns commenced for the envoy, to the great consternation of the remaining part of the Persians, who were just embarking in their own boat, and who unluckily found themselves under the muzzles of the guns, where they were involved in clouds of smoke, with the wads whistling close to their ears. We at length reached the landing place; an immense crowd was assembled to await our debarkation. The _Sheik_ had collected all the soldiery of the town to escort us to his house; and in the moment of our touching the shore, the whole mob was put in motion, raising a dust so thick that I could scarce distinguish Englishman from Asiatic. To add to the denseness of the atmosphere, the boats, which were close to the beach, commenced a salute; which was immediately answered by a range of guns on the coast. The whole procession was obliged to pass in the immediate rear of these guns as they were firing, though they appeared so old and honey-combed, that I feared they must have burst before the honours were over. We proceeded in a cloud of dust, and through streets six feet wide to the _Sheik’s_ house, and at length entered it by a door so mean and ill-looking, that it might more properly have formed the entrance to his stable. This door introduced us into a small court yard, on one side of which was an apartment where we seated ourselves on chairs placed on purpose for us. A Persian visit, when the guest is a distinguished personage, generally consists of three acts: first, the _kaleoun_, or water pipe, and coffee; second, a _kaleoun_, and sweet coffee (so called from its being a composition of rose-water and sugar); and third, a _kaleoun_ by itself. Sweetmeats are frequently introduced as a finale. As I shall have many better opportunities of describing all the ceremonies of these occasions, it is sufficient to add at present, that we performed the three above acts, and then mounted our horses for Mr. BRUCE’S house in the country. Part of the same armed rabble, which had escorted us from the boat to the _Sheik’s_ house, attended us to the Factory. These soldiers are the militia of the place, and serve without pay. They even find their own arms, which consist of a matchlock, a sword, and a shield that is slung behind their back. They consist of working men attached to different trades, for we discovered the dyer by the black hue of his hands, the tinker by the smut on his face, the tailor by the shreds that had adhered to him from his shopboard. On our arrival at the Factory, we closed our dispatches for Europe, and then completed a day full of entertainment, by an excellent dinner. The _Nereide_ sailed with the dispatches on the morning; and before daylight was out of sight. The passage between _Bombay_ and _Bushire_, which had been made in thirty-four days, was now retraced in twelve. CHAP. II. HISTORY OF THE SHEIK OF BUSHIRE. HISTORY OF BUSHIRE--SHEIK NASR--THE NASAKCHEE BASHEE, THE CHIEF EXECUTIONER DISPATCHED FROM SHIRAZ AGAINST THE SHEIK ABDULLAH RESOUL; VISITS THE ENVOY: VISIT RETURNED--DIFFICULTIES OF THE SHEIK--HIS SEIZURE--CONSTERNATION OF THE TOWN--PRECAUTIONS OF THE ENVOY--EXPLANATION OF THE NASAKCHEE BASHEE--SUCCESSOR OF THE SHEIK, MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN--ASSUMPTION OF THE GOVERNMENT BY THE NASAKCHEE BASHEE--MAHOMMED JAFFER APPOINTED PROVISIONALLY; DISGRACED; RESTORED--RECEIVES A KALAAT--CEREMONY--FATE OF THE LATE SHEIK OF BUSHIRE. The history of the _Sheik_ of _Bushire_, who had received us on our landing, added the principal interest to our subsequent residence in his country. Our stay was marked by the subversion of his power and of the Arab rule; and the journal of every day naturally contained ample accounts of the progress of an event, which was locally so prominent and important. The travellers of the last century, who mentioned his predecessors, may possibly direct some little curiosity to the fortunes of their descendant; but without any previous interest in the persons, the tale of the present day may excite attention as a practical illustration of the principles of an eastern government. The coast of the gulph was lined for ages with the petty sovereignties of Arab _Sheiks_,[12] who, while they occupied the shores of Persia, yielded a very uncertain obedience to the monarch of the interior. The degrees indeed of service paid were probably at all times measured more by the character and relative force of the different parties, than by any original stipulations. NADIR and KERIM KHAN in vain endeavoured to reduce these Arab chiefs to more complete obedience: but in many districts their authority was scarcely acknowledged, and except in partial remissions, still more seldom felt. Among these chiefs, _Sheik_ NASR, of _Bushire_, long retained a real independance. The _Dashtistan_, the low country under the hills, was his province; and in all the turbulence of his age, this territory and more immediately the country round _Bushire_, was still the place of security. In one instance indeed, memorable in the latter history of Persia,[13] the resources of _Bushire_ supported the sinking fortunes of the last dynasty. LOOTF ALI KHAN, after the murder of his father JAFFIER KHAN, king of Persia, fled for refuge to SHEIK NASR. The _Sheik_, in memory of his ancient attachment to JAFFIER KHAN, received the prince with the warmest hospitality, and gathering the Arab tribes under his controul, resolved to lead them in the cause which was thus trusted to his honour. The prince in the mean time prepared, by letters, his friends at _Shiraz_ to second their operations; and the measures were continued with secrecy and success, when, in the words of the Persian historian,[14] “The boat of _Sheik_ NASR KHAN’S existence from the beating waves of the sea of life, had received considerable injury; and the bark of his age, from the irresistible tempest of death was overwhelmed in the sea of mortality.” In his last moments the _Sheik_ committed to his son the duty which he was no longer permitted to execute himself. The son fulfilled his father’s charge with faithfulness: in two or three months he had assembled a large force of Arab tribes[15], and advanced with them towards _Shiraz_: when a conspiracy in the camp of their enemy enabled them in the first instance to succeed without a battle, and eventually to reinstate on his throne the Prince who was confided to them. The story marks the character of the two nations more fully, if the history of LOOTF ALI KHAN, before his flight to _Bushire_, be recollected. Although his father had reigned in Persia for a long time (compared with the usurpations which preceded,) although himself had long accustomed the people to serve and triumph with him, yet in the first moment of distress (the arrival of the intelligence of his father’s slaughter, and of the orders of the conspirators to seize him), even in his own camp he was left unsupported by all. Five, indeed, fled with him in the night to _Bushire_; but in the morning the whole camp had dispersed without an effort; and all had submitted to the usurpers. The contrast now begins: the Prince threw himself on the protection of the Arabs, the vassals or allies of his father; he was welcomed with the most warm fidelity, supported by their honour, and restored by their valour to his throne. The _Sheik_ of _Bushire_, who in his dying charge had bequeathed this cause to his successor, is still remembered in his general conduct with reverence. Whenever his little domain was threatened either by the Government of Persia, or by a neighbouring chief, SHEIK NASR flew to arms. According to the traditional accounts of the country, his summons to his followers in these emergencies was equally characteristic and effectual. He mounted two large braziers of _Pillau_ on a camel, and sent it to parade round the country. The rough pace of the animal put the ladles in motion, so that they struck the sides of the vessels at marked intervals, and produced a most sonorous clang. As it traversed the _Dashtistan_, it collected the mob of every district; every one had tasted the Arab hospitality of the _Sheik_, and every one remembered the appeal, and crowded round the ancient standard of their chief, till his camel returned to him surrounded by a force sufficient to repel the threatened encroachments. In every new emergency the camel was again sent forth, and all was again quiet. The territory, therefore, of Bushire, and the neighbouring district, remained under the rule of the Arabs, unviolated by the successive Princes, who have conquered and retained so large a portion of the rest of Persia. But ABDULLAH RESOUL, the grandson of SHEIK NASR, inherited the office only of his predecessor, and possessed no qualities which could command the affections and the services of his people; and though at the time of our landing the government was vested in him as the descendant of the ancient possessors, it was obviously improbable that _Bushire_, which had now become the principal port of Persia, would be suffered to remain long under the administration of a young Arab, of sluggish, dissolute, and unwarlike habits. In the evening of the 16th Oct. (the day after our landing), the _Sheik_ of _Bushire_, escorted by several of the principal men of the town, paid a visit to the Envoy. They had not sat long, when a man came in and whispered something in the ear of one of the visitants, which caused the _Sheik_ to arise, take a hasty leave, and gallop at full speed into the town. The Government of _Shiraz_ had sent a body of men to seize him. He had just time to reach _Bushire_ before the party of _Shiraz_ horsemen could overtake him. He immediately mustered all his little force, planted a guard on the walls, and himself kept constant watch at the gates. He had indeed anticipated the probable designs of the Court of _Shiraz_; and, though now apparently resolved on the last resistance, he had already taken the precaution of shipping most of his property on his own vessels, and with them meditated to retire to _Bussora_. The commander of the _Shiraz_ horsemen, to whom the commission was intrusted, was MAHOMED KHAN, the _Nasakchee Bashee_, an office not ill understood by that of chief executioner[16]. He is always employed, at least, in seizing state prisoners, though his personal character is rather opposite to the duties of his situation; for to the facetiousness of his temper, according to the report of his countrymen, he owes the favour of the Prince of _Shiraz_, and through that favour, his office; and, as a second consequence, the monopoly of tobacco[17]. In the discharge of his functions the _Nasakchee Bashee_ is generally supposed to realize in every commission a considerable sum, besides the maintenance of himself and his followers at the expence of the individuals against whom he may successively be sent. While he waited the accomplishment of his present attempt, he remained encamped at a short distance from the town. About twelve o’clock on the 18th, he made a visit of ceremony to the Envoy. He was attended by eighteen men, himself alone mounted on a horse; on his arrival he seated himself on a couch next to Sir HARFORD JONES, and his men extended themselves in two rows to the right and left before him. The conversation consisted of mutual compliments about health, the hopes of continued amity between Persia and England, and the never failing topic the weather. The whole party wore the black sheep-skin cap (the dress of every rank of Persians), and almost all had pistols in their girdles; some had muskets, and all, except the _Khan_’s own body servants, had swords. Most of them also wore the green and high-heeled slippers of ceremony, and every man had a full black beard. On the day of this visit, the _Sheik_, as a douceur perhaps to engage the Envoy’s interference in his cause, sent him a present of two horses. On the 20th. I went on the part of the Envoy to return the visit of the _Nasakchee Bashee_. He was encamped among some date trees; and living in the remains of a house which was all in ruins, but which he had screened up with mats to keep off the sun and wind. A clean mat was spread on the floor, carpets were arranged all around, and his bed and cushions were rolled up in one corner: over the carpet, on which he sate himself, was a covering of light blue chintz. When we were within a hundred yards, we saw him walking about; but as soon as he perceived our approach, he seated himself in the place of honour, and did not pay us the compliment of rising when we entered. I made him a civil speech in Turkish, and he in return asked after the Envoy’s health. He seemed, indeed, much pleased with the epithet of _Effendi_, which I used frequently in addressing him, but which, as I afterwards learned, is never applied in Persia to any but very great men. His vanity was accordingly much flattered; and he exclaimed to his attendants, that I was “_Khoob Jouani_,” a fine fellow. When we had exhausted all our compliments, we took our leave. The mission on which he was dispatched to _Bushire_ originated in the following circumstances. Some years ago, the _Sheik_ had been required by the Governor of _Farsistan_ to furnish a certain sum of money. He pleaded poverty: he was ordered to borrow; and to obviate every difficulty, he was told that a particular person would advance the money, at an interest indeed prescribed by the same authority which dictated the amount of the capital. The _Nasakchee Bashee_ was now sent to enforce the immediate repayment of the capital and interest, which together had swelled to twenty-eight thousand _tomauns_, a sum nearly equal to the same number of pounds sterling. To save his authority, and perhaps his head, the _Sheik_ endeavoured to accommodate the present difficulty by offering to pay down five thousand _tomauns_, and to secure the rest by instalments. This, however, was refused; and the unfortunate _Sheik_ accordingly gave immediate and public notice of the sale of his effects, his horses, mules, and asses; and in the course of a few days raised fifty thousand piastres. Still the hope of a less rigorous arrangement was not entirely excluded: the _Sheik_, attended by the principal men of the town, and with a strong guard (so stationed that the signal of a moment could bring them to his assistance) visited the _Khan_. The _Khan_ indeed had sworn that he would not molest the _Sheik_ “at present;” though, when asked to extend the oath to every visit or opportunity, he replied that he would not answer for the directions which he might receive from his government. Two days after the visit, we observed a party of forty horsemen arrive at the _Khan_’s encampment, who probably bore the last orders of the Court. On the 25th of Oct. the Envoy received an intimation of a visit, jointly from the _Sheik_ and the _Nasackchee Bashee_; but he was so much occupied, that at the time he could not accept it. In a few minutes after we heard a great commotion among the servants, and an outcry that the _Sheik_ was seized. By the assistance, indeed, of our glasses we perceived the unfortunate man, with his arms pinioned, surrounded by about twenty horsemen, and dragged away at full speed towards the _Shiraz_ road. It appeared, that trusting in this conditional oath of the _Khan_, the _Sheik_ had accepted his invitation to visit with him the Envoy, and had gone forth from the town escorted by five men only. On his way to the Envoy, he called for the _Khan_; and when they were both mounted, the _Khan_ cried out to his men to seize, disarm, and carry off their prisoner. The consternation of the town was immediate and general. Mr. BRUCE, the Assistant Resident, was sent by the Envoy to learn the particulars of its situation: he found the gates shut, and the towers manned, but he gained admittance through the wicket, and saw all the misery and confusion of the crisis. The _Sheik_’s wives and servants were embarking in great haste on board one of his ships; his _Vizir_ also, HAJEE SULIMAN, was hastening his own preparations to escape. The shops were shut, the streets were crowded with men transporting their households to the sea shore, and their wives and daughters were beating their breasts and crying in loud lamentation. Nor was there a shew of resistance, except on the walls; or a thought of defence: the only hope and the only thought of every man was the preservation of his little fortunes and the honour of his women. The same alarm prevailed in the country; all the poor date-hut villagers flocked for protection into the Factory, and trusted to its walls the security of their families and their scanty wealth. Women and children, their asses and their poultry, were all indiscriminately hurried into the enclosure; and before the evening we saw around us no common scenes of misery and terror. The Assistant Resident, who had examined this state of things in the town, was sent, on his return, by the Envoy to the _Khan_, to represent the alarm of the place; and to add, that the Envoy expected that no molestation should be offered to any of the persons belonging to his mission. The _Khan_ was extremely civil, and treated him as usual with coffee and three _kaleouns_. He informed him on the subject of his commission; that he had orders from his court to seize the _Sheik_, his cousin, and his _Vizir_: and then read to him the _firman_. The _firman_, in the first place, ordained the act of seizure; and then ordained, that not the smallest molestation should be given to the English, that every possible respect and attention should be shewn to them, and strongly denounced vengeance on any offender; and lastly ordained, that no inhabitant, either of the town or of the villages, should receive the least harm. In his own name, he assured the Assistant Resident, that he was determined to put the _firman_ in its full force; and turning to his followers and guards, cried out, “Woe be to that man who shall be found guilty of giving the smallest offence to any Englishman, or to any of his servants, or to any thing that belongs to him.” He added, indeed, that the present fate of the _Sheik_ was the punishment of his ungracious behaviour to the English;[18] and swore, that, for his own part, nothing was so strongly the object of his mind, as the good will of our nation. The _Khan_ further stated, that he had intended, in the proposed visit of the morning in conjunction with the _Sheik_, first to have read the _firman_ to the _Elchee_, (the Embassador), and then to have executed it on the _Sheik_; but the _Sheik_ had tempted him by an opportunity so resistless, that he could not pay the full compliment to the Envoy of delaying the seizure till the communication had been made. MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN, who is known to the English as the Persian Embassador at _Calcutta_, had procured the succession to the Government of _Bushire_, at the price, it was said, of forty thousand _tomauns_[19]. At this moment the _Vizir_ HAJEE SULIMAN was seized on the point of embarkation. The _Khan_ had declared that he would not spare _Bushire_ unless the _Vizir_ was delivered to him. The people, therefore, of his own town intercepted his flight, and surrendered him to the _Khan_. But the cousin of the _Sheik_, whose fate was threatened in the same proscription, escaped. There, as in Turkey, and probably in all despotic countries, the guilt, or rather the disgrace, of an individual, entails equal punishment on all his family and adherents. On the following morning, MAHOMED KHAN, the _Nasakchee Bashee_, whose mission had produced these changes, entered _Bushire_, and assumed the administration of the government. The town was so far tranquillized, indeed, that the _Bazars_ were re-opened. The proclamations which the _Khan_ had issued, pledging security and peace to the inhabitants, had recalled them to their houses; and the example of severe punishment, which he inflicted on one of his own men for stealing the turban of a Jew, operated still more powerfully than his assurances. In the course of the morning we rode to the gates of the town: there was here a large assembly of armed men, for little other purpose indeed than to hear the news and the lies of the day: for a picture, however, the mob was excellent; nothing can be marked more strongly in character, than the hard and parched-up features of the inhabitants of this part of Persia. Though the first consternation had thus subsided, the people had not resumed their daily occupations. In the course of our ride we did not meet a single woman carrying water, or a single ass carrying wood; for the circumstances which had now happened were unparalleled in the memory of the oldest inhabitant, and excited the strongest emotion throughout the country. In appearance, indeed, the place was already tranquil; but the regulations which the _Khan_ enforced, were too little accommodated to the previous habits of the people to reconcile them to his administration. Some of the most respectable merchants prepared to emigrate, and all beheld with terror the officers of police displaying in the _Bazars_ the preparations for the bastinado, (the justice of Persia), with which they contrasted very favourably the lenient rule of their Arab Chief. In the progress of his government, the _Khan_ still continued to exasperate the principal inhabitants by extorting donations of their goods. When, indeed, MAHOMED JAFFER, the brother of the expected Governor, received in his turn such a demand, he not only returned a direct denial, but wrote to the townsmen to arm in revenge, and defend themselves against such requisitions. In a few days the same MAHOMED JAFFER, in obedience to new orders was proclaimed by the _Khan_, Governor pro tempore till the arrival of his brother; and was invested in this dignity by the girding of a sword on his thigh, an honour which he accepted with a reluctance perhaps not wholly feigned. When he was complimented on the occasion, he replied, “You see to what I am come at last; all would not do: I was obliged to put on this sword.” But the moment that he assumed the government, he followed in his turn all the rigours of his predecessor, and bastinadoed his new subjects without commiseration. His reign, however, was short: on the 7th of November he was seized by the _Khan_, (the _Nasakchee Bashee_), thrown into prison, and fastened to the wall by a chain, said to have been sent expressly from _Shiraz_ for his neck, but in reality intended for that of HAJEE SULIMAN, the late _Vizir_ of _Bushire_. The cause of his disgrace was his supposed instigation of the flight of the _Vizir_, who had contrived to escape by sea; and this punishment was to be enforced unless he delivered up the fugitive, or paid twenty thousand _tomauns_. As the Vice-Governor was unable or unwilling to conform to either requisition, he remained in prison. At length, however, he resolved on attempting the re-capture of the _Vizir_; and would have undertaken the voyage, if the security, which he offered for his own return, had been deemed sufficient by the _Nasakchee Bashee_. In the mean time his release was prepared on easier and surer terms. MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN, the appointed Governor of _Bushire_, though little friendly to his brother, was yet jealous of the honour of his family, and felt in his own person the indignity which the late punishment of the chain had inflicted on JAFFER. He swore, therefore, that he would not rest till the head of his brother’s enemy was cut off; and as the first act of his influence procured the immediate restoration of his brother to his former offices. JAFFER was accordingly released from the prison where he was chained by the neck, and again seated in the administration. I must not omit as a specimen of Persian character, the mode of communication which notified this change at _Bushire_. The Prince’s Messenger that brought the intelligence from _Shiraz_ of the disgrace of the _Nasakchee Bashee_, came into the presence of MAHOMED JAFFER, and told him, “Come, now is the time to open your purse-strings; you are now no longer a merchant or in prison; you are now no longer to sell _dungaree_, (a species of coarse linen); you are a governor; come, you must be liberal, I bring you good intelligence: if I had been ordered to cut off your head, I would have done it with the greatest pleasure; but now, as I bring you good news, I must have some money.” The man that said this was a servant, and the man that bore it was the new Governor of _Bushire_. In a few days MAHOMED JAFFER paid us a visit, in appearance perfectly unconscious of the indignities which he had suffered. But the habitual despotism which the people are born to witness, familiarises them so much to every act of violence which may be inflicted on themselves or on others, that they view all events with equal indifference, and go in and out of prison, are bastinadoed, fined, and exposed to every ignominy, with an apathy which nothing but custom and fatalism could produce. On the 4th of Dec. the restored Vice-Governor was invested with a _kalaat_, or dress of honour, from the Prince at _Shiraz_; and his dignities were announced by the discharge of cannon. The form of his investiture was as follows:--Attended by all the great men, and by all his guards (the greater part of whom were the shopkeepers of the _Bazar_ armed for the occasion), the new Governor issued from the town to meet his vest. As soon as he met it he alighted from his horse, and making a certain obeisance was presented with it by the person deputed by the Prince to convey it. The whole party then rode to the spot appointed for the investiture; thither the _kalaat_ was brought in state on a tray, surrounded by other trays decked with sweetmeats. The Governor was here assisted to throw off his old clothes, and to put on his new and distinguishing apparel. The whole present consisted of a ponderous brocade coat with a sash, and another vest trimmed with furs, and valued altogether at one hundred and fifty piastres, though the receiver would pay for the honour (in presents to the bearer and to the Prince in return) the sum, perhaps, of a thousand _tomauns_. When he was invested, his late clothes were carried away as the perquisite of the servants. After this, the _firman_ was read, declaring the motives which had induced the Prince to confer so marked an honour on AGA MAHOMED JAFFER, and then every one present complimented him on the occasion, with a “_Moobarek bashed_, Good fortune attend you.” After this the company smoked, drank coffee, and eat sweet cakes; and then mounting their horses escorted the Governor into his town. The Governor, in his glittering but uneasy garb, re-entered _Bushire_, amid the noise of cannon and the bustle of a gaping multitude; and the ceremony closed. These honours were conferred on AGA MAHOMED JAFFER, as a compensation for his late indignities, probably through the influence of his brother; but his brother had a less questionable merit, than that of thus revenging the wrongs of his own family: for to his influence his deposed predecessor owed his life. When the unhappy _Sheik_ of _Bushire_ was dragged to _Shiraz_, and hurried into the presence of the Prince, all his crimes real or fictitious were immediately accumulated in his face. Of every vice in the catalogue of enormity he was pronounced guilty, till the passions of the Prince were so exasperated, that he ordered his victim to be decapitated on the spot. MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN then threw himself at the Prince’s feet, and entreated that the life of the wretch might be spared. The Prince was sufficiently appeased to grant the supplication, but ordered the _Sheik_ to be blinded. Again, a second time, his intercessor threw himself at the Prince’s feet, and saved the prisoner’s eyes. The Prince contented himself with ordering the _Sheik_ into confinement. The particular interest which these changes might have excited in the people, is swallowed up by the consideration, that their new masters in every change are Persians, and that the rule of Arabs is over. A feeling which naturally did not conciliate the Arab community to any successor of their _Sheik_. The general impression was not ill-expressed by an old Arab, whom we found fishing along the shore. “What is our Governor? A few days ago he was a merchant in the _Bazar_; then he was our Governor: yesterday he was chained by the neck in prison; to-day he is our Governor again; what respect can we pay him? The Governor that is to be, was a few years ago a poor scribe; and what is worse he is a Persian. It is clear that we Arabs shall now go to the wall, and the Persians will flourish.” CHAP. III. RESIDENCE OF THE MISSION AT BUSHIRE. CORRESPONDENCE WITH THE PERSIAN GOVERNMENT: INTRODUCTION OF THE EUROPEAN DISCIPLINE AT SHIRAZ--MILITARY PREPARATIONS--PERSIAN LETTER--(DERVEISHES)--CONDUCT OF THE NASAKCHEE BASHEE--PRESENT TO THE ENVOY FROM THE COURT--MEHMANDAR--ARRIVAL OF AN OFFICER FROM SHIRAZ--DESCRIPTION OF HIS PARTY--HIS VISIT RETURNED--CEREMONIES OF A VISIT--FEAST OF THE BAIRAM--ACCOUNT OF THE CAPTURE AND RECAPTURE OF THE SYLPH--DEATH OF MR. COARE. The negociation was begun at _Bushire_. On the day after our landing the Envoy despatched his letters to JAFFER ALI KHAN, the acting English agent at _Shiraz_; and through him to the Prince HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA, Governor of _Farsistan_; to the Prince’s Minister, NASR OALAH KHAN; and to the Prime Minister at _Teheran_, MIRZA SHEFFEEA. These letters all contained the simple statement, that the writer had arrived as Envoy Extraordinary from the King of Great Britain to the King of Persia, in order to confirm and augment the amity which had so long existed between the two countries. On the 19th of Oct. we received despatches from JAFFER ALI KHAN at _Shiraz_; which, among the more immediate topics of the correspondence, contained naturally full accounts of the progress of the campaign with the Russians, (the most important object in the existing politics of Persia), and the general sensations which it had excited at _Teheran_. These details retain of course little interest; it is enough to add, rather as a sketch of national character, that the King, in consequence of his reverses, had distributed alms to the poor, had ordered prayers to be said in the mosques, and the denunciations of vengeance on all unbelievers to be read from the Koran. The military preparations also were hastened at _Shiraz_ (in some measure for a different object); and the Russian prisoners there were ordered to drill the Persian troops, who had been raised and equipped after a Russian manner. The account of this new corps was continued in other letters (which, on the 23d, we received in two days and a half from _Shiraz_). The Prince was instructed to form a body of able young men, to shave them if they had already beards, and to dress them in the Russian uniform. There was at this time at _Shiraz_, another body also of seven hundred hardy and active men, (of the _Bolouk_ or _Perganah_ of _Noor_ in _Mazanderan_), who were in the same manner to be subjected to the discipline of the Russian drill, to lose their beards, to substitute the firelock for the matchlock gun, (which they had been accustomed to use), and to assume the whole dress of the Russian soldiery. MAHOMED ZEKY KHAN and SHEIK ROOTA KHAN were appointed their commanders. The _Jezaerchi_ also, the men who use blunderbusses, were to wear the new Russian dress. The French at this time were very anxious to proceed to _Shiraz_, to drill the new-raised corps; but as the King prevented them in a former instance from sending a Resident to _Bushire_ lest they should have found that the English factory was still in Persia, he now equally prevented their advancing to _Shiraz_, lest the English in their turn should discover the arrival of their competitors. New gun-carriages after the Russian form were ordered (though those before made after the same pattern broke to pieces at the first fire), and five thousand new firelocks; but as the Prince found great difficulty in procuring the execution of a former order of two thousand only, he had in this instance sent into _Laristan_ for three thousand matchlock guns, and into other provinces for the remainder, to convert them at _Shiraz_ into firelocks, by affixing to the original barrel the new lock. Provisions also, of all sorts, were collecting into magazines at _Shiraz_. These preparations were hastened by the Prince himself from personal motives. His dexterity in hitting a mark with a gun at full gallop, and in cutting asunder an ass with one blow of his sword had been so much exaggerated, that the King became desirous of witnessing these exploits, and would have sent for his son to court, if the apprehensions at this time of General MALCOLM’S return from India with an army had not furnished a seasonable necessity for the Prince’s presence in his own provinces; and he prepared himself therefore, with great zeal, to march to _Bender-Abassy_, to await there the arrival of the English in the Persian Gulph. As a specimen of Persian wit, as well as in the relation of a Persian’s proficiency in English, I extract literally, from JAFFER ALI’S letter, the following account of the Prince of _Shiraz_:--“As he is a great quiz and flatterer, he flattered me much, and I made an equal return to him. Owing to the immense dust that blown all the while upon the road, my face and beard covered with dust, and appearing myself to be white, the Prince therefore sayed to me, that my black beard became with grey hairs in his service; I returned that whoever serves _Khadmute Boozurk Whan_ (His Highness) becomes white-faced for eternity, as the common proverb among the Persians, that when a man serves his master with zeal, he says to his servant ’_roo sefeed_, white face,’ and on the contrary they say ‘_roo seeah_, black face:’” two very common expressions in the country, denoting severally honour and disgrace.[20] It is not an unfair criterion of the new impulse which the Court of Persia had received, to add, that by second orders from _Teheran_, as they were reported to us, the Princes of the districts were required to adopt in their own persons the Russian uniform. The Prince of _Tabriz_, _Abbas Mirza_, had already conformed to the costume; and the Prince at _Shiraz_, with a hundred of his immediate attendants, was preparing to assume the same garb; and as we learned on the 10th, by other dispatches, already appeared in it. The proposed adoption by Sultan SELIM, of the dress of the _Nizam Gedid_ troops, was the signal of revolt to his Janizaries, and the direct cause of his dethronement. The national levity of the Persians counteracts the original rigour of their religious principles, and disposes them, from the mere love of change, to admit the encroachments of European manners, which would rouse to despair and revenge the less volatile character of the Turks, and animate them in defence of their least usage with all the first enthusiasm of their faith.[21] Though the conduct of the negociations with Persia had no connexion with the mere change of masters in _Bushire_, which was effected during our residence on the spot, and there was, therefore, little direct political intercourse between the Envoy and the _Nasakchee Bashee_, (the Chief Executioner), who superintended those changes: yet as that officer was the ostensible representative of the Government of _Shiraz_, some communications naturally took place. Before the assumption of the administration of _Bushire_, (while the _Khan’s_ object was yet unattained), there was in this intercourse little unsatisfactory; but in his later conduct to the mission, there was something of the insolence of newly acquired power; he sent word more than once that he was coming to pay a visit to the Envoy, and as frequently neglected his engagement. At length he arrived, puffing in great haste; and as soon as he had seated himself, he pulled off his black sheep-skin cap, and begun to read a paper which he took from his pocket. The Envoy asked him, if he were reading a _firman_ from the court, which ordered him to sit bald-headed. The reproof startled him, and the Envoy continued; that, representing as he did his Sovereign, he could not permit the _Khan_ to do in his presence an act of disrespect which he would not do before his equals, and much less before his superiors. The _Khan_ immediately put on his cap, and in his shame waved his hand for his attendants to withdraw. Sir HARFORD also ordered his own Persians to retire, and as the suite were in succession leaving the room the _Khan_ had some leisure to digest the well-timed rebuke. The notice which the Envoy had been thus obliged to take of an apparent disrespect in the _Khan’s_ conduct was the more necessary, as He had that morning received a letter from the Prince at _Shiraz_, the form and terms of which required some explanation; and on which, therefore, the Envoy felt himself compelled to remark, that the correspondence during the negociation must be absolutely and in every view independent; and He desired the _Khan_ accordingly to intimate this determination to the Prince’s Minister. The representation was immediately successful; and to the line of conduct thus enforced, both parties adhered throughout their future communications. When this matter was adjusted, much friendly conversation followed, and the affair of the cap and bald-head was laughed over. The Envoy expressed indeed his wish to render the _Khan_ in his visit as comfortable as possible; but repeated also his resolution to suffer no act of inattention before servants and strangers. The _Khan_ accordingly (though as it was the _Ramazan_ he would not smoke) left us seemingly well pleased. But in another instance the same want of respect was visible, though the effect probably of ignorance only. On the 30th Oct. he sent a present of some fruit and two horses, one for the Envoy and one for the East India Company’s Assistant Resident. SIR HARFORD immediately returned that destined for himself, to remind the _Khan_ of the distinction. On the 8th of Nov. arrived, carried on fourteen mules, the _balconah_, the customary present to an Embassador. It consisted of the following articles:-- 50 Lumps of loaf sugar, 35 Small boxes of different kinds of sweetmeats, 1 Mule load of lime-juice, consisting of ninety-six bottles, 23 Bottles of orange and other kinds of sherbet, 22 Bottles of different kinds of preserves, pickles, &c. 4 Mule loads of musk-melons, 1 Ditto of _Ispahan_ quinces, Half ditto of apples, 1 Ditto of pomegranates, 1 Ditto of wine, thirty-nine bottles. The whole was accompanied by a letter from NASR OALAH KHAN, the Minister at _Shiraz_, replete with compliment and inquiries about health, and entrusted to the care of AGA MAHOMED ALI, one of the Prince’s servants, who received for himself from the Envoy a present of five hundred piastres. The great men profit by these opportunities of enriching by such returns any servant to whom in their own persons they may owe an obligation, and to whom they thus, cheaply to themselves, repay it. But the charge of a present is frequently made the matter of a bargain among the adherents of the donor, and perhaps is sometimes purchased directly from the great man himself. On the 13th of Nov. we were informed, that a _Mehmandar_ had been appointed by the court to escort the Envoy to _Teheran_. The title of _Mehmandar_ has been familiarized to an English reader by His Majesty’s appointment of Sir GORE OUSELEY to fill the station during the residence in England of MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, late Envoy Extraordinary from the King of Persia to the Court of London. But the duties which, in England, the most active _Mehmandar_ could comprize within his office are comparatively very limited to those which are indispensably attached to a similar station in Persia. The _Mehmandar_ is the Superintendant and Purveyor assigned to the dignity and ease of foreign Embassadors; the relative facility, therefore, with which he can discharge these functions must vary of course with the state of society in different countries. In England money procures every accommodation; but money alone can procure it now: purveyance, however, in its feudal sense, unfortunately for the people, still exists in its full force in Persia; and the _Mehmandar_, under the commission of his Sovereign, is entitled to demand from the provinces through which he passes every article in every quantity which he may deem expedient for his mission. And as there is no public accommodation on the road where, at every hour as in England, these supplies may be procured, they are extorted from the private stores of the villagers. Besides every requisite of provision and conveyance, the _firman_ of the _Mehmandar_ sometimes includes even specie among the articles thus necessary in the passage. It is not, therefore, wonderful, that the officer entrusted with this power, though generally a man of high rank, is generally also understood to purchase the nomination at very large prices. The proportion of the purchase is the proportion of course of the demands on the country: the villager groans under the oppression, but in vain shrinks from it; every argument of his poverty is answered, if by nothing else, at least by the bastinado. The information of the appointment was premature: MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN, an officer of rank, had indeed been dispatched from _Shiraz_, but he was entrusted with a more private commission to the Envoy. On the 19th his immediate approach to _Bushire_ was announced. As, independently of the confidence which by this mission the Government appeared to repose in him, he possessed high personal rank, (as one of the Chiefs of the _Karaguzlou_ tribe, one of the most numerous, warlike, and respectable of all under the jurisdiction of Persia,) the first Minister at _Shiraz_ wrote to the Envoy to desire that He would send the person next in rank to himself to receive him. The Envoy accordingly ordered me to proceed on the occasion. I went, accompanied by Mr. BRUCE and Dr. JUKES, and escorted by Cornet WILLOCK with ten troopers, and five _Chattars_. The _Chattars_ are those running footmen who, in fantastical dresses, generally surround the horse of a great man; but the name is applied not only to these attendants of shew, but to those messengers also who perform their journies on foot, and perform them with a dispatch almost incredible. When we had proceeded about a mile we met the stranger. He was thinly attended, having travelled in haste. When we approached, our little squadron drew up in a line as he passed; and we advanced, and made our respective compliments. We then all turned back together, and brought him into the presence of the Envoy, who received him sitting on one corner of the sopha, but rose just as he approached it. We were all dressed with more or less ornament in honour of our guest; and during his visit we kept on our hats. The _Nasakchee Bashee_ had already fallen into his train, when we first met him; and during the short stay which he now made, the Vice-governor of _Bushire_, AGA MAHOMED JAFFER, came to pay his respects also. He advanced immediately to the _Khan_, seized his hand, which he kissed, whilst the _Khan_ applied his beard and mouth to the other’s face, and kissed his cheek. The manners of our guest himself were pleasant and modest, and spoke the simplicity of a man bred in camps. When the Envoy had inquired after his health, the health of the Prince, of the minister, and successively of other great men, the stranger, after the interchange of a few compliments, departed to take up his abode with the Vice-governor. As he entered _Bushire_, the guns at the gate were fired, but one of them could not bear the shock, and flew out of the carriage. For fear therefore of the gates and tower, they did not venture to discharge the sixty-eight pounder, which was mounted in the town; an apprehension not purely imaginary. The party appeared particularly gloomy: their clothes were of a dark hue, and their caps and their beards were of the deepest black. Every one had a musket, a sword, a brace of pistols, and a great variety of little conveniences, as powder-flasks, cartouche-boxes, hammers, drivers, &c. so that the aggregate equipment displayed every man a figure made up for fighting. The _Khan_ was dressed exactly like his followers, and was alone distinguished by carrying fewer arms. He had, indeed, one _Yeduk_ or led horse before him. The trappings of their horses are very simple, compared to those of the Turks. The head-stall of the bridle has little bits of gold and silver, or brass fixed to it, without the tassels, chains, half-moons, or beads of a Turkish bridle. Nor have they the splendid breast-plate, or the bright and massy stirrup of the Turkish cavalry. Their saddle itself is much more scanty in the seat, nor is it so much elevated behind. The only finery of a Persian saddle is a raised pummel either gilt or silvered; and a saddle-cloth, or rather an elegant kind of carpetting, trimmed with a deep fringe. On the next day, the Envoy directed me to return, in his name, the visit of MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN. He was lodged in the house which then belonged to the Vice-governor, but which had been the property of the late HAJEE KHELIL KHAN, (the Embassador of Persia, who was unfortunately killed at _Bombay_.) The room into which we were introduced was very pleasant, and by far more agreeable than any thing that I had expected at _Bushire_. Two pillars, neatly inlaid with looking-glasses, supported it on one side, and thus separated it from a small court, which was crowded with servants. An orange tree stood in the centre of the court. The walls of the room were of a beautiful white stucco, resembling plaster of Paris; and large curtains were suspended around them, to screen in every position the company from the sun. The _Khan_ was seated in a corner, and having taken off our shoes at the door, we paid our respects severally, and then settled ourselves according to our rank. When we were arranged, he went about separately to each, and with an inclination of his head, told us we were welcome, (“_Khosh Amedeed_.”) The Vice-governor next appeared, and sat respectfully at a little distance. He was followed by the Governor of the small neighbouring district of _Dasti_, a rough looking man, who exchanged a kiss with the Khan. We had _kaleoons_, (the water pipe), then sweet sherbet, then again the _kaleoons_. Few words passed, and we did little except look at each other. Two or three Arabs came in, and were welcomed by the Khan with the “_khosh amedeed_” as they seated themselves at the further end of the room. The measurement of their distances in a visit seems a study of most general application in Persia; and the knowledge of compliments is the only knowledge displayed in their meetings; if, indeed, the visits of ceremony, which alone we witnessed, could be considered a fair specimen of national manners or the state of society. When visited by a superior, the Persian rises hastily and meets his guest nearly at the door of the apartment: on the entrance of an equal, he just raises himself from his seat, and stands nearly erect; but to an inferior he makes the motion only of rising. When a great man is speaking, the style of respect in Persia is not quite so servile as that in India. In listening the Indians join their hands together, (as in England little children are taught to do in prayer,) place them on their breast, and making inclinations of the body sit mute. A visit is much less luxurious in Persia than in Turkey. Instead of the sophas and the easy pillows of Turkey, the visitor in Persia is seated on a carpet or mat without any soft support on either side, or any thing except his hands, or the accidental assistance of a wall, to relieve the galling posture of his legs. The misery of that posture in its politest form can scarcely be understood by description: you are required to sit upon your heels, as they are tucked up under your hams after the fashion of a camel. To us, this refinement was impossible; and we thought that we had attained much merit in sitting cross-legged as tailors. In the presence of his superiors a Persian sits upon his heels, but only cross-legged before his equals, and in any manner whatever before his inferiors. To an English frame and inexperience, the length of time during which the Persian will thus sit untired on his heels, is most extraordinary; sometimes for half a day, frequently even sleeping. They never think of changing their positions, and like other Orientals consider our locomotion to be as extraordinary as we can regard their quiescence. When they see us walking to and fro, sitting down, getting up, and moving in every direction, often have they fancied that Europeans are tormented by some evil spirit, or that such is our mode of saying our prayers. Before the close of our visit, it was settled that the Khan should send in the course of that evening the letters with which he had been charged to the Envoy, and that on the morrow he should come to a personal conference, and open his verbal communications. The _Ramazan_ was now over: the new moon, which marks the termination, was seen on the preceding evening just at sun-set, when the ships at anchor fired their guns on the occasion; and on the morning of our visit, the _Bairam_ was announced by the discharge of cannon. A large concourse of people, headed by the _Peish Namaz_, went down to the seaside to pray, and when they had finished their prayers, more cannon were discharged. Just before we passed through the gates of the town in returning from our visit, we rode through a crowd of men, women, and children, all in their best clothes, who, by merry-making of every kind were celebrating the feast. Among their sports, I discovered something like the round-about of an English fair, except that it appeared of a much ruder construction. It consisted of two rope-seats suspended, in the form of a pair of scales, from a large stake fixed in the ground. In these were crowded full-grown men who, like boys, enjoyed the continual twirl, in which the conductor of the sport, a poor Arab, was labouring with all his strength to keep the machine. The feast itself of the _Bairam_ begins of course successively in every season of the natural year, for in the formation of their civil year the Persians, like other Mahomedans, adopt lunar months. When it occurs in summer, the _Ramazan_, or month of fasting which precedes it, becomes extremely severe; every man of every kind of business, the labourer in the midst of the hardest work, is forbidden to take any kind of nourishment from sun-rise to sun-set, during the longest days of the year. Their full day is calculated from sun-set to sun-set, but their sub-division of time varies like that of the Hindoos and Mussulmans of India, according to the difference of the length of the natural day. In their calculation of the close of the fast, and the commencement of the _Bairam_, they are seldom assisted by almanacks: it frequently happens, therefore, that the same feast is celebrated two days earlier, or delayed two days later in different parts of the country, according to the state of the atmosphere: as the new moon may be obscured by clouds in one city or displayed in another by the clearness of the sky. On the 21st of November MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN KARAGUZLOU paid the appointed visit to the Envoy. A part of the body guard was sent out to meet him, and we received him as before in uniforms and hats. After the usual ceremonies were over, the Envoy and his guest retired to an inner apartment; and after a conference, which lasted four hours, the _Khan_ departed to _Bushire_ with the same escort, to whom on parting he gave a present of fifty Venetian sequins. The conference had been satisfactory, as at dinner the Envoy announced to us that we might now complete all our preparations for a journey to _Teheran_. Still with a volatility not unusual in the diplomacy of the East, the _Khan_ two days afterwards refused to sign, in the name of the Persian Government, the note of the terms on which they had agreed at their meeting: and at ten o’clock at night the Vice-Governor, and the two _Moonshees_, came to us. After a long debate they departed; and, to the satisfaction of all parties the business was finally settled the next morning, when, previous to his return to _Shiraz_, the _Khan_ paid his farewell visit to the Envoy. He returned to _Shiraz_; and, as we learned by our next dispatches from JAFFER ALI, immediately appeared before the Prince, where he talked for “seven hours without stopping once,” on the Envoy and his merits. JAFFER ALI added, that he himself had dined with the Prince’s Prime Minister, and that they also had talked till two o’clock in the morning on the same alluring subject. After having both agreed that, by the progress of the negociation, they had already rendered themselves immortal, they retired to rest, and the next morning, the Minister, on the appointment of a _Mehmandar_ to the mission, asked JAFFER ALI for the _Moodjdéhlook_, or customary present, for which accordingly he received a Cashmirian shawl. In general politics the dispatches stated, that the Russians had renewed hostilities, though General GARDANNE, the French Embassador in Persia, had sent four of his officers to the Russian Commander to entreat that he would desist from any further operations; but the Russian answered, that his master had ordered him to fight on. The failure of this attempt had greatly contributed to disgrace the cause of the French; and the Court retrenched in consequence their daily allowances. The _Mehmandar_, who was announced in these dispatches, was MAHOMED ZEKY KHAN, (the chief of the _Noory_ tribe, one of the new modeled corps) a great favourite at the Court of _Teheran_, and with the Prince of _Shiraz_, and advanced lately by the King to the dignity of _Khan_. It was added also, that his appointments were more magnificent than any which had ever before been annexed to the _Mehmandar_ of an English Envoy; and, as a further proof of the estimation in which His Majesty’s mission was held, JAFFER ALI stated, that the Prince had prepared for him, as our acting Agent at _Shiraz_, a rich dress of honour, which, however, he had found means to decline from a fear of the jealousy which it might have excited against him. But the Prince, resolved on bestowing upon him some distinguishing mark of his favour, had given him a shawl, which belonged to one of his own head-dresses, and a young and promising Arab horse, which had been sent as a present to himself by the Governor of _Chabi_. So well indeed had JAFFER ALI deserved the confidence of both the negociating parties, that Sir HARFORD JONES, now at the close of these preliminary arrangements, sent him a patent constituting him the Agent for the British affairs at the Court of _Shiraz_. It will be recollected that the _Nereide_, the _Sapphire_, and the _Sylph_, sailed with the mission from _Bombay_ on the 12th of September. The _Nereide_ arrived first; the _Sapphire_ also reached _Bushire_ about sun-set on the 18th October. The Arab ships too, that we passed off Cape _Verdistan_, had come in about noon on the same day, and had continued firing their guns at distant intervals till the evening: but the _Sylph_, on board which were the Persian Secretary and some of the presents, was yet missing; nor indeed had we seen her, since the second day after that on which we had left together the harbour of _Bombay_. On the 29th Oct. arrived the _Nautilus_, H. C. cruizer, which had sailed from the same port on the 22d Sept. Though she had neither seen or heard directly any thing of the _Sylph_, yet the circumstances of her own passage prepared us to anticipate the worst. The _Nautilus_ had been attacked off the large _Tomb_, in the Gulph of Persia, by the _Joasmee_ pirates; three only were at first in sight, but on the signal of a gun, a fourth appeared, and together they bore down, two on the quarters and two on the bows of the _Nautilus_; they were full of men, perhaps six hundred in the four vessels, all armed with swords and spears, and, as they shouted their religious invocations, they shook their weapons at the ship. When the engagement became closer, they maintained a fire of twenty-five minutes, and one of their shot killed the boatswain of the _Nautilus_. Of these pirates an interesting account was published in India by Mr. LOANE, who was taken prisoner by them. It is unnecessary, therefore, to add more on the subject than that their chief resort is at _Roselkeim_, on the Arabian coast of the Gulph of Persia: another, but tributary, chief of the same people resides twenty-five miles from _Roselkeim_ at _Egmaun_, S. S. W. of Cape _Musseldom_, where they possess an extensive and lucrative pearl fishery. This, with the market which their plunder finds there, is the principal source of the traffic of the place. Though it may not be necessary to enter into a detail, which may be better found in original authorities, it must be very obvious, that the honour of our flag, as well as the interest of our commerce in the East, will require the destruction of a fleet of pirates, which, assembling to the amount of fifty sail in the harbour of _Roselkeim_, issue thence to capture every English as well as native ship, and to spread terror through the Gulph of Persia.[22] On the arrival of the _Nautilus_, under these circumstances, the Envoy dispatched a letter to Captain DAVIS of the _Sapphire_, requesting him to proceed to the entrance of the Gulph, to secure the _Sylph_, if possible. On the 6th Nov. a boat arrived from _Roselkeim_, at the date of the departure of which no such capture had been made; but in three days, another boat came in, which brought an account that four vessels had been taken, one of which contained a _Nawab_. We immediately recognized by this description the unfortunate Persian Secretary, the splendour of whose dress had imposed him as a Nabob on the pirates. The next day a still more circumstantial account of the capture reached us, which convinced us that the vessel taken was the _Sylph_; but the report added, that a large vessel from _Bushire_ (which we instantly identified with the _Nereide_) came in sight during the action, and having sunk one of the pirates, (of whose crew of three hundred scarcely any escaped), retook their prize. In the action too, the pirates lost one of their first chiefs, SAL BEN SAL. The loss of one individual, the most insignificant, of their tribe is sufficient cause for a declaration of war; but the destruction of so large a portion of their whole numbers would dispirit rather than so animate the remainder; and the tribe would probably agree never again to approach an English ship. The pirates had, in fact, been so disheartened by their disaster, that when, a few days afterwards, a single Arab ship (commanded indeed by an Englishman) fell among them, and, finding herself unable either to fight or to escape, bore down upon them to try a shew of resistance, they all fled. At length on the 26th Nov. the _Minerva_, H. C. cruizer, Captain HOPGOOD, arrived, and brought the Persian Secretary, who had been captured in the _Sylph_. The Secretary was much connected at _Bushire_, and his detention had of course excited great uneasiness among his relations, who had been putting up prayers in the mosques for his safety. His account of their fate was not uninteresting. At the time when the pirates were standing the same course with herself, the _Sylph_ discovered the _Nereide_ bearing down upon her. When the _Nereide_ came close, she hove-to; but as the commander of the _Sylph_ did not send a boat on board of her, she filled her sails and stood on. When the _Nereide_ had already passed at some distance, the two _dows_ stood towards the _Sylph_. The Persian Secretary advised the officer of the ship not to permit the _dows_ to approach; but he would not listen to the suggestion, as he declared they would not touch him. The _dows_, however, did approach so close, that the _Sylph_ had only time to fire one gun, and to discharge her musquetry at them, before they were alongside, and poured on board her in great and overwhelming numbers. It is unnecessary to state all the circumstances. The Persian Secretary from the concealment to which he had fled, was still able to ascertain that, as the first act of possession, the Arabs threw water on the ship to purify it; that they then proceeded to the deliberate murder of the men, who were on deck or discoverable; that they brought them one by one to the gangway, and in the spirit of barbarous fanaticism cut their throats as sacrifices; crying out before the slaughter of each victim, “_Ackbar_” and when the deed was done, “_Allah il Allah._” In the space of an hour they had thus put to death twenty-two persons; and were proceeding with lights to look for more, when they were astonished by a shot through the _Sylph_ from the _Nereide_. On perceiving the disaster of the _Sylph_, Captain CORBETT had immediately hauled-up; and though far to the windward his shot still reached. The Arabs immediately took to their _dows_; and, elated by the havock of their success, made for the _Nereide_. As soon as Captain CORBETT perceived that they were bearing down upon him, he ceased firing altogether. The Persian Secretary told us, that he saw the _dows_ approach so close to the frigate, that the Arabs were enabled to commence the attack in their usual manner by throwing stones. Still the _Nereide_ did not fire; till at length when both _dows_ were fairly alongside, she opened two tremendous broadsides. The Secretary said he saw one _dow_ disappear totally, and immediately; and the other almost as instantaneously: they went down with the crews crying, “_Allah, Allah, Allah_.” Nine men only escaped, who had previously made off in a boat. The _Sylph_ was taken to _Muscat_, where the Persian Secretary was put on board the _Minerva_.[23] We had thus recovered the Persian Secretary; but the mission soon suffered the less reparable loss of one of its own members. On the 19th November, the _Benares_ H. C. cruizer (which brought our tents, some of the body guards, presents, &c. from _Bussora_) landed at _Bushire_ Mr. COARE, the Persian and Latin Translator. He had carried with him from _Bussora_ a fever, which was gradually wasting him away; and after lingering out his few remaining days apparently without pain, he died on the last day of the month. He was a young man of whom all spoke well; his talents were promising; and his prospects in the world were fine. He was laid in the Armenian burying-ground, without a coffin; because plank is so dear and scarce at _Bushire_, that his remains would have been disturbed for the sake of the wood which had enclosed them. His corpse was escorted to the grave by the body guard and the seapoy guard, and followed by the Envoy and the gentlemen of the mission. I read the funeral service over him, amid a crowd of Persians and Arabs, who were collected to see the ceremony; and who seemed to partake the interest of the scene. Nothing excites a better impression of our character than an appearance of devotion and religious observance. If, therefore, there were no higher obligation on every christian, religious observances are indispensable in producing a national influence. We never omitted to perform divine service on Sundays; suffered no one to intrude upon us during our devotions; and used every means in our power to impress the natives with a proper idea of the sanctity of our Sabbath. CHAP. IV. RESIDENCE OF THE MISSION AT BUSHIRE. I. PERSIA--ADMINISTRATION OF THE GOVERNMENTS--FARSISTAN--MEKRAN--BALOUCHES--COAST OF THE GULPH--ISLANDS OF THE GULPH--PEARL FISHERY.--II. BUSHIRE: SITUATION--DESCRIPTION--TRADE--VIEW--RUINS OF RESHIRE--HALILA--BUSHIRE ROADS--WATER--WEATHER--HEALTHINESS--WOMEN OF BUSHIRE--SUPERSTITIONS.--III. ANIMALS OF THE DASHTISTAN: HORSES--DOG--WHITE FOX--WILD BEASTS--HAWKS--THE JERBOA. I. In historical interest, Persia is perhaps superior to any Asiatic empire, because more nearly connected with the fortunes of Europe; and its natural situation shares the importance; for its boundaries (defined and fortified by lofty ranges, which are pervious only through passes of very difficult access,) are prominent and decided objects in the general geography of Asia. We had hitherto seen only the southern chain: nothing can be more strongly marked than the abrupt and forbidding surface of those mountains, which bind the shore from _Cape Jasques_ to the deepest recesses of the gulph. The little plain of the _Dashtistan_, (that of _Bushire_) which seems to have encroached upon the sea, is yet the most extensive portion of even land, which relieves however momentarily the constant and chilling succession of high and dreary lands along the coast. But beyond these mountains are frequently extensive plains, confined by a second range, which likewise run parallel to the coast. This is the case behind _Congoon_: and in the route to _Shiraz_ we found several successive plains, (of great absolute elevation indeed, but) thus separated from each other by alternate ranges of higher land. The plain of _Merdasht_, beyond _Shiraz_, is the Hollow Persis of ancient geography. These great inequalities of surface naturally produce a corresponding variety of climates. The administration of the provinces of Persia is now committed to the Princes. The jurisdiction of PRINCE HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA, one of the King’s Sons, is very extensive: it comprises, under the general name of _Farsistan_, not only the original province of which _Shiraz_ was the capital (as subsequently it became that of all Persia, and as it still is of the governments combined under the Prince) but _Laristan_ also, to the south; and _Bebehan_ to the north-west; which severally, as well as _Farsistan_, possessed before their particular _Beglerbegs_. Of _Farsistan_, under this its present more extensive signification, the hot and desert country is called the _Germesir_, a generic term for a warm region, which will be recognised under the ancient appellations of _Germania_, _Kermania_, or _Carmania_. The termination of the Persian dominion in this direction, is an undefined tract between the _Germesir_ and the _Mekran_. It was the ancient boast of Persia, that its boundaries were not a petty stream or an imaginary line, but ranges of impervious mountains or deserts as impervious. In this quarter there is little probability that the country will ever become less valuable as a frontier, by becoming more cultivated and better inhabited. The land is put to so little use, that no power would greatly care to press the extension of an authority so unprofitable. Every age has marked the unalterable barbarism of the soil and of the people. The _Balouchistan_, or the country of the _Balouches_, the most desert region of the coast begins about _Minou_, on the west of _Cape Jasques_. Their country is perhaps nearly the _Mekran_ of geography. They once owned subjection to Persia, but they have now resumed the independance of Arabs, and live in wandering communities under the government of their own _Sheiks_, of whom two are pre-eminent. They have indeed still some little commercial connexion with Persia, and occasionally a _Balouche_ is to be seen in _Bushire_ selling his scanty wares, mostly the mats of their own manufacture. One of their _Sheiks_ lives at _Guadel_ on the coast of _Mekran_; but in the interior, according to the account given by a _Balouche_ to Captain SALTER, there is a very potent king, though I cannot add from the same authority, whether he is of their own extraction. They live in continual wars with each other; or let themselves out to the different small powers in the gulph as soldiers. Many of the guards of the _Sheik_ of _Bushire_ are _Balouches_; and the Seapoys also on board the Arab ships are of the same tribes. In religion they are Mahomedans; and like all those of India, are _Sunnis_: but they have few means of preserving the genuineness of any profession of faith; and their ignorance has already confounded their tenets with those of a very different original. The same common barbarism has indeed blended the _Affghan_, the _Seik_, and the _Balouche_ into one class: there may be among them some beard or whisker more or less, some animal or food which they hold unclean above all others, some indescribable difference of opinion which severs them from their neighbours, but in savageness they are all identified. Those on the coast still live almost exclusively on fish, as in the days of NEARCHUS; though I am told they no longer build their houses with the bones. The grampus (possibly, the whale of _Arrian_) is still numerous on the shores. The Envoy remembered to have seen at _Bushire_ on a former occasion, a dog of an immense size, which a _Balouche_ had given to Mr. GALLEY, the Resident at that time: the man added, that the mountains towards his country were all very high. His dog seemed to confirm the assertion, for he was defended against the cold of his native region, by a coat of thick and tufted hair. Though the _Balouches_ scarcely advance within the gulph, yet the native Persians do not fully occupy their own shores. The coast still retains a great proportion of Arab families. The _Dashtistan_, which extends from _Cape Bang_ to the plain of _Bushire_, was till lately governed by them. The district of _Dasti_, also along the coast from _Bushire_ to below _Congoon_, still remains under their rule: and the Arab _Sheik_ of _Congoon_ in the adjoining territory, possesses a kind of independance. At _Tauhree_, (or _Tahrie_) a port just below _Congoon_, are extensive ruins and sculptures, with the Persepolitan character. The landmarks for the entrance of the harbour are two large white spots, on the summit of a mountain, which the people of the country affirm to have been made by the hand of man; and which, on the same traditional authority, are said to have been formerly covered with glass. The reflection thus produced by the sun’s rays, rendered the object visible to a great distance at sea, and guided the navigator in safety into the road. Some of the glass is said to remain at this day. Among the ruins of the city are two wells pierced to a great depth; and stabling for a hundred horses excavated from the solid rock: the existence of these remains, I understand, Mr. B--k of the E. I. Company’s service ascertained himself. At _Kharrack_, a place still further in the progress down the Gulph, between Cape _Sertes_ and Cape _Bustion_, is a town which was once in the possession of the Danes; and it is singular that the people who claim a Danish blood are still very fair complexioned, and have light red hair, which may confirm their traditional accounts of their origin. The same nation had also an establishment in a deep bay near _Musseldom_; and the fort exists to this day. On Cape _Bustion_ there is a mine of copper, which was formerly worked by the Portuguese: they built also a fort there, which still exists, but the mine is no longer worked, and indeed is almost forgotten. Some years ago, Mr. BRUCE, the Assistant Resident at _Bushire_, was a prisoner among the Arabs on this part of the coast. He was told, that immediately behind the range of mountains which lines their shore, there was a river that came from near _Shiraz_, and run down to _Gombroon_; this is, probably, the _Bend-emir_, which, according to other accounts, is traced indeed towards _Gombroon_, but there expends itself in the sands. _Khoresser_ is the name of a small river which falls into the sea nearly under the _Asses Ears_; and on the banks of which is situated the town of _Tangistoun_. At the mouth of this river is a small island, formed by the sands brought down; which adapts this situation to ARRIAN’S account of _Hieratemis_. At the place marked by Dr. VINCENT as _Podargus_ there is now no torrent: but I learn from Dr. JUKES and Mr. BRUCE, that at _Harem_, situated thirty miles inland on the declivity of the mountains to the eastward, there is a water which finds its way to the sea, and may, perhaps, accord with the position required. The islands in the Gulph of Persia retain little of their political celebrity. _Ormus_ (ever the most barren, its soil being composed of salt and sulphur) still displays its arched reservoirs, which afford good watering places for vessels, and which are said never to dry up. On the island of _Kenn_, according to the people of the country, is found, after rain, gold dust in the channels of the torrents. And _Bahrein_, which is now in the hands of the _Wahabees_, is still noted for the fresh springs which issue from the earth under the sea, and from which the Arabs contrive to water their ships by placing over the spot a vessel with a syphon attached to it. Captain SKEINE, who commanded an Arab ship, told the gentleman (who communicated the circumstances to me), that he had himself drawn the water at the depth of one fathom. The same submarine springs extend along the neighbouring coast of Arabia. _Kharrack_, which is now the principal watering place on the north of the Gulph, and the island, where the pilots for the _Bussorah_ river are stationed, is perhaps good for few other purposes. The _Sheik_ indeed, though enjoying profound peace, presented memorials to the _Sheik_ of _Bushire_, representing that his troops and himself were in a state of starvation. Among the duties entrusted by the Government of _Shiraz_ to the _Nasakchee Bashee_, he was instructed to proceed to _Kharrack_, to inspect the fortifications, and to report on their capability of defence. Pearl-Fishery.--There is, perhaps, no place in the world where those things which are esteemed riches among men, abound more than in the Persian gulph. Its bottom is studded with pearls, and its coasts with mines of precious ore. The island of _Bahrein_, on the Arabian shore, has been considered the most productive bank of the pearl oysters: but the island of _Kharrack_ now shares the reputation. The fishery extends along the whole of the Arabian coast, and to a large proportion of the Persian side of the gulph. _Verdistan_, _Nabon_, and _Busheab_, on that side, are more particularly mentioned; but indeed it is a general rule, that wherever in the gulph there is a shoal, there is also the pearl oyster. The fishery, though still in itself as prolific as ever, is not perhaps carried on with all the activity of former years; since it declined in consequence by the transfer of the English market to the banks of the coast of Ceylon. But the Persian pearl is never without a demand; though little of the produce of the fishery comes direct into Persia. The trade has now almost entirely centred at _Muscat_. From _Muscat_ the greater part of the pearls are exported to _Surat_; and, as the agents of the Indian merchants are constantly on the spot, and as the fishers prefer the certain sale of their merchandize there to a higher but less regular price in any other market, the pearls may often be bought at a less price in India, than to an individual they would have been sold in Arabia. There are two kinds; the yellow pearl, which is sent to the _Mahratta_ market; and the white pearl, which is circulated through _Bussorah_ and _Bagdad_ into Asia Minor, and thence into the heart of Europe; though, indeed, a large proportion of the whole is arrested in its progress at _Constantinople_ to deck the Sultanas of the Seraglio. The pearl of Ceylon peels off; that of the Gulph is as firm as the rock upon which it grows; and, though it loses in colour and water 1 per cent. annually for fifty years, yet it still loses less than that of Ceylon. It ceases after fifty years to lose any thing. About twenty years ago the fishery was farmed out by the different chiefs along the coast: thus the Sheiks of _Bahrein_ and of _El Katif_, having assumed a certain portion of the Pearl Bank, obliged every speculator to pay them a certain sum for the right of fishing. At present, however, the trade which still employs a considerable number of boats is carried on entirely by individuals. There are two modes of speculation: the first, by which the adventurer charters a boat by the month or by the season; in this boat he sends his agent to superintend the whole, with a crew of about fifteen men, including generally five or six divers. The divers commence their work at sun-rise and finish at sun-set. The oysters, that have been brought up, are successively confided to the superintendant, and when the business of the day is done, they are opened on a piece of white linen: the agent of course keeping a very active inspection over every shell. The man who, on opening an oyster, finds a valuable pearl, immediately puts it into his mouth, by which they fancy that it gains a finer water; and, at the end of the fishery, he is entitled to a present. The whole speculation costs about one hundred and fifty piastres a month; the divers getting ten piastres; and the rest of the crew in proportion. The second and the safest mode of adventure is by an agreement between two parties, where one defrays all the expences of the boat and provisions, &c. and the other conducts the labours of the fishery. The pearl obtained undergoes a valuation, according to which it is equally divided: but the speculator is further entitled by the terms of the partnership to purchase the other half of the pearl at ten per cent. lower than the market price. The divers seldom live to a great age. Their bodies break out in sores, and their eyes become very weak and blood-shot. They can remain under water five minutes; and their dives succeed one another very rapidly, as by delay the state of their bodies would soon prevent the renewal of the exertion. They oil the orifice of the ears, and put a horn over their nose. In general life they are restricted to a certain regimen; and to food composed of dates and other light ingredients. They can dive from ten to fifteen fathoms, and sometimes even more; and their prices increase according to the depth. The largest pearl are generally found in the deepest water, as the success on the bank of _Kharrack_, which lies very low, has demonstrated. From such depths, and on this bank, the most valuable pearls have been brought up; the largest indeed which Sir HARFORD JONES ever saw, was one that had been fished up at _Kharrack_ in nineteen fathoms water. It has been often contested, whether the pearl in the live oyster is as hard as it appears in the market; or whether it acquires its consistence by exposure. I was assured by a gentleman (who had been encamped at _Congoon_ close to the bank; and who had often bought the oysters from the boys, as they came out of the water,) that he had opened the shell immediately, and when the fish was still alive, had found the pearl already hard and formed. He had frequently also cut the pearl in two, and ascertained it to be equally hard throughout, in layers like the coats of an onion. But Sir HARFORD JONES, who has had much knowledge of the fishery, informs me, that it is easy by pressing the pearl between the fingers, when first taken out of the shell, to feel that it has not yet attained its ultimate consistency. A very short exposure, however, to the air gives the hardness. The two opinions are easily reconcileable by supposing, either a misconception in language of the relative term hard, (by which one authority may mean every thing in the oyster which is not gelatinous, while the other would confine it more strictly to the full and perfect consistency of the pearl;) or by admitting that there may be an original difference in the character of the two species, the yellow and the white pearl; while the identity of the specimen, on which either observation has been formed, has not been noted. The fish itself is fine eating; nor, indeed in this respect is there any difference between the common and the pearl oyster. The seed pearls, which are very indifferent, are arranged round the lips of the oyster, as if they were inlaid by the hand of an artist. The large pearl is nearly in the centre of the shell, and in the middle of the fish. In Persia the pearl is employed for less noble ornaments than in Europe: there it is principally reserved to adorn the _kaleoons_ or water pipes, the tassels for bridles, some trinkets, the inlaying of looking glasses and toys, for which indeed the inferior kinds are used; or, when devoted more immediately to their persons, it is generally strung as beads to twist about in the hand, or as a rosary for prayer. The fishermen always augur a good season of the pearl, when there have been plentiful rains; and so accurately has experience taught them, that when corn is very cheap they increase their demands for fishing. The connexion is so well ascertained, (at least so fully credited, not by them only, but by the merchants,) that the prices paid to the fishermen are, in fact, always raised, when there have been great rains. II. _Bushire_ (or more properly _Abuschahr_, for the former is but the corruption of an English sailor) is now the principal Port of Persia. It stands in lat. 28°. 59. in long. 50°. 43. E. of Greenwich. It is situated on the extremity of a peninsula, which is formed by the sea on one side, and on the other by an inlet terminating in extensive swamps. At the narrowest part of this neck of land the seas, in the equinoctial spring tides, have sometimes met and rendered it an island; but this has happened once only during the ten years which preceded our visit, and the effect then continued but two or three days; and so visible is the present encroachment of the land upon the inlet, that the recurrence of such an overflow will soon be entirely impossible. Every appearance, indeed, proves, that the whole of the peninsula has been thus gained from the sea. The extreme flatness of the general surface, the soil itself, the water, and the relative position of the whole peninsula to the mountains which rise abruptly from its inland extremities, suggest the supposition of such an accumulation. On the southern bank of the inlet is a long range of rocks, which, though now two or three miles distant, may at one time have been washed by the sea. In digging for water, the people of the peninsula have sunk wells to the depth of thirty fathoms; and before they could reach the spring they have been obliged to perforate three layers of a soft stone composed of sand and shells. Generally of the whole soil, sand is the principal ingredient. The town itself of _Bushire_ occupies the very point of the peninsula, and forms a triangle, of which the base on the land side is alone fortified. At unequal distances along the walls, there are twelve towers, two of which form the town-gate; they are all chequered at the top by holes, through which the inhabitants may point their musketry, and those at the gates have a variety of such contrivances. There is at the the door a large brass Portuguese gun, a sixty-eight pounder, on a very uncertain carriage; besides two or three in a much ruder state. It is said that on some invasion when the place was beset, this gun was fired, but the concussion was so great and unexpected, that it blew open the gates, shook down fragments of the towers, and gave the enemy an easy entrance. The materials of the town (a soft sandy stone, incrustated with shells) are drawn from the ruins of _Reshire_, in its neighbourhood. Most of the adjacent villages are built of the same stone, the only species indeed found in the peninsula, and which was already thus prepared for their use in the remains of _Reshire_. But such materials are continually decomposing; and the dust which falls from them adds to the already sandy ground-work of their streets, and, when set in motion by the wind or by a passing caravan, creates an impenetrable cloud. The streets are from six to eight feet wide, and display on each side nothing but inhospitable walls. A great man’s dwelling (there are nine in _Bushire_) is distinguished by a wind chimney. This is a square turret on the sides of which are perpendicular apertures, and in the interior of which are crossed divisions, which form different currents of air, and communicate some comfort to the heated apartments of the house. But the comfort is not wholly without danger; as in an earthquake some years ago the turrets were thrown down to the great damage of the surrounding buildings. There are supposed to be in the town four hundred houses, besides several alleys of date-tree-huts on entering the gates, which may add an equal number to the whole. The number of inhabitants is disproportionably large, but it is calculated that there are ten thousand persons in the place. There are four mosques of the _Sheyahs_, and three of the _Sunnis_; and there are two _Hummums_ and two _Caravanserais_; but there is no public building in _Bushire_ which deserves any more particular description. The old English factory is a large straggling building near the sea side; the left wing is breaking down. The _Bazars_ are exactly those of a provincial town in Turkey. The shop is a little platform, raised about two feet above the foot-path; where the Vender, just reserving the little space upon which he squats, displays his wares. The shops, as in Turkey, are opened in the morning and shut at night, when the trader returns to his dwelling; for the shop is but the receptacle for his goods. On the 2d Nov. a large fleet of boats came into _Bushire_ from the coast, laden with coarse linen for turbans, earthen pots, mats, &c. for which they carry away dates. These boats keep together for fear of the _Joasmee_ pirates. To the east of the town there is a small elevation, which happily destroys the equalities of the buildings, and renders it no uninteresting subject for a sketch, when enlivened by its concomitants, water and shipping. Whatever may have been the former state of the immediate neighbourhood, it is certain that there are now no longer to be found the gardens and plantations which NEARCHUS described, or even those which Captain SIMMONS delineated. Had NEARCHUS again described _Bushire_ and its territory in this day, he would have said, that a few cotton bushes, here and there date trees, now and then a _Konar_ tree, with water melons, _berinjauts_, and cucumbers, are the only verdant objects which, in any measure, alleviate the glare of its sandy plain. I took a sketch of _Bushire_ from a rising spot near a well on a public road.[24] A troop of young camel-drivers, who were going merrily along, soon discovered me; and long continued to vociferate, with many other names and jokes, “_Frangui, Frangui_,” the common appellation in the East of every European. The new factory is about one mile seven-eights from the town. The Resident’s guard is composed of seapoys, who, by the regulations, should be changed every five years, but they are permitted to remain till they become so lax in discipline as scarcely to deserve the name of soldiers. The guard is mustered at sun-set, when they mostly appear in their shirts and night-caps, and the sentries walk about without their muskets. In a few days after our landing we rode to the ruins of _Reshire_. The more immediate remains occupy an inconsiderable part of the site of the old city, and indeed consist rather of the fortress than of the general mass of buildings. The place is surrounded by villages built of the materials, and (as other fragments about them still attest) upon the site also of the original town. One of these villages is called _Imaum Zadé_, and is exempt from taxes, because its inhabitants claim all to be descended from MAHOMED. [Illustration: _Bushire._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] The fortress itself was built by the Portuguese, though the people around are jealous of the acknowledgment, and substitute as its founder their own SHAH ABBAS. On a hasty calculation it must have been a square of two hundred yards. The reservoirs for water are still to be seen; but a lad, whom we met in the enclosure, told us that he and his companions were at work in destroying the _Hummums_. Twenty-five years ago the Envoy saw it in many parts entire, with some of the houses still standing. It is now a heap of dirt and rubbish. The line of the fort, indeed, is traced by the ditch, which is excavated from the rock; and the gateways also are discoverable, and some little masonry remains to mark their strength. There are some flat and oblong stones on the outside of the fort, which we conceived to have been placed over Portuguese tombs. There are, however, some curious characters upon them, which Sir HARFORD JONES, who recollects them when they were more legible, conceives to be between the old _Cufick_ and the _Nekshi_. In another excursion we advanced to _Halila_, about nine miles from the town, and on the south of the peninsula of _Bushire_. Here, indeed, there is a projection of the land, where it is still possible for very high tides to rise above the surface. The ground is very much broken into caverns and deep chasms. _Halila_ is a small village; it has a trifling square fort, with a tower at each angle, but without any guns. Cotton is sown more systematically in the territory immediately adjacent to _Halila_ than in that of _Bushire_. Here and there over the plain are some little spots sacred to the dead, and defended by small works of stones. The _Sapphire_ lay about four miles off the shore, in four feet and a half low water, and in quarter less five at high. The ground was marl and very thick mud, so tenacious, that it was necessary every three or four days to move the anchor. The refraction was so great, that, for their daily observations at the sun’s meridian, they were obliged to allow for it more than what is noted in the nautical tables. In my visit on board, I took the following bearings from the quarter-deck. Town N. 55 E. _Concorde_ Lodge E. _Halila Peak_ S. 70 E. _Asses Ears_ and _Reshire Point_ S. 35 E. Cape _Bang_ (the extremity of the land) N. 11 E. The water of _Bushire_ has a cathartic quality of most immediate effect in a stranger’s habit, but after the experience of about a month it ceases to have so violent a power. The meteorological journal which I kept may not be useless, and I give therefore the month of November in the Appendix. On the night of the 10th of that month, a most violent storm blew from the north-west. The whole atmosphere was in a blaze of fire; the claps of thunder succeeded one another with a rapidity, which rendered them scarcely separable, and the rain poured down in torrents; but when all was over, the air possessed a freshness which was most grateful. The storms from the N. W. are very frequent in the winter; and though in no part of the world do I recollect to have seen one so tremendous as this, I am told that it was not to be compared with some which are experienced at _Bushire_. In three or four days the mountains which bore N. N. E. from our dwelling were already covered with snow. This was reckoned early in the season. The people soon begun to put on their warmer clothing. Coughs and colds became very prevalent, particularly among the Indian servants, who were clad more lightly than either the Europeans or the natives. About the 20th of November the people commence ploughing; the soil is so light that it is turned up with very little labour; the plough, therefore, is dragged mostly by one ox only, and not unfrequently even by an ass. All their agricultural implements are of the rudest construction. At this period, larks fly about in large numbers, and feed upon the seed just sowing. There are also great flocks of pigeons, cormorants, curlews, and _hoobaras_ (bustards). On the 25th we saw a white swallow flitting about the house. Sparrows were not so numerous as in the beginning of the month. Flies appeared with a south wind; but were scarce when it blew from the northward. The fruits in season were melons, dates, pomegranates, apples, pears, and sweet limes; and a small and very pleasant orange was just coming in. Our vegetables were spinage, _bendes_, and onions, and cabbages and turnips from _Bussora_. Of our meat, the finest was mutton, veal was coarse, but the beef pretty good, and the fowls were admirable. There were no turkies or geese indeed; nor ducks, except some that we occasionally got from _Bussora_. The climate of _Bushire_ is healthy, if we might judge from the two or three examples of strong and active old age which came within our notice: one, my own Persian master, MOLLAH HASSAN; another in the Resident’s family, who has trimmed pipes for two-thirds of a century, and who was a young man with mustachios and a sprouting beard, when NADIR SHAH was at _Shiraz_. Another is an old fellow of the name of AYECAL, which, from the keenness of his love of sporting, has been familiarized by the English into _Jackall_. The better sort of women are scarcely ever seen, and when they are, their faces are so completely covered that no feature can be distinguished. The poorer women, indeed, are not so confined, for they go in troops to draw water for the place. I have seen the elder ones sitting and chatting at the well, and spinning the coarse cotton of the country, while the young girls filled the skin which contains the water, and which they all carry on their backs into the town. They do not wear shoes; their dress consists of a very ample shirt, a pair of loose trowsers, and the veil which goes over all. Their appearance is most doleful; though I have still noticed a pretty face through all the filth of their attire. The colour of their clothes is originally brown, but when they become too dirty to be worn under that hue, they are sent to the dyer, who is supposed to clean them by superinducing a dark-blue or black tint. In almost every situation they might be considered as the attendants on a burial; but in a real case of death there are professional mourners, who are hired to see proper respect paid to the deceased, by keeping up the cries of etiquette to his memory. Among the superstitions in Persia, that which depends on the crowing of a cock, is not the least remarkable. If the cock crows at a proper hour, they esteem it a good omen; if at an improper season, they kill him. I am told that the favourable hours are at nine, both in the morning and in the evening, at noon and at midnight. But the lion, in the popular belief of Persia, has a discernment much more important to the interests of mankind. A fellow told me with the gravest face, that a lion of their own country would never hurt a _Sheyah_, (the sect of the Mahomedan religion which follows ALI, and which is established in Persia,) but would always devour a _Sunni_, (who recognises before ALI the three first caliphs.) On meeting a lion, you have only therefore to say, “_Ya Ali_,” and the beast will walk by you with great respect; but should you either from zeal or the forgetfulness of terror, exclaim “_Ya Omar!_ Oh Omar!” he will spring upon you instantly. III. Animals of the _Dashtistan_. About twenty-five years ago, in the time of SHEIK NASR, who possessed both _Bushire_ and the island of _Bahrein_, and who consequently was enabled to improve the native breed of Persia, by bringing over the _Nedj_ stallion, the _Dashtistan_ became celebrated for a horse of strength and bottom. But the original breed of Persia, that which is now restored, is a tall, lank, ill-formed, and generally vicious animal; useful indeed for hard work, but unpleasant to ride compared with the elegant action and docility of the Arab. There is another race of the _Turcoman_ breed, (such as are seen at _Smyrna_, and through all Asia Minor), a short, thick, round-necked, and strong-leg’d horse, short quartered, and inclined behind. There is also a fine breed produced by the _Turcoman_ mare and the _Nedj_ stallion. At two different times, large lots of horses were offered to us for sale: the first, by the people of the _Shiraz_ officer, who asked immense prices, and when refused, departed in apparent ill-humour, but generally returned and took the reduced sum which was offered. In this way also we purchased a lot of forty horses, principally of the _Turcoman_ breed, which had been destined for the Indian market, and for which an average price of three hundred and twenty piastres for each horse had been asked at _Bushire_, but which at the end of the month were sold to us for two hundred and fifty. The distinct and characteristic value of the horses of the country, was exemplified in a present of two, which the Envoy received from the _Sheik_ of _Bushire_. One was a beautiful Arab colt, of the sweetest temper I ever knew in a horse, frisking about like a lamb, and yet so docile, that though now for the first time mounted, he seemed to have been long used to the bit, a sure proof in the estimation of the country of the excellence of his breed. The other was a Persian colt of the most stubborn and vicious nature; to the astonishment and admiration however of the Persians, the Envoy’s Yorkshire groom by mere dint of whip and spur, subdued the creature and rendered him fit to ride: a triumph which established the groom’s reputation readily, among a people peculiarly alive to the superiority of their own horsemanship. A horse more than ordinarily vicious was tamed in a singular manner by the people of the country. He was turned out loose (muzzled indeed in his mouth, where his ferociousness was most formidable) to await in an enclosure the attack of two horses, whose mouths and legs at full liberty were immediately directed against him. The success was as singular as the experiment; and the violence of the discipline which he endured, subdued the nature of the beast, and rendered him the quietest of his kind. The horses are fastened in the stables by their fore legs, and pinioned by a rope from the hind leg to stakes at about six feet distant behind, so that although the animals are well inclined to quarrel, and are only four or five feet asunder, they can scarcely in this position succeed in hurting each other: frequently however they do get loose, and then most furious battles ensue. I have often admired the courage and dexterity with which the Persian _Jelowdars_ or grooms throw themselves into the thickest engagement of angry horses; and, in defiance of the kicks and bites around them, contrive to separate them. The Resident’s stud consists of about twenty horses, mules, and asses; eight of the horses belong to the East India Company, and are principally employed in carrying _choppers_ or couriers to _Shiraz_. These are obliged however to be renewed very frequently, because one such journey generally destroys the animal that performs it; so difficult are the passes of the mountains, and so unmerciful are the riders. They have in Persia a very large and ferocious dog, called the _kofla_ dog, from his being the watchful and faithful companion of the _kofla_ or caravan. Each muleteer has his dog, and so correct is the animal’s knowledge of the mules that belong to his master, that he will discover those that have strayed, and will bring them back to their associates; and on the other hand, when at night the whole caravan stops, and the mules are parcelled in square lots, the guardian dog will permit no strange mule to join the party under his charge, or to encroach upon their ground. His strength and his ferocity are equal to his intelligence and watchfulness. We chased one day a large white fox. They prey about the open country round _Bushire_ in great numbers, for the natives do not destroy them with all the zeal of Englishmen. The wild animals of the _Dashtistan_ are the wolf, the hyæna, the fox, the porcupine, the _mangousti_, the antelope, the wild boar, the _jerboa_, and sometimes the wild goat. The mountains of the _Dashtistan_ have also the lion, and he has been known to descend into the plain. On the 12th December, Captain DAVIS, of the _Sapphire_, shot two cormorants out of a flock that were squatted on a tree. Partridges also have been seen to settle in the same situation. The hawks, which are used in hunting, are the _cherk_, the _balban_, and the _shahein_. We set off on the 29th of November, before sun-rise, to hunt with hawks. The freshness, or rather the coldness of the morning, was quite revivifying. We were accompanied by an old and keen sportsman, who had long been renowned in the plains of _Bushire_ for his expertness in training a hawk, and his perseverance in hunting the _hoobara_ or bustard. The old _Reis_, the name by which he was known, was one of the most picturesque figures on horseback that I ever saw. He was rather tall, with a neck very long, and a beard very grey. His body, either through age or the long use of a favourite position on horseback, inclined forwards till it made an angle of 45° with his thighs, which run nearly parallel to the horse’s back; and his beard projected so much from his lank neck, that it completed the amusement of the profile. On his right wrist, which was covered by large gloves, his hawk was perched. The bird is always kept hood-winked, till the game be near. On our way we were joined by HASSAN KHAN, the Governor of _Dasti_, who also carried a hawk, and who was attended by about fifteen men with spears, the _kaleoons_, or water pipes, &c. We proceeded to _Halila_, where we commenced our hunt. A _hoobara_ started almost under the foot of my horse; as the bird flew, a hawk was unhooded that he might mark the direction, and was loosed only when it settled. But the sport was unsuccessful in two or three attempts; in fact, when the hawk has had one flight, and has missed his prey, he should be fed with the blood of a pigeon, and then hood-winked, and not permitted to fly again in that day’s sport. As soon as the hawk has taken his flight, the sportsmen remain quiet till they can see that their bird has seized his prey, when they ride up and disengage them. The _Jerboa_. On the 1st Dec. we caught some _jerboas_; and I had an opportunity of delineating and observing with some nicety all their different properties. The description of this animal has been given so minutely by SONNINI, and, with the controversy on the subject, has occupied indeed so very long a chapter of one of his volumes, that it would be superfluous to go over again the same tedious ground. As there are, however, some little exceptions in the _jerboa_ which I saw at _Bushire_, I shall endeavour to point them out. In the first place, that gradation from the bird to the quadruped, which SONNINI traced in the hopping motion of the _jerboa_, did not strike me with the same degree of conviction. When unpursued the animal certainly hops, though this admission does not imply that he cannot walk without hopping. But when he is escaping from any alarm, he may almost be said to lay himself flat on the surface of the ground from the immense tension of his hind legs, and literally to run _ventre à terre_. Yet as every observer will feel that there are shades by which the works of creation gradually resolve into each other, and which, by a slow operation, connect the zoophyte with the animated world, and the bird with the quadruped, the _jerboa_ may still serve as one of the first and most perceptible gradations between two kingdoms of nature; but kangaroos, a larger and nobler specimen, would illustrate the connection as correctly. On the specific description of the animal I agree with SONNINI’S account of the Egyptian _jerboas_, except that, in two which I examined, I could not find the spur or the small rudiment of a fourth toe on the heel of the hinder foot; on the existence of which depends essentially the resemblance which he has discovered between the _jerboa_ and the _alagtaga_ of Tartary. But as the _jerboa_ of HASSELQUIST, of BRUCE, and of SONNINI all seem to differ from each other, and from those which I examined, in some minute circumstance, it is reasonable to conclude, less that there is any incorrectness in the descriptions, than that there is an essential variety in the animals. The _jerboas_ in the deserts before us at _Bushire_, do not live in troops, as those of _Egypt_, according to SONNINI; each has his hole to which he retires with the utmost precipitation; nor is it possible to take him by surprise in the day, as I learn from Sir HARFORD JONES, who has had ample opportunities of examining the history of the _jerboas_; and therefore the circumstance, which BRUCE mentions, of his Arabs having knocked them down with sticks, extends probably to no general inference. Nor can I think that SONNINI is correct in supposing that the animal is fond of light. Those which I kept in a cage remained huddled together under some cotton during the day, but in the night made such a scratching, that I was obliged to send them out of the room. Besides, one of the most common methods of catching them is by the glare of a lanthorn, which seems to deprive them of the power of moving, and subjects them quietly to the hand of the man who bears the light. There is another and an easy way of catching them, by pouring water down one of the apertures of their retreat; they immediately jump out. We hunted several with spaniels, but, although surrounded on all sides, they escaped with the greatest facility: when very closely pressed, they have a most dextrous method of springing to an amazing height over the heads of their pursuers; and, making two or three somersets in the air, they come down again in all safety on their hinder legs, many yards from the spot of their ascent. In this leap they probably use their diminutive paws. Even a greyhound stands no chance with them; for as soon as he comes near, they take to the somersets, and the dog is completely thrown out. Their flesh is reckoned very fine, as the people here who eat them assure me. As the animal is very sensible of cold, and formed so delicately and apparently so little prepared to resist frosts and snows, I cannot think, though SONNINI seems to imply it, that it is found in very northern climates. Rats and hares indeed are found in the coldest as well as in the warmest parts of the world; but nature has provided them with a clothing more appropriate to the change. CHAP. V. BUSHIRE TO SHIRAZ. DEPARTURE FROM BUSHIRE--ARRANGEMENTS OF THE CAMP--MEETING WITH MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN: ENTERTAINMENT--THE ISTAKBALL--DAULAKEE--MINERAL STREAMS--VEGETATION--PASSAGE OF THE COTUL--PLAIN OF KHISHT--THE GOVERNOR--CARAVANSERAI--THE MOUNTAIN ROBBERS--KAMAURIDGE--KAUZERON: HONORS PAID TO THE ENVOY--RUINS OF SHAPOUR: GENERAL VIEW; ACROPOLIS; SCULPTURES; ROMAN FIGURES; THEATRE; TRADITIONS--PASSES OF THE MOUNTAINS--FIRMAN FROM THE KING--APPROACH TO SHIRAZ--ISTAKBALLS--PRESENT FROM THE PRINCE. The preparations for our departure, which had been suspended by different events, were now resumed with much alacrity. I felt that the cold, which we should soon encounter, might possibly kill my Indian servant, and I accordingly sent him back to _Bombay_. The _Ferosh Bashee_, or chief tent-pitcher, an officer of much utility in the progress of our journey, now brought with him to our camp a large number of adherents in subordinate capacities, who on their entrance requested the Envoy’s permission to say their prayers in the manner and time appointed by their religion. The next morning I was roused by a noise, which I at last discovered to be compounded of the trumpet of the troop blowing the reveille, and the voice of a Persian priest calling the faithful to prayers: lungs originally strong had been so disciplined and exercised for the purpose, that the voice was more potent than the trumpet. [Illustration: _ROUTE_ of _HIS_ MAJESTY’S _MISSION_, _under_ Sir Harford Jones, _Bar^t._ _Through =PERSIA=, in 1809_. _By_ James Sutherland. _Captain on the Bombay Establishment._ _Published 20^{th} May 1809 by Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row._] Our _Mehmandar_, MAHOMED ZEKY KHAN, arrived on the 10th; we went out to meet him, attended by the body guard in their best array, and accompanied by a host of Persians. As the preparations for our journey were now completed, the 17th Dec. 1808 was fixed for our departure. On the 16th the _Ternate_, Lieut. SEALY, sailed for _Bombay_ with the Envoy’s dispatches to the Indian government; and on the next day the _Sapphire_, which was appointed to convey the dispatches to England, proceeded to _Kharrack_ to take in water for the voyage. All our arrangements were closed; and on the same morning, at a quarter past eleven o’clock, the Envoy mounted his horse to proceed from _Bushire_. In order to excite in the people a favourable expectation of the result of the mission, he had previously desired the astrologers to mention the time which they might deem lucky for his departure; and the hour accordingly in which we begun our journey was pronounced, by their authority, to be particularly fortunate. Sir HARFORD JONES’S suite consisted of Mr. SHERIDAN, Mr. BRUCE, Captain SUTHERLAND, Cornet WILLOCK, Dr. JUKES, and myself. He had two Swiss servants and an English groom, an English and a Portuguese tailor, about half a dozen Indians, and a very numerous assortment of Persians. The _Sapphire_ saluted us as we set out; shortly after we met the _Mehmandar_ and his cortège, and after some little exchange of civilities we all went on together. The order of the cavalcade was as follows:--The led horses, ten in number, each conducted by a well-clad _jelowdar_ or groom; then the chief of the _jelowdars_ with his staff of office; then the _arz-beg_ or lord of requests; after him were six _chatters_ or running footmen, who immediately preceded the Envoy. The Envoy himself was mounted on a choice Arab horse; at his right stirrup walked a picked tall _chatter_, the chief of his class. Then followed the gentlemen of the mission, amongst whom were disposed some _moonshees_. To the right and left were the pipe-trimmers, who carried all the smoking apparatus in boxes fashioned for the purpose.[25] Behind the gentlemen and the _moonshees_ came a great crowd of Persians on horseback; and, to close the whole, the body guard came along in goodly rows, and made an admirable finish to the groupe. The baggage all loaded on mules preceded us regularly on our march, so that when we arrived at the end of our stage we always found our tents pitched. The arrangements of our camp were as follows:--There were two state tents, one for dinner, the other for receiving company. The latter, with the Envoy’s private tent, were enclosed within walls. Around these were the tents of the gentlemen of the mission, each person having his own. There was also one appropriated to cooking, and many others of a smaller size for the servants, and the guard of cavalry. After our dinner was over, which was generally an hour or two after sun-set, the dinner tent was taken down, loaded on the mules, and sent onwards to the next stage in readiness to receive us. About day-break in the morning, the camp begun to break up; and before our breakfast was over, for which one tent was left, all the rest of the ground was cleared, and the baggage was far on its road to the next stage. The Persians are so accustomed to this manner of life, that they pitch and unpitch a camp with the most perfect dexterity and order. Much of course depends upon the chief of the _Feroshes_ or tent-pitchers, called the _Ferosh-Bashee_, who must necessarily be very active. The man who filled this department in our mission was very clever, but probably a great rogue, of which at least he displayed a presumptive proof, as he had lost an ear, the forfeit of some former misdemeanour. The office of _Charwardar_ or Chief Muleteer, is another also that requires much activity and watchfulness, to superintend properly the loading and unloading of the mules with order and dispatch. [Illustration: _Persian Smoaking._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] We marched for about four miles in a direct bearing with _Halila_ Peak, (which bore S. 70. E. from Mr. BRUCE’S house,) and then came to the swamps, which terminate the extremity of the inlet of the sea, from the port of _Bushire_. Having paced over those swamps for about two miles more, we took a more easterly direction, and then marched due E. to _Alichangee_, the village at which we encamped. The distance is called five _fursungs_, but probably is not more than fourteen miles. The soil over which we passed was sandy, and here and there strata of rock. The weather was hazy, and gave the country a broken and unconnected appearance. As we approached our encampment, we were treated with a scene of Persian splendour and etiquette, in the meeting of the Envoy with his old friend and tutor, MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN, the Governor of _Bushire_. He had been informed that the Envoy intended passing the following day with him, and accordingly prepared for his reception. About a mile from our encampment we met him; a very large portion of the military of _Bushire_ had already greeted his arrival. His approach was first announced by a salute from all the matchlock guns of his guards, who were posted in our way to frighten our horses. The _Khan_ then appeared himself, surrounded by an immense host, who, clearing away as soon as they came near our party, gave the two great men free access to one another. They exchanged embraces, and once again mounted their horses. We all returned together, and formed a party so thickly cemented, that the dust of the desert was raised in masses, which quite obscured the air. MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN and our _Mehmandar_ escorted the Envoy to his own tent, and after a short visit, departed amid the same crowd and noise. On Sunday the 18th, when I had performed divine service in the Envoy’s tent, we paid a visit of ceremony to MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN. According to the fashion of the country, we proceeded on horseback, although his tent was within a stone’s throw. We were met by one of his officers, and an escort of ten men, who made their obeisance to the Envoy, and preceded his horse, until we arrived at the door, where the _Khan_ himself was waiting. He received us most graciously, and after we had pulled off our boots and shoes, and Sir HARFORD and the _Khan_ had gone through some little polite difficulties about their seats, we finally settled ourselves on chairs prepared for us. The _Khan’s_ tent was very neat, and appeared to us a most desirable residence. It had a large exterior covering, and close to the extremity a wall all round; and in the interior, there was a clean little recess closely covered with carpets, and lined with the finest chintz, the borders of which were adorned with a broad fringe. Our host was a man of great notoriety both in Persia and in India; his manners were greatly in his favour, and he was dressed more like a noble than any other man whom I had yet seen in the country. His beard presented no plebeian roughness, and the dagger in his girdle glittered with precious stones. When the usual compliments had been severally paid, that silence of solemnity, which generally marks the visits of form, succeeded, till the _kaleoons_, or water pipes, were introduced to our relief. The coffees and sherbets followed, and the whole entertainment concluded with a course of sweetmeats, which was brought upon separate trays, each serving two guests. The only unsatisfactory part of the visit was the intended politeness of two lusty attendants, who broke some of the sweetmeats in their suspicious hands, blew the dust off the fragments with their more suspicious mouths, and then laid them before us. After a washing of hands, (in which we felt the full want of towels), and a parting _kaleoon_, we took our leave, and left the Envoy to a private conference with the _Khan_. The trays, from which we eat, had the appearance of silver, though I understood afterwards that they were plated only. They were neatly carved in flowers and other ornaments. The articles which they contained were made of almonds, pistachio nuts, and a paste of sugar; others were like our alicampane and barley sugar, and all were very nice. The Persians are almost indescribably fond of sweetmeats, which they eat in very great quantities. The abundance indeed of fruits and sherbets presented daily to the Envoy by the _Mehmandar_, proved the immense supply which the taste of the country demanded. The presents were arranged prettily in trays and boxes, and carried in great form on the heads of servants, but they were less acceptable, because for each the conductor required a present in money. By such means the great men in Persia pay their servants, who in general receive no other wages. The person, therefore, to whom such an office as that of _Mehmandar_ is entrusted, is, of course, surrounded by hordes of adherents, who are allured by receipts so certain and valuable. The new Governor had consulted the astrologers of _Bushire_ to determine the most propitious time for his entrance into the town, which, by their predictions, was at three hours before sun-set on the 19th. In conformity therefore to the decision, he was now delaying his advance till the happier period should arrive. When, on a former occasion, he was departing from _Bushire_ to embark on board the ship, which was to carry him on his mission to _Calcutta_, he was ordered by these astrologers (as the only means of counteracting the influence of a certain evil star) to go out of his house in a particular aspect: as unfortunately there happened to be no door in that direction, he caused a hole to be made in the wall, and thus made his exit. In the evening we dined with _Mahomed Nebee Khan_. We did not go till the _Khan_ had sent to the Envoy to say, that the entertainment was ready for his reception, a custom always observed on such occasions.[26] When we arrived at his tent, the same ceremonies passed as in the morning, except that we sat upon the ground, where the inflexibility of our knees rendered the position more difficult than can be described. The _Khan_, who seemed to commiserate the tightness of our pantaloons, begged that we would extend our legs at their full length: fearing, however, to be rude, we chose to be uncomfortable, and to imitate their fashion as faithfully as possible; and really, with respect to my own feelings, I thought complaisance was never carried further. The guests besides ourselves, were our _Mehmandar_ and the Persian Secretary. I preserved part of the conversation: in talking of the admirable skill with which the guns of the _Nereide_ were fired in the re-capture of the _Sylph_, the _Mehmandar_ said to the Secretary, “you ought to have kissed the lips of those guns, whose execution was so effectual; and walked around and around them, and in gratitude for your deliverance, to have put up prayers to Heaven for their preservation and prosperity.” After having sat some time _kaleoons_ were brought in, then coffee, then _kaleoons_, then sweet coffee (the composition already noticed of sugar and rose-water); and then _kaleoons_ again. All this was rapidly performed, when the _Khan_ called for dinner. On the ground before us was spread the _sofra_, a fine chintz cloth, which perfectly entrenched our legs, and which is used so long unchanged, that the accumulated fragments of former meals collect into a musty paste, and emit no very savory smell; but the Persians are content, for they say that changing the _sofra_ brings ill luck. A tray was then placed before each guest; on these trays were three fine china bowls, which were filled with sherbets; two made of sweet liquors, and one of a most exquisite species of lemonade. There were besides, fruits ready cut, plates with elegant little arrangements of sweetmeats and confectionary, and smaller cups of sweet sherbet; the whole of which were placed most symetrically, and were quite inviting, even by their appearance. In the vases of sherbet were spoons made of the pear tree, with very deep bowls, and worked so delicately, that the long handle just slightly bent when it was carried to the mouth. The _pillaus_ succeeded, three of which were placed before each two guests; one of plain rice called the _chillo_, one made of mutton with raisins and almonds, the other of a fowl, with rich spices and plumbs. To this were added various dishes with rich sauces, and over each a small tincture of sweet sauce. Their cooking, indeed, is mostly composed of sweets. The business of eating was a pleasure to the Persians, but it was misery to us. They comfortably advanced their chins close to the dishes, and commodiously scooped the rice or other victuals into their mouths, with three fingers and the thumb of their right hand; but in vain did we attempt to approach the dish: our tight-kneed breeches, and all the ligaments and buttons of our dress, forbade us; and we were forced to manage as well as we could, fragments of meat and rice falling through our fingers all around us. When we were all satisfied, dinner was carried away with the same state in which it was brought: the servant who officiated, dropping himself gracefully on one knee, as he carried away the trays, and passing them expertly over his head with both his hands, extended to the lacquey, who was ready behind to carry them off. We were treated with more _kaleoons_ after dinner, and then departed to our beds. On the morning of the 19th, the camp broke up at sun-rise. We took a hasty breakfast in the Envoy’s tent, but a visit from MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN (which was preceded by a present of two horses and his own sword) kept us on the ground till nine o’clock. The _Khan_, with all his attendants, accompanied us about two miles. He was preparing to enter _Bushire_, his new government, with all splendour. From the town to the swamps were erected stages on which bullocks were to be sacrificed, and from which their heads were to be thrown under his horse’s feet, as he advanced; a ceremony indeed appropriated to Princes alone, and to them, only on particular occasions. Yet, however anxious originally for his station, and however splendid in his present appearances, he felt the full dangers of his pre-eminence, and betrayed an absence and uneasiness in his words and actions, which to us evinced all his apprehensions. He was so conscious indeed of the difficulties of his situation, that he had transmitted to the King a present of two thousand _tomauns_, with a memorial, beseeching to be excused from his government. We marched at first north-westerly, till we came to the bed of a river, or rather of a mountain-torrent, in which the actual stream of water when we passed, was not above ten feet in breadth, though the channel itself was perhaps thirty yards. It falls into the sea in a due E. and W. direction. At two o’clock we came to _Ahmadiéh_: at half past two we passed a small fort called _Khosh Aub_, where a large body of people were waiting our passage.[27] They were all armed with pikes, matchlocks, swords and shields; and gave us two vollies as a salute. They then advanced to us, and being announced by the _Arz-beg_, wished us a prosperous journey. They were answered by the usual civility, “_khosh amedeed_, you are welcome.” As we proceeded, our party was headed by the soldiery. They were commanded by a man on horseback, all in tatters, who with his whip kept them together, and excited them with his voice where he wanted them to run. Two of the chosen of the village performed feats before us on their lean horses, and helped to increase the excessive dust, which involved us. This party kept pace with us, until we were again met by a similar host, the van of the little army who were waiting our reception at _Borazjoon_: these also fired their muskets. From _Khosh Aub_ to _Borazjoon_ the ground appeared cultivated; and as we were approaching the latter village, we saw some of the peasants, who, after having finished their toil in the fields were walking home with their ploughs over their shoulders. I think we may fairly reckon at twenty-five miles the distance from _Alichangee_ to _Borazjoon_: the Persians call it nine _fursungs_. The avenues to _Borazjoon_ are through plantations of date and tamarisk trees: the village is a collection of huts, which surround a fort; and the fort, like the rest of those which I had seen, was a square, with turrets at each corner, which were cut into small chequers at the top. There are the ruins of many small forts all over the _Dashtistan_, which were built by some unsuccessful rebel, and which were left to decay as soon as he was quelled. I understand that the population of this district has been decreasing ever since the happy days of SHEIK NASR. Almost the whole of its geography present places which have names, but no inhabitants; or if there are any, they are the refuse only of former more flourishing families. In our road to-day, we saw immense flights of the _toowee_, or desert partridge, and some ravens. The _Mehmandar_ and the oldest of our _moonshees_ amused themselves in scouring the plains, and playing at the dangerous game of the _girid_, in which the old scribe got a severe blow. The Persians ride with great courage, for they drive their horses at their greatest speed over any ground. They of course get frequent falls, by which they are seldom much injured; for though they generally alight on their heads, they are there saved by their immense sheep-skin caps.[28] It was a quarter past eight before we mounted our horses on the morning of the 21st, and ten minutes past twelve when we arrived at _Daulakee_, a distance called four _fursungs_, and which may be computed at about twelve road miles. The site of _Daulakee_ is marked by a break in the mountains, where the road which leads among them commences. It bore N. 30 E. when we mounted. Our road was much broken by the beds of numerous torrents, which, after the rain and melted snows, fall from the adjacent mountains. We here and there met with small encampments of the _Elauts_. They appear like the _Turcomans_, whom I have so frequently seen at _Smyrna_, and through the whole of Asia Minor. At the distance of two miles we were met by the _Istakball_, who fired their salute, and frightened the horses as before. This ceremony was repeated every day, so that a repetition of the description will not be always necessary. They were all arranged on a rising ground, at the foot of which ran a stream of mineral water, of a most sulphureous smell. Further on we crossed other streams of the same quality; the heat of one of which, as it gushed from under the rocks, was almost scalding. We brought home specimens of the incrustation which the spray of the bubbles left on the surrounding rocks. The bed of the stream was mostly of the colour of sulphur, although there were patches here and there of a copper hue. Still a little further on, on the left of the road, are two springs of naptha. The oil swims on the surface of the water, and the peasantry take it off with a branch of date tree, and collect it into small holes around the spring ready for their immediate use. They daub the camels all over with it in the spring, which preserves their coats, and prevents a disease in the skin, which is common to them. The huts in the village of _Daulakee_, as we rode through it, appeared mostly to be covered on the tops with the entwined leaves of their date trees, while the better houses are built of mud, and terraced. The mosque was the most creditable building that met our eye in the whole place: its interior seemed neatly arranged in arches, and preserved clean with a white stucco. There was a little bath at the extremity of the town. The customary fort (for such are found in most of these villages) was situated in the middle of the huts, at the top of which many an eager Persian was perched. This place, and indeed all we had seen, presented a picture of poverty stronger than words can express. There was nothing but what mere existence required; nor to our very cursory observation did the most trifling superfluity shew itself. The river that runs by _Daulakee_ meanders through the plain which we had passed. All the mineral streams, which crossed our road, fall into it, and renders its waters salt and brackish. The soil itself indeed, at the roots of the mountains, is, in some places, saturated with a nitrous acid, of which, in the neighbourhood of _Daulakee_, the people make a pleasant beverage. In one of the recesses of the mountains, however, there is a stream of pure and delicious water. In the evening I walked to the spring, which is embosomed in date trees: it is beautifully clear, and rather tepid. Its short course down into the plain is marked by a wood, which more immediately flourishes under its influence, and follows its progress. In the lower country there is an extensive tract covered with date trees, and forming a mass of verdure on which the eye delights to rest after the constant glare of an arid desert. It is extraordinary how vegetation thrives in this country, wherever there is the least water. It is, indeed, a general rule, that wherever they can irrigate they can produce vegetation; and indeed with no other moisture than the dews, and the few occasional showers of the winter, the plain of _Bushire_ (which all observers have agreed to call a barren land) produces one hundred for seven. The rude manner of cultivation here is sufficient to display the intrinsic goodness of the soil; for they just sprinkle with seed the spot marked out for the plough, then make the superficial furrows, and obtain most abundant crops. We mounted this morning at eight o’clock, and arrived at our encampment at ten minutes before one. It is called four _fursungs_, but we compute it at sixteen miles. We soon entered the mountains, and followed the road through them to the Eastward. We came to the river (which in its lower course passes near _Daulakee_) at half past nine o’clock: we crossed it a second time about a quarter of an hour after, and at ten o’clock passed it for the third and last time, at a ruined bridge, of a structure which had once been neat. After hard rains its bed is very extensive, and its current most rapid: so that it entirely impedes the passage of travellers and caravans. At the fords where we crossed, it was a very fine stream up to the bellies of our horses. After that, we paced its banks, for the distance perhaps of half a mile, in a S. E. direction. We saw it for the last time winding on a southern course, when we had ascended an elevated peak of the _Cotul_ range. We gained this summit at half past eleven; the road then continued through the mountains till twelve o’clock, when we came on the plain of _Khisht_. At ten minutes before one we reached our encampment. The extreme capriciousness of the windings of the road, rendered it almost an impossible task to ascertain the ultimate and exact direction of our bearing from _Daulakee_ to _Khisht_. However it was evident, that we had made a great deal of Easting, with a little Northing. The mountains rose around in most fantastical forms, their strata having their highest elevation towards the South, forming a dip of perhaps forty-five degrees. The soil is mostly of a soft crumbling stone, large fragments of which seemed just balancing at the brink of the precipice above, and appearing to require only a touch to impel them into the great chasms below. The passage of the river by our numerous party, and the winding of the horsemen and loaded mules in the mountain-passes, animated the whole of the dreary scenery around into the most romantic pictures. The only verdure which cheered the sameness of the glaring yellow of the mountain, was that of a few wild almond trees. Before we ascended to the plains of _Khisht_, a long string of matchlock men and horsemen (the _Istakball_) who came out to meet the Envoy, appeared on the brink of the precipice above us. As we ascended they fired a volley, the sound of which returned in repeated echoes through the mountains; and when we came into the midst of them, the horsemen begun their gambols; moving around us in all directions, stopping their horses, couching their long lances, throwing them, and then again galloping forwards. The footmen with their matchlocks made a charge into the plain, shouting as they advanced, as a representation perhaps of the ardour of their attack in real combat. When we approached our encampment, we were met by the Governor of _Khisht_ himself, ZAUL KHAN, a man of remarkable appearance, without eyes, and with the fragment of a tongue, the rest of which he had forfeited during the troubles of Persia. He came riding on a mule conducted by a young Persian. But the most extraordinary part of his history is, that, notwithstanding his tongue is cut, he still talks intelligibly. Before, indeed, this operation was performed, he had such an impediment in his speech, that he was scarcely able to make himself understood; but the mutilation was fortunate, and his articulation has been improved. This the Envoy, who had known him before the punishment, avers. The plain of _Khisht_ seems to form a complete oval, and presented stronger marks of cultivation than any part of the _Dashtistan_ which we had seen. The _Konar_ bushes were thickly sprinkled by the roadside, and apparently all over the plain, besides plantations of date trees. At _Konar-a-Tackta_ (a village four miles and a half from _Khisht_, and the place where we encamped,) there is a _Caravanserai_, which has lately been erected by one of the wives of _Zaul Khan_, and is really a neat and commodious building. An arched gateway introduces the traveller into a square yard, around which are rooms, and behind which are stables. There is also a small suite of rooms over the gateway. In the centre of the court is an elevated platform, the roof of a subterraneous chamber called a _zeera zemeon_, whither travellers retire during the great heats of the summer, and which in those heats is a very refreshing habitation. Behind the building is a tank or reservoir for rain-water, which has newly been added, and is not indeed yet finished. The whole forms an establishment most acceptable to travellers, and worthy of the Persian governments of a better age. On the 23d we rose before the sun, and though in a region so much more elevated than the one in which we were on the preceding day, the temperature of the atmosphere seemed the same. The sky was clouded all over, and some predicted rain. One of our _moonshees_, who was considered an astrologer, told me that, according to his observations, “it would rain, _if God pleased_.” However, the day passed without rain, and the opinion of the astrologer was, at any rate, equally indisputable. The trumpet, the signal for departure, sounded at twenty minutes before eight, and we went off with the usual clatter and parade. The course of the road bore N. E.: but when we had rode for about four miles its direction was nearly due East. In an hour after our departure we came to the banks of a river, which is the same that, flowing by _Zeira_, falls into the _Daulakee_ river at _Deerooga_, and which, according to my information, takes its rise in the mountains near _Shapour_. Immediately on coming on its banks we began to wind through the difficult passes of the mountains, which in various parts are very dangerous. The Arab horses, who had been accustomed to the equal surface of their own sandy plains, trode the rocky sides of the mountains with fearful and uncertain steps, and one or two of the most valuable of the Envoy’s stud suffered by severe falls: the Persian horses, on the contrary, scramble over the threatening eminences, and confidently walk by the sides of the precipices with an indifference, which gives an equal consciousness of security to their riders. Our _Mehmandar_, by way of bravado, urged his horse over a rocky heap, which appeared almost as the feat of a madman. There were some particular points of view in our progress, that were picturesque and grand in the extreme. The path wound so fantastically along the side of the mountain, that those who were yet at the bottom saw the whole surface intersected by the ranges of our procession; and the travellers at the upper point appeared so diminutive, that man and brute could scarcely be distinguished from each other. Just before we reached the very highest top of the mountain we came to a station of _Rhadars_, and to the dwelling of a _derveish_, which was formed in the crevice of a rock. In parts of our route we saw the _Rodo-dendron_, one of the strongest symptoms of the change of our climate. We reached our encampment at twenty minutes past eleven, and we found it pitched near a _Caravanserai_. The village of _Khaumauridge_ is situated on a small plain, and is distant about a mile N. 20 W. from the _Caravanserai_. On an eminence over us was a small tower, where a rebel stood a long siege. The mountains through which we passed were infested by a race of robbers called the _Memméh Sunni_. They live in the deepest recesses of their wild valleys, and commit their depredations on the unguarded travellers with an impunity quite characteristic of the state of the country. Although some attempts have occasionally been made to terrify them into submission, by inflicting the severest tortures on the few individuals who have chanced to be caught, yet the example has been lost on the living, and the love of independence and plunder has outweighed the terrors of barbarous punishment and ignominious death. The abrupt formation of their mountain haunts (labyrinths to those who have not long practised them,) favours this community so materially, that instances have been known of their having snatched from the very centre of a caravan, some traveller who promised less resistance than his companions, or some well loaded mule, that seemed to announce more booty than others. When Brigadier-General MALCOLM went through their mountains on a former mission, the robbers bore off some of his mules which carried part of the rich presents destined for the King of Persia. So firmly are they now established in their fastnesses, that the neighbouring _Khans_ and Governors of districts have chosen, since the evil itself was inevitable, to take a part in its advantages, and, it is said, maintain their own agents amongst the _Memméh Sunni_, with whom they have stipulated agreements about the fruits of their plunder. They happened to be less predatory at the time of our passage, and we proceeded through the mountains without the least molestation. The _Caravanserai_ close to our encampment was a solid, though rather ancient structure, and the walls, scribbled over with names or couplets, attested the passage of frequent travellers. We saw a cock blackbird, and Sir HARFORD fired three times on a thrush, which, notwithstanding, kept its ground, until it was taken up in the hand, and indeed permitted itself to be taken up frequently without offering to fly away. A road is making at the sole expence of HAJEE MAHOMED HASSAN, a merchant and inhabitant of _Bushire_, which will cut through the mountains from _Kauzeroon_ to _Khaumauridge_, and shorten the distance two _fursungs_. Its direction bore E. from us at _Khaumauridge_. On the 24th our march commenced at eight, and we arrived at _Kauzeroon_ at half past two. We were about one hour pacing the plain of _Khaumauridge_, and, allowing one mile for the other extremity, (which we had passed on the preceding day) we may fairly calculate its whole length at five miles. Its opening towards _Kauzeroon_ is through a pass called the _Tengui Turkoun_, between two high branches of the mountains. There is besides a road to the left, which leads over the mountain, and which the Envoy and some of the party took, because the pass is very famous for the attacks of the robbers. The road was, however, guarded at different stations by matchlock men, who had been placed there by the direction of the Prince, which was one of the numerous instances of his great attention to the mission. Having descended once again, we came into the plains of _Kauzeroon_. From the eminence we perceived the river, which we had passed near _Khisht_, winding in a N. and S. direction behind the western hills. The city of _Shapour_ we just discovered at the foot of a mountain, then bearing N. 50 E. Hills of very subordinate elevation run out from the great range of mountains, and leave here and there little plains which are all comprehended under the name of the plain of _Kauzeroon_. We were met at _Derees_ by a great crowd, who gambolled and saluted as usual. As we passed between the huts, the women of the village were collected on the roofs, and greeted our approach by a loud and tremendous species of song, which yet at a distance was not disagreeable. Money was thrown amongst the crowd, which added much to the confusion of the scene, and excited a most active and querulous scramble. About two miles from _Kauzeroon_ we were met by MAHOMED KOULI KHAN, the Governor of that place, who was attended by a numerous company of horsemen. Mr. BRUCE, Dr. JUKES, and myself dismounted to pay him the usual compliment, and he then turned back with us to his own town. About a mile further, almost the whole male population was collected to meet us. A bottle, which contained sugar-candy, was broken under the feet of the Envoy’s horse, a ceremony never practised in Persia to any but to royal personages; and then about thirty wrestlers, in party-coloured breeches, (their only covering) and armed with a pair of clubs called _meals_, begun each to make the most curious noise, move in the most extravagant postures, and display their professional exploits all the way before our horses, until we reached our encampment. It would be difficult to describe a crowd so wild and confused. The extreme jolting, running, pushing, and scrambling almost bewildered me: while the dust, which seemed to powder the beards of the Persians, nearly suffocated us all. Probably ten thousand persons of all descriptions were assembled. Officers were dispersed among them, and with whips and sticks drove the crowd backwards or forwards, as the occasion required. Nothing could exceed the tumult and cries. Here men were tumbling one over the other in the inequalities of the ground; there horses were galloping in every direction, while their riders were performing feats with their long spears; behind was an impenetrable crowd; before us were the wrestlers dancing about to the sound of three copper drums, and twirling round their clubs. On every side was noise and confusion. This ceremony is never practised but to princes of the blood, and we considered, therefore, the honours of this day as a further proof of the reviving influence of the English name. On Christmas day Sir HARFORD JONES and I visited the ruins of _Shapour_. We reckoned the distance at fifteen miles, in nearly a north direction from _Kauzeroon_. About seven miles from our encampment, we passed again through the village of _Derees_, which, from the extent of the ruined houses, must once have been a large town. Every house is covered with an arched roof, a mode of building which probably originated in the scarcity of timber. It is indeed common in all the places which we have seen; and the doors and porticoes are universally formed by a Saracenic arch. A miserable population, thinly interspersed among the ruins of _Derees_, came out to greet our passage. On the northern extremity of the town there is a place of burial, and over one of the tomb-stones there was the figure of a lion. After having passed two tombs, one on the right side and one on the left of the road, we came to the bed of a torrent, over which there seems to have been built an aqueduct; for, on either side of its banks, are the remains of masonry, and the trace of its conduit is perceived on the southern bank. The extent of the ruins of _Shapour_ to the southward is marked by a beautiful stream of water. Over the spring, from which it issues, the road is built, sustained by fragments of architecture, which are a part of the entablature of some public building, and by their dimensions must have appertained to a very considerable edifice. Immediately after having passed this spring we came upon the ruins of _Shapour_.[29] When standing on an eminence we computed the whole to be comprised, on a rough calculation, within a circumference of six miles. This circumference enclosed a tract of plain, and a hill on which the remains of the ancient citadel formed a conspicuous and commanding object. Whether by a mere caprice of nature, or whether by the labour of man, this hill or _Acropolis_ is distinctly separated from the great range of mountains, forming the Eastern boundary of the plain of _Kauzeroon_. Between this and another imposing mass of rock runs the beautiful river of _Shapour_: we reckoned the space between the two rocks at thirty yards, which formed a little plain of verdure and shrubbery, intersected indeed by the stream of the river.[30] The opening betwixt the two grand masses presented a landscape the most varied, the most tranquil, the most picturesque, and, at the same time, the most sublime that imagination can form. A black and stupendous rock (the strata of which were thrown into strong and wild positions, and formed an acute angle with the horizon) flanked the right of the picture: whilst another still more extraordinary rock, as richly illumined as the other was darkened, supported the left. Between both a distant range of mountains, whose roots were terminated by a plain, filled up the interstice, forming a fine aerial perspective; whilst the river and its rich shrubbery completed a most enlivening fore-ground. The hill, on which the remains of the citadel stand, is covered with the ruins of walls and turrets. On its eastern aspect, the nature of the fortification can be traced easily; for walls fill the chasms from rock to rock, forming altogether a place of defence admirably strong. [Illustration: _Shapour._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] The first object which arrested our attention, was a mutilated sculpture of two colossal figures on horseback, carved on the superfices of the rock. The figure on the right was the most injured; the only part indeed, which we could ascertain with precision, was one of the front and two of the hinder feet of a horse, standing over the statue of a man, who was extended at his full length, his face turning outwardly, and reposed upon his right hand, and his attire bearing marks of a Roman costume. A figure in the same dress was placed in an attitude of supplication at the horse’s knees, and a head in alto-relievo just appeared between the hinder feet. The equestrian figure on the left was not quite so much mutilated, the horse and parts of the drapery on the thighs being still well preserved. The dimensions of the figures are as follows: length of the foot of the figure under the horse, fifteen inches; length of the whole figure sixteen feet one inch; length of the arm five feet; chin to the summit of the head one foot two inches; length of the horse’s leg from the lower part of the shoulder to the hoof four feet four; the dress of the figures was a short petticoat, from the waist downwards just below the knees. The next piece of sculpture (which, like the former, was carved upon the mountain of the citadel), is perfect in all its parts. It consists of three grand compartments, the central and most interesting represents a figure on horseback, whose dress announces a royal personage. His head-dress is a crown, on which is placed a globe; his hair flows in very large and massy curls over both shoulders, whilst a slight mustachio just covers his upper lip, and gives much expression to a countenance strongly indicative of pride and majesty. His body is clothed with a robe which falls in many folds to his girdle, and then extends itself over his thigh and legs as low as his ancle. A quiver hangs by his side; in his right hand he holds the hand of a figure behind him, which stands so as to cover the whole hind quarter of his horse, and which is dressed in the Roman tunic and helmet. A figure, habited also in the Roman costume, is on its knees before the head of the horse, with its hands extended, and with a face betraying entreaty. Under the feet of the horse is another figure extended, in the same attire and character as that of the other two Roman figures. To the right of the tablet stands a figure (behind that in a suppliant attitude) with his hands also extended, but dressed in a different manner, and, as far as we could judge, with features more Egyptian than European. In the angle between the king’s head and the horse’s is a Victory displaying the scroll of Fame. A figure (part of which is concealed by the one on its knees) completes the whole of this division. (Plate X.) The second grand compartment, which is on the right, is divided again into six sub-compartments; in each of these are carved three figures, the costumes and general physiognomies of which are all different. They appear mostly in postures of supplication; and, I should suspect, are representations of vanquished people. On the left, in the third grand compartment, are two rows of horsemen divided by one line into two smaller compartments. They all have the same characteristic dress and features as the royal figure in the centre, and certainly represent his forces. The whole of this most interesting monument is sculptured on a very hard rock, which bears the finest polish, and which we pronounced to be a coarse species of jasper. The shortness of our stay did not afford me an opportunity of delineating the detail of the many figures, which have been so faithfully pourtrayed. The artist has preserved so much distinction in the countenances and features of the different characters brought together in this groupe, that, if their respective countries could be ascertained, (and study and close investigation would probably secure the discovery) some important point of ancient history would be elucidated by an evidence as ingenious as it would be convincing. The dimensions we took are as follows: figures on foot, height five feet nine inches; figures on horseback from the rider’s cap to the horse’s hoofs six feet five inches: the minor tablets are four feet ten inches in length; the grand tablet eleven feet eleven inches. [Illustration: _Rock at Shapour._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq.^r_ _Published by Mess.^{rs} Longman Hurst Rees Orme & Brown Paternoster Row May 1., 1811._] Having examined these, we next crossed the river to the sculptures on the opposite rock. The first is a long tablet, containing a multitude of figures. The principal person, (who is certainly the King represented in the former tablet) is placed in the very centre of the piece, alone in a small compartment, and is seated with a sword placed betwixt his legs, on the pummel of which rests his left hand. It is a most ridiculous object, with a head swelled by a singular wig to an immense circumference. On his right, on the uppermost of two long slips, are many men who seem to be a mixture of Persians and Romans; the former are conducting the latter as prisoners. Under these in the lower slip are others, who by their wigs appear to be Persians: their leader bears a human head in both hands, and extends it towards the central figure. On the left are four small compartments; the first (nearest that figure, and the highest from the ground) incloses a crowd of men whose arms are placed over one another’s shoulders. Below these are five figures, one of whom leads a horse without any more furniture than a bridle. The two other compartments are filled up with eight figures each. We considered this to represent, in general, a king seated in his room of audience surrounded by his own people, and by nations tributary to him. The length is eleven yards four inches. On the left of this were two colossal figures on horseback, carved in an alto relievo. The one to the right had all the dress, character and features of the King above described; the other, on the left, appeared also a royal personage, but differing in dress, and in the furniture of his horse. Both had their hands extended, and held a ring, which we conceived to be emblematical of peace. The Envoy, who had seen both these remains and _Nakshi Rustam_, prepared me to expect a similar sculpture at the latter: and as I had not leisure to detail all the subjects of _Shapour_, I preferred to delineate those, of which no other specimen might exist, and therefore proceeded in our general examination. I must not however omit to say, that the sculpture of these two figures was exquisite; the proportions and anatomy of both horses and men were accurately preserved, so that the very veins and arteries in the horses’ legs and belly were most delicately delineated. Walking forwards we came to a very extensive piece of sculpture, the lower parts of which were entirely destroyed. We saw, however, on the right, a row of camels’ and men’s heads intermixed; and under them a row of horses’ and men’s heads, which were demolished from the horse’s eye downwards. In front of these, at the distance of about four feet, was part of a figure on a horse, the King as before, holding a bow and four arrows in his right hand. We supposed that this might be the commencement of a hunting piece. [Plate XI.] Our research terminated in a most perfect sculpture: the extreme interest of which only increased our regret, that the shortness of our time would not allow us to give it all the observation and study which it required. This piece contained a greater number of objects than any of the others, and a much greater diversity of characters. The surface of the rock is here divided into a variety of unequal compartments, all of which are occupied by a multitude of figures. In the middle, is a rather reduced copy of the second relievo which I have described (that of the King and the suppliant) except that, facing the King there is an additional personage with a hand extended holding a ring. In the first row, at the top on the right, are a number of slight figures with their arms folded. The second is filled with a crowd, of which some carry baskets. The third is equally covered; and in the right corner there is a man conducting a lion by a chain. In the fourth, and just opposite to the King, is a very remarkable groupe, whose loose and folded dresses denote Indians: one leads a horse, whose furniture I have drawn with some care, and behind the horse is an elephant. Under this, and close to the ground, are men in a Roman costume; amongst them is a chariot to which two horses are harnessed; this also I have exactly delineated.[31] In five compartments on the left (corresponding with those on the right) are placed thick squadrons of Persian cavalry, all in a regular and military order, marshalled as it were in echelon. Fourteen yards was the length of the whole sculpture from point to point. [Illustration: _Fragments at Shapour._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq.^r_ _Published by Mess.^{rs} Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row May 1, 1811._] [Illustration: _Sculpture at Shapour._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq.^r_ _Published by Mess.^{rs} Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] [Illustration: _Sculpture at Shapour._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] The path that conducted us round to these beautiful monuments, is the course of an aqueduct, which appeared to be of more modern workmanship. Bordering on the road which winds behind the hill of the citadel, are numerous canals of water, formed most artificially and closely cemented with _darna_. Besides these, there are very deep wells, in parts of which the channels of the aqueduct are seen to pass. After having repassed the river, we walked over the numerous mounds of stones and earth which cover the ruined buildings of _Shapour_, and which, if ever explored, would discover innumerable secrets of antiquity. We were conducted by the peasants who were with us, to the remains of a very fine wall, which in the symmetry of its masonry equalled any Grecian work that I have ever seen. Each stone was four feet long, twenty-seven inches thick, and cut to the finest angles. This wall formed the front to a square building, the area of which is fifty-five feet. At the top were placed sphinxes couchant, a circumstance which we ascertained from discovering accidentally two eyes and a mutilated foot at the extremity of one of the upper stones. In this wall there is a window, which is arched by the formation of its upper stone. Behind this square building, we traced most correctly the configuration of a theatre, thirty paces in length, and fourteen in breadth. The place resembled at least those called theatres which I have seen in Greece. From a comparison of their positions, we were led to suppose that the building still extant must have been connected with the other behind it, and may have formed perhaps the entrance to it. [Plate XIII.] There are distinct mounds of earth scattered over the whole site of the city, to each of which there are one or more wells. These we supposed to be ruins of separate houses. The people of _Kauzeroon_ relate that there are immense subterraneous passages at _Shapour_, and connect the most extraordinary stories with them. Certainly one of the least extraordinary is, that a horse and mare were lost in them, and some time after re-appeared with a foal. Our informer added that one of his own acquaintance was sent into these passages, and had advanced some way when he perceived a gigantic figure, which to his fears appeared approaching towards him. He recovered himself however so far as to venture up to it, when, instead of a living monster, he found a sculptured figure, the same as those on the exterior of the rock. As a measure of the extent of these labyrinths, they say, that it would require twenty _mauns_ of oil, (a _maun_ is seven pounds and a quarter) to light any one through all their intricacies. The plants that we noticed near the river, on the site of the city, and about the surrounding plain, were the _palma christi_, _rodo-dendron_, the willow, wild fig, a plant which the Persians call _shauk-a-booz_, and _caveer_, reeds, and _benak_ or spice plant. The plain towards _Shapour_ is much more cultivated than towards _Kauzeroon_, and is intersected by a variety of small artificial channels, which receive their supplies from the river. The river itself is a stream of very fine water, but after having run for about eighteen miles, it meets with a bed of salt among the mountains, which renders its waters in its farther progress towards the sea quite salt. After having enjoyed the pleasure of exploring these remains, we returned to _Kauzeroon_. This town covers a large extent of country, but its walls and skirts are almost all in ruins. There is one green spot near it, a garden planted chiefly with cypress and orange trees, and belonging to the Governor. We walked there in the evening: at the entrance is a pleasure house, from which the principal avenue and garden are seen. We drank coffee in an upper room, neatly matted and stuccoed, with painted glass windows; and after having so long roamed over barren mountains and desert plains, were much pleased to meet with regular paths, refreshing rivulets, and luxuriant vegetation.[32] The blackbird and the thrush were flying from tree to tree, and reminded us how sensibly we had changed our climate. We set off at eight o’clock on the morning of the 26th, and arrived at our encampment in the valley of _Abdoui_, at half past twelve. The road led by the walls of _Kauzeroon_, and through the plain, until we came to a causeway called the _Poul-aub-guinee_, which is reckoned two _fursungs_ from _Kauzeroon_. From this spot (which is a swamp forming the termination of the lake from the southward) the road begun to wind up a high mountain called the _Dockter_ or “Daughter.” Over this, in the most difficult parts of the ascent, a road has been made, and parapet walls built to screen the traveller from the dangers of the precipices, which in some parts form an abrupt boundary to the road. Formerly this road was singularly dangerous, and all the exertions and ingenuity of the caravan drivers and leaders of mules were necessary to conduct their animals in safety to the bottom. We were told that the driver, when his mule was about descending a very steep part of the pass, would seize it by the tail, and then with all his might hold it fast, until the animal had found a footing for his fore feet, when again he helped it in the same manner, until it was in perfect safety. We reached the summit of the _Dockter_ at about half past ten, and from thence we marched over a better road, until we descended into the small and beautiful valley of _Abdoui_. It is thickly covered with oak trees, which, though of a small kind indeed, must in summer render it a verdant and refreshing spot. Whilst we were at dinner it was announced to the Envoy, that one of his old Persian friends MAHOMED REZA KHAN was about to meet him on his route; that he was the bearer of good news, and would therefore demand his _moodjdéhlook_, the customary present. The news was the defeat of the Russians at _Erivan_, whose loss in killed and prisoners amounted, according to the Persian’s report, to six thousand men. A _firman_ from the King was also announced to be at this time on the road for the Envoy. Our picturesque camp, which was interspersed amongst the oaks of the valley, was in motion at a quarter before eight on the morning of the 27th. After traversing nearly the full length of the plain, perhaps four miles, we proceeded to the long and tedious rise of the _Peera zun_, or “Old Woman,” a mountain, the greatest height of which formed the termination of our several ascents. We were at the top at twelve o’clock, when we commenced our descent into the plain of _Desht-e-arjun_, at the north extremity of which is situated the village of the same name. Before we entered it, we were met by MAHOMED REZA KHAN, who presented his letters from the Minister at the court of _Shiraz_, and who received our compliments on the success of the Persian arms. About two miles before we reached our encampment, we were met by the _istakball_, which was like all the others, excepting that it was accompanied by an old man blowing a brass trumpet of most broken, hoarse and discordant note, and by a ragged boy on an ass, who was beating two little kettle drums. About a quarter of a mile from the village there is a burial place, with a lion on one of the tombs as at _Derees_, and just under the mountain are a number of willow trees, watered by a fine gushing spring. The plain itself is swampy; but the heights which bound it are all of a hard and inhospitable rock. In the swamp are wild fowl innumerable, ducks, snipes, and divers. The spring was here most luxuriant, and rendered the plain of _Desht-e-arjun_ one of the most delightful spots which we had seen in the country. Some of the eminences are in summer covered with vines, the seps of which were now seen just peeping out of the brown soil. We were fortunate in having passed the mountains; for we had scarcely reached our encampment, when thick clouds covered their summits, and here and there left extensive layers of snow. On the 28th, the morning was extremely cold, when the camp broke up; we set off at half past eight, and arrived at our resting place at a quarter to twelve, a distance which we call ten miles. We continued all the road in the same region as the plain of _Desht-e-arjun_, nor do I think that any very considerable descent had brought us much below the summit of the _Peera Zun_. The people of the country reckon _Khoné Zenioun_ colder than _Desht-e-arjun_, and indeed than any other habitable place on their side of Persia. These spots are certainly much more elevated than any other part in the line of our route. At _Khoné Zenioun_ there is only a _Caravanserai_; near it a small stream runs to the Eastward; we came to its banks at half past ten o’clock, but did not cross it till close under the walls of the _Caravanserai_. Whilst sitting quietly in our tents, we were hurried by the information that KERIM KHAN, the bearer of the King’s letter, was within a mile of our encampment. As it was necessary to receive it with every honour, we exchanged our travelling clothes for uniforms and swords, which the Persians have learnt to esteem as the dress of ceremony among Europeans. We proceeded in all haste to the _Shiraz_ road, with the body guard in their best clothes, with flying colours and trumpets sounding; and had advanced scarcely a quarter of a mile, when we perceived the Khan and his party descending a neighbouring hill. The Envoy, the _Mehmandar_, and all the gentlemen of the suite dismounted from their horses, and walked in form towards KERIM KHAN, who, in the same manner, advanced towards us with an attendant behind him, bearing the King’s _firman_. When the greetings of welcome were interchanged, the _Khan_ took the King’s letter from under a handkerchief, with which it was covered, and delivered it into the Envoy’s hands, saying aloud, “This is the King’s _firman_.” Sir HARFORD received it with both his hands, and having carried it respectfully to his head, placed it in his breast. We then mounted our horses, and returned to the Envoy’s tent, where all parties were seated according to their respective ranks. A long exchange of compliments then took place between the principals, “_khosh amedeed_” and “_bisgar khosh amedeed_,” (you are welcome, you are very welcome), were repeated again and again. This is the phrase after the “_selam alek_,” which is always used in Persia, and which answers to the “_khosh gueldin_” of the Turks. The Turks never use the “_selam alek_” to a Christian, or to one who is not of the faith; but the Persians are less scrupulous. KERIM KHAN conveyed many flattering compliments from the King to the Envoy, and added a great number on his own part. Sir HARFORD called for PEER MURAD BEG, his chief _Moonshee_, to read the _firman_. He arrived barefooted, and stood respectfully at the end of the tent; when the _firman_ was put into his hands all the company stood up, and the Europeans took off their hats: PEER MURAD BEG read the _firman_ aloud, with a marked and song-like emphasis. He then delivered it to Sir HARFORD, and we all seated ourselves again. After this, the usual routine of smoking and coffee was performed, during which the different gentlemen in the room were presented to KERIM KHAN; our _Mehmandar_ officiated in this instance, and described all our different qualities and qualifications with a great deal of humour. KERIM KHAN then departed to lodge with the _Mehmandar_, who, on this occasion, displayed considerable attention, though, in his general manners, he had appeared a rough blunt soldier: knowing that the Envoy (to whom in etiquette the duty devolved) was unprovided for the reception of such a guest, he requested permission himself to entertain the stranger. 29th. We departed from _Khoné Zenioun_ this morning at half past seven; and at a quarter past eleven arrived at the _Bagh Shah Cheragh_, a distance of twenty miles. We travelled mostly over a country of ascents and descents, and on a better road than those of the preceding days. The same river, by the banks of which we had been encamped, accompanied us in various directions, and, winding towards the east, met us at a station of _Rahdars_,[33] (as we were entering the plain of _Shiraz_), where we crossed it on a decayed bridge, and saw the first view of _Shiraz_ at the end of the plain. This day was replete with attentions and honours to Sir HARFORD and his Mission; an _istakball_, composed of fifty horsemen of our _Mehmandar’s_ tribe, met us about three miles from our encampment; they were succeeded, as we advanced, by an assemblage on foot, who threw a glass vessel filled with sweetmeats beneath the Envoy’s horse, a ceremony which we had before witnessed at _Kauzeroon_, and which we again understood to be an honour shared with the King and his sons alone. Then came two of the principal merchants of _Shiraz_, accompanied by a boy, the son of MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN, the new Governor of _Bushire_. They, however, incurred the Envoy’s displeasure by not dismounting from their horses, a form always observed in Persia by those of lower rank, when they meet a superior. We were thus met by three _istakballs_ during the course of the day, and MAHOMED ZEKY KHAN, our _Mehmandar_, amused us by the singing of a young boy, one of the first professional performers of _Shiraz_. A number of feats were performed by many of the horsemen who overspread the plain to a great extent; some throwing the _girid_, and then firing their pistols and muskets on full gallop, and others throwing the lance in the air, and catching it again. On our road the _Mehmandar_, who had just received the message from _Shiraz_, announced that one of the Prince’s own tents was pitched at _Bagh Shah Cheragh_ for the Envoy, and that the Prince further begged his acceptance of it. The present, which was offered with so much attention and delicacy, was worthy of the hand which gave it. On our arrival we found it displayed in the full elegance of its construction. It enclosed a large square occupied by a set of walls, the exterior of which was a crimson field, with green embroidery; on their interior covering were worked cypress trees and fighting lions. The whole was supported by three lofty and elegantly painted poles. Rich carpets were spread on the ground, and the ceilings and hangings were of the finest _Masulipatam_ chintz, with appropriate poetical mottoes painted in the cornices. The _Feroshes_ (or tent-pitchers) had contrived to make a small temporary garden before the entrance, and to introduce a little stream of water to run through the few green sprouts which they had planted. Three large trays of sweetmeats were placed in the tent ready for the Envoy’s reception; upon which, when our visitors were departed, we fed heartily. During the night, a fall of snow very opportunely laid the dust for our entrance into the city, in which were to be displayed all our splendour and finery. CHAP. VI. SHIRAZ. PUBLIC ENTRY INTO SHIRAZ--HONORS PAID TO THE MISSION--DESCRIPTION OF THE CITY--THE ENVIRONS: TOMB OF HAFIZ; HAFT-TEN; STORY OF SHEIK CHENAN; GARDENS; PLEASURE HOUSES--INTRODUCTION AT THE COURT OF SHIRAZ--THE PALACE--THE PRINCE--HIS GOVERNMENT--FETE GIVEN TO THE ENVOY BY THE MINISTER--PRESENT FROM THE PRINCE’S OWN TABLE--THE CHIEF SECRETARY’S ENTERTAINMENT--SECOND INTERVIEW WITH THE PRINCE--REVIEW--THE FETE GIVEN TO THE MISSION BY THE MEHMANDAR--THE PRINCE’S PRESENT; DRESSES OF HONOR. On the morning of the 30th Dec. the day fixed for our public entry into _Shiraz_, all the suite appeared in full uniforms, and the Envoy in a Persian cloak or _catabee_ made of shawl, and lined with _Samoor_ fur; a dress permitted to the Princes alone, and on that account assumed by Sir HARFORD, as the best means of conveying to the senses of the multitude, the high consideration of the office which he bore. We proceeded from our encampment at ten o’clock. The troop was dressed in their richest uniform, and made a very splendid escort. Our _Mehmandar_ marshalled the whole of the Persian horsemen so admirably, that none crowded upon us in our march, and they only played about as usual and animated the plain by their noise and games. At about two miles from the city we were met by some of the chief men of the place. It was a long contested negociation, whether they also were to pay the Envoy the compliment of dismounting, nor would they have submitted to this part of the ceremony, if KERIM KHAN, the bearer of the King’s letter, had not rode forwards and represented to them, that as he was sent from His Majesty to see that every respect was properly shewn to the representative of the British King, he must report their present conduct at _Teheran_. This hint had the desired effect; and, as their party approached, the chiefs dismounted, and I, with some other gentlemen of the Mission, dismounted also, and went forward to meet them: the Envoy formally expressed his determination to alight to nobody but the Minister. Those who had yielded the honour thus reluctantly, were BAIRAM ALI KHAN CADJAR, the _Ish Agassi_, or Master of the Ceremonies of the Prince’s Household, and HASSAN KHAN CADJAR, both of the King’s own family; AHMED BEG, one of the sons of NASR OALLAH KHAN, the Prince’s Prime Minister; and MIRZA ZAIN LABADEEN, the Chief Secretary. We proceeded slowly across the plain; the crowd and confusion increased almost impenetrably, as we approached the city, and nothing but the strength of our _Mehmandar_ could have forced the passage. Mounted on his powerful large horse he was in all parts, dispersing one crowd, pushing forwards another, and dealing out the most unsparing blows to those who were disinclined to obey his call. At the gate, however, notwithstanding all his exertions, the closing numbers detained our progress for above a quarter of an hour; and vollies of blows were necessary to clear the entrance. At length it was effected: the Envoy led the column, surrounded by the Persian grandees, and followed by the gentlemen of the mission in their rank, and the troop of the body guard. We passed through many streets to the _Bazar-a-Vakeel_, a long and spacious building, the shops of which were all laid out with their choicest merchandize to display on the occasion the plenty and prosperity of the country. The _bazar_ itself is the most splendid monument of the taste and magnificence of KERIM KHAN, who administered the affairs of Persia with sovereign authority, under the name of _Vakeel_ or Regent, and died in 1779. The centre is marked above by a rotunda, and beneath by an enclosed platform; in the middle of which was seated the _Cutwal_ or Minister of Police. The trumpet of the troop, which was sounded all through the streets, continued with finer effect under the covered roofs of the _bazar_. As the Envoy passed, every one stood up; all knew at least the blows which followed any dilatoriness. After a long procession we arrived at the house appropriated for our reception. It was neatly built of a pale yellow brick, and was very spacious, though considerably out of repair, and indeed in some parts falling into absolute ruin. We were ushered into an apartment, where a large service of sweetmeats and fruits was prepared for us. Here we sat, until we had dispatched the usual forms of a visit with the grandees who had met us, and had accompanied us thus far. The remaining part of the day was occupied in receiving other less noble visitants, and in accepting the countless presents which were sent from various parts, and which consisted for the most part of live lambs, fruits and sweetmeats. The store of sweetmeats at last became so great, that they were distributed amongst our numerous servants, troopers, and _feroshes_. Among those, who succeeded the original party of our guests, was an officer dispatched by the Minister NASR OALLAH KHAN with the intimation, that he deferred till the next day the pleasure of visiting the Envoy, in the fear that at present he might be fatigued with his journey. But our more brilliant visitors were YUSUF BEG, a Georgian youth of pleasing manners, a favourite in the suite of the Prince; and ABDULLAH KHAN, who was nominated to officiate as our _Mehmandar_, till we should meet on the road an officer appointed by the King from his capital to assume the functions in the further progress of the Mission. 31st. NASR OALLAH KHAN, accompanied by many of the greatest men of _Shiraz_, paid their visit of ceremony to the Envoy. The minister’s manners were plain, his features hard, and his beard peculiarly black. The usual routine of complimentary speeches and of other ceremonies occupied both parties during his stay. The Envoy, from the pressing invitation of the court, determined to hasten his departure towards _Teheran_; and _eight_ days were fixed for our stay at _Shiraz_, though circumstances afterwards occasioned a further delay. _Shiraz_ has six gates: it is divided into twelve _mahalehs_ or parishes, in which there are fifteen considerable mosques, besides many others of inferior note; eleven _medressés_ or colleges, fourteen _bazars_, thirteen _caravanserais_, and twenty-six _hummums_ or baths. Of the gardens round, the principal are private property. Of all the mosques, the _Mesjid Ali_ (built in the Khalifat of ABBAS) is the most ancient, and the _Mesjid No_ the largest. It was indeed originally the palace of ATTABEK SHAH, who, in a dangerous illness of his son, consulted the _Mollahs_, and was answered, (as the only means of the recovery of his child) that he must devote to the Almighty that, which of all his worldly goods he valued most. He accordingly converted his palace into a mosque, and the Mahomedans add, that his son was in consequence restored to health. The _Mesjid Juméh_ is likewise an ancient structure, and there are six others of an older date than the time of KERIM KHAN. Of the more modern mosques of _Shiraz_ the _Mesjid Vakeel_, the only one built by that Prince, is the most beautiful. KERIM KHAN begun a college, but never finished it: there were already six, one of the earliest of which (that founded by IMAUM KOULI KHAN) is still the most frequented. Another was added by HAUSHEM, father of HAJEE IBRAHIM, the Vizier of the late King; and the _Peish Namaz_ and _Mooshtehed_ (Chief Priest of the city) built another. The trades in Persia as in Turkey are carried on in separate _bazars_, in which their shops are extended adjacent to each other on both sides of the building. Before the reign of KERIM KHAN, there were the _bazars_ of the shoemakers, tinmen, crockery-ware-dealers, and poulterers, and about seven others: after his time the _Bazar Saduck Khan_ was built; but the most extensive, as well as the most beautiful of all, was that already described, founded by KERIM KHAN himself, and called the _Bazar-a-Vakeel_. Of the _caravanserais_, the _Kaisariéh Khonéh_, built by IMAUM KOULI KHAN, and now in ruins, is the most ancient. There is another old structure, which was restored from a state of great decay, and assumed the name of its second founder ALI KHAN. There are five others, of which one is called _daphaugaun_, or the dressers of sheep-skins for caps; another _dakaukha_, or dyers; another _Hindoohan_, where the Hindoos reside. These were all built before the accession of KERIM KHAN, a date at which the splendour of _Shiraz_ revived. He added two within the city, and one beyond the walls, and others have since been erected. The same Prince enriched his capital with three public baths, two within and one without the town. Four have since been raised, but there were already, before his reign, nineteen similar foundations. There are several mausolea in _Shiraz_; the most distinguished of those without the walls is that of HAFIZ: there is also beyond the city, that of MIR ALI, son of MIRZA HAMZA, and grandson of the IMAUM MUSA. In an evening ride we visited the environs, and, leaving the city by the _Ispahan_ gate, crossed a bridge in very bad repair. The torrent (over which it was thrown) in the day of CHARDIN passed through the town; it now flows in solitude, a mournful proof of the decay of _Shiraz_. We came to the _Mesjid Shah Mirza Hamza_, a mosque erected by KERIM KHAN, in a separate chamber of which are laid the remains of his son ABDUL RAKEEM KHAN. In the front court is an old and majestic cypress. Although some parts of the fabric are in decay, it is still beautiful. Its walls are built of the fine brick employed in all the public works of its founder, and, indeed, in the best houses of _Shiraz_. Its cupola is covered with green-lacquered tiles of a semi-circular form, which, fitted in close lines, give a symmetrical appearance of ribs to its shining surface. At the foot of the cupola, in Persian characters, are verses from the Koran and invocations to the prophet. Continuing our ride from this mosque, we turned out of the fine high road, which is fifty feet broad and very even; and followed a smaller path on the right to the _Hafizeea_ on the tomb of HAFIZ, the most favourite of Persian poets. This monument also, in its present state at least, is alike the work of KERIM KHAN. It is placed in the court of a pleasure house, which marks the spot frequented by the poet. The building extends across an enclosure: so that the front of it, which looks towards the city, has a small court before it, and the back has another. In the centre is an open vestibule supported by four marble columns, opening on each side into neat apartments. The tomb of HAFIZ is placed in the back court, at the foot of one of the cypress trees, which he planted with his own hands. It is a parallelogram with a projecting base, and its superficies is carved in the most exquisite manner. One of the Odes of the Poet is engraved upon it, and the artist has succeeded so well, that the letters seem rather to have been formed with the finest pen than sculptured by a hard chissel. The whole is of the diaphanous marble of _Tabriz_, in colour a combination of light greens, with here and there veins of red and sometimes of blue. Some of the cypresses are very large, but AGA BESHEER, the present chief of the Queen’s eunuchs, who happened to require timber for a building, cut down two of the most magnificent trees. This is a place of great resort for the Persians, who go there to smoke _kaleoons_, drink coffee, and recite verses. After having done this, we proceeded forward, passing by the _Chehel-ten_ or forty bodies, until we came to the _Haft-ten_ or seven bodies, both buildings erected by KERIM KHAN to the memories of pious and extraordinary men who lived there as _Derveishes_. The _Haft-ten_ is a pleasure house, the front of which is an enclosed garden planted with rows of cypress and _chenar_ trees (a species of sycamore, with a verdure like that of the plane,) and interspersed with marble fountains. In its principal room, which is open in front and supported by two marble columns, are some paintings, many of which represent the sanctity of the _Derveishes’_ lives, and the ceremonies of the self-inflicted torments of their bodies. The principal paintings are ABRAHAM’S Sacrifice of ISAAC, on the right; on the left, MOSES keeping the flocks of _Jethro_. In the centre is the story of SHEIK CHENAN, a popular tale in _Shiraz_. SHEIK CHENAN, a Persian of the true faith, and a man of learning and consequence, fell in love with an Armenian lady of great beauty, who would not marry him unless he changed his religion. To this he agreed: still she would not marry him, unless he would drink wine: this scruple also he yielded. She resisted still, unless he consented to eat pork: with this also he complied. Still she was coy and refused to fulfil her engagement, unless he would be contented to drive swine before her. Even this condition he accepted: and she then told him that she would not have him at all, and laughed at him for his pains. The picture represents the coquette at her window, laughing at SHEIK CHENAN, as he is driving his pigs before her. The wainscoting of this room is of _Tabriz_ marble: one of the largest slabs is nine feet in length, and five feet in breadth. We quitted this pretty place, and taking the road to the right came to a magnificent garden, another evidence of the splendour of the age of KERIM KHAN. From its founder it was called in his time _Bagh-a-Vakeel_, but it has since acquired the name of _Bagh-e-Iehan-Nemah_. An immense wall, of the neatest construction, encloses a square tract of land, which is laid out into walks, shaded by cypress and _chenar_ trees, and watered by a variety of marble canals and small artificial cascades. Over the entrance, which is a lofty and arched passage, is built a pleasure-house. It consists of a centrical room with a small closet at each corner. The ornaments and paintings with which it is embellished, are more rich and more elegant than I can describe. The wainscot is of _Tabriz_ marble, and inlaid with gold and ornamental flowers, birds, and domestic animals. The panels of the doors are beautiful paintings, with the richest and most brilliant varnish; and the ceiling and walls are all parcelled out into compartments, which display equal execution. From the window I took a sketch of the tomb of HAFIZ, which lay contiguous to it on the left hand. The town of _Shiraz_, with all its campagna, was full before my sight; whilst the setting sun threw the softest and most beautiful tints over the fine scenery of the surrounding mountains. (See Plate XIV.) In the centre of the _bagh_ or garden is another of the principal pleasure-houses, which they call _koola-frangee_ or Frank’s hat, because it is built something in the shape of one. There is a basin in the middle of the principal room, where a fountain plays and refreshes the air. The paintings and ornaments are not less beautiful and are more varied, than those of the last described building. The cornices are laid out into small compartments, where the painter has exerted his genius and fancy in delineating the most fantastical little pictures. Here are hunts of lions, there the combats of elephants and dragons: in one corner are dancing bears and monkies, in another are represented the heroes and heroines of fairy tales. The whole procession and amusements of a marriage are drawn in one compartment, and next to them all the ceremonies of a circumcision. In short, if the painter’s art had been equal to his fancy, these different compositions would have excited as much admiration as they now afforded amusement. The whole soil of this garden is artificial, having been excavated from the area below, and raised into a high terrace. The garden is now falling into decay; but those who saw it in the reign of KERIM KHAN delight to describe its splendour, and do not cease to give the most ravishing pictures of the beauty of all the environs of his capital. [Illustration: _Tomb of Hafiz._ _Mesjid Shah Mirza Hamza._ _Sheraz._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] Having enjoyed the present remains of the scene, we returned to the high road (on the right of which it is situated) and followed it to the _Tengui-Ali-Acbar_, a fortified pass in the time of the greatness of _Shiraz_, and long indeed before that time. Here are the remains of that gate, of which LE BRUN in his travels has given a very correct drawing. From the situation in which I sketched the ruin, I fancy that I must have rested upon the very stone where LE BRUN took his view: and there is only that difference between the two, which unfortunately exists in the real scene; that mine presents devastation, where his picture displays life and cultivation. An old _Derveish_ now lives in a small cell close to the ruined gate, and refreshes the passing stranger with a cup of pure water. The remaining walls and turrets, which are nearly attached to the gate on the _Shiraz_ side, still attest the artificial strength of the pass in former days; and the formation of the lands around points it out as a spot which the modern perfection of military art would render an almost impregnable hold. The _Takht-a-Cadjar_ is a pleasure-house about a mile and a half East of the town, erected by the present Family, and situated in an enclosed garden of about twenty acres. It is built on a rock, but is much inferior indeed both in solidity and ornament, to any of the works of KERIM KHAN. From the upper window of one of its rooms, I took a view of the city, which extended itself beautifully before me. This pleasure-house is much visited by the Prince; on the left side of it he has an enclosed place in which he keeps antelopes and other game. From the quantity of water which runs through it, the garden itself must be most luxuriant in vegetation, and in summer a most delightful spot. 1st January, 1809. The first day of the new year was fixed for our visit to the Prince. On the day appointed, accordingly Sir HARFORD, preceded by our _Mehmandar_, and followed by the gentlemen of his Mission and the body guard, paraded through the town as on the day of our entry, until we reached the gate of state. The streets were filled as before, and the _bazars_ displayed all their wealth. The first gate introduced us immediately from the _bazar_ into the first court of the palace. The breadth and length of this court were of large and fine proportions. The high summits of its walls were crowned with arched battlements, the planes of which were worked in a species of close lattice. We proceeded through this court into another, the spacious area of which seemed to form a complete square. Its magnificent walls were covered in regular compartments with various implements of war arranged in distinct niches. Among them (besides spears, muskets, &c. and the small ensigns of their service) were the brass guns, called _zomboorek_, which are mounted on the backs of camels. Along the range stood soldiers in uniforms of scarlet cloth, an awkward imitation of the Russian military dress. About thirty paces from the principal gate Sir HARFORD dismounted, and followed by us all, whilst the trumpet of the troop sounded the salute, advanced through the portico. Here the _Ish Agassi_, or Master of the Ceremonies, BAIRAM ALI KHAN CADJAR, who had been seated in a small place opposite the entrance, rose at our approach to meet us. He then called for his staff of office, (a black cane with a carved pummel) and placing himself at the head of the party, led us through rather a mean passage into a spacious court, at the extremity of which appeared the Prince. He was seated in a kind of open room, the front of which was supported by two pillars elegantly gilded and painted. This is called the _Dewan Khonéh_, or Chamber of Audience. In the centre of the court is an avenue of lofty trees, at the sides of which are two long canals: these numerous fountains threw up a variety of little spouts of water, to the jingle of the wheels and bells of their machinery. On all sides of the court were placed in close files a number of well dressed men armed with muskets, pistols, and swords; these were the subalterns and the better sort of the soldiery in the Prince’s guard. Amongst them were here and there intermixed officers of high rank. In the centre of the avenue, and on the borders of the canal stood in long rows, respectfully silent and in postures of humility, all the chief Officers, Khans, Governors of towns and districts. When we entered the court, the _Ish Agassi_ stopt and made a very low obeisance towards the Prince; and Sir HARFORD and his Mission made an English bow, and just took off their hats. These salutations, which were made four times in as many different places of the court, were repeated as we entered the _Dewan Khonéh_. The Prince in all this looked at us, but did not stir a muscle: we now proceeded straight forwards until Sir HARFORD faced the Prince, where he was then directed to sit, and we all took our stations in order. When we were seated, the Prince said in a loud voice, “_Khosh Amedeed_,” that is, “you are welcome;” which was repeated by NASR OALLAH KHAN his Minister, who stood at about five paces from him in an attitude of respect. Sir HARFORD made the compliments required, when the Prince desired us to sit at our ease. We however, as in a former instance, chose to be respectful and uncomfortable, and to continue in the fashion of Persia. The Prince then added a variety of flattering things, talked of the friendship of the two nations, said how anxious his Father was to see the Embassador, and advised him to proceed to his court without delay. We had _kaleoons_, then coffee, and then (a compliment not repeated to a common guest) another _kaleoon_. After this was over, we got up, and making an obeisance, quitted the Prince’s presence with every precaution not to turn our backs as we departed. The same number of bows, repeated in the same places as on our entrance, closed the audience. ALI MIRZA, the Prince of _Shiraz_, is not the least amiable of the King’s sons. After Prince ABBAS MIRZA, the Governor of _Aderbigian_, and the Heir of the crown, he is his father’s greatest favourite. In person he is an engaging youth of the most agreeable countenance and of very pleasing manners. His dress was most sumptuous; his breast was one thick coat of pearls, which was terminated downwards by a girdle of the richest stuffs. In this was placed a dagger, the head of which dazzled by the number and the brilliancy of its inlaid diamonds. His coat was rich crimson and gold brocade, with a thick fur on the upper part. Around his black cap was wound a _Cashmire_ shawl, and by his side, in a gold platter, was a string of the finest pearls. Before him was placed his _kaleoon_ of state, a magnificent toy, thickly inlaid with precious stones in every distinct part of its machinery. To me the Prince appeared to be under much constraint during the ceremony of our audience; in which he had been previously tutored by his minister: and I very easily believe, according to the stories related of him, that he exchanges with eagerness these etiquettes of rank for the less restrained enjoyments of his power. On these he lavishes his revenue; and in the costliness of a hunting equipage, the fantasies of dress, and the delicacies of the _Harem_ are frittered away a hundred thousand _tomauns_ a year. Young as he is, (for he is only nineteen) he has already a family of eight children. In his public government he is much beloved by his people; and although the Persians are not inclined in conversation to spare the faults of their superiors, of him I never heard an evil word. He has not indeed those sanguinary propensities, which are almost naturally imbibed in the possession of despotic power; and where others cut off ears, slit noses, and pierce eyes, he contents himself with the administration of the more lenient bastinado. NASR OALLAH KHAN is appointed by the King to remit to the court of _Teheran_ any surplus revenue; an office probably neither easy to the Minister, nor acceptable to the Prince, whose immense and splendid establishments exact a very liberal proportion of the whole receipts of the province. In his actual service and pay the Prince has only a force of one thousand cavalry, of which two hundred (the quota furnished by the _Baktiar_ tribe) form his body guard; but in an emergency he could sent to the war twenty thousand horsemen. His troops provide their own arms and clothing, and they receive annually in pay forty piastres, and a daily allowance of one maun (seven pounds and a quarter) of barley, two mauns of straw, and a quarter of a maun of wheat, except in spring when their horses feed on the new herbage. They have further, each in his own country, for the maintenance of their families, a certain allotment of land, which they till and sow, and of which they reap the annual fruits. When a new levy is ordered, the head of each tribe brings forward the number which the state has required of him. 4th. At about one hour before sun-set, we repaired to the house of the Minister, to partake of an entertainment which was given to the Envoy. We had scarcely dismounted from our horses at the Minister’s gate, when the crowd, anxious to obtain admission, rushed forward, and long impeded the passage of the suite; until our _Mehmandar_ himself commanded respect by administering a volley of blows with a stick on the heads of the surrounding multitude. As soon as the Envoy entered the court, (which appeared from the numbers already pressed into it, to be the scene of the amusement), the Persian music struck up, and a rope dancer, whose rope stood conspicuous in the centre, begun to vault into the air. ABDULLAH KHAN, the Minister’s Son, conducted us into the presence of his father, where we soon ranged ourselves among a numerous company of the Nobles of the place, who were invited to meet us. ABDULLAH KHAN, who is a man of about thirty, and a person of much consequence at _Shiraz_, never once seated himself in the apartment where his father sat, but, according to the Eastern customs of filial reverence, stood at the door like a menial servant, or went about superintending the entertainments of the day. As soon as we were settled, the amusements commenced; and at the same moment the rope-dancer vaulted, the dancing boys danced, the water-spouter spouted, the fire-eater devoured fire, the singers sung, the musicians played on their _kamounchas_, and the drummers beat lustily on their drums. This singular combination of noises, objects and attitudes, added to the cries and murmurs of the crowd around, amused, yet almost distracted us. The rope-dancer performed some feats, which really did credit to his profession. He first walked over his rope with his balancing pole, then vaulted on high; he ascended the rope to a tree in an angle of forty-five degrees? but, as he was reaching the very extremity of the upper range of the angle, he could proceed no further, and remained in an uncertain position for the space of two minutes. He afterwards tied his hands to a rope-ladder of three large steps; and, first balancing his body by the middle on the main line let fall the ladder and himself, and was only brought up by the strength of his wrists thus fastened to their support. He next put on a pair of high-heeled shoes, and paraded about again; then put his feet into two saucepans, and walked backwards and forwards. After this he suspended himself by his feet from the rope; and, taking a gun, deliberately loaded and primed it, and, in that pendant position, took an aim at an egg (placed on the ground beneath him) and put his ball through it. After this he carried on his back a child, whom he contrived to suspend, with his own body besides, from the rope, and thence placed in safety on the ground. His feats were numerous (and as he was mounted on a rope much more elevated than those on which such exploits are displayed in England), they were also proportionably dangerous. A trip would have been his inevitable destruction. He was dressed in a fantastical jacket, and wore a pair of breeches of crimson satin, something like those of Europeans. The boys danced, or rather paced the ground, snapping their fingers to keep time with the music, jingling their small brass castanets, and uttering extraordinary cries. To us all this was tiresome, but to the Persians it appeared very clever. One of the boys having exerted himself in various difficult leaps, at last took two _kunjurs_ or daggers, one in each hand; and with these, springing forwards, and placing their points in the ground, turned himself head over heels between them; and again, in a second display, turned himself over with a drawn sword in his mouth. A negro appeared on the side of a basin of water (in which three fountains were already playing), and, by a singular faculty which he possessed of secreting liquids, managed to make himself a sort of fourth fountain, by spouting water from his mouth. We closely observed him: he drank two basins and a quarter of water, each holding about four quarts, and he was five minutes spouting them out. Next came an eater of fire: this man brought a large dish full of charcoal, which he placed deliberately before him, and then, taking up the pieces, conveyed them bit by bit successively into his mouth, and threw them out again when the fire was extinguished. He then took a piece, from which he continued to blow the most brilliant sparks for more than half an hour. The trick consists in putting in the mouth some cotton dipped in the oil of Naptha, on which the pieces of charcoal are laid and from which they derive the strength of their fire: now the flame of this combustible is known to be little calid. Another man put into his mouth two balls alternately, which burnt with a brilliant flame, and which also were soaked in the same fluid. The music was of the roughest kind. The performers were seated in a row round the basin of water; the band consisted of two men, who played the _kamouncha_, a species of violin; four, who beat the tamborin; one, who thrummed the guitar; one, who played on the spoons; and two who sung. The loudest in the concert were the songsters, who, when they applied the whole force of their lungs, drowned every other instrument. The man with the spoons seemed to me the most ingenious and least discordant of the whole band. He placed two wooden spoons in a neat and peculiar manner betwixt the fingers of his left hand, whilst he beat them with another spoon in his right. All this continued till the twilight had fairly expired; when there commenced a display of fire-works on a larger scale than any that I recollect to have seen in Europe. In the first place, the director of the works caused to be thrown into the fountain before us a variety of fires, which were fixed on square flat boards, and which bursting into the most splendid streams and stars of flame, seemed to put the water in one entire blaze. He then threw up some beautiful blue lights, and finished the whole by discharging immense vollies of rockets which had been fixed in stands, each of twenty rockets, in different parts of the garden and particularly on the summits of the walls. Each stand exploded at once; and at one time the greater part of all the rockets were in the air at the same moment, and produced an effect grand beyond the powers of description. At the end of this exhibition, a band of choice musicians and songsters was introduced into the particular apartment where we were seated. A player on the _kamouncha_ really drew forth notes, which might have done credit to the better instruments of the West: and the elastic manner with which he passed his bow across the strings, convinced me that he himself would have been an accomplished performer even among those of Europe, if his ear had been tutored to the harmonies and delicacies of our science. The notes of their guitar corresponded exactly to those of our instrument. Another sung some of the odes of HAFIZ, accompanied by the _kamouncha_, and in a chorus by the tamborins. After this concert, some parts of which were extremely noisy and some not unpleasant even to our ears, appeared from behind a curtain a dirty-looking negro, dressed as a _fakeer_ or beggar, with an artificial hump, and with his face painted white. This character related facetious stories, threw himself into droll attitudes, and sung humorous songs. Amongst other things he was a mimic; and, when he undertook to ridicule the inhabitants of _Ispahan_ he put our _Shiraz_ audience into ecstacies of delight and laughter. He imitated the drawling manner of speaking, and the sort of nonchalance so characteristic of the _Ispahaunees_. The people of _Shiraz_, (who regard themselves as the prime of Persians, and their language as the most pure, and their pronunciation as the most correct), are never so well amused as when the people and the dialect of _Ispahan_ are ridiculed. Those of _Ispahan_, on the other hand, boast, and with much reason, of their superior cleverness and learning, though with these advantages indeed they are said to mix roguery and low cunning. The exhibition finished by the singing of a boy, the most renowned of the vocal performers at _Shiraz_, and one of the Prince’s own band. His powers were great, descending from the very highest to the very lowest notes; and the tremulations of his voice, in which the great acme of his art appeared to consist, were continued so long and so violently, that his face was convulsed with pain and exertion. In order to aid the modulations, he kept a piece of paper in his hand, with which he did not cease to fan his mouth. When the concert was over, we collected our legs under us (which till this time we had kept extended at ease) to make room for the _sofras_ or table-cloths, which were now spread before us. On these were first placed trays of sweet viands, light sugared cakes, and sherbet of various descriptions. After these, dishes of plain rice were put, each before two guests; then _pillaus_, and after them a succession and variety, which would have sufficed ten companies of our number. On a very moderate calculation there were two hundred dishes, exclusive of the sherbets. All these were served up in bowls and dishes of fine china; and in the bowls of sherbet were placed the long spoons made of pear-tree, (which I mentioned on a former occasion), and each of which contained about the measure of six common table-spoons, and with these every guest helped himself. The Persians bent themselves down to the dishes, and ate in general most heartily and indiscriminately of every thing sweet and sour, meat and fish, fruit and vegetable. They are very fond of ice, which they eat constantly, and in great quantities, a taste which becomes almost necessary to qualify the sweetmeats which they devour so profusely. The Minister NASR OALLAH KHAN had a bowl of common ice constantly before him, which he kept eating when the other dishes were carried away. They are equally fond of spices, and of every other stimulant; and highly recommended one of their sherbets, a composition of sugar, cinnamon, and other strong ingredients. As the Envoy sat next to the Minister, and I next to the Envoy, we very frequently shared the marks of his peculiar attention and politeness, which consisted in large handfuls of certain favourite dishes. These he tore off by main strength, and put before us; sometimes a full grasp of lamb mixed with a sauce of prunes, pistachio-nuts, and raisins; at another time, a whole partridge disguised by a rich brown sauce; and then, with the same hand, he scooped out a bit of melon, which he gave into our palms, or a great piece of omelette thickly swimming in fat ingredients. The dishes lie promiscuously before the guests, who all eat without any particular notice of one another. The silence, indeed, with which the whole is transacted is one of the most agreeable circumstances of a Persian feast. There is no rattle of plates and knives and forks, no confusion of lacquies, no drinking of healths, no disturbance of carving, scarcely a word is spoken, and all are intent on the business before them. Their feasts are soon over; and, although it appears difficult to collect such an immense number of dishes, and to take them away again without much confusion and much time, yet all is so well regulated that every thing disappears as if by magic. The lacquies bring the dishes in long trays called _conchas_, which are discharged in order, and which are again taken up and carried away with equal facility. When the whole is cleared, and the cloths rolled up, ewers and basins are brought in, and every one washes his hand and mouth. Until the water is presented it is ridiculous enough to see the right hand of every person (which is covered with the complicated fragments of all the dishes) placed in a certain position over his left arm: there is a fashion even in this. The whole entertainment was now over, and we took our leaves and returned home. Such a fête costs a very considerable sum. Besides ourselves, all the Envoy’s numerous servants, and all the privates of his body guard were invited to it, and eat and drank in different apartments. The same dinner which had been put before us was afterwards carried to them, and I understand that, even in the common domestic life of a Persian, the profusion which is exhibited on his table surprises the European stranger; and is explained only by the necessity of feeding his numerous household, to whom all his dishes are passed, after he has satisfied his own appetite. 5th. As we were at dinner on the following day, one of the Prince’s own _feroshes_ brought a dish composed of eggs, &c. made up into a species of omelette, with two small bowls of sherbet, and a plate of powdered spices, which he announced as a present from the Prince himself. These sort of attentions are frequent between friends in Persia, and, at the moment of dinner, it seems that the Prince, who is particularly fond of the dish, was anxious that the Envoy also should partake of it; though at the time of receiving it, the Envoy suspected, that it might have been the trick of some one who calculated on a more valuable largess in return. 6th. A _zeeafet_ or entertainment was given this evening to the Envoy by MIRZA ZAIN LABADEEN, Chief Secretary and Private Minister to the Prince. This was so nearly a repetition of the former display, that any description may well be spared. One thing indeed may be remarked; as soon as the Prime Minister came into the room, he took the direction of the feast upon himself; and the master of the house, the real donor, sunk into the character of a guest. This is the case wherever the Minister goes, as he is supposed to be the master of every thing, and to preside in every place, next after the Prince his own immediate superior. On the 7th, JAFFER ALI KHAN, (the English Agent at _Shiraz_) Mr. BRUCE and I, went by the Envoy’s order to the Minister, to propose certain measures. We were introduced into the _Bagh-a-Vakeel_, a garden belonging to the Prince, and situated contiguous to his palace in the town. In the centre is a pleasure house called _Koola-frangee_, (and built on the model of the one of the same name in the _Bagh-a-Jehan Nemah_, on the outside of the city gates.) Here we conferred with the Minister, and as, in quitting him, we were going out of the garden, we chanced to meet the Prince himself, who asked us the common questions of civility, and passed on. In the evening, the Prince invited the Envoy to meet him on horseback at the _Maidan_, and expressed a wish to see the troop of cavalry go through some of its exercises and evolutions. We accordingly proceeded, and, when we perceived the Prince, we all dismounted from our horses for a moment, and when he waved his hand, we all mounted again, and rode close up to him. His manners and appearance were most elegant and prepossessing. He was dressed most richly: his outer coat was of blue velvet, which fitted tight to his shape; on the shoulders, front pocket, and skirts, was an embroidery of pearl, occasionally (in the different terminations of a point or angle,) enlivened with a ruby, an emerald, or a topaz. Under this was a waistcoat of pearl; and here and there, hanging in a sort of studied negligence, were strings of fine pearl. A dagger, at the head of which blazed a large diamond, was in his girdle. The bridle of his horse was inlaid in every part of the head with precious stones; and a large silver tassel hung under the jaws. The Prince was altogether a very interesting figure. Cornet WILLOCK paraded his troop much to the Prince’s satisfaction, and in the interval his own men ran their horses up and down the course, firing their muskets in various dextrous ways. Unfortunately one of his cavaliers met with a very dangerous fall. ISMAEL BEG, the young Georgian favourite, also shewed off his horse. He carried the Prince’s bow and arrows, which were placed on each side of him, in quivers covered with black velvet and thickly studded with pearls and precious stones. After this, the Prince ordered his Russian prisoners, thirty in number, to draw up and go through their exercise. These poor fellows, commanded by their officer (who goes by the name of _Rooss Khan_, or Russian Khan), went through every thing that they could do, and even formed a hollow square. To all this the Persians give the name of _bazee_ or play. NASR OALLAH KHAN, the Minister, kept at a respectful distance, whilst the rest of the nobles and chief men were stationed in a crowd much further off. The Prince remained an isolated and unsocial being, never speaking but to command, never spoken to but to feel the servitude of others. It is always the custom for the King and Princes to order their visitors away, which they do, either by a nod of the head or a wave of the hand. We received this kind of licence to depart, and returned to town in the order in which we came out. 8th. The last and most splendid entertainment was given this evening to the Envoy by our _Mehmandar_, MAHOMED ZEKY KHAN. His own house was not large enough to contain us and our numerous attendants; he received therefore the Prince’s permission to give it in that of AGA BESHEER, the Queen’s head Eunuch. The apartment, into which we were introduced, was still more elegant than any which we had yet seen, and if it could have been transported to England, would probably have excited universal admiration, and a new taste in the interior decoration of rooms. Like almost all the public rooms or _dewan khonéh_ of a Persian house, it was in shape a parallelogram, with a recess formed by a Saracenic arch, in the centre of the superior line of the figure. The ground of the wall was of a beautiful varnished white, and richly painted in gold in ornaments of the most neat and ingenious composition. The entablature, if it may be so called, was inlaid glass placed in angular and prismatic positions, which reflected a variety of beautiful lights and colours. The ceiling was all of the same composition. In the arched recess was a chimney piece formed in front by alternate layers of glass and painting. The whole side fronting the arch was composed of windows, the frames of which opened from the ground; and, though of clumsy workmanship compared with frames in England, yet aided by the richness of the painted glass intermixed with the gilding of the woodwork, they filled up the space splendidly and symmetrically. This fête corresponded in all its parts with the others that I have described; except that there was a greater variety of entertainments. Besides the rope-dancer, water-spouter, dancing boys, and fire-eater, we had an exhibition of wrestlers, a combat of rams, and a sanguinary scene of a lion killing an ox. The wrestling was opened by two dwarfs, about three feet and a half in height: one with a beard descending to his girdle, with deformed arms and hands, but with strong and muscular legs. The other, with bad legs, but with regular and well shaped arms. Both had the appearance of those animals represented in mythological pictures as satyrs, or perhaps of the _Asmodeus_ of LE SAGE. The figure with the beard was the victor, and fairly tossed his antagonist into an adjoining basin of water. The professional wrestlers succeeded; the hero of whom threw and discomfited eight others, in most rapid succession. In this the combat of rams resembled that of the wrestlers: one bold and superb ram, belonging to the Prince, remained the undisputed master of the field, for although a great number of his kind were brought to meet him, none dared to face him after the first butt. The scene of blood next begun. A poor solitary half-grown ox was then produced, and had not long awaited his fate, when a young lion was conducted before us by a man, who led him with a rope by the neck. For some time he seated himself by the wall regardless of the feast before him. At length, urged by the cries of his keepers, and by the sight of the ox, which was taken close to him, he made a spring and seized his victim on the back. The poor brute made some efforts to get loose, but the lion kept fast hold, until he was dragged away by his keepers. Both were again brought before us, when the ox fell under a second attack of the lion. An order was at length given to cut the throat of the ox, when the lion finished his repast by drinking heartily of his blood. A very small cub of a lion, not larger than a water-spaniel was carried out, and the vigour with which he attacked the ox, was quite amusing. He fed upon him, after he was dead, with a relish which showed how truly carniverous were his young propensities. This bloody scene was pleasing to the Persian spectators in general, although I thought that I perceived some who sympathized with us for the helplessness of the ox. In the course of the morning the Prince’s present to the Mission was brought by ISMAEL BEG. It consisted of a sword and two horses to the Envoy, and to each of the gentlemen _kalaats_, or dresses of gold brocade, a sash, and a shawl. Our appearance, when we wore our new dresses, which had not been made on purpose for us, was probably very ridiculous. We put the rich brocade Persian vest over our English clothes, having only taken off our coats: then wound the brocade sash round our waists, and lastly, put our shawls either over our shoulders, or fastened them into our cocked hats. This, with our red cloth stockings and green high-heeled shoes, completed the adjustment, in which we appeared before the Prince. The morning of the 9th had been fixed for our parting visit; dressed in these gifts with which he had honoured us, we were introduced to the Prince in a room called the private audience, in the _Bagh-a-Vakeel_. On walking through the garden we met one of his brothers, a little fellow about six years old, and who could just totter under the weight of the brocades, furs, and shawls with which he was hugely encumbered. Several Khans and men of consequence were standing before him, in the same attitudes of respect and humility, as they did before his elder brother, and attending to all his little orders and whims, with as much obsequiousness, as they would have shewn to a full-grown sovereign. It was singular that no notice was taken of an inadvertence which we committed: the dresses which we had received were honours to which a Persian looks forward through his whole life; but as they happened to be extremely inconvenient to us, we threw them off as soon as we left the Prince’s presence. An Englishman just invested with an Order, would hardly so throw off the ribband at the gate of St. James’s. In strictness, the _kalaat_ of Persia should be worn three days, as we afterwards learnt, when again we had received a similar distinction at _Teheran_, and treated it with similar disrespect. Before we left _Shiraz_, the merchants were all displeased with the Envoy, for they had been accustomed in former missions to sell immense quantities of their goods at exorbitant prices; while now all their offers were refused, as most of the presents which were given by Sir HARFORD in our progress, were made in coin. The amount of those presents indeed was not always satisfactory to the receivers. CHAP. VII. SHIRAZ TO PERSEPOLIS. DEPARTURE FROM SHIRAZ--ZERGOON--BEND-EMIR, THE ANCIENT ARAXES--PLAIN OF MERDASHT--TOMBS AND SCULPTURES OF NAKSHI RUSTAM--FIRE-TEMPLES--PERSEPOLIS--GENERAL VIEW OF THE WHOLE--PARTICULAR DESCRIPTION; STAIRCASE; PORTALS; HALL OF COLUMNS--SCULPTURES AT NAKSHI RADJAB--POPULAR TRADITIONS. At eleven o’clock on the morning of the 13th, the Envoy recommenced his journey towards _Teheran_. The Prime Minister, and the Chief Secretary, MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN (the commander of the _Karaguzloo_ tribe), the Prince’s Lord Chamberlain, and MAHOMED ZEKY KHAN, our former _Mehmandar_, with ABDULLA KHAN, who had succeeded to that office _pro tempore_, accompanied us about the distance of a mile from _Tengui Ali Acbar_, and then all took their formal leave, except our late and present _Mehmandars_. At the distance of a quarter of a mile beyond the gate of the pass departing from _Shiraz_, one of the most compact of distant views presented itself. As we saw it from an eminence, the fore-ground was formed by the two bold acclivities, (which close into the pass and are connected by the gate), and the interval in the distance is filled up by part of _Shiraz_, the campagna and the mountains in the horizon. As our tents and baggage were still considerably behind us, we stopt and drank coffee at a hut, where is a reservoir of ice constructed by the Prince on a plan which to us seemed simple and good. A deep trench of about fifty paces in length, and fifteen in breadth, is cut into the ground; other dikes are cut transversely, which, as they fill with water, are emptied into the reservoir. When this first layer of water is congealed, another draught is made from the dikes, and thus the ice is accumulated. A wall is built the whole length of the reservoir to screen the ice from the south wind which is here the hottest. We staid here about two hours, in which time Captain SUTHERLAND ascended the highest point of the mountains to the west, and returned with the most brilliant account of the view: _Shiraz_ and its plain were at his feet, the gardens and the whole delineation of the mountains and surrounding lands, laid out as if on a map. After we had quitted our late _Mehmandars_ and their company, and had been joined by their successor MAHOMED KHAN, we begun to wind in the hills, and rode by the banks of the little stream of _Rocknabad_, until we came to a station of _Rahdars_, which is called _Kalaat Poshoon_, from its being the spot where the Prince puts on the _kalaats_, with which the King is frequently pleased to honour him. The country through which we passed, is hilly and open; scarcely a shrub enlivens the brown mountains, which here and there are varied by the capriciousness of their stratification into forms as extravagant as they are inhospitable. The source of the _Rocknabad_ is about twelve miles from _Shiraz_, into which its waters find their way, after meandering in a variety of directions in their progress towards it. There was nothing particularly interesting in the march of the day. Large flocks of pigeons now and then flew over our heads, and the road here and there was occasionally strewed with ruined castles and _caravanserais_, which, though they bore a name, yet being uninhabited, are no longer worthy to be marked in the topographical history of Persia. After we had received the salute of a few miserable fusileers, had heard the recitative verses of one or two poor _Mollahs_, and had trampled over two or three bottles of sugar-candy, we arrived at our encampment at _Zergoon_. _Zergoon_, when first seen, looks a respectable place: a mud wall surrounds it; but, as it was broken down in many places, it was not difficult to observe that the greater part of the houses within were mere shells, and their inhabitants proportionably wretched. It is situated close at the foot of a range of mountains at the southern extremity of a small plain, which is of the finest soil, and towards the town not ill cultivated. We calculated our march to have been thirteen miles from our tents at the _Bagh-a-Vakeel_ at _Shiraz_, and on an average our route lay North-East. The night was interrupted by the disputes of the mule-drivers and the bustle of _feroshes_. We quitted _Zergoon_ at nine o’clock, and, at the distance of about two miles, entered into the plain of the same name (confounded with that of _Merdasht_) of a most delightful soil and partially cultivated, which extends near fifteen miles East and West. We proceeded three miles further, and crossing the river _Bend-emir_, entered the real plain of _Merdasht_. The bridge is thrown over the river immediately behind a projecting foot of the mountains; it is called the _Pool Khan_, and has (besides two lesser arches, which in this season were unoccupied by water) two principal arches, and another of a second size, through which three the river runs. The _Bend-emir_ is the ancient _Araxes_, and runs in a general direction from North to South: where we crossed it indeed, it was flowing from N. N. E. to S. W. It does not fall into the sea at _Cape Jasques_, (now at least, as has been said) though it still enters _Kerman_. I am told that it goes to _Corbal_, ten _fursungs_ from _Persepolis_, a large place in the province of _Kerman_, where its waters are received and kept up by a very considerable dam called the _Bund Emir_, i. e. the _Bund Emir Timoor_, or the dam of TAMERLANE.[34] There are several _Bunds_ at _Corbal_, and in the neighbourhood, each raised by a King. In the _bolook_ or district of _Corbal_, there is a village called _Sedeh Nokara Khonéh_, about eight or nine _fursungs_ distant from _Persepolis_; where, in the common story of Persia, JEMSHEED kept his royal drums and trumpets: the noise of which, when sounded there, reached his ears at _Persepolis_. According to the reports, which we received from the people of the country, the whole plain of _Merdasht_ for many miles round is covered with interesting monuments of antiquity, mostly taking their direction to the southward. [Illustration: _Nakshee Rustam._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] From the bridge to the extremity of the plain may be ten miles. At two miles from our encampment, near the remains of _Persepolis_, we turned to the left to visit the ruins and sculptures of _Nakshi Rustam_. Although they appeared close to us, yet the great variety of the streams (drains from the _Bend-emir_ and another river) which have been made to irrigate the country, obliged us to make a circuitous route of at least four miles. The tombs and sculptures at _Nakshi Rustam_ are all contained in the space of about two hundred yards, on the surface of steep and craggy rocks, the fronts of which extend in a line from N. W. to S. E. On the N. W. they terminate abruptly, and take an Eastward turn: and this termination is marked by the shaft of a column six feet high, which stands upon the eminence, and is of the very same stone as that on which it rests; though it has not been left in its present position by the excavation of the adjacent parts, for I thrust a _kunjur_ (a dagger) several inches between it and the surface of the foundation rock; in which therefore there is obviously a socket to receive it. The top of the rock (on which the sculptures at _Nakshi Rustam_ are executed) is levelled into a platform about twenty feet square: on this is an elevated seat or throne; the ascent to which is by five steps, i. e. two steps and a landing place, and then three more, I think however, that I perceived the remains of another step to the landing place. The throne itself is an oblong nine feet by six, and the whole rock is a fine marble. Nearly under this column is situated (see plate XV.) the first and most northern piece of sculpture. It consists of two figures on horseback, and a third on foot. CHARDIN’S description of this, as well as of the other monuments, is sufficiently satisfactory; and I will therefore only mention where I differ from him. He says, that the size of the horses is suited to that of their riders: now to me they seem to be by far too small in proportion; and the best proof of this is, that the riders’ feet nearly touch the ground. What he calls bridles of chains of iron did not strike us as such. The whole furniture of the horses is admirably preserved, and I have endeavoured to draw it with the most scrupulous accuracy. The bridle of the horse on the right is exactly the same as those of the horses at _Shapour_, with numerous knobs or buckles on the head-stall: that of the horse on the left is of another species of ornament, yet also with many straps and buckles. Both have a remarkable strap or piece of iron which reaches from the horse’s forehead all down the front part of the face, covers the lips, and is fastened behind near the opening of the cheeks. The breast-plate of the horse on the right is composed of large round plates linked together: that of the horse on the left is ornamented with lions’ heads. The man behind the figure on the left, holds (not an umbrella, as CHARDIN mentions, but) a fly-flap, which is common to almost all the principal figures at _Persepolis_. Each of these horsemen trample on a body; that under the figure on the right is more correct and well preserved, than the other to the left. A Greek inscription is engraved on the chest of the first horse, composed of seven lines, the three first of which are illegible. Then nearly close under these lines are some characters, which are extremely effaced, but which I have endeavoured to copy exactly. (See the inscriptions, plate XXIX.) They are evidently the same as those which I saw at _Shapour_. On the breast of the opposite horse there is also a small but very effaced inscription in the same characters. [Illustration: _Nakshee Rustam._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] The sculpture next to this is composed of nine figures; five on the right side, and three on the left, of a personage at full length, who stands in the centre, holding a sword before him with both hands, and bearing a globe on his head. The figures to the left are beckoning as it were to the others on the right. There is besides another curious figure at full length, behind the rock close to the sculpture, but still making part of the same piece. More in the centre of the whole extent of rock, and nearly under the base of a tomb, is a very spirited piece of sculpture, representing the combat of two horsemen, who are in the very shock of the engagement. (Plate XVI.) The figure on the left (as the spectator fronts them) has an immense crown with three balls on the top of three pyramidical points. Another ball of the same sort is on his right shoulder; and another on the summit of his horse’s head. On the full stretch of his horse he presents his lance, which is seen to pass through the throat of his adversary. A quiver hangs by his side, and a sort of armour covers his middle, and the back part of his horse. A figure behind him, apparently his standard-bearer, holds a kind of ensign, which is a staff crossed at the top and ornamented with five balls. The remainder is admirably executed, and represents the other horse thrown backwards on his haunches from the shock of the first cavalier’s onset, and the spear of his rider broken. The helmet, with which the second horseman’s head is crowned, is more Grecian, than any which I saw among the ruins; and the whole, though much effaced, is executed with better proportions and effect than any of the others. After this I was delighted and surprised to find an exact copy, though in a gigantic scale, of the subject at _Shapour_, with one person in a Roman dress on his knees before the horse’s head, and another whose hands are seized by the rider. Under the horse’s belly is a long Greek inscription, of which I could make out only a few characters. There are, besides, other characters similar to those at _Shapour_, of which the annexed is a specimen. (See plate XXIX.) Next to this, is a sculpture containing three figures: the one in the middle has a crown and globe on his head; his right hand is extended towards a female figure on his left, and they both grasp a ring. The third figure, which stands behind the male one in the middle, is defaced and is apparently only an attendant. Nearly adjoining, is a much mutilated representation of a combat between two heroes on horseback. (Plate XVII.) The first, clad in armour with a globe on his head, makes a desperate thrust with his lance (his horse being at its greatest stretch) at the other figure, whose horse is in the act of rearing, and who holds his lance, as if he were preparing to receive his antagonist. The figure with a globe on his head tramples a man under his horse’s feet. The tombs are four in number. Captain SUTHERLAND with some difficulty entered into the one farthest to the northward. A Persian mounted first, and then let down a shawl; by which, as by a rope, Captain SUTHERLAND helped himself up. A platform is cut into the rock before the tomb, which he entered through a small door, and found a chamber thirty-seven feet in length, and nine and a half in height: facing him were three arched recesses, in which the bodies of the deceased had probably been deposited. In following the abrupt turn to the East, which the rock of the sculptures takes, we come to two square fire-altars, situated on a projecting mass and placed upon one base. They are six feet in height, and one side of the square is three feet. On the summit of each is a square hole. Further on in the recess of the mountain, are twenty holes or windows of different sizes, but all of the same pattern, with an inscription over them. The characters, according to our observation, differed from all that we found in any of the various remains which we visited. Facing nearly the middle of the sculptured rocks, stands an ancient fire-temple. It is a square building, one side of which measures twenty-four feet. It is of white marble and of admirable masonry. In front there is a door; open indeed only at the top, and which appears to have been opened thus far by force, for all the lower stones are mutilated. The inside exhibited signs of fire. On each side, except that on which the door is placed, are four apertures: they seem to have been scarcely intended to admit light; as (at this day, at least) they are each closely fitted with a stone. A small niche is over the door. A cornice, enriched with dentils, passes around the summit; and in the lines, where the stones have been fitted, oblong perpendicular incisions are made at regular intervals. The people call it a pigeon-house. The plain is covered with the wild liquorice; and we plucked some of refreshing taste on the banks of a stream, which (about a mile from the sculptures and tombs) turns a mill on the left of our encampment. We started snipes and ducks from the _Rood-Khonéh-Sewund_, which runs into the plain from the northward. [Illustration: _Nakshee Rustam._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] As we had still two hours of daylight before us, we rode to _Persepolis_, and took a cursory view of the ruins. Our first, and indeed lasting impressions were astonishment at the immensity, and admiration at the beauties of the fabric. Although there was nothing, either in the architecture of the buildings, or in the sculptures and reliefs on the rocks, which could bear a critical comparison with the delicate proportions and perfect statuary of the Greeks, yet, without trying _Persepolis_ by a standard to which it never was amenable, we yielded at once to emotions the most lively and the most enraptured. At the distance of about five miles is a conspicuous hill, on the top of which, and visible to the eye from _Persepolis_, are the remains of a fortress. This hill is now called _Istakhar_, and is quite distinct from _Persepolis_. _Persepolis_ itself is commonly styled by the people of the country “_Takht Jemsheed_,” or the throne of JEMSHEED: it is also called “_Chehel Minar_,” or the Forty Pillars. LE BRUN has given a drawing of this hill of _Istakhar_; and the original must strike every traveller the moment he enters the plain of _Merdasht_, as it has all the appearance of having been much fashioned by the hand of man. Jan. 15th. After reading prayers to our society, I hastened to the ruins. I went on this principle, that I would endeavour to draw and ascertain all that former travellers had omitted; and for that purpose I took CHARDIN and LE BRUN in my hand, that I might complete all that I found wanting in their views and notices. Finding, however, that they differed from each other (and one of course therefore from the reality) in many essential points, I thought that an entire description of the ruins in their present state would answer my purpose better than a partial and unconnected account, referring only to the mistakes or omissions of others. The most striking feature, on a first approach, is the staircase and its surrounding walls. Two grand flights, which face each other, lead to the principal platform. To the right is an immense wall of the finest masonry, and of the most massive stones: to the left are other walls equally well built, but not so imposing. On arriving at the summit of the staircase, the first objects, which present themselves directly facing the platform, are four vast portals and two columns. Two portals first, then the columns, and then two portals again. On the front of each are represented in basso-relievo figures of animals, which, for want of a better name, we have called sphinxes. The two sphinxes on the first portals face outwardly, i. e. towards the plain and the front of the building. The two others, on the second portals, face inwardly, i. e. towards the mountain. From the first (to the right, on a straight line) at the distance of fifty-four paces, is a staircase of thirty steps, the sides of which are ornamented with bas-reliefs, originally in three rows, but now partly reduced by the accumulation of earth beneath, and by mutilation above. This staircase leads to the principal compartment of the whole ruins, which may be called a small plain, thickly studded with columns, sixteen of which are now erect. Having crossed this plain, on an eminence are numerous stupendous remains of frames, both of windows and doors, formed by blocks of marble of sizes most magnificent. These frames are ranged in a square, and indicate an apartment the most royal that can be conceived. On each side of the frames are sculptured figures, and the marble still retains a polish which, in its original state, must have vied with the finest mirrors. On each corner of this room are pedestals, of an elevation much more considerable than the surrounding frames; one is formed of a single block of marble. The front of this apartment seems to have been to the S. W. for we saw few marks of masonry on that exposure, and observed, that the base of that side of it was richly sculptured and ornamented. This front opens upon a square platform, on which no building appears to have been raised. But on the side opposite to the room which I have just mentioned, there is the same appearance of a corresponding apartment, although nothing but the bases of some small columns and the square of its floor attest it to have been such. The interval between these two rooms (on those angles which are the furthest distant from the grand front of the building) is filled up by the base of a sculpture similar to the bases of the two rooms; excepting that the centre of it is occupied by a small flight of steps. Behind, and contiguous to these ruins, are the remains of another square room, surrounded on all its sides by frames of doors and windows. On the floor are the bases of columns: from the order in which they appeared to me to have stood, they formed six rows, each of six columns. A staircase cut into an immense mass of rock (and from its small dimensions, probably the _escalier derobé_ of the palace) leads into the lesser and enclosed plain below. Towards the plain are also three smaller rooms, or rather one room and the bases of two closets. Every thing on this part of the building indicates rooms of rest or retirement. In the rear of the whole of these remains, are the beds of aqueducts which are cut into the solid rock. They met us in every part of the building; and are probably therefore as extensive in their course, as they are magnificent in construction. The great aqueduct is to be discovered among a confused heap of stones, not far behind the buildings (which I have been describing) on this quarter of the palace, and almost adjoining to a ruined staircase. We descended into its bed, which in some places is cut ten feet into the rock. This bed leads East and West; to the Eastward its descent is rapid about twenty-five paces; it there narrows, so that we could only crawl through it; and again it enlarges, so that a man of common height may stand upright in it. It terminates by an abrupt rock. Proceeding from this towards the mountains, (situated in the rear of the great hall of columns) stand the remains of a magnificent room. Here are still left walls, frames and porticoes, the sides of which are thickly ornamented with bas-reliefs of a variety of compositions. This hall is a perfect square. To the right of this, and further to the southward are more fragments, the walls and component parts apparently of another room. To the left of this, and therefore to the northward of the building, are the remains of a portal, on which are to be traced the features of a sphinx. Still towards the north, in a separate collection, is the ruin of a column, which, from the fragments about it, must have supported a sphinx. In a recess of the mountain to the northward, is a portico. Almost in a line with the centre of the hall of columns, on the surface of the mountain is a tomb. To the southward of that is another, in like manner on the mountain’s surface; between both (and just on that point where the ascent from the plain commences) is a reservoir of water. These constitute the sum of the principal objects among the ruins of _Persepolis_, some of which I will now endeavour to describe in more detail. The grand staircase consists of a Northern and a Southern ascent, which spring from the plain at the distance of forty-six feet from each other. Each again is divided into two flights; the first, terminated by a magnificent platform, contains fifty-four steps on a base of sixty-six feet six inches, measured from the first step to a perpendicular dropt from the highest at the landing place: the second, to the extreme summit of the whole, consists of forty-eight steps on a base of forty-six feet eight inches. Each step is in breadth twenty-six feet six inches, and in height three inches and a half. So easy therefore is the ascent, that the people of the country always mount it on horseback. The platform, where the two grand divisions meet, is thirty-four feet from the ground, and in length seventy. From the front of this platform to the portals behind is likewise seventy feet. [Illustration: _Persepolis._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] The portals are composed of immense oblong blocks of marble; their length is twenty-four feet six inches, breadth five feet, and distance from one another thirteen feet. The two first are faced by sphinxes; the remaining parts of whose bodies are delineated in a basso-relievo on the interior surface of the portal. In passing through these, the next objects before the more distant portals are two columns, but (as there is a sufficient space for two others, and as the symmetry would be defective without such an arrangement) I presume that the original structure was completed by four columns. The second portals correspond in size with the former, but differ from them not only in presenting their fronts towards the mountain, but in the subject of the sculptures with which they are adorned. The animals on the two first portals are elevated on a base. From the contour of the mutilation, the heads appear to have been similar to those of horses, and their feet have hoofs; on their legs and haunches the veins and muscles are strongly marked. Their necks, chests, shoulders, and backs, are encrustated with ornaments of roses and beads. The sphinxes on the second portals appear to have had human heads, with crowned ornaments, under which are collected massive curls, and other decorations of a head-dress, which seems to have been a favourite fashion among the ancient Persians. Their wings are worked with great art and labour, and extend from their shoulders to the very summit of the wall. The intention of the sculptor is evidently, that these figures (emblematical perhaps of power and strength) should appear to bear on their backs the mass of the portico, including not only the block immediately above each, but the covering also, which, though now lost, certainly in the original state of the palace, connected the two sides and roofed the entrance. In these, as in the first portals, the faces of the animals form the fronts, and the bulk of their bodies, (called forth to a certain extent by the basso-relievo on the sides) is supposed to constitute the substance of the walls. Under the carcase of the first sphinx on the right, are carved, scratched, and painted the names of many travellers; and amongst others we discovered those of LE BRUN, MANDELSLOE, and NIEBUHR. NIEBUHR’S name is written in red chalk, and seems to have been done but yesterday. A square reservoir of water, broken in many places, yet still appearing to have been of one single block, was in the space, between the portals and the staircase which led to the grand hall of columns. The breadth of that staircase is fifteen feet four inches. It has two corresponding flights, the front of which, though now much mutilated, was originally highly carved and ornamented with figures in bass-relief. The stones which support the terrace of the columns are all carved in the same style, and are as perfect as when Le BRUN made his drawings. On comparing indeed his designs with the originals, I found that he had given to some of the figures a mutilation which does not exist; for I discovered on a close inspection many interesting details of dress, posture, and character, which are omitted in his plates. One great defect pervades this part of his collection; in order to elucidate by the human form the comparative dimensions of the buildings, he has introduced figures so small, that, measured by them as a standard, the actual size of the objects represented would be three times their real magnitude. In fact, a man who stands close to the sculptured wall touches the summit with his chin, though the figures in the drawings of Le BRUN would not reach half way. Immediately on ascending this staircase, stands a single column, but on closer observation I counted the bases (or spots at least where once bases were) of eleven more columns of two rows; forming, with the first, six in each row. They are quite distinct from the great cluster in the centre of the hall, and were therefore probably a grand entrance to it. Passing forwards through this double range, we observed large blocks of stone, placed at symmetrical distances (to correspond with the arrangement of the columns at the entrance, and those in the centre), and forming, probably, the bases of sphinxes or other colossal figures. Having taken some pains to ascertain the real plan and the original number of the columns in the great hall, I came to the following conclusions: I observed, in the first place, that there were two orders of columns, distinct in their capitals as well as in their height, and that, of the highest, two rows were severally placed at the E. and W. extremities of the hall. Between these and the mass of columns of less height and a different capital is the space on either side of one row, in which, however, no trace whatever of bases exists, and through which run the channels of aqueducts. The remainder in the centre consists of six columns in front, and composes with the four exterior rows a line of ten columns; each row contains in depth six bases, forming, with the twelve at the entrance, a grand total of seventy-two. On drawing out a plan of this arrangement, I find that it is symmetrical in all its points, and in every way in which I can view it satisfies my imagination; but, on comparing it with that laid down by NIEBUHR, my own conceptions have accorded so exactly with those of that great traveller on this, (as well as on the ichnography of the general remains) that the introduction of my sketch becomes unnecessary. On one of the highest columns is the remains of the sphinx, so common in all the ornaments at _Persepolis_; and I could distinguish on the summit of every one a something quite unconnected with the capitals. The high columns have, strictly speaking, no capitals whatever, being each a long shaft to the very summit, on which the sphinx rests. The capitals of the lesser columns are of a complicated order, composed of many pieces. I marked three distinct species of base. The shafts are fluted in the Doric manner, but the flutes are more closely fitted together. Their circumference is sixteen feet seven inches. Some of their bases have a square plinth, the side of one of which I measured, and found it to be seven feet; the diameter of the base was five feet four inches, diameter of columns four feet two inches, distance from centre of base to the next centre twenty-eight feet. To the Eastward of one of these, and close at the foot of one of the highest columns, are the fragments of an immense figure. The head and part of the fore-legs I could easily trace; the head appeared to me more like that of a lion than of any other animal, and the legs confirmed this supposition; as it has claws so placed, as to indicate that the posture of the figure was couchant. The grand collection of porticoes, walls, and other component parts of a magnificent hall, are situated behind the columns, at the distance perhaps of fifty paces, and are arranged in a square. On the interior sides of the porticoes or door frames, are many sculptured figures, which have been drawn with accuracy by Le BRUN. They represent the state and magnificence of a King, seated in a high chair with his feet resting on a footstool. To the north of these remains, is the frame of what was once a portico, and where the outlines of a sphinx are to be traced among the rude and stupendous masses of stone. Further on, nearly on the same line and bearing, is the head of a horse, part of which is buried in the ground. It is ornamented like the remains of that which we call the sphinx on the great portals, and is certainly the horse’s head, which Le BRUN drew, declaring that he could not discover the part to which it had belonged. Close to it, however, are the remains of an immense column, eight feet in diameter; the different parts of the shaft have fallen in a direct line with this head, and obviously formed with it one connected piece in the original structure, in which probably the fragment on the ground surmounted the capital, as the sphinx still crowns some of the remaining columns. In the time of MANDELSLOE, (who visited _Persepolis_ 27th January, 1638) the number of columns erect was nineteen: in a letter indeed to OLEARIUS, (written from _Madagascar_ on the 12th of July, 1639, and published by his correspondent) he states, that thirty remained; but, as he does not specify their position, he might have included those lying on the ground, and at any rate he was writing a private letter, from memory, in a distant country, at the interval of a year and a half. His own authority therefore in his book is a better evidence of the fact; and as he there omits another and much more curious circumstance, which he had asserted in the same letter, the value of that document becomes still more suspicious. Speaking of the celebrated inscriptions at _Persepolis_, he says, “on voit aussi plusieurs caractères anciens mais fort bien marqués, et conservant une partie de l’or, dont ils ont été remplis.” Sir THOMAS HERBERT also, however, mentions that the letters at _Persepolis_ were gilt. [Illustration: _Sculptures near Persepolis._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] 17th. On quitting _Persepolis_, I left our party in order to examine a ruined building on the plains, which at a distance is generally pointed out as a demolished _caravanserai_. I passed the stream of the _Rood Khonéh Sewund_ to the North, nearly where the road takes a N. E. direction, and came to a fine mass of stone, thirty-seven feet four inches square, which appears to have formed the base of some building. It is composed of two layers of marble blocks, the lower range of which extends about two feet beyond the line of the upper. The largest blocks, according to my measurement, are ten feet four inches in length, four feet four in depth, and three feet four in breadth; all still retain a moulding, and traces here and there of masonry which must have connected them with others. The whole building is filled up in the middle by a black marble, and in its N. E. angle one stone is raised higher than the rest. In the same angle, is a channel cut, as if something had been fitted into it. I took the following bearings: foot of the rocks of _Nakshi Rustam_, N. 10 W. two miles; foot of the mountain of _Persepolis_, S. two miles: our encampment S. 20 W. two miles; road to _Ispahan_, N. 80 E. I was called from this spot by a _Chatter_ sent by the Envoy to conduct me to some sculptures, which he had himself seen, (about four miles from the place on the same mountain of _Persepolis_,) by the side of the road to _Ispahan_. I found them indeed worthy of the minutest investigation, as no preceding traveller has described them with any sufficient accuracy. They are situated in a recess of the mountain, formed by projecting and picturesque rocks. The sculpture facing the road is composed of seven colossal figures and two small ones. (Plate XIX.) The two principal characters are placed in the centre; the one to the left is the same (not in position indeed, but in general circumstance) as that which we had so often seen represented at _Shapour_ and _Nakshi Rustam_. He has the distinguishing globe on his head, and offers a ring to the opposite figure; who, seizing it with his right hand, holds a staff or club in his left. Behind the personage with the globe, are two figures, one of whom, with a young and pleasing face holds the fan, the customary ensign of dignity: and the other, with hard and marked features, and a beard, rests on the pommel of his sword with one hand, and beckons with the other. Behind the chief on the right, are two figures, which from the feminine cast of their countenances appear to be women; one wears an extraordinary cap, and the other, whose hair falls in ringlets on her shoulders, makes an expressive motion with her right hand, as if she were saying, “Be silent.” Between the two principal figures, are introduced two very diminished beings, who do not reach higher than the knees of their colossal companions. In dress they differ materially from each other, and one holds a long staff. To the left, on a fragment of the rock, is the bust of a figure, who also holds his hand in a beckoning and significant posture. The largest of these figures I reckoned to be ten feet in height; the small ones two feet eight inches. The whole of this is so much disfigured, that it is difficult to ascertain its various and singular details. [Illustration: _Sculptures near Persepolis._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] In the same recess, and to the left of this sculptured rock, forming an angle with it, is another monument in a much higher state of preservation; parts of it indeed have suffered so little, that they appear to be fresh at this day from the chissel. (Plate XX.) The same royal personage, so often represented with a globe on his head, and seated on horseback, here forms the principal character of the groupe. His face, indeed, has been completely destroyed by the Mahomedans, but the ornaments of his person and those of his horse, (more profusely bestowed on both, than on any of the similar figures which we had seen) are likewise more accurately preserved. They merit a particular description; because as the composition was probably designed to represent the King in his greatest state, every part of his dress is distinctly delineated. I assign this subject to the sculpture, because no other personage of rival dignity appears in the piece; and because the attitude of the chief announces parade and command; for he presents a full face to the spectator, and his right hand, though now much mutilated, still rests on his side to indicate his ease and his independence. Nine figures, of which the first is nine feet high, wait behind him; and, from the marks of respect in which they stand, can be attendants only on his grandeur. On each side of his head swells an immense circumference of curls; he wears an embossed necklace, which falls low on his breast, and is therefore, perhaps, rather the upper termination of his garment; but its counterpart, an ornament of the same description round the waist, is certainly a girdle. His cloak is fastened on his left breast by two massive clasps. A rich belt is carried from his right shoulder to his left hip, across an under garment, which, from the extreme delicacy of its folds, appears to be formed of a very fine cloth or muslin. The drapery of some loose trowsers, which cover his legs down to the very ancles, displays equal delicacy, and is probably, therefore, of the same texture. From the ancles a sort of bandage extends itself in flowing folds, and adds a rich finish to the whole. On the thigh there appears to hang a dagger. The horse is splendidly accoutred with chains of a circular ornament: his length, from the breast to the tail, is seven feet two inches; and on the chest is a Greek inscription, of which the letters are about an inch in height, and correspond in form with those of the latter empire. Opposite to this sculpture, in the same recess and on the right of the first, is another, containing the same two figures on horseback, holding a ring, which we had seen at _Shapour_ and at _Nakshi Rustam_. On the general merit of these remains, I may say, that they are superior to those at _Nakshi Rustam_, and equal to those at _Shapour_. When I had sketched these monuments, and completed my observations, I hastened to join my party, who were then considerably advanced. A man who filled some station about the camp joined me. He asked my opinion on the probable design of these sculptures, and when I had told him my own conceptions, he assured me, that the royal personage here also was RUSTAM; and when I reminded him that their own traditional King, JEMSHEED, might possibly be the hero, he replied in the true spirit of a system, “JEMSHEED was but the slave of RUSTAM.” Of the figures grasping the ring, one again (according to the same theory) was RUSTAM, in the act of proving his strength, by wrenching it from the other’s hand. CHAP. VIII. PERSEPOLIS TO ISPAHAN. JEMSHEED’S HAREM--PASS THROUGH THE MOUNTAINS--MESJED MADRE SULEIMAN; DOUBTS ON THE TOMB OF CYRUS--MOORGH-AUB--DIFFICULTIES OF THE PASSAGE THROUGH PERSIA--STORM--LETTER FROM THE KING--CASTLE OF BAHRAM--RUINED VILLAGES OVER THE COUNTRY--YEZDIKHAUST--CARAVANSERAI AT MAXHOUD BEGGY--KOMESHAH; RUINS--THE ENVOY AND THE GOVERNOR--MAYAR; CARAVANSERAI--QUARRELS BETWEEN THE PEOPLE OF IRAK AND FARS. Jan. 17. As we were quitting the environs of _Persepolis_, and proceeding towards _Ispahan_, we saw on an eminence on the left of the road (which now bore north-westerly) a single column erect, and some fragments of stones and masonry adjoining. They were situated in the centre of an extensive spot, which, from the configuration of the land around, in elevated terraces and mounds, appeared an artificial enclosure: and, as my Persian companion hinted, might be the site of a fortification or a castle. The wall, indeed, in many parts could be traced on the summit of the mounds. On arriving at the ruins, I discovered them to consist of a solitary pillar, with a double-headed sphinx for its capital, besides, strewed on the ground, a great quantity of shafts, bases, and capitals of the same dimensions as the upright column, and all, together with it, of the same description as those at _Persepolis_. Several large blocks are arranged about, as the fragments of some building. The column is fluted like the Doric, but with lines more closely connected: it is one foot eight inches in diameter at the bottom, and six inches less at the top: the height is a little above seventeen feet; and the base, including a tore next the shaft, is two feet more. The legs and bodies of the sphinxes are in two separate blocks. The largest of the adjacent blocks erect is seven feet two inches broad, and eleven feet eight inches high. _Nakshi Rustam_ bore N. 50. W. from this place. A little further on is the ruin of a large pillar not fluted, and the fragments of a sphinx which certainly had been the capital. These remains, according to my companion’s tradition, were the site of JEMSHEED’S _harem_. We returned to the road which led through a dilapidated but massy gate, situated at the extremity of the projecting foot of the mountains. In the centre of the road are three stones; that in the middle is a broken column, and the two between which it stands are of a columnar form. It has, probably, been a beautiful object. The rocks to the left (a marble of the same kind as that at _Nakshi Rustam_) bear evident marks of having been worked and excavated. The road led us over a soil, as fine as that of the plain of _Merdasht_, watered by the _Rood Khonéh Sewund_. Having reached the extremity of that range, on the Western point of which are the sculptures of _Nakshi Rustam_, we turned to the left at a village called _Seidoun_. At the foot of an abrupt part of the mountain on the right, but still at a considerable ascent from the plain, is situated the village of _Sewund_. Our encampment was below, near the banks of the stream of that name. The snipes, ducks, herons, and bitterns from these quarters made an admirable addition to the luxury of our table. The march of this day was called three _fursungs_, which we computed at thirteen miles. 18th. We continued our journey along the banks with a North wind fresh in our faces, and crossed the river about half a mile from our encampment. We then turned an abrupt promontory of the high land on the right, and, for the remainder of the march, travelled nearly due East, between mountains whose brown and arid sides presented nothing to cheer or enliven the way. As we approached _Kemeen_ (a distance of fifteen miles from _Sewund_) we were greeted by all the inhabitants of the village, who exhausted their whole ingenuity to do honour to the Envoy. They fired frequent vollies, created an immense dust, broke vases of sugar, beat drums, blew trumpets, and themselves made loud and shrill shrieks. In return for all this, handfuls of money were thrown among them. Among the many performers was a lad who preceded us, twirling a stick about with great agility between his fingers; in this exercise he persevered so intently, regardless of all the pressure of the animals and the crowd, that at length the nose of the Envoy’s horse received the full force of his art. The _Derveish_ of the _Hafizeea_ overtook us here to ask the present which had been promised to him. As he had been empowered to receive it at _Shiraz_, the Envoy conceived that his errand was a fraud, and dismissed him therefore, paying his expences back, with an order for the sum if it should not have been already paid. 19th. An easterly breeze, which sprung up this morning, rendered it extremely cold, and depressed the thermometer to 30°. We travelled between the bases of two abrupt chains of mountains, for about two miles against the wind; when we took a sudden direction to the North, in which we continued generally until we came to _Moorgh-aub_, a distance of fourteen miles, according to our reckoning. The pass through the mountains, in a military point of view, presents most admirable means of impeding the progress of an enemy. At the distance of two miles from _Moorgh-aub_, I turned on the left from the road, to examine some ruins which I had noticed. Proceeding over the ploughed fields, which nearly overspread the whole of this plain, I came to the bed of a river lying in a North and South direction, and on its banks a village called _Meshed Omoun_. There is here a fort, and a few low houses, in which females only were left, as all the men had gone out to greet the Envoy, by the discharge of their matchlocks. About a mile further are situated the collective ruins, called by the people of the country _Mesjid Madré Suleiman_, the tomb of the mother of SOLOMON. The first object is a pillar erect, a plain shaft without a capital ten feet five inches in circumference. Near it are three pilasters, the fronts of which are excavated in deep niches, and the sides inscribed with the following characters. (See plate XXIX.) From the pieces of masonry around, the pilasters appeared to have enclosed a hall; the interior of which was decorated with columns, but I resigned the hope of ascertaining the plan of its original form, when I saw two similar masses; one, at the distance of one hundred and fifty yards, with a corresponding inscription; and the intermediate space (and indeed the whole plain) strewed with the fragments of marbles. Having sketched these objects, I continued my way along the plain to the West, towards two buildings; which, at a distance indeed, appeared scarcely worthy of notice, but which on a nearer inspection proved full of interest. The first is a ruined building of Mahomedan construction, which is now turned into a _caravanserai_. The door was once arched, and on the architrave are the remains of a fine Arabic inscription. [Illustration: _Tomb of Madré Suleiman._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1. 1811._] The other is a building of a form so extraordinary that the people of the country often call it the court of the _deevis_ or devil. It rests upon a square base of large blocks of marble, which rise in seven layers pyramidically. It is in form a parallelogram; the lowest range of the foundation is forty-three by thirty-seven feet; and the edifice itself, which crowns the summit, diminishes to twenty-one by sixteen feet five inches. It is covered by a shelving roof built of the same massy stone as its base and sides, which are all fixed together by clamps of iron, and which on a general view correspond all with the measure of one at the base, (fourteen feet eight inches in length, five feet in depth, and three feet six inches in breadth.) I was not suffered to enter; and through a fissure in the door I could perceive nothing within but a small chamber blackened as it appeared by smoke. Around it, besides a great profusion of broken marbles, are the shafts of fourteen columns, once perhaps a colonnade, but now arranged in the square wall of mud which surrounds the whole remains. To the present day all the space within the enclosure is a place of burial, and is covered indeed with modern tomb-stones. On every part of the monument itself are carved inscriptions, which attest the reverence of its visitors; but there is no vestige of any of the characters of ancient Persia or even of the older Arabic. The key is kept by women, and none but females are permitted to enter. The people generally regard it as the monument of the mother of SOLOMON, and still connect some efficacy with the name; for they point out near the spot a certain water to which those who may have received the bite of a mad dog resort, and by which, if drank within thirty days, the evil effects of the wound are obviated. In eastern story almost every thing wonderful is attached to the SOLOMON of Scripture: the King however, to whose mother this tomb is said to be raised, is less incredibly, (as the _Carmelites_ of _Shiraz_ suggested to MANDELSLOE,) SHAH SOLEIMAN, the fourteenth Caliph of the race of ALI. But though this supposition is more probable than that it is the monument of BATHSHEBA, it is not to my mind satisfactory, as it differs totally from all the tombs of Mahomedan saints which I have ever seen in Persia, Asia Minor, or Turkey. [Plate XXI.] If the _position of the place_ had corresponded with the site of _Pasagardæ_ as well as the _form of this structure_ accords with the description of the tomb of CYRUS near that city, I should have been tempted to assign to the present building so illustrious an origin. That tomb was raised in a grove; it was a small edifice covered with an arched roof of stone, and its entrance was so narrow that the slenderest man could scarcely pass through: it rested on a quadrangular base of a single stone, and contained the celebrated inscription, “O mortals, I am CYRUS, son of CAMBYSES, founder of the Persian monarchy, and Sovereign of Asia, grudge me not therefore this monument.” That the plain around _Mesjed Madré Suleiman_ was the site of a great city, is proved by the ruins with which it is strewed; and that this city was of the same general antiquity as _Persepolis_ may be inferred from the existence of a similar character in the inscriptions on the remains of both, though this particular edifice does not happen to display that internal evidence of a contemporaneous date. A grove would naturally have disappeared in modern Persia; the structures correspond in size; the triangular roof of that which I visited might be called _arched_ in an age when the true semi-circular arch was probably unknown; the door was so narrow, that, if I had been allowed to make the attempt, I could scarcely have forced myself through it; and those who kept the key affirmed that the only object within was an immense stone, which might be “the base of a single piece” described by ARRIAN; but as he was repeating the account of another, the difference is of little consequence, if it exists. I suspect however, as many of the buildings at _Persepolis_ are so put together that they might once have seemed one vast block, that the present structure might also at one time have possessed a similar appearance. The eternity of his monument indeed, which CYRUS contemplated by fixing it on one enormous stone, would be equally attained by the construction of this fabric, which seems destined to survive the revolutions of ages. And in the lapse of two thousand four hundred years, the absence of an inscription on _Mesjed Madré Suleiman_ would not be a decisive evidence against its identity with the tomb of CYRUS. I retraced my steps towards the column and pilasters, and passing to the left of them, proceeded to a ruin, probably of one of those buildings which we call fire-temples, and corresponding at least exactly in dimensions, structure, and ornament with that at _Nakshi Rustam_. Its door opened to the north. On an adjacent hill to the east, at the distance of about three hundred yards, are the remains of a fort erected with the same stupendous materials, as the works on the plain. The blocks are all of white marble, and bear the finest polish. From this height our encampment at _Moorgh-aub_ bore N. 55 E. Having descended again into the plain, crossed the beds of numerous _Kanauts_, and started several covies of partridges; I reached my tent highly contented with the unexpected gleanings of the day. _Moorgh-aub_ is a large village, in which there is a fort and many enclosed gardens; and near it are springs of fine water which irrigate the whole plain. 20th. Continuing our road to the N. we passed over a country of ascents and descents, which can hardly be dignified by the denomination of mountains. The different bearings of the road were N. 30 W., then N., then E., then N. E., until we quitted the hills, when the road took a northerly direction, which we kept with some trifling variations for the remainder of our stage. At about nine miles from _Moorgh-aub_, we arrived at a _caravanserai_ now almost ruined, called from the village which once stood in its neighbourhood, _Khonéh Kergaun_. Near it a river runs to the west, and over it is a bridge of three arches. We arrived at _Deibeed_ at four o’clock, after having travelled a distance of twenty-five miles. We were seven hours and a half on the road, and we generally calculate our rate of going at little more than three miles in the hour. The country, through which we passed, was naked and arid; the plain only was cultivated, and that partially. It is quite destitute of wood, an article which, of all our necessaries, was collected with the greatest difficulty. On the summits of the mountains, particularly on their northern aspects, were thin patches of snow, and some were scattered even near our encampment. _Deibeed_ is only a _caravanserai_; close to it is an artificial mound of earth, covered with the foundations of a building, which, from the light brick of its construction, appeared to us a modern work. The evening set in gloomily; _Deibeed_ is considered the coldest spot in this region, and the snows in the winter have sometimes impeded the progress of travellers for forty days together. The _Mehmandar_ looked at the sky with apprehension; and the Governor of _Moorgh-aub_, (AGA KHAN, an Arab of an old and respected family, who had accompanied us to the bounds of his district to provide amply for our passage) shared his forebodings. He had himself often experienced the severities of this country, and he, better than any one, knew the distresses which the detention of two or three hundred men in a spot so destitute and insulated would occasion. He had provided sustenance for ourselves and our cattle for one night only, and this he had transported with great trouble from _Moorgh-aub_ and other villages. Indeed through the whole of our march great and early were the preparations made by the chiefs of the country for our reception. If these were the difficulties of our passage, the march of an army would not be easily conducted. The country in its present state could not complete magazines of provisions, even if it were required by its own government. It must however be always recollected, that this is the least fertile province of the kingdom. 21st. The snow did not fall, and we proceeded; we travelled nearly north during the whole of this day, and at the termination of our march (a distance of fourteen miles) entered a pass, which is more particularly dreaded as a stoppage in snows. We rested for the night at _Khona Khorréh_, a poor _caravanserai_ now, but once, by the appearance of its walls, a respectable building. We had here much cause to regret the pleasant and copious streams of _Moorgh-aub_; for the water which supplied our camp was taken from a pond twenty feet in circumference, so impregnated by the ordure of camels that it appeared quite black. After sun-set, a fresh breeze sprung up from the S. W. It increased in the night; and at about two in the morning blew a furious gale. Sunday the 22d. The wind continued to rage during the whole of this day, and only fell at night. Heavy clouds from the S. W. overtopped the whole of the surrounding mountains and precipitated themselves down their sides, in the manner of the clouds at the Table Mountain at the Cape, when it blows from the S. E. Many of our tents were blown down and much damaged. Notwithstanding the fury of the tempest we did not omit to put up our prayers and thanksgivings for all the blessings bestowed upon us; and the storm around only added, I hope, to the solemnity of our devotion. The very fine weather with which we have been blessed was certainly a theme of gratitude. We had not had even a shower since our first departure from _Bushire_; and the oldest inhabitants of this part of the country utter constant ejaculations of astonishment at the extreme moderation of the season, which they are pleased to attribute to the good luck of the Envoy. MIRZA ABOOL HASSAN, a Persian of much influence at court, arrived in the course of the day from _Teheran_, and was the bearer of a letter from the King to the Envoy. This letter was nearly to the same effect as the first, giving details of the victory over the Russians. We went forward to meet it as before, and adopted the former ceremony of giving it a solemn reading. 23d. Although the violence of the wind had fallen in the morning, very heavy clouds still covered the summits of the mountains, and threatened a renewal of bad weather. We proceeded, however, on a fine hard road (on the bearing of N. 40 W. during the whole march) and arrived in safety at _Surmek_ in five hours and forty minutes after our departure from _Khona Khorréh_. The people of the country reckon this day’s journey at six long _fursungs_, though to us it appeared a smaller distance. The Persian _fursung_ is indeed so indeterminate a measure, that no calculation can be safely formed from it, and no man can give a satisfactory account of its real length. On the whole, we found that the reputed distances in the line of our march are rather over-calculated than under-rated. The road leads on the right of a plain which widens at its northern termination. The mountains on both sides of it run N. and S. taking indeed a transverse E. and W. direction at both its extremities; and beyond the first range on the west of the route is another, and a parallel chain of much greater elevation, which binds an intermediate plain. The peasantry are ill clothed, and look miserably. They wear in general a little skull cap, slit on each side, called _Dogoosheh_. Their dress is a loose coat with hanging sleeves of a very rude cloth, tied about with a coarse sash. _Surmek_, where we encamped for the night, is situated on the E. side of the plain, near the foot of the mountains. It now consists of a square mud fort, which contains its whole population; around it are the ruins of its original extent. Between the town and the mountains the cultivation is very luxuriant, for the fields are irrigated by _kanauts_ from a neighbouring stream. To the northward of the fort, and two hundred yards from the road, stand the remains of a castle, which the Persians assign to the age of King BAHRAM, but which, in construction, resembles so nearly the later buildings of the country, that its antiquity becomes suspicious. It is nevertheless in itself a most curious work. A ditch surrounds it, and there is a wall within it, composed, like the outward parts of the fabric, of large stones cemented together by mud. The great variety of vaulted chambers and subterraneous inlets, proves that it was destined for other purposes than those of military defence only. On the 24th we resumed our march, on a road as hard and fine as that of the preceding day, and on the same bearing; and having travelled in four hours a distance probably of twelve miles, reached our encampment at _Abadéh_. We noticed many square forts, which are now generally not only the protection of the district, but the residence of the cultivators. The ruins indeed, which overspread the country, contrast its former prosperity too forcibly with the present depopulation. In this region, however, the more immediate causes of its devastation have ceased; for it owed its principal sufferings to the long wars, of which it was the scene, between the _Zund_ and _Cadjar_ families, and which are now terminated by the fortune of the latter. On our arrival at _Abadéh_, we were saluted as usual by the _istakball_, who went through all their noise and firing. The first appearance of _Abadéh_ announces a large place; but on a nearer inspection the town exhibits only a great extent of ruined walls without inhabitants. The present population is all enclosed within a square fort, the walls, indeed, of which were crowded by women, whose white veils made them conspicuous objects even at a distance. The fort itself is defended by a turret at each angle, and three in each of the intervening sides. I walked into it to look at a bath, the most respectable building in the place; for the rest consists only of miserable walls of mud or brick. Yet in the rudest wall we found a well-formed arch, which the want of timber has taught the people to construct, and the same necessity has forced the same lesson on other parts of the country. The property and jurisdiction of _Abadéh_, _Surmek_, and _Shoolgistoon_, with their intervening territories, belong by purchase to one man. Yet the scarcity of water in the district must render it an unprofitable estate. _Abadéh_, however, is surrounded by gardens, from which some very good fruit is sent to _Shiraz_; but the irrigation is all carried by artificial _kanauts_. 25th. The clouds which, on the preceding day, had sprinkled a few flakes of snow on our tract, and had threatened a heavy fall, rolled off before day-break, and opened to us one of the most brilliant mornings in nature. The mountains were no longer concealed from our view; the snow, indeed, covered their summits, and impregnated every blast of wind with a piercing but invigorating freshness. We proceeded along the same plain, on a bearing which averaged N. 29 W. The high lands on each side, now advancing, now receding from us, continued their N. and S. direction; and, where the snow had not covered their surfaces, presented that hard and forbidding aspect which indicated the minerals below.[35] The soil on the plain still was gravel lightly mixed with earth, producing nothing but thistles and soap-wort. Indeed, if it were a finer mould, the want of water would render it of little value even to the most skilful possessor. At the distance of three miles from a village called _Baghwardar_ we halted; and I took a meridional observation of the sun, which gave us a latitude of thirty-one degrees twenty-five minutes. We reckoned eight miles from _Abadéh_ to this spot, and nine more to _Shoolgistoon_, the termination of the day’s march. Whilst we were waiting until the sun should pass the meridian, one of our party picked up the stump of a thistle, and on examining its inside, we found two torpid wasps, which had formed their recess there, waiting the approach of spring once again to issue into life. The little fort, mosque, and caravanserai at _Shoolgistoon_ are seen at least six miles before they are reached. The plain to the northward of our route was bounded by a flat horizon, from which every successive mountain or building rose, as we advanced, like objects when first seen at sea. 26th. The night was boisterous, the wind blew strong from the southward and westward, and distant thunder rolled over the hills. The morning presented a dark and dismal array of clouds and snow-clad mountains all around us; and when the trumpet sounded for the Envoy’s departure, every thing announced a cold and cheerless ride. The sun made several efforts to break through the heavy atmosphere, and succeeded once or twice, only to cast faint shadows of our troops across the road as we paced along; and, when we were about four miles from our destined encampment at _Yezdikhaust_, the rain begun to fall. We travelled a distance of fifteen miles in five hours. The road was still carried over a gravel soil, till about two miles from _Yezdikhaust_, when we entered a softer ground. The mountains gradually dwindled into hills, and seemed to form a termination to this long plain by throwing themselves in lessening forms across it. They continued, like those of our latter route, barren, brown and inhospitable, without a shrub to enliven their rugged masses. On the left of the plain, all were covered with snow, while all to the right were as yet untouched. We could perceive the town of _Yezdikhaust_ a long time before we reached it, and supposed, therefore, that it was situated at the foot of the eastern hills, on the same plain as that on which we were travelling. Our surprise then was, of course, excited to find ourselves on a sudden stopt by a precipice in our route. From its brow we overlooked a small plain beautifully watered by a variety of streams, and parcelled out in every direction into cultivated fields and gardens. The country which we had crossed was unbroken by the labour of the ploughman; here his industry was displayed and richly rewarded: we had seen scarcely one scanty rill; here water meandered in profusion; and though this little spot was now stripped of its verdure and chilled by the gloom of winter, the contrast between cultivation and a desert was still striking and cheering. This valley is like a large trench excavated in the plain. It is five miles long in an E. and W. direction, and about three hundred yards broad in the line where we crossed; but the breadth is unequal. At the eastern extremity on the brink of the precipice, hangs the town of _Yezdikhaust_. Its situation is most fantastical, and its mean and ill-defined houses appear at first sight to belong to the rocks on which they rise, and which, in varied and extravagant masses, surround the valley. The substance of the rock is soft. Beneath it is a _caravanserai_, an elegant building erected near two hundred years ago by a pious Queen of the _Seffi_ race. It is still in good repair, less by the care of the present generation than by the original solidity of its structure. On the verge of the precipice is a small mosque, built by the same Queen; and around it a burial place. _Yezdikhaust_ is the frontier town of the provinces of _Fars_ and _Irak_. Before the conquest of the _Affghans_ it was a place of some consequence, but since their devastations it has never resumed its prosperity. It was taken by assault, and the inhabitants put to the sword. To the East, over a rude drawbridge, is the entrance to the town, which, without the use of cannon, seems almost impregnable. It is there an isolated rock, connected with the others around only by this bridge. 27th. It rained at intervals during the night with much fury. It cleared up, however, during the morning, and the sun shone bright; but it was then freezing so hard, that we were obliged to leave the tents behind us until they should have lost their stiffness in the warmth of the day. The feast of the _Corban Bairam_ now commenced among the Mussulmans. The Persians performed the ceremonies of the day, and we again proceeded on our journey. The direction of our march averaged N. 10 W. After travelling nearly seven hours we reached its termination at _Maxhood-Beggy_, a distance of eighteen miles. The line of our route led us to the W. side of the plain, over a road still finer even than that on which we had journied on the preceding day. The mountains lost their regular bearing and outline, and were more varied in their projections and recesses. At about nine miles from _Yezdikhaust_ we arrived at a _caravanserai_ and a fort, the approaches to which were thickly spread with the vestiges of a town. The place was called _Ameenabad_. On the plain also, which succeeded, were scattered ruins. A North-east wind sprung up, and, passing down the snowy summits of the mountains, brought a sharpness so piercing, that, for the first time, we were incommoded by the cold, and were anxious to get to our encampment for the night. Before our arrival, we were met by a person deputed by the Governor of _Ispahan_, to welcome us into his territory. _Maxhood-Beggy_ is seen at a distance, and then looks a large place. But the appearances of its grandeur vanish on a nearer approach in ruins; some indeed are substantial walls, and the remains of _bazars_. Yet, instead of the dilapidated chamber of some miserable _caravanserai_, which alone we could have expected, we were lodged in a house of singular convenience and even elegance. It was built in fact, for her own accommodation, by the Queen at _Shiraz_, (the mother of the Prince Governor of _Farsistan_) who was accustomed every two years to take a journey to the King at _Teheran_, and who accordingly provided on both the winter and the summer route a similar resting place. She enjoys a great reputation, and the affections of the people; for she is charitable to the poor, and ready to do justice to the oppressed. 28th. When we departed from _Maxhood-Beggy_, our weather was clear and serene. There was not a breath in the heavens, and the clouds had dispersed. As we approached _Komeshah_, the plain appeared more cultivated and better inhabited. Among the small forts and enclosed gardens of men, were interspersed small towers built for the convenience of the wild pigeons. These birds are greatly encouraged round the country, for their manure is considered essential to the fertility of the fields; the immense number of pigeon houses (in ruins, or still entire) on the plain about _Komeshah_, attest at least the prevalence of the belief, if not the truth of the fact. The distance to _Komeshah_ is twelve miles on a bearing of N. 10 W. This place also was once large, and in the time of the _Seffis_ well peopled. It still occupies a large tract of ground, and is walled all around. But since it was taken by the _Affghans_, and a great part of its inhabitants put to the sword; it has fallen hopelessly. After having crossed the bed of the stream, and the channels of an immense number of _kanauts_, we entered the town through a gate to the westward. We passed through streets and _bazars_, of which nothing but the bare walls were standing, and at length reached the best house in the place; but the only approach even to this was amid the stones and mud fragments of surrounding ruins. Travelling in our present mode, and carrying about a population of our own, we do not so much feel the misery with which a country so wretched, and towns so devastated, would inspire any one of us going through the same tract a solitary individual. The ruins themselves become animated on being peopled by our numerous party, who spread themselves all about in busy groups, and awake the solitude and silence of these wastes so long unbroken by the vivacity of their disputes, the confusion of their different works, and the vociferations of their rude songs. As soon as we entered _Komeshah_, all the place was in motion; the scanty population which it afforded, and which had been accumulated by that of every neighbouring village, came out to greet us, betraying indeed their own wretchedness by the poverty of their clothing, and every comfortless circumstance of their appearance. They have a manufacture of cloth in _Komeshah_ called _kaduck_, a better sort of that coarse linen called _kerbas_, which is made in every village. The Envoy, according to the common custom of the country, sent a present to the Governor of the place, with this difference, indeed, that it was much larger than the rank of the party entitled him to expect. It consisted of cloth, fine chintz, &c. The Governor however, when it was brought to him, indignantly snatched one piece of chintz, and told the bearer to take the rest as unworthy of his own acceptance, in the hope that the Envoy would hasten to atone for his disrespect by doubling the gift. Sir HARFORD, with great indifference, desired the servant to keep what he had received, and congratulated him on his good luck. In vain did the Governor entreat to have the original gift restored, in vain did the _Mehmandar_ mediate, the Envoy was inflexible, and the Governor, to the laugh of every one, remained with his single piece. 29th. At a mile and a half from _Komeshah_, on the left, is the tomb of SHAH REZA, and near it an extensive burying ground; over one of the tombs is the remains of a lion in stone: whatever it may mean, it is certain that it dates from the remotest antiquity, being evidently prior to the Arabian conquests, and to the establishment of the Mahomedan religion in Persia. The ruined forts, the towers for pigeons, and other signs of habitation and cultivation which are seen on the plain to the Northward of the town, prove that _Komeshah_ has shared the prosperity of the better days of Persia. Our weather continued most delightful, nor did I indeed recollect to have ever seen an atmosphere so lucid and so soft. The mountains to the Northward, which shewed their distant summits over the ridges of the nearer hills, although crowned with snow did not seem to have been so overwhelmed, as those which we had passed to the Southward. 30th. Our road to _Mayar_ was distant fourteen miles; the village is situated at the foot of the mountains bearing N. from _Komeshah_, a point which we ascertained by setting the high hill over that place. At _Mayar_ is a fine _caravanserai_ built by the mother of SHAH ABBAS. It is a very extensive building, consisting of one front court, on the right and left of which, under lofty arches, are rooms and stables for the convenience of travellers. The front of the principal gate is inlaid with green lacquered tiles and neat cut bricks. It opens into the large square, in the centre of which is a platform of the same shape. On the right of the exterior front, is the cistern, over the orifice of which is thrown a platform with a pillar at each corner. The general structure is of brick, except some of the better rooms, in which a fine blue stone is used. The whole is falling rapidly into decay as a _caravanserai_, and has now indeed been converted into one of the common forts of the country by raising mud walls around and turrets at proper intervals: a miserable contrast to the elegant and substantial workmanship of former times. Our camp was usually quiet, but in our later progress it was disturbed by the quarrels of our own servants (who were mostly from _Farsistan_) and those of the _Mehmandar_ (who were natives of _Irak_). The rivality and hatred, which exist between the people of the two neighbouring provinces, can be conceived by those only who have witnessed their effects. They are much greater than between Christian and Mahomedan, or _Sheyah_ and _Sunni_. The two parties frequently come to blows, which would have closed the dispute to which I allude, if we had not interfered; and if the _Mehmandar_ had not exerted his best influence and authority by administering the stick plentifully to all the offending parties. 31st. We called it twenty miles from _Mayar_ to _Ispahanek_. We reached the extremity of the plains of _Mayar_, and then wound through the mountains for about two hours, till we came into the plains of _Ispahan_. Our road bore, on an average, North. The Envoy was unwell, and rode in the _takht-e-ravan_, a species of litter which is suspended by shafts on the backs of mules, one before and one behind. This conveyance, when the mules keep an even pace, is not unpleasant, but when the animals break into a trot, becomes very disagreeable. On entering the plain, we started a flock of antelopes. CHAP. IX. ISPAHAN. RUINS ON THE PLAIN OF ISPAHAN--THE ZAIANDE-ROOD--RECEPTION OF THE ENVOY BY THE PEOPLE; THE MERCHANTS; THE ARMENIAN CLERGY; THE GOVERNOR--ENTRANCE INTO THE CITY--BRIDGE--CHAHAR BAGH--PAVILIONS--COLLEGE--PALACES OF THE KING; CHEHEL SITOON; PAINTINGS--HAREM--GATE--GENERAL VIEW OF ISPAHAN--MAIDAN--PAVILION OF THE CLOCK--POPULATION--ENTERTAINMENT GIVEN TO THE ENVOY BY THE GOVERNOR. The great number of buildings, which stud every part of the plain of _Ispahan_, might lead the traveller to suppose that he was entering a district of immense population. Yet almost the whole view consists of the ruins of towns, and here and there only are spots which are enlivened by the communities of men. But whatever may be the condition of modern Persia, its former state, if the remains scattered over the whole country are sufficient evidences, must have been flourishing and highly peopled. The village of _Ispahanek_ is situated just at the foot of a range of hills which screen the extent of the great city from our view. It is now reduced to a small fort, in which its population is immured. The plain is well irrigated by dikes cut from the _Zaiande-rood_, a river which, in its course from the West, waters the whole country. It rises from the _Baktyar_ mountains, passes through _Ispahan_, and finally expends itself in the deserts of sand to the S.E. The Persians indeed have an idle belief founded on a more idle tradition, that it resumes its waters from the sand, constitutes the river which we crossed at _Daulakee_, and discharges itself at last into the sea at _Rohilla_: a connection as they still assert, ascertained by one of their Kings, who threw a marked board into the place of the disappearance, and found it again in the stream at _Daulakee_. Two etymologies are assigned to the name; one from _Zaiandé_, spurting, breaking from the ground, (_jaillir_;) the other, from _Zendé_, lost, alluding to its failure in the sand; the termination _rood_ in either case is, river. Like every other part of the kingdom, the country round _Ispahan_ is almost destitute of timber; and the surface is a most arid field for the researches of a botanist. The vivid rock of the mountains is lost at the point where their roots intersect the plain below. We estimated the distance from _Ispahanek_ to _Ispahan_ at two _fursungs_, or six miles. We proceeded over the hills in regular procession; the Envoy having taken every precaution that the Mission, with which he was charged from the Throne, should be received with the the fullest attention and respect. With this view it became his express object, that the Governor of the city, ABDULLAH KHAN, (son of MAHOMED HUSSEIN KHAN, the King’s Second Minister) should come out himself to meet him. As he had been led to understand that this was a point already settled, he was surprised to hear by a message which he received when he was on the road, that the Governor refused to accede to his wishes, unless he first received a letter to that effect from the Envoy himself. In consequence we made a temporary halt; and the Envoy wrote a note, stating, that although he thought himself entitled to such a mark of attention from the _Khan_ as an office of friendship only, yet, as the bearer of a letter from his master the King of England, to his Persian Majesty, he could not for a moment doubt, that the Governor would yield to that letter, the distinction he would pay to his own Sovereign. It will be well indeed to remark, that from the commencement of our march, Sir HARFORD JONES took similar precautions to ensure every honour to his Majesty’s letter. It was always placed in a _takht-e-ravan_ or litter, which was escorted by ten Indian troopers and an officer, and was never taken out or replaced without the trumpet of the guard sounding a blast. Whenever we stopped, it was deposited in the tent of ceremony under a cloth of gold; a sentry with a drawn sword was placed over it, and no one was permitted to sit with his back to it. The correspondence of Princes is a general object of reverence in the East; and the dignity which by these observances we attached to the letter of our Sovereign, raised among the people a corresponding respect towards his representative. At about four miles from _Ispahan_, we were met by an advanced part of the inhabitants. As we approached the city, the crowd increased to numbers which baffled our calculation or guess. Although the stick was administered with an unsparing hand, it was impossible to keep the road free for our passage. People of all descriptions were collected on mules, on horses, on asses; besides an immense number on foot. First came the merchants of the city, in number about three hundred, all in their separate classes. Then followed a deputation from the Armenian clergy, composed of the Bishop and chief dignitaries in their sacerdotal robes. They carried silken banners, on which was painted the Passion of our Saviour. The Bishop, a reverend old man with a white beard, presented the Evangelists bound in crimson velvet to the Envoy, and then proceeded on, with his attendant priests, chaunting their church service. When we came into the plain, the city of _Ispahan_ rose upon the view, and its extent was so great East and West, that my sight could not reach its bounds. The crowd now was intensely great, and at intervals quite impeded our progress. Slowly however we were approaching near towards the city, and yet the Governor had not appeared. The Envoy intimated, that he would receive no _istakball_, unless the Governor headed it. Two of the chief men of the place met us, as we arrived at the entrance of a fine spacious road, between two lofty walls. This was the beginning of the _Ispahan_ gardens, yet the walls of the city itself were still a mile from us. We turned to the left through a narrow porch, which led us into a piece of ground, planted on one side by lofty _chenar_ trees, and bounded on the other by the beautiful river _Zaiande-rood_. At the extremity of this spot was a tent. We were told, that it had been prepared by the Governor for the Envoy, and that he himself was there in waiting. The Envoy stopped his horse, and declared, that unless he was met by the Governor on horseback, he would take no notice of him, but proceed to his own tents, and march straight forward to _Teheran_. This produced the desired effect. The Governor came forth, and met us a few paces from his tent, and we then proceeded towards it and alighted. The place, where the tent was pitched, was called _Sa-atabad_; a pavilion had been built there by SHAH THAMAS. The tent itself rested on three poles; its sides were of open worked chintz, and its floor was strewed with carpets; on which were laid out fruits and sweetmeats in great profusion. Chairs of an old-fashion, like those in the sculptures at _Persepolis_, were prepared for us, and we were not put to the inconvenience of pulling off our boots. We were then served with _kaleoons_, and afterwards with sweetmeats. When this ceremony was over, we proceeded along the banks of the _Zaiande-rood_, on the opposite side of which were rows of firs, and ancient pinasters. We saw three bridges of singular yet beautiful construction. That, over which we crossed, was composed of thirty-three lower arches, above each of which were ranged three smaller ones. There is a covered causeway for foot passengers; the surface of the bridge is paved, and is of one level throughout the whole extent. After we had crossed it, we proceeded through a gate into the _Chahar Bagh_, which is a very spacious piece of ground, having two rows of _chenar_ trees in the middle, and two other rows on each side. The garden is divided into parterres, and copiously watered by the canals of water, which run from one side of it to the other; and which at regular intervals are collected into basons square or octagonal. This fine alley is raised at separate distances into terraces, from which the water falls in cascades. Of the _chenar_ trees, which line the walks, most can be traced to the time of SHAH ABBAS, and when any have fallen, others have immediately been planted. On either side of the _Chahar Bagh_, are the eight gardens which the Persians call _Hasht-behesht_, or eight paradises. They are laid out into regular walks of the _chenar_ tree, are richly watered, and have each a pleasure-house, of which we were conducted to occupy the best, that at least, which was certainly in more perfect repair than the others. The rest indeed are in a state of decay, and corroborate only by the remains of the beautifully painted walls and gilded pannels, those lively and luxuriant descriptions of their former splendor which travellers have given. On the right of the _Maidan_, and nearly in the centre of the _Chahar Bagh_, is a college called _Medressé Shah Sultan Hossein_. Its entrance is handsome; a lofty portico enriched with fantastic-twisted pillars, and intermixed with the beautiful marble of _Tabriz_, leads through a pair of brazen gates, of which the extremities are silver, and the whole surface highly carved and embossed with flowers and verses from the Koran. The gates pass into an elevated semi-dome, which at once opens into the square of the college. The right side of this court is occupied by the mosque, which is still a beautiful building, covered by a cupola and faced by two minarets. But the cupola is falling into decay, the lacquered tiles, on its exterior surface, are all peeling off, and the minarets can no longer be ascended, for the stairs are all destroyed. The interior of the dome is richly spread with variegated tiles, on which are invocations to the prophet, and verses of the Koran in the fullest profusion. I ascended the dome, from which I had but a partial view of the surrounding country; and that which I did see was scarcely any thing more than a series of ruined houses and palaces. The other sides of the square are occupied, one, by a lofty and beautiful portico, and the remaining two by rooms for the students, twelve in each front, arranged in two stories. These apartments are little square cells, spread with carpets, and appeared to me admirably calculated for study. Indeed, the quiet and retirement of this college, the beauty and serenity of the climate, and the shrubbery and water in the courts, would have combined to constitute it in my eyes a sanctuary for learning, and a nursery for the learned, if it had been in any other country. We had some conversation with the Director of the college _Medressé Jedéh_, MIRZA MAHOMED COSSIM. He is an old man, and possesses a very high literary reputation in Persia, and appeared indeed to know much more than the greater part of those whom we had seen, and to be a perfect master of the history of Persia. He was extremely inquisitive, and his questions were acute and pertinent; he was much delighted with our drawings, and with the map of our route, which we had laid down. The palaces of the King are enclosed in a fort of lofty walls, which may have a circumference of three miles. The palace of the _Chehel Sitoon_, or “forty pillars,” is situated in the middle of an immense square, which is intersected by various canals, and planted in different directions by the beautiful _chenar_ tree. In front is an extensive square basin of water, from the farthest extremity of which the palace is beautiful beyond either the power of language or the correctness of pencil to delineate. The first saloon is open towards the garden, and is supported by eighteen pillars, all inlaid with mirrors, and (as the glass is in much greater proportion than the wood) appearing indeed at a distance to be formed of glass only. Each pillar has a marble base, which is carved into the figures of four lions placed in such attitudes, that the shaft seems to rest on their four united backs. The walls, which form its termination behind, are also covered with mirrors placed in such a variety of symmetrical positions, that the mass of the structure appears to be of glass, and when new must have glittered with most magnificent splendour. The ceiling is painted in gold flowers, which are still fresh and brilliant. Large curtains are suspended on the outside, which are occasionally lowered to lessen the heat of the sun. From this saloon an arched recess (in the same manner studded with glass, and embellished here and there with portraits of favourites) leads into an extensive and princely hall. Here the ceiling is arranged in a variety of domes and figures, and is painted and gilded with a taste and elegance worthy of the first and most civilized of nations. Its finely proportioned walls are embellished by six large paintings: three on one side and three on the other. In the centre of that opposite to the entrance is painted SHAH ISMAEL, in an exploit much renowned in Persian story; when in the great battle with SOLIMAN, Emperor of the Turks, he cuts the _Janisary Aga_ in two before the _Sultan_. On the right of this, surrounded by his dancing women, musicians, and grandees, is SHAH ABBAS the Great, seated at a banquet, and offering a cup of wine to another King, whom he is entertaining at his side. The wine, indeed, seems to have flowed in plenty, for one of the party is stretched on the floor in the last stage of drunkenness. The painting to the left is SHAH THAMAS, in another banquet scene. Opposite to the battle between SHAH ISMAEL and SULTAN SOLIMAN, is that of NADIR SHAH and SULTAN MAHMOUD of India. On the left of this is SHAH ABBAS the Younger, who also is occupied with the pleasures of the table; and on the right is SHAH ISMAEL again, in an engagement with the _Usbeck_ Tartars. These paintings, though designed without the smallest knowledge of perspective, though the figures are in general ill-proportioned, and in attitudes awkward and unnatural, are yet enlivened by a spirit and character so truly illustrative of the manners and habits of the nations which are represented, that I should have thought them an invaluable addition to my collection, if I could have had time to have made copies of them. When it is remembered, that the artist neither could have had the advantages of academical studies, nor the opportunities of improving his taste and knowledge by the galleries of the great in Europe, or conversed with masters in the art, his works would be allowed to possess a very considerable share of merit, and to be strong instances of the genius of the people. The colours with which they are executed retain their original freshness; at least if they have faded they must have been such in their first state, as we have not seen in Europe. The gilding, which is every where intermixed, either to explain the richness of the dress, or the quality of the utensils, is of a brilliancy perhaps never surpassed. They possess less questionably an excellence, to which the merit of colouring is at any rate very subordinate. They mark strongly and faithfully the manners of their subject, and combine in a series of pleasing and accurate records a variety of details, of feature, attitude, dress, dancing, musical instruments, table furniture, arms, and horse accoutrements of the country. SHAH ABBAS, in the painting to the right, has no beard. The fashions have altered with the times, and the present King cherishes a beard which descends lower than his girdle, and touches the ground when he sits. The notoriety of SHAH ABBAS in the revels of the table, and particularly his love of wine, are here displayed in characters so strong, that they cannot be mistaken: and so little did he endeavour to conceal his propensities, that he is here painted in the very act of drinking. The faces of the women are very pleasing, but their wanton looks and lascivious attitudes easily explain their professions. The furniture of the _Chehel Sitoon_, which consists indeed of carpets only, is still kept there. The carpets of the time of ABBAS are of a large pattern, more regular and infinitely superior in texture to those of the present day. Although the outer part of the fabric is suffered to fall to ruin, the interior is still preserved in repair, as it forms the _Dewan Khonéh_, or Hall of Audience to the Palace; and is, therefore, kept in readiness for the King’s reception. Adjoining to the _Chehel Sitoon_ is the _harem_; the term in Persia is applied to the establishments of the great, _zenana_ is confined to those of the inferior people. This building was lately erected by MAHOMED HOSSEIN KHAN, the second Minister, and presented by him to his Majesty, and therefore is a very good specimen of the style and workmanship of the present day; and in this view it merits description. It is indeed considered so perfect in its establishment, that if the King were to arrive at _Ispahan_ without a moment’s notice, not one, the smallest domestic article, would be wanting for the convenience of his suite, and the whole palace would present all the comforts which could be found after a residence of many years. From the garden of the _Chehel Sitoon_ an intricate passage leads under an octagonal tower into this new palace, and opens into an oblong square laid out into flower beds, straight walks and basins of water, and surrounded on all its sides by chambers for women of an inferior rank. Proceeding on the left side of this court, a door opens into a species of green-house called the _Narangistoon_, in which there are only young orange trees. From this there is but one step into the principal court of the building, one whole side of which is occupied by the King’s apartments or drawing-rooms. The front room is adorned by two portraits of his Majesty, on one side seated on his throne, and on the other in the act of killing a deer in a chase on horseback. There are also other pictures, of which the most remarkable are those representing TIMOOR or TAMERLANE, JENGHIZ KHAN, and JEMSHEED. The walls are very richly painted with bouquets of flowers, birds and other animals. The arch, which occupies the side facing the great window, is a beautiful composition of glass and painting, and was the neatest specimen of decorative art which I had then seen in Persia. The ceiling is highly ornamented; gilded flowers and bright looking glasses glisten on every side, and give great liveliness and gaiety to the whole. Behind this is another room equally well painted; the upper windows are here most artfully constructed of plaster, which is pierced into small holes in a great variety of figures and flowers resembling the open work of lace, and admitting a pleasing light. In this room also there are portraits, one of which, that of a European, is called the _Shah Zadé Freng_, or European Prince. He is represented in our dress of the sixteenth century, in which indeed all the portraits of the Europeans appear, and which is sufficiently explained by the recollection that SHAH ABBAS had Dutch painters in his pay. The other rooms in this department are similarly decorated and gilded; and in some hang portraits of the King, to which the natives, as they approach, all make an inclination of the head. Under the great room are summer apartments excavated in the ground, which in their season must be delightful retreats. They are all wainscoted and paved with marble slabs, and water is introduced by cascades, which fall from the ground floor, and refresh the whole range. A passage leads to the bath, which, though small, is elegant. The domes are supported by columns, taken from the Armenian churches at _Julfa_. From this court, a passage leads into several others for inferior women; and then into two rooms built by ASHREFF, one of the _Affghan_ Kings. The latter are indeed much inferior to those which I have already described. They have heavy massive glasses and gildings, and coarse paintings of fruits and flowers, without any representation of the human figure. On the whole, however, we found throughout the palace much sameness, both in the arrangement of the rooms, and in the distribution of the grounds. In the love of water and running streams, a Persian taste is fully gratified at _Ispahan_, through which the _Zaiande-rood_ affords for all their ornamental purposes an unceasing supply. [Illustration: _Mesjid Loutf Ollah & part of Maidan Shah_ _Ispahan._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] From the interior of the palaces we ascended the _Ali Capi_ gate, which forms the entrance. This gate, once the scene of the magnificence of the _Seffi_ family, the threshold of which was ever revered as sacred, is now deserted, and only now and then a solitary individual is seen to pass negligently through. The remains of that splendour, so minutely and exactly described by CHARDIN, are still to be traced; the fine marbles remain, and the grandeur and elevation of the dome are still undemolished. A ragged porter opened a small door to the right, by which we ascended to the pavilion where SHAH ABBAS was wont to see the games of the _Maidan_ and the exercises of his troops. This also is sinking rapidly into decay, and retains nothing to attest the beauties which travellers describe, except the shafts of the wooden columns, some pieces of glass, and some decayed paintings. From this we ascended by a winding staircase, still further to the very summit. Here, as this is the highest building in the city, we enjoyed a most extensive view, and from this place we could form a tolerably just idea of its real extent. Houses, or ruins of houses, are spread all over the plain, and reach to the very roots of the surrounding mountains. From this point I took a panoramic view of the whole, which I completed undisturbed, as I had secured the door, and the porter at the bottom before I commenced.[36] There is no difference in the colours of the buildings; they are universally of a light yellow, and, if it were not for an abundant intermixture of trees, which in spring and summer cheer and enliven the scene, the view would be monotonous. The trees are mostly the _chenars_; but, besides these, there are the Lombardy poplar, the willow, and an elm with very thick and rich foliage and a formal shape. The domes of the mosques are a field of green or sometimes blue-lacquered tiles, with ornaments in yellow, blue, and red: the inscriptions are in the same colours. They are crowned by golden balls and a crescent, with the horns bending outwardly. The mountains, which bound the plain to the Eastward, are the most distant; and those to the West are most strongly marked; all are dark without any verdure. The general appearance of the soil in the town is light, and nearly of the same colour as the houses. All the cannon, which in CHARDIN’S day were enclosed in a balustrade before the palace, are removed, and there is not left a vestige even of the balustrade itself. The _Maidan Shah_, the great public place, no longer presents the busy scene which it must have displayed in the better times of this kingdom. Of all the trees which surrounded it, there is not one standing. The canals, of which the stones remain, are void of water; the houses, which surrounded the _Maidan_, are no longer inhabited; and the very doors are all blocked up, so that there is now only a dead row of arches to be seen all round. The great market, which once spread the whole area with tents, is now confined to one corner near the _Nokara Khanéh_. All the rest is quite empty; scarcely a person is seen to pass along. I saw no traces of the pavilion of the clock, which in the time of CHARDIN so much amused the people by the mechanism of its puppets. The _Mesjid Shah_ or Royal Mosque is still a noble building, if I might judge from its outside; although the lacquered tiles on the dome are in many places falling off. We did not go further than the iron chain, which is thrown across the entrance of its great gate leading into the _Maidan_. The _Mesjid_ of _Louft Ollah_ is exteriorly in good repair. The great _bazar_ is entered under the _Nokara Khanéh_ by a handsome gate, the paintings on which still exist, but the large clock (of which however the place is still seen) is no longer in existence; nor is there any trace of that also, that was once on the very summit. The other side of the gate opens into the fine _bazars_ (formerly called the _Kaiseree_) now the _Bazar Shah_. There are no modern _bazars_, except one built by HAJEE MAHOMED HOSSEIN KHAN, the second Minister. He has also made a new _Chahar Bagh_, in that part of the city towards the bridge, called _Pool Hajoo_. The _bazars_, as I had occasion to observe at _Shiraz_, are all laid out on nearly the same plan as those of _Constantinople_; generally the different trades in separate _bazars_. They are on the whole more lively than those of Turkey; being painted and adorned in many places, (particularly under the domes in the centre), with portraits of the heroes of the country, or with combats, or with figures of beasts, and other subjects. In these _bazars_ the confluence of people is certainly great, and if the crowds here were a fair measurement of the general population of the city, the whole numbers of _Ispahan_ would swell rapidly; but as every one in the course of the day has some business in this spot, the rest of the city is comparatively deserted; and as the traders also themselves have here their shops only and return to their homes at night, the mixed multitudes which throng the _bazars_, again scattered over all the quarters of the town, become a very inadequate proportion for its extent. The women, indeed, except the very lower class, generally remain at home, and during the day form, with their children, all the population of some parts of the city. The N. and E. divisions are the best inhabited. In CHARDIN’S time the numbers were estimated by those who reckoned largely one million and one hundred thousand souls; but even by the more moderate were fixed at six hundred thousand. Considering, however, the state of ruin in which, perhaps, half of _Ispahan_ is at present, we cannot place its actual population at more than four hundred thousand souls, a calculation which is supported by the accounts of the houses or families, of which there are eighty thousand. This information was subsequently communicated to me by HAJEE MAHOMED HOSSEIN KHAN, second Minister to the King, a native also of the city, and long its Governor, whose opportunities therefore of ascertaining the fact were unquestionable. Much, nevertheless, must be allowed for the exaggeration natural to a Persian. The _kabob_ shops (or eating-houses on the plan of those in Turkey) seemed to be also equally clean and well arranged. From one of these a complete dinner, with every necessary convenience of dishes, sherbets, &c. may be procured at a short notice, and at a moderate expence. The most frequent shops appeared to be those of sweetmeats, which (in a consumption almost incredible) form the chief ingredients of Persian food, and are here arranged for sale very neatly in large China vases, clean glass vessels, and bright brass platters. The people excel in the composition; and import their sugar from India, and their sugar-candy from China. Large quantities of sugar come from _Cairo_ also, through _Suez_. The _Beglerbeg_, or Governor, gave the Envoy and his suite an entertainment which, in one particular only, was more splendid than those at _Shiraz_. The great court and all the avenues were here illuminated by a vast number of small lamps, which threw an immense blaze of light all over the place. A China drum which the _Beglerbeg_ had been keeping for many years till a fit opportunity for the display should occur, was now brought forwards. It was suspended on high in the middle of the court. The fire was applied to it, but it emitted thick vapour with little explosions at intervals; and though a _meschal_ or great torch was at length tried, it only increased the smoke and stench, and proved too clearly, that the whole was a Chinese fraud, not unfrequently practised on the purchasers of their drums; a little gunpowder was placed at the ends indeed, but the centre was stuffed with old rags. The other fire-works also were generally miserable, in comparison with those at _Shiraz_. The dinner, (instead of being served in the usual manner on the ground) was placed on tables framed for the occasion, and was piled up in enormous heaps. The _Beglerbeg_ had the further attention to provide us with plates, spoons, knives, and forks, which were all in like manner made for the day’s entertainment. The spoons were of silver, and that for the Envoy was of gold. The report, which we had received on the road, that it was the intention of the government to detain the Envoy at _Ispahan_, did not prove without foundation. The _Beglerbeg_ said, “that the Embassador was to stay at _Ispahan_ to see the country at his leisure, and visit all the fine buildings of the city.” However, at a private conference which Sir HARFORD had with him at the _Goush Khonéh_, all this was changed, so that the _Beglerbeg_ was then more anxious even than ourselves, that we should proceed to the capital with every possible expedition. He now urged on the Envoy, promising all his assistance to enable him to reach _Teheran_, before the commencement of the mourning of the _Moharrem_; engaging his own mules to convey us from _Ispahan_, and ordering two relays of one hundred and fifty each at _Kashan_ and at _Kom_. This anxiety was again seconded by a courier, who had arrived in two days from _Teheran_, and had brought the answers to the letters which we had dispatched from _Khonéh Korréh_. CHAP. X. ISPAHAN TO TEHERAN. DEPARTURE FROM ISPAHAN--MOURCHEKOURD--SCENE OF THE VICTORY OF NADIR SHAH--RUINS--THE BUND KOHROOD--KASHAN--SALT DESERT--KOOM; TOMB--POOL DALLAUK; ADVENTURE IN THE NIGHT--VIEW OF TEHERAN--APPROACH--ENTRANCE INTO THE CITY. On the 7th of February, accordingly we left _Ispahan_; our first day’s march, from _Goush Khonéh_ to _Gez_, was a distance of ten miles only. On the right of the road is a village called _Sayin_, which, as we were told, produces the best melons in the country. The soil, over which we travelled, was soft and crumbling, and strongly impregnated with salt, and in parts rendered muddy and swampy by the streams which intersect it. The weather was lowering on all sides, with a breeze from the Westward; which here and there in little whirlwinds carried the sand high up into the air in columns, resembling water-spouts at sea. The whole plain is covered with ruins, from which only now and then a few miserable peasants crept out to gape at our passing troops. The dikes, cut from the banks of the _Zaiande-rood_, irrigate the whole of the plain, and produce a greater appearance of cultivation than hitherto we had generally seen. The _caravanserai_ at _Gez_, though falling into decay, is still handsome, and is built of the same materials, and on nearly the same grand scale, as that which we had occupied at _Mayar_. This likewise is the work of the _Seffis_. Similar _caravanserais_ were constructed at every stage on the road to _Bagdad_; nothing, indeed, can equal the truly royal establishments which SHAH ABBAS the Great maintained throughout his dominions for the accommodation of strangers. 8th February. The bearing from _Gez_ to _Mourchekourd_ is N. W. and the distance by our computation is eighteen miles, which we travelled in six hours. At about seven miles, we came to a ruined _caravanserai_, built of the same materials and in the same neat manner as that at _Gez_. Nearly facing it is a well, to which we descended by a path, excavated from the surface on an angle of forty-five degrees, and about fifty yards in length. We saw small fish swimming about in this well, which appeared to us to be a spring of fine and limpid water. After having travelled about six miles further, we came to a very handsome _caravanserai_. We had discovered it immediately on ascending the summit of a range of hills, over which the road carried us. It is situated on the right of the road, and, with its bath and reservoirs on the left, was built by the mother of SHAH ABBAS. The structure has suffered less, than any other which we have seen, by the injuries of time and man. It is built of brick on a foundation of the same fine blue stone, which we had so much admired at _Mayar_. The front is ornamented with an open brick-work, and with neat Mosaic. The portico is crowned by a superb dome, and leads into the square court; the sides of which contain the rooms for travellers. Behind are vaulted stables with much accommodation. The _hummum_ is useless through decay; but the reservoir is still in good repair. From this we proceeded five miles to _Mourchekourd_, and passed over a part of the plain, on which NADIR SHAH gained his decisive victory over ASHREFF, the _Affghan_ Chief. The mountains to the Northward were covered with snow, and still presented a winter to us, although the weather on the plain was delightfully serene and mild. The soil is hard, in some places argillaceous. The whole country, which we had passed in the day’s march, was poor and depopulated, though the ruins in different parts of the plain, speak that it was once enlivened and enriched by men. As we approached _Mourchekourd_ we found indeed cultivation, and the _kanauts_ which produce it. 9th. From _Mourchekourd_ a _caravanserai_ which we were to pass, bore by our compass N. 15 W. a distance of twelve miles. The road was good, on an arid plain, bounded by inconsiderable mountains. The _caravanserai_ itself was another of those structures, which in the latter part of our route we had so often admired. From this point we continued for eight miles over rising and falling ground to a second _caravanserai_ called _Aga Kemal_, but pronounced short without the _g_, _Aakemal_. Around we saw a little cultivation and a few poplars; all the rest is desert. On the left, bearing West, is the small territory of _Joshoogun_, containing the three villages of _Bendai_, _Khosroabad_, and _Vazvoon_, which we descried at the distance of about four miles, situated under a red hill at the extremity of the plain. From _Aga Kemal_ we ascended mountains entirely covered with snow, which, from its appearance indeed, may remain there throughout the whole year. The distance to _Kohrood_ was still sixteen miles, which we travelled by sun-set, having set off at five in the morning. By the bearings of elevated hills we arranged our whole march to the direction N. 10 W. As we descended into the valley of _Kohrood_, which from the depth of the snow was a work of some trouble, we noticed a pretty little bubbling stream, which, winding through the vale, watered a succession of cultivated spots and plantations of apple, pear, poplar, and walnut trees. The town is built on the side of a mountain. We passed the night in the _caravanserai_, where our accommodations were indifferent, and our rest, of which we were in great want, was broken by the incessant noise and wrangling of our Persian attendants. Several of our horses had been left on the road from excessive fatigue. The valley of _Kohrood_ extends in a North-Eastern direction; it is abundantly watered and wooded beautifully, and every species of fruit tree thrives there. The fields are disposed in terraces, and each separate plat of cultivated ground is intersected by small ridges raised to facilitate irrigation. We had hitherto passed through a country, to which so much wood and so much cultivation afforded a very delightful contrast. The Persians, indeed, admit, that there are few _Kohroods_ in the kingdom, and that in summer its verdure is incomparable. Our route led through another village in the same valley. Close to the road is the tomb of one of the inferior saints of Persia, with a pyramidical roof covered with green-lacquered tiles. As we passed near it, a little boy, surrounded by a set of his companions, entreated our compassion by invoking the name of the holy man in the neighbouring grave. When we had quitted the trees and cultivated grounds, we continued to wind in the valley which had then narrowed to a close and sometimes difficult pass. This pass, on a bearing of N. 30 E. is in length about six miles, and is terminated on the left of the road by a _caravanserai_ called _Gueberabad_. Before we reached it, we skirted a small artificial lake called the _Bund Kohrood_, the waters of which are supplied by the river of _Kohrood_, and the melting of the snows of the adjacent mountains, and are confined on the N. extremity by a strong wall built across the chasm of the valley. A stream, however, oozes out from the base, which finally expends itself in the plain about _Kashan_. _Gueberabad_ is at present a ruined village; in former days it was peopled, as its name imports, by the _Guebres_. The _caravanserai_ is one of the good buildings of the age of the _Seffis_, and by an inscription on the front appears to have been erected by MEER SAKEE, one of the generals of SHAH ABBAS. Here first we discovered the plain of _Kashan_, bounded by the distant range of mountains, of which _Demawend_ formed the most conspicuous and the highest point. It rises in a very symmetrical cone abruptly from a long and unbroken range. It is covered with eternal snows, but its height is more easily deduced from the distance to which it is visible. In a direct line from the _caravanserai_ of _Gueberabad_, that distance could not have been less than one hundred and fifty miles; and the Persians declare that it can be seen even at _Ispahan_ from the minaret of the _Mesjid Shah_, which is at least two hundred and forty miles distant. We descended rapidly into the plain towards _Kashan_: here we were met by a large _istakball_, which accompanied us to the Northern side of the city with all the noises of Persian rejoicings.[37] From _Kashan_ we continued along the immense plain; the mountains, which bind it on the North, just appeared in the lightest blue tints on the edge of the horizon. From _Kashan_ to our encampment at _Nusserabad_, we saw on the skirts E. and W. of the plain several villages, and with them cultivation. On the left of the road were _Cosac_, _Key_, _Ser_, _Badgoon_, _Rouand_, _Corabad_: on the right, _Aroun_, _Britgoli_, _Nouchabad_, and _Ali Abad_. We reckoned the total length of the day’s journey at thirty miles (on a bearing of N. 20 W.) viz. eight to _Gueberabad_, thirteen to _Kashan_, and nine to _Nusserabad_. In former days the people of _Nusserabad_ were noted for their idleness and propensity to voluptuousness, so that a fine gentleman is still called a _Mirza_ of _Nusserabad_. On the morning of the 11th we quitted our tents two hours before sun-rise, as we had a march of forty miles before us to _Koom_; the Persians call the distance fifteen _fursungs_. We continued our route along the plain in the same course as on the preceding day. On our left were mountains, and on our right was the plain bounded only by the horizon, and constituting indeed the commencement of the great Salt Desert of Persia, which, according to the people of the country, extends even to the confines of _Usbeck Tartary_. The principal part of that over which we passed was a soil strongly impregnated with salt, which, after rain or snow, renders the roads difficult and dangerous. The weather was favourable during our passage, and we crossed without any inconvenience (except that of a heavy mud) a part of the plain dreaded by caravans and travellers in winter journies. We traversed the plain for ten miles, and then turned N. 30 W. among the mountains. As we proceeded, we observed their strata disposed in singular directions, and forming very varied angles with the horizon. Nature, in some places, amid the stupendous masses of rock which surrounded us, seemed to have finished her operations by small conical mounds, increasing by regular gradations as they approached the mother mountain. Every thing looked as if it were newly created, and only wanted the art and industry of man to rub off its first rude surface. At about eleven miles from _Nusserabad_ stands a _caravanserai_ called _Sin Sin_, erected by the present King. It is a strong but vulgar building, when compared with the elegant structures of the reign of SHAH ABBAS. The rude stones and plaster with which it is constructed, are covered with a coat of white wash, which, at a distance indeed gives it a magnificent appearance. Near this were the ruins of a village. Still further, on the right of the road, are more ruins, which, according to my informer, were those of a town called _Dehnar_. A second _caravanserai_ of the same materials as that of _Sin Sin_, is situated at the distance of seven miles. Next is _Passangoor_, which is merely another _caravanserai_ in the plain, and distant twelve miles; at three miles distant further is _Langarood_, which is remarkable for some old pinasters standing about it, and a garden of some extent. From _Langarood_ to _Koom_ is ten miles more. We reached _Koom_ very late and had to pass through its extensive ruins when it was quite dark. The Envoy, who rode in the _takht-e-ravan_, was in some danger in passing over a bridge, for one of the mules slipping threw him nearly into the stream. _Koom_ is esteemed a holy city; it encloses the tombs of many saints, and among others that of the sister of IMAUM REZA. The present King made a vow before he ascended the throne, that if he should ever succeed to the crown he would enrich the city of _Koom_ by buildings, and exempts its inhabitants from paying tribute. He has fulfilled his vow, and has built a large _medressé_ or college near the tomb of the sister of IMAUM REZA, and gives great encouragement to the learned people who resort to it. He covered the cupola of the tomb itself with gold plates (instead of the lacquered tiles which he removed), and he is said to spend one hundred thousand _tomauns_ annually, in the embellishments of these monuments. The riches of this tomb are said to be immense, and they are augmented every year by some new donation in jewelry and precious stones from the King’s wives, and the great men of the court. The tomb of IMAUM REZA himself is in the city of _Mesched_. 12th. The morning presented to us a dark and threatening atmosphere, and a country covered with snow. It had fallen in the night to a depth of six inches. We however proceeded on to _Pool Dallauk_, a distance of twelve miles; leaving our heavy baggage behind, as the Envoy was particularly anxious to reach the capital, before the commencement of the mourning of _Moharrem_. North of _Koom_ there is a small river called the _Khour-e-Shootur_. The plain was much soaked with the melted snow; we reached the _caravanserai_ at _Pool Dallauk_ at an early hour, intending to depart again at ten o’clock at night. This place derives its name from a barber who repaired the bridge, originally built by SHAH ABBAS over the river, which runs E. and W. before the _caravanserai_. The water of this stream, and indeed all the rivulets here, derive a saltness from the soil through which they pass. After having refreshed our cattle and ourselves, we made preparations to depart at ten o’clock. The night was very dark, and our _Mehmandar_ (who had not shewn an inclination to second our desires of proceeding with all dispatch) now opposed every difficulty which he could devise: he expatiated on the danger of undertaking the journey by night, and talked of certain passes on the road, where travellers had been lost and never more heard of. He was in fact an old man, unaccustomed to the activity of our proceedings. Yet he was not the only one, who was disappointed and surprised at the celerity of our movements. The chiefs of the tent-pitchers and of the muleteers, who had attended former missions, had passed months on the road, and thus secured a profit on the pay of their people and their mules, which the shortness of our engagement greatly reduced. Our journies were compared with the celebrated marches of their late King AGA MAHOMED KHAN, who waged so many wars with LOOTF ALI KHAN; but those, who considered it incompatible with the dignity of a great man to move fast, said that we were rather _choppers_ (couriers) than Embassadors. Yet the greatest distance that we ever travelled in one day was forty miles, and we employed thirty-five days in a journey of about six hundred and fifty miles, at an average perhaps of nineteen miles a day. When we were unmoved by his forebodings, our _Mehmandar_ endeavoured to sooth us into compliance to his wishes, by sending us a variety of savoury dishes for our dinner, which however only renewed our spirits, and increased our eagerness to proceed. We accordingly mounted our horses. The troop had already advanced with much of our baggage. The Envoy (preceded by two people, who by courtesy were called guides, and followed by the _Mehmandar_ and the gentlemen of the suite) had not travelled half a mile from the _caravanserai_, when his conductors declared that they had lost the road. After long and fruitless exertion, bewildered more and more by those who had undertaken our direction, we resolved to return to the _caravanserai_, and to take a fresh departure. Even this became impracticable, for the town was not to be found. The _Mehmandar_ then, seemingly in great trouble, went forward himself to seek the place, and after much delay returned to us, bringing along with him a poor wretch, whose hands he had tied behind his back, and to whom he occasionally administered blows. This was our new conductor, but he was so much frightened, that he could not proceed, until the Envoy pledged himself, that he should meet with no harm; but on the contrary should receive a reward of fifteen _tomauns_, if he led us in safety to _Kinar-a-gird_. We again advanced, and were again unsuccessful; our new guide was more perverse or more stupid than his predecessors, and we were once more obliged to return in the hope of regaining the _caravanserai_. In search of this place we roamed about four long and melancholy hours, hearing the cries of wanderers, as we supposed like ourselves, in all parts of the plain. Unfortunately we had then no compass with us, nor was there a star to be seen that might direct us. At length however we espied a light, which happily proceeded from the walls of our _caravanserai_, and guided us again to it. We departed again the next morning, and discovered to our surprise that the road, which to us had been rendered so intricate, led straight to the opening of the mountains through which we were to pass. It was impossible therefore to wander from it except purposely, and the _Mehmandar_ at length acknowledged that he had himself contrived the delay, and the mortification of the preceding night. The Envoy refused to speak to him, threatened a complaint to the King, and terrified him so effectually, that with every oath common to a Persian, he cursed himself as “an old fool, and a stupid senseless wretch.” The Envoy at length relented, and assured him that he had nothing to fear. At the distance of six miles from _Pool Dallauk_, we entered the swamp of _Kaveer_, which (to its termination at the _caravanserai_ called _Haooz Sultan_) we crossed in three hours, a length of ten miles. It is part of the great desert which reaches into _Khorassan_, the soil of which is composed of a mixture (at least equal) of salt and earth. Though the road therefore, over which we travelled, is as good as those in any other direction across the swamp, it is frequently after rains impassable: as the horses, which in our passage were up to the fetlock, are up to their bellies in less favourable weather. At _Haooz Sultan_ we were met by an Officer with a letter from the King, expressing his thanks for the information communicated to him by the Envoy, of the defeats which “the _common_ enemy” had received in Spain, and inviting him to arrive at his capital without delay. We proceeded, and came to the _Mulluk-al-Moat_, a kind of pass leading through an extent of broken country, which, forming a labyrinth of little hills and intricate nooks, has not unfrequently been a real cause of difficulty to travellers, and to a certain degree embarrassed us till we reached _Kinar-a-gird_. In the dells were a variety of streams which were nearly salt. The land itself bears evident marks of the action of fire. The soap-wort is the most common shrub all over the face of the country, but no use is made of it. About two _fursungs_ from _Kinar-a-gird_ we crossed a large salt stream, running from W. to E. and just before it we were greeted by an _istakball_. Our march on this day was forty miles. We passed the night in a large _caravanserai_ built by the present King at _Kinar-a-gird_; where the _Mehmandar_, regardless of his late disgrace, again behaved ill, for his servants were suffered to intrude on the space which had been reserved for us. From _Kinar-a-gird_ to _Teheran_ is six _fursungs_, which we called sixteen miles. We continued along the plain for two miles, crossing numerous channels of water which are carried from the stream by _Kinar-a-gird_. We then wound among some small hills for four miles, when the plain of _Teheran_ opened upon us, bounded from E. to W. by a lofty range of mountains. Clouds generally rest on their summits, and the snow at this time covered their very roots. On the West and high above them is the peak of _Demawend_. _Teheran_, as we descended gradually into the plain, bore N. 25 E. of us. On the right are the ruins of the ancient city of _Rey_, scattered in great profusion at the foot of the nearer mountains. The soil of the plain is salt, and of course very soft, intersected by a great number of dikes, which being well replenished with water had rendered the road extremely difficult. As we approached _Teheran_, we were met by frequent _istakballs_, in the principal of which was NOROOZ KHAN, one of the King’s relations, and Master of the Ceremonies. The mob increased greatly as we came to the town walls. At the gate, through which we passed, were posted files of soldiers of the new corps, dressed something like Russians and disciplined after the European manner. We passed through small streets of miserable buildings, and saw nothing that indicated royalty. At length we dismounted at the house of HAJEE MAHOMED HOSSEIN KHAN, the second Minister, where we were treated with chairs and tables, which had been provided by our host. Though it had been his own residence, and though he had just removed from it to make room for the Embassy, we found it a mansion far less respectable than any that we had seen either at _Shiraz_ or _Ispahan_. All the riches are collected on the throne, and all around is poverty, either real or affected. The reception of His Majesty’s Mission, from our entrance into Persia to our arrival in the capital, was marked with the most ready attention, and the highest honours from all classes; and our journey was now closed at _Teheran_ by particular and gratifying distinctions. [Illustration: _Tæhran._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] CHAP. XI. TEHERAN. VISIT FROM THE SECOND MINISTER--THE COURT POET--FIRST CONFERENCE--CEREMONIAL OF THE PUBLIC INTRODUCTION--PRESENTS TO THE KING BROUGHT BY THE ENVOY--ORDER OF THE PROCESSION--PRESENTATION--THE KING OF PERSIA--PEACOCK THRONE--THE COURT--THE PALACE--THE PRIME MINISTER; HIS LEVEE--PERSIAN TRAVELLER--PRESENT TO THE ENVOY--CEREMONIES OF THE MOHARREM. It had been decided on the day of our arrival, that the first visit was to be paid by the owner of the house in which we lodged, HAJEE MAHOMED HOSSEIN KHAN, _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, or Lord Treasurer: but on the next day the Minister seemed to make some hesitation in according the compliment, and said that he rather expected it from the Envoy. Sir HARFORD JONES, however, immediately obviated the difficulty by representing that even among the most uncivilized nations the host pays the first attentions to his guest. When this explanation was satisfactorily received the Minister came, and with him the King’s Chief Poet, and some other officers of state. We went through the common routine of compliments and presentations. When the poet was introduced to the Envoy, the conversation turned on poetry and the works of the bard himself. He was extolled above the skies; all exclaimed that in this age he had not an equal on earth, and some declared that he was superior even to FERDOUSI, the Homer of their country. To all this the author listened with very complacent credulity, and at length recited some of his admired effusions. His genius, however, is paid by something more substantial than praise; for he is a great favourite at court, and, according to my Persian informers, receives from the King a gold _tomaun_ for every couplet; and once indeed secured the remission of a large debt due to the King by writing a poem in his praise. Yet the people, from whom the supplies of this munificence are drawn, groan whenever they hear that the poet’s muse has been productive. Having exhausted the topics of the weather, and the relative temperature and air of _Teheran_, _Ispahan_, and _Shiraz_, our host took his leave, telling us that the house was our own, a common compliment of the East. In the evening the Envoy went to a conference with him, and settled some points of importance in the negociation. The ceremonial of the Envoy’s presentation to the King on the following day was then arranged; and it was agreed that the audience should be exactly the same as that given to Embassadors at Constantinople. On the morrow accordingly we made every preparation of form for our introduction; and each appeared in green slippers with high heels, and red cloth stockings, the court dress always worn before the King of Persia. Early in the morning we received a message desiring us to be in readiness. At about twelve o’clock we proceeded to the palace. The presents for the King were laid out on a piece of white satin over a gold dish. It consisted of His Britannic Majesty’s picture set round with diamonds; a diamond of sixty-one carats valued at twenty thousand pounds; a small box, on the lid of which Windsor Castle was carved in ivory; a box made from the oak of the Victory, with the battle of Trafalgar in ivory; and a small blood-stone Mosaic box for opium. The Kings letter (which was mounted in a highly ornamented blue morocco box, and covered with a case of white satin, and an elegant net) was also laid on a piece of white satin. The Envoy carried the letter, and I the presents. When we went forwards to place them in the _takht-e-ravan_ (the litter), and again, when the procession advanced, the trumpet sounded “God save the King.” The order of the procession was as follows: Officers of the King of Persia, Led horses belonging to the Envoy, Native officers of cavalry, swords drawn, The trumpeter, Four troopers, The _takht-e-ravan_, Guard of native cavalry, swords drawn, Persian officers of the Envoy’s household, in scarlet and gold, dismounted, THE ENVOY, The Secretary and Gentlemen of the Mission, Guard of native cavalry under Cornet WILLOCK, with drawn swords, colours displayed, Servants, &c. The procession proceeded through miserable streets, which were crowded by the curious, until we came to the large _Maidan_, at the entrance of which were chained a lion and a bear. It then turned to the right, and, crossing over a bridge, entered into the _Ark_ or fortified Palace of the King, the building which contains every part of the royal household. Here the Envoy, as a mark of respect to the King of Persia, ordered the guard to sheath swords. There were troops on both sides, and cannon in several parts, and when we reached the first court, two very thick lines of soldiers were ranged to form an avenue for us. They were disciplined and dressed something after our manner, and went through their exercise as we passed. About thirty paces from the Imperial gate the _takht-e-ravan_ stopped: we then dismounted, and the Envoy and I advancing uncovered to it, took out the King’s letter and the dish of presents. We proceeded through dark passages, until we came to a small room, where were seated NOROOZ KHAN (a relation of the royal family, and _Ish Agassi_, or Master of the Ceremonies) and MAHOMED HUSSEIN KHAN MERVEE, a favourite of the King, and a deputy Lord Chamberlain, with other noblemen, who were waiting to entertain us. Our presentation was to take place in the _Khalvet Khonéh_, or private Hall of Audience, for it was then the _Ashooreh_ of the month of _Moharrem_, a time of mourning, when all matters of ceremony or of business are suspended at court: the King of Persia therefore paid a signal respect to his Britannic Majesty, in fixing the audience of his Envoy so immediately after his arrival, and more particularly at a season when public affairs are so generally intermitted. After we had sat here about half an hour, smoked, and drank coffee, the Master of the Ceremonies informed us that the King was ready, and we proceeded again. We entered the great court of the _Dewan Khonéh_, (the Hall of Public Audience) on all sides of which stood officers of the household, and in the centre walk were files of the new-raised troops, disciplined after the European manner, who went through the platoon as we passed, while the little Persian drummers beat their drums. The line presented arms to the Envoy, and the officers saluted. In the middle of the _Dewan Khonéh_ was the famous throne built at _Yezd_ of the marble of the place, on which the King sits in public, but to which we did not approach sufficiently near for any accurate observation. We ascended two steps on the left, and then passed under arched ways into another spacious court filled in the same manner; but the men were mostly sitting down, and did not rise as we approached. We crossed the centre of this court, and came to a small and mean door, which led us through a dark and intricate passage. When we were arrived at the end of it we found a door still more wretched, and worse indeed than that of any English stable. Here NOROOZ KHAN paused, and marshaled us in order: the Envoy, first, with the King’s letter; I followed next with the presents, and then at the distance of a few paces the rest of the gentlemen. The door was opened, and we were ushered into a court laid out in canals and playing fountains, and at intervals lined by men richly dressed, who were all the grandees of the kingdom. At the extremity of a room, open in front by large windows, was the King in person. When we were opposite to him, the Master of the Ceremonies stopped, and we all made low bows; we approached most slowly again, and at another angle stopped and bowed again. Then we were taken immediately fronting the King, where again we bowed most profoundly. Our Conductor then said aloud, “_Most mighty Monarch, Director of the World_, Sir HARFORD JONES, Baronet, Embassador from your Majesty’s Brother, the King of England, having brought a letter and some presents, requests to approach the dust of your Majesty’s feet: (_Hag paee mobarek bashed_, literally,) that the dust of your feet may be fortunate.” The King from the room said in a loud voice, “_Khosh Amedeed_, you are welcome.” We then took off our slippers, and went into the royal presence. When we were entered, the Envoy walked up towards the throne with the letter; MIRZA SHEFFEEA, the Prime Minister, met him half way, and taking it from him, carried it up and placed it before the King: he then came back and received the presents from my hands, and laid them in the same place. The Envoy then commenced a written speech to the King in English, which at first startled his Majesty, but seemed to please him much, as soon as JAFFER ALI KHAN, the English Resident at _Shiraz_, came forward and read it in Persian. The original was as follows: “_May it please your Majesty_, “The King my Master, willing to renew and strengthen those ties of friendship and alliance which subsisted between the Kings of Persia and of England, has deputed me to the foot of your Majesty’s throne, with the expression of these His Royal wishes and intentions. “To have been charged with such a commission, I shall always consider as the most distinguished and honourable event of my life; and, when I thus deliver to your Majesty the letter of my most gracious and Royal Master, I feel confident in being honoured with your Majesty’s protection and favour. “May the Great Disposer of all events grant your Majesty an increase of honour and prosperity, and may the friendship and interests of England and Persia henceforward become inseparable.” The King then answered in return, that the states had been long allied, and he hoped that the friendship would increase daily; this the Prime Minister explained. The King then said, “How does the King of England, my Brother? _Damaughist chauk est?_ How is his health?” He then asked, if this were the son of the former King, with whose subjects he had had communications, and when he was told that the same King was still reigning, he exclaimed, “the French have told lies in that also!” (For they had spread the report that the King of England was dead.) The Envoy was then conducted to a gilt and painted chair placed for him, an honour never paid before to any Mission. I stood on his right; JAFFER ALI KHAN on his left; MIRZA SHEFFEEA, the Prime Minister, next to me; HAJEE MAHOMED HOSSEIN KHAN, the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, and MIRZA REZA KOOLI, another of the Ministers, succeeded; and the Master of the Ceremonies closed the line. The other gentlemen stood in a row behind. The King informed the Envoy that the choice which his Brother the King of England had made of him as a Minister in Persia, was agreeable and acceptable to him; he then inquired about the Envoy’s journey, and asked some very familiar and affable questions. The gentlemen of the Mission were then separately introduced by their names and situations; the King said “_Khosh Amedeed_,” and we made very low bows. We returned with nearly the same ceremonies as we entered the palace, except that in the outer court, the Envoy was further honoured with a salute from three pieces of cannon. The King is about forty-five years of age; He is a man of pleasing manners and an agreeable countenance, with an aquiline nose, large eyes and very arched eye-brows. His face is obscured by an immense beard and mustachios, which are kept very black; and it is only when he talks and smiles that his mouth is discovered. His voice has once been fine, and is still harmonious; though now hollow, and obviously that of a man who has led a free life. He appeared much pleased at finding that the Envoy could talk to him in Persian, as he did indeed after the first introductory speech; and when he was told that Sir HARFORD read and studied much, he asked many questions on literary subjects, for he professes to be a protector of learning and of learned men. He was seated on a species of throne, called the _takht-e-taoos_, or the throne of the peacock, which is raised three feet from the ground, and appears an oblong square of eight feet broad and twelve long. We could see the bust only of his Majesty, as the rest of his body was hidden by an elevated railing, the upper work of the throne, at the corners of which were placed several ornaments of vases and toys. The back is much raised; on each side are two square pillars, on which are perched birds, probably intended for peacocks, studded with precious stones of every description, and holding each a ruby in their beaks. The highest part of the throne is composed of an oval ornament of jewelry, from which emanate a great number of diamond rays. Unfortunately, we were so far distant from the throne, and so little favoured by the light, that we could not discover much of its general materials. We were told, however, that it is covered with gold plates, enriched by that fine enamel work so common in the ornamental furniture of Persia. It is said to have cost one hundred thousand _tomauns_. We saw the whole court to disadvantage during our first visit: it was then the days of mourning, and the King himself did not at that time wear his magnificent and celebrated ornaments of precious stones. He appeared in a _catebee_ of a very dark ground, embroidered with large gold flowers, and trimmed with a dark fur over the shoulders, down the breast and on the sleeves. On his head he wore a species of cylindrical crown covered with pearl and precious stones, and surmounted by a light feather of diamonds. He rested on a pillow embossed on every part with pearl, and terminated at each extremity by a thick tassel of pearl. On the left of the throne was a basin of water in which small fountains played; and on its borders were placed vases set with precious stones. On the right, stood six of the King’s sons richly dressed: they were of different sizes and ages; the eldest of them (brother by the same mother to the Prince of _Shiraz_) was the Viceroy of _Teheran_, and possessed much authority in the state. On the left behind the basin stood five pages, most elegantly dressed in velvets and silks: one held a crown similar to that which the King wore on his head; the second held a splendid sword; the third a shield and a mace of gold and pearls; the fourth a bow and arrows set with jewels; and the fifth a crachoir similarly ornamented. When the audience was finished, the King desired one of his Ministers to inquire from JAFFER ALI KHAN (the English Agent) what the foreigners said of him, and whether they praised and admired his appearance. The room in which we were introduced to the King was painted and gilded in every part. On the left from the window is a large painting of a combat between the Persians and Russians, in which the King appears at full length on a white horse, and makes the most conspicuous figure in the whole composition. The Persians of course are victorious, and are very busily employed in killing the Russians, who seem to be falling a sufficiently easy prey: at a farther end of the scene is the Russian army drawn up in a hollow square, and firing their cannon and muskets without doing much apparent execution. Facing this great picture, is another of equal dimensions, which represents the _Shah_ in the chase, having just pierced a deer with a javelin. In other parts are portraits of women, probably the King’s favourites, who are dancing according to the fashion of the country. On the 19th, the Envoy visited MIRZA SHEFFEEA, the Prime Minister. He is an old man, of mild and easy manners, who displayed more knowledge of general politics than any other person whom we met in Persia. This was our first impression, and his subsequent management of the negociation convinced us of its accuracy. He was sufficiently acquainted with all the different courts of Europe, and knew perfectly the name of every Minister employed either within the state or on foreign service; and was deeply versed in the particular interests of Persia. He had acquired something of geography, when the French Embassador and suite were his guests; the Persians in general, however, live in the profoundest ignorance of every other country. In the Ministers assembly we met MIRZA REZA, who had been sent Embassador to BUONAPARTE, and who entertained us with an account of _Frangistoun_, [Europe.] He expatiated with seeming ecstasy on every thing which he had seen; and MIRZA SHEFFEEA, who probably had often heard his stories, said to Sir HARFORD JONES, “I can believe many of the things which he has related to us, but one circumstance staggers me; he gives an account of an ass, which he saw at _Vienna_, with stripes on its back; that I shall not believe, unless you confirm it.” When Sir HARFORD told him that it was very true; that there were many such animals at the _Cape of Good Hope_, he was satisfied. The traveller proceeded to describe every part of the Continent: when he talked of the beauties of _Vienna_, and particularly when he mentioned that the streets were lighted up at night with globe lamps, one of the company (whose face during the different relations had exhibited signs of much astonishment, and sometimes doubt) stopped him, and said, “I can believe any thing else but that they light the streets with globe lamps: you can never make me believe that. Pray who will pay for them?” MIRZA SHEFFEEA entertained us with a breakfast more elegant than any of the similar meals to which we had been invited. Just before we were rising to depart, the Minister, after having talked much on the hopes which he cherished, that the friendship of the two nations would long subsist, pulled a diamond ring from off his own finger, and placed it on the Envoy’s, saying, “And that I may not be thought to be insincere in my professions, let me beg of you to accept this as a pledge of my friendship for you; and I intreat you to wear it for my sake.” This gift, unlike the generosity of Persian presents, was really handsome; it was a beautiful stone, perfect in all its parts. On the 23d we were invited by the _Jemidars_ (Indian officers) of the Envoy’s guard, to see that part of the ceremony of the _Moharrem_ which was appropriated to the day. We ascended an elevated platform, surrounded by a great crowd of Persians and Indians, and seated ourselves on _Nummuds_ prepared for us. On one side was a small ornamented temple, in which was represented the tomb of the _Imaum_; and all around it were the Indians who had changed their regimentals for a variety of fantastical habits, after the fashion of their own country. As every Indian can turn _fakir_, the greater part had assumed that character to perform the ceremonial of this feast. Many of them arose, and made long speeches (for every man has this liberty) on the death of the _Imaum_, though they intermixed much extraneous matter. After this a Persian _Mollah_, a young man of a brisk and animated appearance ascended a temporary pulpit, and commenced a species of chaunted sermon proper for the day. At the end of every period, he was answered in chorus by the multitude: and when he was nearly at the end, and had reached the most pathetic part of his harangue, he gave the signal for the people to beat their breasts, which they did accordingly with much seeming sincerity, keeping time to his chanting. When the _Mollah_ had finished, a high and cumbrous pole was brought into the scene. It was ornamented with different coloured silks and feathers, and on the summit were fixed two curious weapons made of tin, and intended to represent the swords of ALI. This heavy machine was handled by a man who, having made his obeisance to it (by first bowing his head, then kissing it) took it up with both his hands, and then amidst increasing applauses balanced it on his girdle, on his breast, and on his teeth. Next, on a small temporary stage, appeared several figures, who acted that part of the tragedy of the history of the _Imaum_ appointed for the day. It consisted of the death of the two children of his sister FATME, who, at the close of the performance were killed by AMEER, one of the officers of YEZID. The actors each held in their hands their speeches written on paper, which they read with great action and vociferation, and excited much interest in their audience, so that many sobbed and wept aloud; and when the ceremonial required the beating of breasts, many performed that part with a species of ferocious zeal, which seemed to be jealous of louder intonations from any breast than their own. In a part of the scene were then introduced water-carriers, who were emblematical of the thirst of the _Imaum_ at his dying moments. They bore on their backs bullocks’ skins filled with water, no inconsiderable weight; but in addition, they each received five well-grown boys, and under the united burthen walked round a circle ten feet in diameter, three times consecutively. On the following night the Envoy and I visited the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_ HAJEE MOHAMED HOSSEIN KHAN. At his house, MIRZA SHEFFEEA, HAJEE MOHAMED HUSSEIN KHAN MERVEE, FATH ALI KHAN the poet, and other great men were assembled. The commemoration of the death of HOSSEIN was performing in his court-yard; and when the _Mollah_ begun to read that part of the ceremonial appointed for the day, the windows of the room, in which we were seated, were thrown open, and we all changed our positions, and sat with our faces towards the _Mollah_. His preaching lasted about an hour, and was followed by the representation of that part of the history of HOSSEIN’S death, which succeeded the scene performed on the preceding evening. First came HOSSEIN’S horse, with his turban on the saddle. Then, in a row on chairs, were seated YEZID, with three others; one of whom, dressed in the European habit, represented an European Embassador, (_Elchee Firing_.) ZAIN LABEDEEN, HOSSEIN’S brother, chained, and with a triangular wooden collar round his neck, appeared as a captive before YEZID, and was followed by his sister and children. YEZID’S executioner treated them with much barbarity, repelling the women when they implored his protection; and using the captives with great insult, at the instigation of YEZID. When ZAIN LABEDEEN, by YEZID’S _firman_, was brought to be beheaded, the _Elchee Firing_ implored his pardon, which instead of appeasing the tyrant, only produced an order for putting the _Elchee_ himself to death. All this scene produced great lamentation among the spectators, who seemed to vie with each other in the excess of their weeping, and in the display of all the signs of grief. The Prime Minister cried incessantly; the _Ameen-ed-Dowlah_ covered his face with both his hands, and groaned aloud; MAHOMED HUSSEIN KHAN MERVEE made at intervals very vociferous complaints. In some I could perceive real tears stealing down their cheeks, but in most I suspect that the grief was as much a piece of acting as the tragedy which excited it. The King himself always cries at the ceremony; his servants therefore are obliged to imitate him. When the mob passed the window, at which we were seated, they again beat their breasts most furiously. 25th. This day was the last of the _Moharrem_, when all those, who had performed the ceremonies peculiar to this season, appeared before the King. He was seated in a more elevated chamber, which looked towards the _Maidan_. A tent had been pitched for the Envoy, who was invited to attend, but he was too unwell to venture out. The representation of the day happened, indeed, to be incomplete. A strange circumstance had occurred at a village near _Teheran_, which so much frightened the man appointed to personify HOSSEIN before his Majesty, that in fear of the same fate he absconded. His alarm was natural, for at this village the man who performed the part of the executioner chose to act to the letter, what was only intended as a very bloodless representation; and when HOSSEIN was brought before him to be beheaded, he cut off the poor actor’s head. For this the King fined him one hundred _tomauns_. His Majesty was pleased to take much notice of the Indians, whose ceremonial seemed to affect him much more than the others. Some keep the _Moharrem_ three days later. CHAP. XII. TEHERAN. GENERAL VIEW OF THE NEGOCIATIONS--TREATIES SIGNED--EXCHANGED--PERSIAN LETTER TO THE ENVOY--PUNISHMENT OF THEFT--EVE OF THE NOROOZ--PRESENTS DISTRIBUTED BY THE KING--NOROOZ OF ANCIENT PERSIA--ENTERTAINMENT GIVEN BY THE KING--ANNUAL PRESENTS--AMUSEMENTS OF THE DAY--RACES--BREED OF HORSES--THE ZOOMBAREEK ARTILLERY--INTERVIEW WITH THE MINISTERS; WITH THE KING--KALAAT FROM THE KING--FRENCH TREATY--PUBLICITY OF PERSIAN DIPLOMACY--GATE OF THE PALACE--DISMISSAL OF THE FRENCH--LETTER TO THE KING OF ENGLAND--DISPATCHES FROM THE GOVERNOR-GENERAL OF INDIA--CONDUCT OF THE PERSIAN MINISTERS; OF THE KING--APPOINTMENT AND HISTORY OF MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, ENVOY EXTRAORDINARY TO ENGLAND. The details of the subsequent progress of the negociation were daily minuted in my journal; but they involve so many personal considerations that they could not be fairly published, even if I had not acquired the information by confidential and official opportunities. I sacrifice, therefore, but with deep regret the power of doing that justice to the merits of the British Envoy which the simple narrative, without one comment, would have afforded. I must content myself with adding, that Sir HARFORD JONES succeeded in his great object; and concluded a treaty with Persia (where the French influence had already baffled and driven away one English agent) by which the French, in their turns, were expelled, and our influence was restored; at a time when, instead of co-operation, he experienced only counteraction from the British Government of India, and encountered all the rivalry of the active and able emissaries of France. On another motive I regret the omission of these notes. They would have characterized, I believe with fidelity, the habits and modes of thinking of a Persian statesman, and added an amusing document to the annals of diplomacy. The conferences of the Plenipotentiaries were carried on at times with the warmest contentions, at other times interrupted by the loudest laughter on the most indifferent subject. One night the parties had sat so long, and had talked so much without producing conviction on either side, that the Plenipotentiaries by a sort of un-official compact, fell asleep. The Prime Minister and the _Ameen-ed-Dowlah_ snored aloud in one place, and the Envoy and I stretched ourselves along in another. Though on the very first night of the discussions, the parties had separated with a full conviction that every thing was settled; and though the Prime Minister himself, laying his hand on the Envoy’s shoulder, had said to him, “You have already completed what the King of England himself in person could not have done;” yet the very next conference, they came forwards with pretensions alike new and extravagant. At the close of that meeting however, the Chief Secretary was appointed to bring the Treaty written fair to the Envoy on the following morning. Instead of this, the Prime Minister sent a large citron, and inquired after the Envoy’s health. On another occasion, the Persian Plenipotentiaries swore that every thing should be as the Envoy wished, and instantly wrote out a corresponding form of Treaty, to which (rather than start a difficulty about indifferent words) he assented. They were then so anxious that he should immediately attend them to the King’s Summer Palace to sign, that they would not give him time to translate it into English: he however refused to sign a Persian treaty, till the English copy was ready. They so little expected this refusal, that they had already, by the King’s desire, sent thirty mule-loads of fruits, sherbets, and sweetmeats to celebrate the event at the new palace; and were of course displeased and disappointed. At another time, in the middle of a very serious conversation, the Prime Minister stopped short, and asked the Envoy very coolly to tell him the history of the world from the creation. This was intended as a joke upon one of the Secretaries, who was then writing the annals of the reign of the present King. On another occasion, in which the same Minister was deeply and personally interested, and in which he invoked every thing sacred to attest his veracity, and convince the Envoy, (now, “by the head of the King;” then, “by _Mecca_;” then, “by the salt of FATH ALI SHAH”) he turned to me in a pause of his discourse, and asked if I were married, and begun some absurd story. These circumstances, however characteristic of the people, may appear trifling in themselves, or at least indicative of minds, over which an European Negociator might easily attain an ascendancy. It is necessary therefore to premise, that the real difficulties of our situation were never diminished by any deficiency of address and diplomatic finesse in the Persian Plenipotentiaries. Every fresh dispatch which the French received from Europe, while it contributed to raise the spirits and activity of our rivals themselves, enabled the Persians also to assume a higher tone of decision between our contending interests, while the only communications from his own countrymen which Sir HARFORD JONES received in Persia, were those which would have baffled the hopes and discouraged the enterprize of almost any other man. In the alternation of the dispositions of the court of Persia, he retained the same firm and unbending policy, and when the influence of the French appeared to be regaining all its preponderance, he made no one concession which he had not offered in more favourable circumstances, and finally succeeded in concluding a treaty almost on his own original terms, while the French were signing every demand which the Persians made. As a more detailed specimen however of the conduct of the negociation, I can reserve a portion of the concluding scene. At length a night was fixed in which the Treaties were to be signed. The Envoy and I repaired to the house of the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, where we found him and his _Nazir_ or Superintendant, the Prime Minister, the Chief Secretary, and the Persian Agent for English affairs at _Shiraz_. The conversation after a short time fixed on learned subjects. The Persians are extremely fond of history and geography, though in general they are profoundly ignorant of both. The Prime Minister went through in a breath the whole history of Russia. We then entered on matters of chronology, which introduced a discussion on the relative antiquity of particular remains, as _Persepolis_ and _Nakshi Rustam_. The Chief Secretary, who seemed to have read much Persian history, knew that part which related to _Shapour_, and mentioned that he had carried his arms into Syria, and had taken prisoner a Roman Emperor. Yet the subject of the sculptures at _Nakshi Rustam_ had still escaped their observation; and they had still, according to the popular belief, substituted _Rustam_ for _Shapour_, as the hero of those representations. To this conversation, supper succeeded; as usual it was short. The Treaties were then brought in, and read and approved. The date was still wanting. SIR HARFORD JONES desired them to insert the usual form, commencing, “In witness whereof,” &c. This however the Persians could not understand, and objected strenuously to the word “witnesses,” who were never introduced except into a court of justice. At length the Envoy produced the precedent of treaties signed at Constantinople, where the form is invariably used. They acquiesced immediately: but another difficulty succeeded, “Should the year of our Lord precede the _Hejera_?” The Secretary proposed that in our copy of the Treaty, our era should stand first, and that the order should be reversed in that which they were to keep. At last the Minister, who suspected that the Secretary was inclined to create difficulties, finished every argument by declaring that “as JESUS CHRIST lived before MAHOMED, there could be no doubt but that his _tarikh_ should stand first.” The Secretary, who is esteemed one of the first composers, and one of the best penmen in Persia, resisted the plainness of the language, which Sir HARFORD dictated for the insertion of the date, and produced something so unlike a diplomatic style, and so full of figurative expressions, that it was rejected totally on our parts. MIRZA SHEFFEEA then took up the pen, and drew up a simpler formulary, which, with a few emendations, was admitted. The Secretary was then desired to copy it into the Treaty; but he seemed indignant to find that a date was only to be plain matter of fact, and begged hard to make it a little finer. MIRZA SHEFFEEA however desired him to write as he had written, and this was at length accomplished with great difficulty. Then came the business of signing. The Prime Minister, MIRZA SHEFFEEA, first took up the pen, and put down his own name and that of his brother Plenipotentiary, who was unable to sign himself. After signing, came sealing. The Secretary applied the seals, MIRZA SHEFFEEA crying out to him, _Bezun, Bezun_, or, “strike, strike,” as if he had been striking a bargain in the _bazar_. In the act of signing and sealing the parties made frequent exclamations, such as, “God grant the friendship between the two states may be binding!” “May this prove a fortunate day.” “Let us hope that nothing may ever break this bond.” To all which every one present emphatically and repeatedly resounded “_Inch Allah!_ God grant it!” It had been agreed, that we should severally exchange the Treaties which each had written. When all was over, the Envoy took up our copy, and desired the _Mirza_ to take up the other, that a formal exchange might be made. At this moment circumstances arose which closed the conference abruptly. The nature of those circumstances called forth all the dignified firmness of the Envoy, which in their future intercourse produced the most striking courtesy and attention from the Persian Ministers. The business was subsequently renewed on the evening of the 15th, and in that meeting the Treaties were finally exchanged. On the 18th, the Envoy received a letter from an officer of high distinction at _Tabriz_. It is singular in itself, but it may have a new interest in the translation, which was made for me by a Persian (JAFFER ALI KHAN), and which is given in his own unaltered words: “May you, the high in station, exalted in dignity, clothed with splendor, the great magnificent in rank, distinguished for friendly disposition, cream of the nobles of the Christian faith, and the select among the great of the worshippers of the Messiah. May your honour increase, and may you be always in safety from the evil world, and always under the protection of God Almighty. And may He grant you all the happiness belonging to this world and the next, and (may you) be ever merry by the blessing of God. I write you as follows:--1st. I don’t know what complaint I am to make of my bad fortune, that, notwithstanding the great desire I had to see you, the Creator of the Universe had brought you to this country at a time when I am not present there. 2d. I don’t know what excuse to make to you, that while you are there, owing to my being engaged to the Russian affairs, I can’t prove myself useful to you in order to please myself. 3d. I have no remedy, as there are no fine articles at _Aderbigian_ that I may send you, in order to prove of my regard to you; but the state of England and Russians are enemies to one another, therefore I employ my nights and days to do injury to the Russians, which is the only content I have at present. I hope that, in the course of a short time, I may be able to send you some Russian heads as rarities, and as a fine present from me to you, and I hope to be able to meet with some opportunity to repair to the King’s Court, where I may be happy to see you, and I will have a verbal conversation with you.” A _chatter_, belonging to one of the gentlemen of our party, having stolen some money, the silver head of a _kaleoon_ and other ornaments, was ordered to receive the bastinado on the soles of his feet. He was first thrown on his back, and his feet inserted through a cord, which fastened them to a long pole, and then exposed horizontally. Four stout _feroshes_ then bastinadoed his feet until he confessed that another fellow had been his accomplice, who was also punished in the same manner. If the criminals had been delivered up to the King’s _Nasakchee Bashee_, they would have lost their lives; for the King never pardons theft, and orders a convicted thief to be executed instantly. The mode is as follows: two young trees are by main strength brought together at their summits, and there fastened with cords together. The culprit is then brought out, and his legs are tied with ropes, which are again carried up and fixed to the top of the trees. The cords that force the trees together are then cut; and, in the elasticity and power of this spring, the body of the thief is torn asunder, and left thus to hang divided on each separate tree. The inflexibility of the King in this point has given to the roads a security, which, in former times, was little known. The King sent by one of his _feroshes_ a present of two mountain goats to the Envoy. The man was offered one hundred piastres for bringing them, which he rejected as an inadequate reward; former Missions indeed had taught him to expect more profusion. The 20th of March was the eve of the _Norooz_; and as a part of the ceremony of the season, the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_ sent the Envoy a present. It consisted of two plates of money, one of silver coins, and the other of gold; several trays of sweetmeats, one of which was decked out in flowers and gilded ornaments like a temple; and two wax candles, which were accompanied by flowers exquisitely imitated in wax. The whole present amounted, by our computation, to six hundred and fifty piastres, for which, according to the return which we made, we paid most dearly. The wretched traffic of presents places the Persian character in a very unfavourable light. The meannesses and obligations to which they will submit for the sake of a present, and their jealousies and anxieties about its amount, are at least very ridiculous. The presents which the King distributes on the _Nooroz_ are costly; to each of the chief men and officers of his court he sends a _kalaat_, (a dress of honour, consisting of a complete suit of brocade with a shawl); and he sometimes gives a horse and its caparisons. The _kalaats_ indeed are furnished in specified contributions, by particular cities, (_Yezd_, _Shiraz_, and _Ispahan_,) and by the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_; and each _kalaat_ is the means of paying the servant who may bear it; as the present, which he invariably receives as a perquisite in return is deducted from his wages. The number of the _kalaats_ is reckoned at nine hundred; and their value, on an average of three hundred piastres, will amount to two hundred and seventy thousand. Besides this, the King distributes handfuls of money at his public _Dewan_ to those who attract his favour. A large vase of gold and silver coins mixed stands at his elbow; in this he puts his hand, and taking out as much as he can grasp, pours it into the two extended palms of the man who is lucky enough to engage his notice. On the 21st, the weather, which had been unfavourable, cleared up, and a fine morning was enlivened by three discharges of artillery in honour of the _Norooz_. This festival is one of those which have remained in opposition to Mahomedanism, and was one of the first kept sacred in Persia in the ages of the worship of fire. RICHARDSON says, “that their chief festivals were those about the equinoxes; the next were those of water at Midsummer, and of fire at the Winter solstice. The first was the _Norooz_, which commenced with their year in March, and lasted six days, during which all ranks seem to have participated in one general joy. The rich sent presents to the poor: all were dressed in their holiday clothes, and all kept open house: and religious processions, music, dancing, a species of theatrical exhibition, rustic sports, and other pastimes presented a continued round of varied amusement. Even the dead and the ideal things were not forgotten; rich viands being placed on the tops of houses and high towers, on the flavour of which the Peris and spirits of their departed heroes and friends were supposed to feast.”[38] To this day the festival of the _Norooz_ retains many of these ceremonies, though it has changed its character since the rise of Mahomedanism in Persia, and ceases to be connected with the religion of the country. It commences when the sun just enters _Aries_, and lasts three days; it begins the spring of nature, though it no longer commences the civil year of the Persians, who, like all other Mahomedans, have adopted the lunar calculation. It is still the most solemn of the Persian festivals, as it was in the day of CHARDIN. Mr. BRUCE informed me of a singular fact, that it was not observed at all on the coast of the Persian Gulph. At _Teheran_, however, we saw it celebrated with great festivity. It differs from the _Norooz_ of ancient Persia in the diminution of its duration; and in the absence of all religious observance: there are no processions and still less any offerings of viands to the dead. But all on meeting in the morning embrace and say, “_Ayd mobarek_; happy festival!” as in England we wish our friends a merry Christmas. The rich still send presents to the poor, all are still dressed in their holiday clothes, and sports of every kind are preserved in the season. 22d. We visited the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_. He was seated in his _dewan khonéh_, dressed in the _kalaat_ which he had received from the King. His _mujlis_ or assembly was crowded by _Khans_ of the neighbouring districts, who had repaired to the city to pay their compliments to their superior on the _Norooz_. These, indeed, were far from conforming to the custom of displaying their holiday clothes, and whether through policy or through want, bore on their dress all the marks of poverty and misery. On the 24th, the Envoy was invited to an entertainment, which the King gave. We proceeded to the palace, and having gone through the great gate, leading into the _Ark_, or more immediate residence of the King, we dismounted at the gate which opens into the _Maidan_ and the first great court of the palace. Opposite to this gate is another; in an open room at the summit of which, the King was seated. We walked across the court, and were led through many passages, and ascended many intricate flights of steps, until we reached the roof of the buildings on the right of the _Shah_. Over this roof, which in many places was of difficult access, we scrambled, until we came to a little tent prepared for us, which was pitched on the summit of a door-way, close to the King’s room. The court, in which the different exhibitions were to take place, appeared to us to be near two hundred feet square. On each side of the great gate were sixteen arched compartments, each of which opened into a small room. In the centre was a high pole, with a truck at the top, and small projections for the convenience of ascending it. This pole is for the purpose of horse exercises, and shooting at the mark. Close under the room in which the _Shah_ was seated, was a basin of water, on the other side of which were erected the poles and ropes of a rope-dancer. In a circle round these, were fire-works placed in various forms and quantities. Four figures of paper and linen dressed like Europeans were erected on high, and surrounded with fire-works. At a distance were elephants of paper, stuck all over with rockets; on all the walls were rockets; and, in short, fire-works were placed in every direction. Opposite to the _Shah_ in two lines were the new raised troops, with drummers standing in a row at the furthermost extremity. In the centre of these was the _Nasakchee Bashee_, who appeared as the director of the entertainment. He had a stick in his hand, and wore on his head a _gika_, a distinguishing ornament borne by particular people only, to whom the King grants the liberty. The first ceremony was the introduction of the presents from the different provinces. That from Prince HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA, Governor of _Shiraz_, came first. The Master of the Ceremonies walked up, having with him the conductor of the present, and an attendant, who, when the name and titles of the donor had been proclaimed, read aloud from a paper the list of the articles. The present from Prince HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA, consisted of a very long train of large trays placed on men’s heads, on which were shawls, stuffs of all sorts, pearls, &c.; then many trays filled with sugar, and sweetmeats; after that many mules laden with fruit, &c. &c. &c. The next present was from MAHOMED ALI KHAN, Prince of _Hamadan_, the eldest born of the King’s sons, but who had been deprived by his father of the succession, because the Georgian slave who bore him was of an extraction less noble than that of the mothers of the younger Princes. His present accorded with the character which is assigned to him; it consisted of pistols and spears, a string of one hundred camels, and as many mules. After this came the present from the Prince of _Yezd_, another of the King’s sons, which consisted of shawls and the silken stuffs, the manufacture of his own town. Then followed that of the Prince of _Mesched_; and last of all, and the most valuable, was that from HAJEE MOHAMED HOSSEIN KHAN, _Ameen-ed-Doulah_. It consisted of fifty mules, each covered with a fine Cashmire shawl, and each carrying a load of one thousand _tomauns_. The other offerings had been lodged in the _Sandeck Khona_, (literally, Trunk Office). This was conveyed in a different direction to the Treasury. Each present, like the first, contained a portion of sugar and sweetmeats. When all the train had passed in procession, one by one before the King, the amusements commenced. First came the rope-dancer: a boy about twelve years old, ascended the rope, and paced it backwards and forwards. The same rope was continued to the roof of the room in which the King was seated, making first an angle of forty degrees, and then, in a second flight, an angle of fifty degrees, with its horizontal extension. The boy balancing himself with his pole, walked up the first steadily, and with very little more difficulty ascended the second, while the music below animated him in his progress. He then, with the same steadiness descended, walking backwards, and safely reached the horizontal rope. After this a man in a kind of petticoat began a dance of the most extravagant attitudes. A large elephant which had been in waiting amid the crowd, was next brought forward, was made to give a shriek, and then to kneel down, paying as it were his _selaam_ to the King. A company of wrestlers succeeded; and every one, who threw his antagonist on his back, ran before the King and received a _tomaun_. When ten such feats had been successively performed, a man led in a bear, with which in his turn he wrestled. But the bear always had the advantage; and when his antagonist attempted to throw him into the basin of water, the bear got so much out of humour, that if he had not been deprived of his teeth, he would probably have demolished the unlucky assailant. Then rams were brought into the arena, and in several couples fought for some time with much obstinacy. A poor ox was next introduced, and after him a young lion. The scene, which we had witnessed at _Shiraz_, was here repeated. The ox was scarcely suffered to walk, before the lion was let loose upon him; twice was the lion dragged off, and twice permitted to return to the charge, which he always made in the rear, and of which the success was secure and easy. A less bloody display succeeded; a bear was brought forwards by a company of _looties_ or mountebanks, and danced for some time to the rude noise and music of its leaders. Then came a man who, on his bare head balanced, among other things, two high vases full of water, which another was to break with his cane. To all these different performers, the King threw different sums, as he was severally pleased with their tricks and feats. At sun-set his Majesty retired to say his _Namaz_, (prayers) when his _Nokara Khanah_, that is his trumpets and drums, played as usual. At this moment the Envoy retired, happy to escape the noise and smoke of the fire-works, which were to close the entertainment. 25th. The King held the races, at which also the Envoy was desired to be present. From the _Casvin_ gate, at which we left the city, we proceeded about half a mile to a fine even part of the country, where a tent was pitched for the King. All his new raised troops were arranged on the right and in front of it. On the left, facing the tent, we stood in a line, near the Ministers, MIRZA SHEFFEEA, and the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_. Directly opposite his Majesty were eight of his sons, richly dressed in velvet and gold-brocade coats, all glittering with gold and jewels. One of these carried by his side his father’s bow and his quiver thickly set with precious stones. The Master of the Ceremonies, in the field, was a young Persian who carried an ornamented and gilded spear. One or two of the Princes were mounted on white horses, the legs, belly, and lower parts of the buttock of which were dyed a rich orange colour, terminated at the top by little flowers. The Persians much admire this species of disfigurement, nor in the East is their taste singular. At about fifty paces distance from the Princes, stood the King’s band of music with a troop of _looties_ and their monkies. The state elephants were on the ground, on the largest of which the King, seated in a very elegant _howdar_, rode forth from the city. When he alighted he was saluted by a discharge of _zombooreks_; the salute indeed is always fired when the King alights from his horse or mounts. In one of the courts of the palace at _Shiraz_ we had previously noticed this artillery. The _zomboorek_ is a small gun mounted on the back of a camel. The conductor from his seat behind guides the animal by a long bridle, and loads and fires the little cannon without difficulty. He wears a coat of orange-coloured cloth, and a cap with a brass front; and his camel carries a triangular green and red flag. Of these there were one hundred on the field; and when their salute was fired they retreated in a body behind the King’s tent, where the camels were made to kneel down. Collectively they make a fine military appearance. This species of armament is common to many Asiatic states, yet the effect at best is very trifling. The Persians, however, place great confidence in their execution; and MIRZA SHEFFEEA, in speaking of them to the Envoy, said, “These are what the Russians dread.” No exhibition could be more miserable than the races, the immediate object of our excursion. They are intended to try rather the bottom than the speed of the horses. The prize is what the King may be pleased to give to the first jockies. On this occasion there were two sets, that came severally from a distance of twelve and twenty-one miles; each consisted of about twelve ill-looking horses, mounted by boys of ten or twelve years old, who were wretchedly dressed in a shirt and pair of breeches, boots and cap. In each race the King’s horses won, of course. Horses are trained in this manner for a reason sufficiently obvious, in a country where the fortunes of the state and of every individual are exposed to such sudden changes. Every one likes to be prepared with some mode of escape, in case of pursuit; now horses thus inured to running will continue on the gallop for a day together, whilst a high conditioned and well-fed animal would drop at the end of ten miles. For this reason the King always keeps himself well supplied with a stud of this description, as a resource in the event of an accident. When, on the death of his uncle, AGA MAHOMED KHAN, He was summoned (by HAJEE IBRAHIM, the Minister of the late King) to assume as the heir the sovereignty, he thus travelled from _Shiraz_ to _Teheran_, a distance of five hundred miles in six days. In the interval of the race, the King sent the Master of the Ceremonies to desire the Envoy and his suite to come before him. We dismounted from our horses, and proceeded with the Prime Minister and the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, before the King’s presence, making low bows as we advanced. When we were about twenty steps from his Majesty we stopped and made our final low bow. The King was seated on a high chair under a canopy, the sides of which were formed of gold cloth, and of looking glasses. The chair itself was beautifully embroidered with enamelled flowers and other ornaments; on one of the arms was a pot of flowers, and on the other a vase of rose-water. On one side was spread a velvet and gold cloth carpet with the pearl pillow. The King was in his riding dress, a close coat of purple velvet embroidered in pearl, the sheep-skin cap, and a pair of _Bulgar_ boots. As he was placed in a good light, we had an excellent view of him. His manners are perfectly easy and unconstrained, with much dignity and affability. He first inquired after the Envoy’s health, of whose good qualities the two Ministers then entered into an immense eulogium, praising him in terms the most extravagant. Then the names of all the party were mentioned to the King, and each was asked how he did. All the conversation was complimentary; and when the comparison was made between us and the French, the King said, “they were _haivans_, beasts, wild men, savages. These are gentlemen.” After the whole was over we returned to our horses. The King then mounted, and the salute was fired from the _zombooreks_. His infantry first marched off the ground; they were dressed differently in black or in crimson-velvet jackets, in loose breeches of crimson or yellow silk, black sheep-skin caps and light boots. The King passed us at a distance on horseback, and we made our bows. He was preceded by a body of _chatters_, who are dressed with fantastical caps on their heads, and lively coloured clothes. No other person was near him, nor indeed is any other permitted. The King of Persia is an insulated being, alone in his court. How different is the state of the _Sultan_ at _Constantinople_, who is almost concealed by the crowds of his attendants. The Princes followed, and then the mob. After this we repaired to a tent, where the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_ had prepared a Persian breakfast for us. On the 26th, the negotiating parties met to discuss a point reserved in the Treaty. The conference terminated without any decision: and in this state of uncertainty the question remained for three days, when we were told that it had been decided to our satisfaction; and that I was to see the King on the 30th, and to depart for England as soon after as possible. On the 30th, accordingly the Envoy and I breakfasted with the Minister, in the expectation of our introduction to the King. His Majesty, however, had gone to ride to _Shem-Iroun_ (“the Candle of Persia,”) a village under the mountain, celebrated for the beauty of the situation and the salubrity of its air. We remained with the Minister all the morning. The _Ameen-ed-Doulah_ was there; his spirits were depressed by the intelligence which he had received from _Ispahan_, (the government of his son) that the melting of the snow and rain had so swoln the _Zaiande-rood_, that it had overflowed and injured the country to the amount of three lacks of piastres. It had destroyed, besides many houses and buildings, a large _bund_ or dam, nearly opposite to the _Chahar Bagh No_. The _bund_ was the work of ABBAS, and had cost about twenty times the labour of that at _Kohrood_. The whole damage was reckoned at thirty lacks of piastres. _Kanauts_ were filled up, and large tracts of rich and productive land were rendered useless for the year. At _Ispahan_, the water filled the under arches of the fine bridge of _Aliverdy Khan_, that goes into the great _Chahar Bagh_. This inundation extended over many districts. An express announced that the river at _Pool Dallauk_ was over the bridge: and that the country was in many places so inundated as to be only passable with much danger and difficulty. The great salt swamp was particularly deep. The 13th of the month _Sefer_ is looked upon as most unlucky among the Persians; they do not keep in the house on this day, but rather walk out into the fields, in order that nothing may disturb their humours, for a quarrel with any one on this day will entail misfortune through the remainder of the year. On the 31st we went to the King. At this audience He was seated in a room in a square court called the _Gulistan_, a name derived from the roses, with which (intermixed with cypress and _chenar_ trees) it was planted. We were introduced into it by the two Ministers, through a door small and mean, like those in other parts of the palace, and which are obviously adapted for more easy defence in the event of any sudden alarm. In the centre of the garden is a _Koola-frangee_, built by AGA MAHOMED KHAN. The garden itself was arranged in squares, with some miserable palings. Peacocks and hens, great favourites in Persia, were every where walking about. After having paraded through the garden in various directions, (for this also is a part of the ceremonial) we finally approached the presence. We took off our slippers at some distance, and walking on the bare stones, stepped up a difficult staircase into a small and elegant room, in which his Majesty was seated. At the foot of the staircase was a row of eunuchs; and at the top several officers. At our entrance the King desired us to be seated, but we excused ourselves and stood. His Majesty’s throne was that on which he had appeared at our first audience. The Envoy had complained to the Minister, that on _that_ occasion we had no favourable opportunity of seeing the King; and his Majesty had probably been informed of the disappointment, and had condescended in consequence to gratify our curiosity by transfering his throne to a more favourable position, and displaying himself upon it in all the magnificence of his state. He was dressed in a light coat of scarlet and gold cloth; on his shoulders were large layers of pearl and precious stones. On each of his arms were three rows of jewels called the _bazebunds_; these are his finest jewels, one of which (the _Dereea Nore_) is one of the largest in the world. Though set in a clumsy manner, they had a rich and royal effect. Round his waist he wore a band about four inches broad of pearl, connected in the middle by a clasp, the centre of which was an emerald of an immense size. In this band he wore a brilliant dagger; from it also dangled a tassel of pearl, which he continually kept in his hand as a plaything. His _kaleoon_ is a beautiful toy: it stood in the left corner of the throne, and was one blaze of precious stones. On the right of his throne stood four pages, one holding his crown, another his shield and mace, a third his bow and arrows, and a fourth his sword. All these are beautiful, particularly his crown: it is in every part thickly inlaid with pearl, emeralds, rubies and diamonds; on the summit is a _gika_ of precious stones, on the sides of which are plumes of herons’ feathers. His Majesty talked with much familiarity; and asked us, what news from the _Yenzee Duneea_, that is, the new world, as they call America. He inquired, “What sort of a place is it? How do you get at it? Is it under ground, or how?” He then talked of our government; and appeared aware that the Kings of England could do little without the intervention of their parliament. In the explanations which followed this subject, his Persian Majesty was visibly astonished that any limitation could be placed to Royal authority. The conversation turned; and the King talked of BUONAPARTE, and launched out in general terms against the French. After the introduction of some other topics, His Majesty dismissed us by a nod of his head, desiring that a _kalaat_ might be given to me, and that a _Mehmandar_ might be appointed to attend me on my journey. On the 4th April his Persian Majesty sent me my _kalaat_ or dress of honour: it consisted of a _kaba_ or brocade coat that covered me all over; a small outer coat trimmed with fur over the shoulders and down the back, called the _coordee_; a brocade sash; and (what I believe is considered a great distinction) a sword. The King was pleased to ask what I should like best to receive as a mark of his Royal regard, and when it was left to his Majesty’s decision, He sent me a sword which he had worn himself. His own name was upon it, by which all his Majesty’s swords are known. All these things were contained in a piece of white linen (the sword lying on the top), and were brought in some state by an officer of the royal household. When they were put into my hands, I carried them respectfully to my head, and then retired and put on the different articles. When I came out again full dressed, every body congratulated me by a “_moobarek bashed_,” (“good luck attend you.”) I continued in this garb for the remainder of the day, although, according to Persian etiquette, I ought to have worn it for the three days following the investiture. In the evening we went to the Prime Minister’s, and were shewn the Treaty with France, signed and ratified at _Finkenstein_, by BUONAPARTE, in May 1807. It was written on vellum, in a beautiful French hand, and inserted in a cover of black velvet, curiously and elegantly wrought with a spread eagle at each corner, and the initial N in the centre, in a wreath of gold embroidery. The Great Seal was pendant from it, inserted in a plain gold box. The treaty was countersigned by TALLEYRAND; and by MARET, the Plenipotentiary appointed to treat with MIRZA REZA, the Persian Plenipotentiary. I copied this document (consisting of fourteen articles) in the room, and as we went away, the Minister sent the Envoy the Commercial Treaty, which contained twenty-eight articles. The 6th was observed as a holiday among the Persians, as the commemoration of that, when HOSSEIN’S head, which had been severed from his body by YEZID at _Kerbelai_, was buried, after an interval of forty days. The affairs of Persia are conducted with a publicity which would ill accord with the diplomacy of Europe. As that stipulation, which was the surest evidence of the permanent dispositions of the Court, remained unfulfilled; the Envoy on the 9th of April dispatched, by JAFFER ALI KHAN and myself, an official note on the subject to the Ministers, which he desired them to lay before the King. We carried it to the _Der a Khonéh Shah_, or gate of the King’s palace, where there are offices for the Ministers and Secretaries to transact the business of the state; and where they assemble every day to be ready whenever the King may call them. Here we seated ourselves in the public room among all the officers of the court, waiting for MIRZA SHEFFEEA, and the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, who were then before the King. In a back room were men counting money; in that, in which we sat, were the Chief Secretary, MIRZA REZA, and ISMAEL BEG DAMGAUNEE, (the King’s favourite, and commander of the body-guard) and several others all occupied in writing, talking, or smoking. When the Ministers arrived, I delivered the public letter accompanied by a private note from the Envoy. MIRZA SHEFFEEA then unfolded the official note. There were perhaps twenty people in the court near the window where the _Mirza_ sat, who looked over the paper, and knew its contents as soon and as well as the Minister himself; and all my expostulations could not procure their removal. When the Minister had read it, he told us he would lay it before the King, and then desired us to retire to another room, where we might eat, drink, and put ourselves at our ease, until the King should send for us. We went to a room in another part of the palace, and sat there full five hours, during which time we had a visit from a son of the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, a young man who has the great post of Comptroller of the Household to the King. His business is to provide for the King’s kitchen, to see every thing before it goes to the King, and to superintend every part of the eating and drinking concerns of the establishment. Whilst we were seated with him, four round trays of lettuces, in the centre of which was a gold vase of vinegar and syrup, Were brought before him. He inspected them, tasted the syrup, and approved them fit for his Majesty’s eating. After that, two young Georgian slaves were brought in for sale, for one of whom the master asked one hundred and fifty _tomauns_. The five hours, which we passed here, were long and melancholy: the only amusements which were provided to cheer us, were a dish of lettuces, the chief carver, and some specimens of writing: on the latter indeed every one in the company, except myself, could comment at full length. The Persians are great admirers of fine writing, or, more strictly, of penmanship, to excel in which requires, according to their estimate, a practice of twenty years. At length we were summoned before the King. Preceded by the two Ministers, we passed through the same dirty door, into the same garden in which we had been at the last audience: we made as many bows as before, and took off our slippers at the same place; but water had been thrown on the ground, and this last ceremony was therefore very disagreeably contrasted with our former introduction; for instead of the fine gold-wrought carpet in the King’s room, we were now reduced to stand on a wet brick pavement by the side of a basin of water. His Majesty having first inquired after the Envoy’s health, and made some preliminary compliments, reverted to the official note which had been communicated to him that morning by his Ministers. After a short explanation, the King proceeded; and seating himself erect on his throne, in a convenient talking position, talked without intermission for a considerable time with much animation and action. We then returned to the room which we had first entered in the morning. The Prime Minister sat down close to the window to return an answer to the Envoy’s official communication. Several servants, who were at the window, read this note, word by word as it was written; so that the original and the answer were equally well known to the public. The _Mirza_ repeated to us his letter, and then sending the attendants away, desired to have some conversation with us. The discussion was unsatisfactory, and we returned. In these circumstances the decision of the Envoy’s character secured the object of his mission. The point was gained, and it was settled accordingly that he should see the King on the morrow. On the morrow accordingly, Mr. BRUCE and I, dressed in our _kalaats_, attended him to the King. His Majesty was seated in the _Koola_ built by AGA MAHOMED KHAN, in the _Gulistan_. He was on a chair, and dressed in a shawl coat. He was very gracious, told the Envoy that he had determined upon our alliance, promised that the French should be dismissed, and hoped that after the decision which he had thus made, His Brother of England would not dissent. The room was covered on all its sides with looking-glass; of this also, the dome which surmounted the whole, was composed. A handsome chandelier was suspended from the centre, and three fountains of water played beneath it. On the 15th Mr. BRUCE was sent to _Bushire_ to proceed to India. The French, in consequence of the Envoy’s successful representations, were preparing to leave _Teheran_ immediately. Their Embassador, GENERAL GARDANNE, wanted to go to Russia through Georgia; but the court of Persia justly fearing in such a quarter the influence of that resentment, (which, since the signing of our Preliminary Treaty the French had not scrupled to express) refused the permission; and the King ordered his son, the Prince Governor of _Aderbigian_, to give the French mission an escort of one hundred men, _by the way of Arz-roum_, and on no account to permit any deviation from that route. We went before the King; His Majesty’s conversation was quite enlivening. He swore that it was by Him that BUONAPARTE was made the man that he is, and that in the course of the next year he would be destroyed. We received His Majesty’s letter to the King of England. It was richly gilt and ornamented with flowers. The seal was on a separate piece of paper, and placed at the foot of the letter; according to an old Persian etiquette, when the King addresses an equal: when He writes to an inferior, the seal is affixed to the top. In composition, Persian critics pronounced this letter perfect; the Chief Secretary had been employed in it several days; and that to the Minister for Foreign Affairs was intended to be equally fine, and indeed to comprehend all the politics of the world within its pages. Under these circumstances, on the night of the 23d, a letter arrived from the Governor-General in India, of which it might be improper to disclose the contents, further than to remark, that they placed His Majesty’s Envoy Extraordinary in a situation of peculiar embarrassment, from which nothing but the most friendly disposition in the Persian court could have relieved him. It is due to the King of Persia himself to add, that He condescended to treat Sir HARFORD JONES on this occasion with the most gratifying evidences of his protection and individual favour: and His Ministers united in displaying the greatest personal kindness towards us. Throughout the whole management of a new and very delicate situation, their proceedings were so plain, so upright, and so cheering; so eager to shew respect and confidence to the Envoy, that we regarded them with the liveliest gratitude; and felt relieved by finding among strangers all the heart and principle of countrymen and brothers. The French Embassador was already dismissed; and in a few days the King sent an order to the remainder of the legation to quit _Teheran_ immediately. The people were then as inveterate against the French as they had before been disposed to court them. When Messrs. JOUANNIN and NERCIAT prepared to obey this order, and were leaving the city, the mule-drivers (hired by the King for the conveyance of their baggage, and sent forwards in the usual form) stopped at the gate, and cutting the lading from their beasts, threw every thing upon the ground, and ran off. One of the Frenchmen struck a mule-driver in the breast with his dagger. On the 29th MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, brother-in-law to the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, and nephew to the late Prime Minister HAJEE IBRAHIM, was appointed as Envoy Extraordinary from the King of Persia to accompany me to England. The particulars of his history, which, I learned on good authority, may afford some lights on the internal administration of his country, and will at least be acceptable to those who were interested by his appearance at the Court of London. MIRZA ABUL HASSAN was born at _Shiraz_ in the year of the _Hejera_ 1190, or 1776 of the Christian Æra. He was the second son of MIRZA MAHOMED ALI, a man famous in Persia as an accomplished scholar, and who was one of the Chief Secretaries and _Mirzas_ of the celebrated NADIR SHAH. His father’s services had nearly been requited by an ignominious and cruel death, when the hand of Providence interposed for his safety, to strike with more severity the head of his atrocious master. NADIR SHAH, in one of those paroxysms of cruelty so common to him during the latter years of his life, ordered that MIRZA MAHOMED ALI should be burnt alive, together with two Hindoos, who also had incurred his displeasure. The unfortunate _Mirza_, on hearing his sentence, remonstrated with the tyrant, entreating him that he might at least be permitted to die alone; and that his last moments might not be polluted by the society of men, who were of a different faith from his own, and on whom he had been taught to look with a religious abhorrence. To this the _Shah_ consented, remitting his death until the next morning, whilst the Hindoos suffered in that same hour. That very night NADIR SHAH was assassinated in his tent, and MIRZA MAHOMED ALI was saved. The family of MIRZA ABUL HASSAN rose to its greatest power during the reign of AGA MOHAMED SHAH, predecessor to the present King. The _Mirza’s_ father died in the service of KERIM KHAN; his uncle HAJEE IBRAHIM KHAN (uncle by his mother’s side) attained the post of Prime Vizier, whilst himself and the other branches of his family enjoyed the greatest share in the administration of the affairs of the state. It was somewhat before the death of AGA MOHAMED SHAH, that HAJEE IBRAHIM bestowed his daughter in marriage on his nephew, after a long and singular courtship. A sister of his wife’s is married to MAHOMED TAKI MIRZA, one of the King’s sons; and a second to the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, the second _Vizier_. The family, however, was not always prosperous; after some time the King ordered HAJEE IBRAHIM to be put to death, his relations to be seized, his wives to be sold, and his property to be confiscated. His nephews of course partook of the disaster: one was deprived of his sight, and remains to this day at _Shiraz_; the youngest, then twenty years of age, died under the bastinado; and the second, MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, who was then the Governor of _Shooster_, was dragged to the capital as a prisoner. The circumstances of his seizure and escape from death are better described in his own words. He told me, “I was asleep when the King’s officers entered into my room: they seized me, stripped me of my clothes, and, tying my hands behind my back, dragged me to _Koom_, where the King then was; treating me during the march with all the rigour and intemperance that generally befals a man in disgrace. The moment I reached _Koom_, the King pronounced the order for my execution: I was already on my knees, my neck was made bare, and the executioner had unsheathed his sword to sever my head from my body, when the hand of the Almighty interposed, and a messenger in great haste announced my reprieve. I was indebted for my life to a man who had known me from my boyhood, and who had long cherished me as his son. This worthy man, by name MIRZA REZA KOULI, the moment he heard the sentence of death passed upon me, threw himself at the feet of the King, and, pleading my youth and inoffensiveness, entreated that I might be pardoned. The King yielded to his entreaties; my pardon was announced; and I still live to praise the Almighty for his great goodness and commiseration towards me.” After his providential escape MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, (fearing that the King might repent of his lenity towards him) fled from his country, although he had received his Majesty’s order to go to _Shiraz_, and to remain there: he left Persia with the determination of never more returning, until the disgraces of his family had been obliterated, and until the wrath of the King against him had entirely subsided. He fled first to _Shooster_, the city in which he had so recently been all-powerful; and there he experienced the hospitality for which the Arabs are so justly renowned. As his administration had been lenient and temperate he found a host of friends ready to relieve him; and on quitting _Shooster_, miserable and destitute of even the common necessaries of life, the inhabitants came to him in a crowd and forced seven thousand piastres upon him. From _Shooster_ he went to _Bussora_, he then crossed through the heart of Arabia, frequently obliged to proceed on foot, for want of an animal to carry him, until he reached _Mecca_. On this journey he visited _Deriyéh_, the capital of ABDUL ASSIZ, the then chief of the _Wahabees_. From _Mecca_ he went to _Medina_; and having performed all the devotions of a pilgrim he returned to _Bussora_. At _Bussora_ he learnt that the King was still inveterate against his family; and, finding an English ship on the point of sailing for India, he embarked on board of her, and shortly after reached _Calcutta_, at the time when the Marquis WELLESLEY was Governor-General of India. From _Calcutta_ he went to _Moorshedabad_, then to _Hyderabad_, _Poonah_, and _Bombay_; having remained altogether about two years and a half in India. At _Bombay_ he received a _firman_ from the King to return to Persia; by which he was assured of the King’s forgiveness, and of his having been received into favour. He obeyed the _firman_, and ever since has enjoyed the royal protection. He has not, indeed, occupied any specific post under government, but has been the _Homme d’Affaires_ to his brother-in-law the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, second _Vizier_ and Lord Treasurer, by which means he has been continually in active and useful life, until he was nominated the King of Persia’s Envoy Extraordinary to the Court of England. CHAP. XIII. TEHERAN. =I.= TEHERAN--THE KING’S HAREM--FAMILY--PALACE OF THE TAKHT-A-CADJAR--PRODUCTIONS OF PERSIA--MANUFACTURES--CLIMATE OF TEHERAN--UNHEALTHINESS--FAITH IN HAFIZ--PERSIAN MEDICINE--SUPERSTITIONS--ENVIRONS OF TEHERAN--MOUNTAIN DEMAWEND--RUINS OF REY--ANCIENT PERSIA--GUEBRES.--=II.= RANKS IN PERSIA--GOVERNMENT--REVENUE--LANDED PROPERTY--ROYAL TREASURE--COINAGE--ESTABLISHMENTS OF THE CROWN--POPULATION OF PERSIA--TRIBES--MILITARY SERVICE--BODY-GUARDS--GUARDS OF THE CITY--PERSIAN DRESSES--CHARACTER. _=TEHERAN=_, the present capital of Persia, is situated, as I ascertained by a meridional observation, in lat. 35°. 40´. It is in circumference between four and a half and five miles, if we might judge from the length of our ride round the walls, which indeed occupied an hour and a half: but from this we must deduct something for the deviations necessary from the intervention of the gardens, and the slaughter-houses. There are six gates, inlaid with coloured bricks and with figures of tigers and other beasts in rude mosaic: their entrance is lofty and domed; and they are certainly better than those that we had then seen in any of the fortified places of Persia. To the N. W. are separate towers. We saw two pieces of artillery, one apparently a mortar, the other a long gun. The ditch in some parts had fallen in, and was there supported by brick work. The town itself is about the size of _Shiraz_; but it has not so many public edifices: and, as it is built of bricks baked in the sun, the whole has a mud-like appearance. Of the mosques, the principal is the _Mesjid Shah_, a structure not yet finished. There are six others, small and insignificant; and three or four _medressés_ or colleges. There are said to be one hundred and fifty _caravanserais_, and one hundred and fifty _hummums_ or baths. There are two _maidans_; one in the town, the other within the _ark_, a square fortified palace, which contains all the establishments of the King, is surrounded by a wall and ditch, and is entered by two gates. The _Harem_ is most numerous, and contains a female establishment as extensive as the public household. All the officers of the King’s court are there represented by females. There are women _feroshes_, and there is a woman _ferosh bashee_; women _chatters_, and a woman _chatter bashee_; there is a woman _arz beggee_, and a woman _ish agassi_; in short, there is a female duplicate for every male officer; and the King’s service in the interior of the _harem_ is carried on with the same etiquette and regularity, as the exterior economy of his state. The women of the _harem_, who are educated to administer to the pleasures of the King by singing and dancing, are instructed by the best masters that the country can supply. An Armenian at _Shiraz_ was unfortunately renowned for performing excellently on the _kamouncha_. The fame of his skill reached the Kings ears, and he was immediately ordered up to court on the charge of being the best _kamouncha_ player in his Majesty’s dominions. The poor man, who had a wife and family and commercial concerns at _Shiraz_, was during our stay detained at _Teheran_ expressly to teach the King’s women the art of playing on the _kamouncha_. The King’s family consists of sixty-five sons. As they make no account of females, it is not known how many daughters he may have; although he is said to have an equal number of both sexes. It sometimes happens, that many of his women are delivered on the same night, and (if we might give credit to a Persian) one of these happy coincidences occurred during our abode in the capital, when in one night six of his women were brought to bed, four of sons and two of daughters. The _Ameen-ed-Doulah_ had one, indeed, of the babes at his house; and a present was sent for it from _Ispahan_, composed of four mules laden with all sorts of rich clothes. The _Tahkt-a-Cadjar_ is a pleasure-house built by the present King, about two miles to the N. E. of _Teheran_. At a distance it presents a grand elevation, apparently of several stories; but these, on a nearer view, are the fronts of successive terraces. The entrance is through an indifferent gate, at the top of which is a summer-house. It leads into a spacious enclosure: in the middle is the principal walk, bounded on each side by some young cypress and poplar trees, and intersected at right angles in the centre by a stone channel, which conducts a stream at several intervals to small cascades. The building which stands on the first terrace is in form octagonal, crowned by a small flat roofed elevation. It is open by arches on all its sides, and its raised ceiling is supported by pillars. Its interior is arranged in a variety of water-channels, and through the centre passes the principal stream, which runs through the whole building and grounds. This little pleasure-house, though built of coarse materials and but rudely furnished, is erected on an excellent model, and is admirably calculated for the heats of the summer. Under it are subterraneous chambers. Proceeding further on another terrace is a grand pleasure-house, constructed on a less perfect principle than that of the first, though still sufficiently adapted for a summer retreat. Through this also water is introduced from a terrace above. Before this place is a very extensive square of water, in which, as we were told, there were fish; we saw none, but the water itself is most luxuriously clear and refreshing. From this we ascended up two terraces much more elevated than the first; on these there were only small reservoirs, from which the water was continually falling into the basins on the successive descents, at the height perhaps of twenty feet between each terrace. [Illustration: _Takht-a-Cadjar._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] At length we entered the main body of the building, which, like all other Persian houses, consists of a large square court lined on all sides with rooms of various dimensions and uses. The choicest apartment of the whole is a small one, placed in the very summit of the building, where every species of native workmanship in painting, glazing, and Mosaic, has been collected. We found here portraits of women, Europeans as well as Persians. The glass is beautifully painted, and the doors are prettily worked and inlaid with poetical quotations carved in ivory. From this there is a delightful view of the town and country. In the other rooms below, there are several pictures of the King and his favourites; one of the subjects is singular, as it represents His Majesty in the costume of a sick man. The whole of this place is of brick, except the exterior wall, which is mud, flanked however by brick turrets. It is much inferior in workmanship to any of the brick buildings either of KERIM KHAN, or of the _Seffis_. The soil on which it is erected is indeed ill-adapted to the purpose, as it is salt; and the salt oozes out through the walls, and materially undermines their solidity. The King is building another summer residence, half a mile from the town, called the _Negaristan_. One house is finished, consisting however of only an arched room, in which are various channels for water and playing fountains. In the garden we found water cresses, of the eatableness of which the Persians appeared totally ignorant. The climate of _Teheran_ is variable, in consequence of its situation at the foot of high mountains, which on the other side are backed by such a sea as the _Caspian_. For the earlier part of our stay it was moderate; till the 10th of March the thermometer, which was suspended near an open window in a room unexposed to the sun, was at 51° Fahrenheit. On the 10th, throughout the whole day, there was much snow; indeed on the following morning, when the thermometer was at 47°, the heat of the sun produced a partial thaw, which was succeeded by a frost so sharp, that before the close of the day, an officer of the suite, who weighed fourteen stone, was able to walk and slide upon a square reservoir before the _Dewan Khonéh_, even though the surface had been already broken at one corner. The fall of snow was a seasonable supply of moisture to the country, which had long been without any. On the new moon of March (the 15th of the month) the rain begun, and for some days continued regularly, clearing up about four or five hours before sun-set, and gathering again at night. From the height of the walls which surrounded us, and the want of weathercocks or chimnies, I could collect but imperfectly the quarter of the wind; but, as far as I could judge, it was generally from the S. E. There is a wind sometimes rushing from the _Albores_ on the N. of the bleakness of which the natives speak with dread. From the 23d March (the first quarter of the moon) we had the true ethereal mildness of spring, with light breezes from the westward in the evening. Vegetation was making rapid advances: the rose-trees in the court of our house were already green, and the _chenars_ had just begun to bud. The snow on the _Albores_ was diminishing fast; and the weather generally, which sometimes lowered and then brightened up, was that of an English spring. The thermometer was about 61° to 64°, but in the middle of the day it reached 75°, and the heat in the close streets of the town was very sensible. In the first week of April the mornings were beautiful; but about noon a hot wind set in from the S. E. which increased towards the evening, and died away at night. About the second week the weather became cooler. Every thing was in high foliage, and all our horses were at grass. The heat was then becoming great: on the 19th the thermometer was at 82° in the shade, and at night we had thunder and lightning with a thick haze over the _Albores_. On the 21st the temperature, which in the interval had been at 86°, sunk to 67°. On the night of the 20th there had been a storm; and on the dawn of day we discovered that the _Albores_, which before had lost their snow, were again covered. These transitions are common to situations like that of _Teheran_. The rain refreshed the air, and gave strength to the grass, which in the more immediate neighbourhood of the town requires much moisture to enable it to pierce the hardness of the soil. From this time the days continued cool, with rain and frequent storms; and the evenings became almost piercing; but the showers gave a new force to vegetation. _Teheran_ is considered an unwholesome situation. The town is low and built on a salt, moist soil. In the summer the heats are said to be so insufferable, that all those who are able (all perhaps except a few old women) quit the town and live in tents nearer the foot of the _Albores_, where it is comparatively cool. We had several illnesses in our family, which we attributed to the water. The symptoms were an obstinate constipation with great gripings, a disorder very common in the place. Our head Persian writer was long laid up with a fever, which brought him to the point of death. He was bled copiously six times in six days. These people put no faith in our medicines, and therefore he would not allow the Physician of the Mission to visit him. At length however he was persuaded by a “_fall_” which he took in HAFIZ, and which pointed out, that he should “trust in the stranger.” The superstitious faith with which the Persians observe these _falls_ is inconceivable: the oracle consists in taking the book of HAFIZ, wherever it may chance to open, and reading the passage on which the eyes first happen to alight. That, by which the attention is thus attracted, is the prediction. Before they open the book, they make certain invocations to God. Dr. JUKES accordingly prescribed; but his patient I believe disregarded his advice; and we were despairing about him, when we were told that the King’s physician had been with him, and had given him a water-melon to eat, and that the sick man was now recovering. The theory of Persian medicine is somewhat that of GALEN: they attribute all sickness to one of two causes, heat or cold. If the patient is supposed to suffer from much heat, they bleed him beyond measure; if from cold, they give him cathartics in the same proportion. In the belief of Persia there is another and a simpler remedy for malady. Nor perhaps is the credulity confined to Persia: there is I suspect a more general superstition, that to relieve disease or accident, the patient has only to deposit a rag on certain bushes, and from the same spot to take another which has been previously left from the same motive by a former sufferer. In the time of the SEFFIS there was also another superstition in Persia, which perhaps is not wholly extinct at this day. Every one who has read CHARDIN, will remember the history of the coronation of SHAH SULEYMAN, who, because his original name was considered unlucky, was renamed and recrowned. The fruits which were in season at _Teheran_ in the month of March, and which were served to us every day at dinner, were pomegranates, apples, pears, melons, limes, and oranges. The pomegranates came from _Mazanderan_, and were really here a luscious fruit, much superior to any that I have seen in Turkey. They were generally twelve inches in circumference. The vegetables were carrots, turnips, spinach and beet-root. Hives are kept all over the country, and we had at _Teheran_ the finest honey that I ever ate, though that of _Shiraz_ is reckoned better, and that of _Kauzeroon_ (which the bees cull from the orange-groves) is considered as still superior. Our mutton was excellent, and very cheap; for a sheep costs two piastres only. The beef was sometimes good; but as their meat is not deemed desirable in Persia, oxen are not kept or fattened for the purposes of the table. We eat a hare which had been caught by a man in the plain, and which we afterwards coursed with our greyhounds. The Persians regard this flesh as unclean in opposition to the Turks, who eat it without scruple. In April we got delicious herrings from the _Caspian_, which appears the proper sea for them. They are much larger than those which we have on the English coasts, and are called by the Persians the _shah mahee_, “king of fishes.” In the end of that month we received a fresh salmon of twenty-five pounds from the same sea also, as a present from the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_. The Persians call it _kizzel_ or golden: it was to the palate as good as any English salmon, though with some of us it did not agree quite so well. From the account which the Prime Minister gave us of a stone which is burnt in _Mazanderan_, there must be coals of the finest kind in that province. Among the products of Persia are gum tragacanth, assafœtida, yellow berries, _henna_ (coarser than that of Egypt,) madder roots, which grow wild upon the mountains, and are brought down for sale by the _Eelauts_ or wandering tribes; the Hindoos only export it as returns. Indigo is cultivated for the dying of linen and of beards, and grows about _Shooster Desfoul_, near _Kherat_, and in the _Laristan_. It is not so fine as the indigo from India, which indeed is a great article of the import trade of Persia. They use the leaf only for their beards. There is no cochineal. Cotton is produced enough for the interior consumption of the country. The best manufacture which they make is a cotton cloth, called the _kaduck_; of this there is an exportation to Turkey. The finest is manufactured at _Ispahan_. The great and richest produce is the silk of _Ghilan_ and _Mazanderan_. The manufacturing towns of Persia are _Yezd_, silken stuffs, stuffs of silk and cotton; _Kashan_, silks and copper ware; _Koom_, earthenware; _Resht_, silks, coarse woollen cloths of which the _tekmis_ are made; _Shiraz_, swords, fire-arms, and glass-ware; _Ispahan_, brocades, cotton clothes; _Kermanshah_, arms; _Kerman_, shawls. 4th of May. The most beautiful part of the plain about _Teheran_ is that to the S. E. The verdure, when I left the country, was most luxuriant; and the whole animated by peasantry and their cattle. Yet though the spring was thus far advanced, the mountain _Demawend_ (whenever the clouds, which almost always concealed it, rolled away) appeared more than ever covered with snow. The direct distance to it from _Teheran_ is about forty miles; to the base of the first mountain is reckoned fourteen miles. We had seen it when it was at least one hundred and fifty miles from us; and were told indeed, as I have remarked before, that it might be seen from the top of the minaret of the _Mesjid Shah_, at _Ispahan_, a distance of two hundred and forty miles. It is visible from _Resht_, and generally along all the south of the _Caspian_ sea; and it is therefore very credible that that sea, which is not more than forty miles from the base, may be seen from the summit, of _Demawend_. But, according to some accounts, no one ever gained the top; according to others, there is a horse-road through the whole ascent. I was told at _Tabriz_, by a man of _Mazanderan_, that he himself knew several who had reached the summit; and, indeed, that _Derveishes_, led by the information of their books, resorted thither from India to cull a certain plant convertible into gold, and tinging with a golden hue the teeth of the sheep that feed upon the mountain. At the foot of the _Albores_ are many villages and pleasure-houses, and much cultivation; all the rest of the country in that direction is a blank with scarcely a shrub. On the east side of the plain of _Teheran_ there is an elevated road of a fine bottom running N. and S. which seems to have been connected with the city of _Rey_. On the 4th of March we visited the ruins of _Rey_. They are situated about five miles in a south direction from _Teheran_, and extend as far as the eye can reach over the plain, E. and W. To the E. at the foot of a projecting range, which branches from the _Albores_, are the remains of the citadel; consisting of walls and turrets, built of mud bricks, which in most places are distinguished with difficulty from mounds of earth. The mass of the height, on which it is erected, seems rather of earth than of rock. Near the foot of the citadel stands a tower, which by our hasty calculation may be about fifty feet in height. It is built of a very fine species of brick, cemented by mortar. Its exterior is arranged in twenty-four triangular compartments, the base of each being about five feet, giving a circumference of one hundred and twenty feet. On the summit, between two rows of ornaments in brick, is an inscription in the _Cuffick_ character; the letters of which are formed by small inlaid bricks. The interior was so full of straw and other rubbish, that we could not explore it; the door is to the eastward. The style of building resembles much that of the _Seffis_; with this difference, that the bricks are put together with a greater portion of mortar, and are of a rather darker colour. About three miles to the Southward on an insulated hill are other buildings, and a turret of the same style as the one just described; and between both is a round tower of stone, with a _Cuffick_ inscription in brick-work. In this turret we observed through a window, that there was a winding staircase in the wall, but we could not find the entrance to it. Still further on, on the brow of a hill close under the mountain, is a building, partly of ancient and partly of modern construction; this is the tomb of one of the wives of IMAUM HOSSEIN. It is composed of two courts and two inner rooms; three old women officiate here over the remains of their female saint. There is much running water all around; part issues from a spring, which gushes out from under a rock. The mountains are arid, with surfaces indicating much mineral below. _Rey_ is the _Rhages_ of TOBIT, and is the city where ALEXANDER rested five days in his pursuit after DARIUS; after he had made a march of _eleven_ days from _Ecbatana_ or _Hamadan_. ARRIAN calls this city one day’s journey from the _Caspian Streights_. _Rey_ was reduced by HUBBE, the general of JENGHIZ KHAN; and from its scattered population arose the town of _Teheran_. Near the ruins is still a village called _Shah Abdul Azeem_, with a _Zeeauret_ or place of worship. Of ancient Persia I learned little. _Currimabad_ is, perhaps, the _Corbiana_ of geography. Near _Shiraz_ is a _Bolouk_ of eighteen villages, called _Fasa_, from its chief place, which itself is about five or six _menzils_ or thirty-five _fursungs_ from _Shiraz_, and about nineteen from _Persepolis_. From _Fasa_ to _Firouzabad_ is four _menzils_; perhaps twenty _fursungs_. The ruins at both, and indeed in the line between them are great. A native of _Fasa_, whom I questioned on the subject, told me that the remains at his city were considered more wonderful than any thing at _Persepolis_, except the columns. There are great stones with _Persepolitan_ inscriptions. There is a large mound of earth, which, according to the people of his country, was transported by Turks from Turkish territory. The _thaubet_ or government of this place is the most lucrative and respectable about the region. JAFFIER ALI, Resident for the English nation at _Shiraz_, informed me that the number of the _Guebres_ (worshippers of fire) decrease annually in Persia. They are so reviled and distressed by the government that either they become converts to Mahomedanism, or emigrate to their brethren in India. Their _Atech-gau_, or chief fire-temple, a large excavation in the ground, in which the sacred element was preserved, was at _Firouzabad_, seventeen _fursungs_ South East of _Shiraz_. The orifice is now closed; and the fire indeed, according to a Mahomedan doctor, was extinguished on the day of the birth of his prophet. The remains at _Firouzabad_ attest the former importance of that city. _Yezd_ is now the great seat of the _Guebres_ and of their religion; but they are more poor and more contemned in Persia, than the most miserable of the Jews in Turkey. The works of ZOROASTER were collected by his disciple JAMAZ, into a book thence called the _Jamaz Namah_, which is now most scarce. II. The only hereditary title in Persia is _Mirza_ or _Meerza_. The derivation of which word is from _Emir_ (_Ameer_ a nobleman) and _Zadé_ a son, &c. This species of nobility is traced very far, and is not creative. The title descends to all the sons of the family, without exception. In the Royal family it is placed after the name instead of before it, thus, ABBAS MIRZA and HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA. _Mirza_ is a civil title, and _Khan_ is a military one. The title of _Khan_ is creative, but not hereditary: the sons of _Khans_ are called _Aga_ or Esquire, which is a _Tartar_ title, and more common to Turkey than to Persia. The creation of _Khan_ is attended with few ceremonies, and those very simple. The King sends a _kalaat_ or dress of honour to the person so created, and on his investiture the King gives him a _firman_ announcing to all persons that the bearer of it is forthwith a _Khan_; and this _firman_ is worn three days on the top of the turban. Any person who derides this patent or who refuses to call the bearer of it by his title, is liable to the penalty of death. The title of _Mirza_ does not hinder the possessor from receiving that of _Khan_ also; and then the name runs, for example, thus, MIRZA HOSSEIN ALI KHAN. The different ranks of civil governors are--1st. The _Beglerbeg_, who generally resides in the large cities, and controuls the province around: 2d. The _Hakim_; and 3d. the _Thaubet_, who severally govern a city or a town: 4th. The _Kelounter_, who, besides the real governor, resides in every city, town and village, and superintends the collection of the tribute: 5th. The _Ket Khoda_, who is the chief of a village: 6th. The _Pak-kar_, who is servant or _Hommes d’Affaires_ to the _Ket Khoda_, and who transacts the business with the _Rayat_ or peasant. The _Pak-kar_ accounts with the _Ket Khoda_, and he again with the _Kelounter_. The _Kelounter_ is a man of consequence wherever he presides; he is an officer of the crown, and once a-year appears before the Royal presence, an honour which is not permitted to the _Ket Khoda_. He also receives wages from the King’s treasury, which the _Ket Khoda_ does not. The _Kelounter_ is the medium through which the wishes and wants of the people are made known to the King: he is their chief and representative on all occasions, and brings forward the complaints of the _Rayats_, whenever they feel oppressed. He also knows the riches of every _Rayat_, and his means of rendering the annual tribute: he therefore regulates the quota that every man must pay; and if his seal be not affixed to the documents which the _Rayat_ brings forward in the time of the levy, the assessment is not valid, and the sum cannot be received. The three principal branches of the tribute which the people pay are 1st. _Maleeat_; 2d. _Sader_; and 3d. _Peish-Kesh_. The _Maleeat_ is the hereditary original right of the crown, and consists in produce and money. The King gets in kind one-fifth of the produce of the land, i. e. of wheat, barley, silk, tobacco, indigo, &c. and articles of that description: and one-fifth in money of all the vegetables, fruit, and lesser produce of the earth, which the proprietor may sell. Though the proportion be paid in kind, yet it is assessed, not by the actual levy of every fifth sheaf, &c. but by an indirect criterion of produce, deduced from the number of oxen kept by the landholder; and this part of the revenue is collected accordingly by a corresponding rate imposed upon the growth of the land. Thus the possessor of twelve oxen is supposed to possess also an extent of land, the cultivation of which may require that number, and is therefore assessed to pay a quantity of corn proportioned to the assumed amount of his gross receipt. The King collects one-fifth also in money of all the vegetables, fruits, and lesser produce of the earth, which the proprietor may sell. Formerly these tributes, either in kind or in money, were only one-tenth: but their amount has been doubled by the present King. The inhabitants of towns pay according to an assessment imposed on the place, and founded on the number of houses which it may contain, and not according to their individual means. And this levy on any particular town is but a part only of that charged on the district which contains it; thus _Ispahan_, which for instance has _Koom_ and _Kashan_ within its administration, is required to furnish a specified sum, of which it pays part, and divides the rest among the secondrate towns, which again subdivide their own proportions among the villages around; and collect, each in their gradations, the appointed amount of the tribute, and transfer the whole to the Royal treasury. The government requires that the collector of any given district should supply a stated sum, but it permits him likewise to add, as his own profit, whatever he can further exact. Most of these offices are bought and sold. By the amount therefore of the purchase is regulated the rate of oppression. The scale descends; every minor agent is expected to accomplish an appointed task; but is left to choose his own means, and to have no other controul but his own conscience. This is the practice, whatever may be the theory of the administration of the revenue. The _Sader_ is an arbitrary tax, and is the most grievous to the _Rayat_. It admits every species of extortion, and renders the situation of the peasant extremely precarious. This impost is levied on particular occasions, such as the passage of any great man through the country, the local expences of a district, or on other opportunities which are continually recurring; so that the _Rayat_ is never certain of a respite. It is assessed in the same manner upon the number of oxen which he may keep. Thus, if sheep are wanted, he who keeps one ox is obliged to give a sheep, and so on with every other demand which may be made. The _Peish-Kesh_. This is called indeed a voluntary gift, but it must be offered every year at the festival of the _Norooz_; and like the regular taxes, is required in the same proportion, according to the means of the people. By these taxations the condition of the cultivators is rendered more particularly wretched. On the contrary, the merchants are less oppressed than any class in Persia. The shop-keeper indeed (_dukiandar_) pays tribute; but the proper merchant, (_sodager_) a distinct order, pays nothing at all to the state, except the duties of the customs, which are comparatively very small, being about one-tenth on the imports; and as they are not affected by any other imposition, they are the most wealthy part of the community. Landed property in Persia is hereditary, and is known by the name of _waky_. But on the delinquency of its proprietor, it may be seized by the King, and is then called _Zapté Shah_. It remains annexed to the crown, until the family are again restored, when the estate, according to the pleasure of the Sovereign, may be returned. The King, while he retains such property, generally allows a portion of its produce to the relatives of the former owner, and this allowance is called _Moustemeree_. Besides the _Zapté Shah_ there are the _Halissé_ or crown lands, that from time immemorial have belonged to the Kings of Persia. They are cultivated by tenants, who defray all the expences, cattle, implements of agriculture, &c. and divide the net profits with the King. At the death of KERIM KHAN, the Royal treasury was nearly empty; but at the death of the late King AGA MAHOMED KHAN, it is said to have contained fifteen _crore_ of _tomauns_. Since the times of KERIM KHAN the value of bullion has increased greatly; the _miscal_ of gold was then five piastres, it is now eight and a half; that of silver was three hundred _dinars_, it is now five hundred; and every year the price increases in some small degree. Provisions and labour have of course corresponded in proportion. There is no prohibition against the melting, or the exportation of the precious metals. Every one may convert his own bullion into any use. If he wishes to have his gold coined, he can send it to the mint to be struck into any piece of money; paying the value of a pea’s weight of gold for every _tomaun_. The right of coinage is secured to particular towns by _firmans_ from the King. Most of the gold is clipped, as every Jew pares a little off. The shopkeepers also contrive to rub the coin on a black stone to try the purity of the metal; by this operation small particles remain on the stone, which are extracted with care, and reserved till a sufficient quantity for a coin be collected. Most of the silver in circulation comes originally from a very fine silver mine in _Bokhara_. There is another also in _Aderbigian_, and another near _Shiraz_, the latter of which is neglected, as the expences have been found to exceed the produce. The King’s treasure is reported, probably with much truth, to be immense. The Persians indeed affirm, that all the money, which is received into the Royal coffers, remains there and never again gets into circulation. In a country so poor as Persia, in which there are so few people of any capital, the absorption of a million or a much smaller sum would be immediately felt. If therefore all the sums, which are annually poured into the King’s treasure, had remained a dead stock in his hands, there would not now have been a single piece of gold in Persia. There is no corresponding influx of bullion. Persia exports yearly three hundred and fifty thousand _tomauns_ in specie to India; to meet this drain there is indeed an inadequate supply from their trade with Russia, which purchases with gold all the silk of _Ghilan_; and again with Turkey, which pays in gold for all the shawls and the little silk which it exports from Persia. Yet it is possible that the King may reserve two-thirds of his receipts; and expend the remainder only, perhaps half a _crore_ of _tomauns_. This supposition derives some probability, as well from the increase in the value of bullion as from the accounts of the treasures of AGA MAHOMED; and further from the common belief of Persia, that a large proportion of the regular expences of the royal establishment are defrayed by the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, from sources connected with his office and power. Thus he pays the household, and clothes the servants; he supplies a part of the _kalaats_ at the _Norooz_; he furnishes the maintenance of the King’s children, and clothes for the new-born infants, and necessaries for the mother. In Persia, when a woman is five months in her pregnancy, she provides clothes for her expected offspring: in this situation the King’s wives send to the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_ a list of all the articles which they may want; and which, frequently at a large cost, he is obliged to produce on the spot. For this purpose he keeps in his house a magazine stored with every description of dress for every age. Every year he is obliged to build new rooms in the King’s Seraglio for the women whom his Majesty may chance to add to his numbers; and for each of these rooms he provides a silver _manzal_ or fire-pan, a lamp and two candlesticks of silver, basins, ewers, dishes, plates, &c. and all of silver. To answer these immense demands, the range of his exactions may well be believed to be unbounded. The aggregate of the population of Persia is divided into tribes, part of which live in fixed habitations, and others (the larger proportion indeed, and all the Arabs) live in tents. These tribes never emigrate from their own districts, but all have their winter and summer regions; in the former pitching their tents in the plain, in the latter on the summits and declivities of their mountains. To these districts they adhere strictly, as the line of demarcation for the pasturage of their flocks has been observed from ages the most remote. Each has its records, and can trace its genealogy to the first generation. The most considerable and renowned are the _Baktiar_, that spread themselves over the province of _Irauk_; the _Failee_, that live about the mountains of _Shooster_ or _Susa_, and extend their frontiers to those of the _Baktiars_; the _Affshars_, that live near the lake of _Shahee_; the _Lacs_, that are near _Casvin_. All the tribes pay tribute. When the King calls upon them for purposes of war, all (excepting the Arabs and the _Failee_ tribe) are obliged to send a proportion of men, who are always ready at his summons. The names of every one of such men, the names of their fathers, and other particulars of their family, are all registered in the _Defter Khona_ at the seat of government; and at the feast of the _Norooz_, they attend the King to inquire whether their services for that year are required: if required, they wait the encampment of his Majesty; if not, they are permitted to return, but in either case they receive a stated pay. This is one of the oldest customs in Persia, recorded in their histories from time immemorial. Each tribe has its chief, who is always a _Khan_, and one of their own race. He generally remains with his people, and has a _Vakeel_ at the capital, who attends daily at the _Der-a-Khonéh_, and transacts all the business of his principal. He would be the Baron of feudal times, if he were not liable to lose his post at the will of the King. Mr. BRUCE informed me that there still exists in Persia an ancient custom, in cases of emergency, of requiring from every mill (the wheel of which is turned by water) a man and horse armed and accoutred for the field; and of these they reckon one hundred thousand. The reason assigned for the King’s never requiring the attendance of the _Failees_ on his military expeditions is, that in time of old (some say the reign of the famous King CAIOUM) the _Failees_ fled and lost the battle; and incurred upon themselves and their posterity this interdiction of military service for ever. The people of _Ispahan_ and of _Kashan_, who either urged or joined the flight of the _Failees_, were included in the same prohibition; and to this day bear the epithet of arrant cowards, more happy perhaps to live a quiet life at home, than to attempt to regain the reputation of brave men by fighting abroad. The supplies which are sent receive pay from the King, as well as arms and horses; and when in actual service are fed at the King’s expence. When he no longer wants them they are dismissed to their own homes. The tribes compose the whole military force of the kingdom, except the King’s body-guards, who are never disbanded, and form the standing army of the country. Each Prince Governor of the provinces has also his body-guard, which, in like manner, is never disbanded. The provinces of _Aderbigian_, _Khorassan_, _Fars_, _Kerman_, part of _Irauk_ towards _Irauk Arabi_, are all governed by the King’s sons. The Prince of _Aderbigian_, it is said, can raise from his different tribes fifty thousand horse and foot, over which the King has no direct controul; but which, in case of war, He can call into action by requiring the attendance of his son with all his forces. In the same manner the Prince Governor of _Khorassan_ can raise from his tribes twenty thousand horse and foot. The Prince of _Fars_ has likewise a similar command; but his troops have never been summoned to assist the King in his wars, as they are always left for the protection of the Southern parts of Persia. The province of _Mazanderan_ sends twenty thousand horse and foot to the King. As the _Qujars_ or _Cadjars_, the King’s own tribe, are resident in this province, He looks upon this force as his particular safeguard. This tribe is considered the most ancient and honoured in Persia: they reckon among themselves four Kings--FATH ALI SHAH, who was killed by SHAH THAMAS; HASSAN KHAN, who was killed by KERIM KHAN; AGA MAHOMED; and the present King, his nephew and successor. Of this tribe there are two races; the first is the _Yokaree Bash_, of which the King’s family and that of the mother of the Heir apparent are both sprung; the second is the _Asheea Bash_. The nobility of the King’s progeny varies much according to that of the mothers. The two great tribes are the _Baktiari_ and the _Failee_. They consist of one hundred thousand families each, which, at five persons in a family, makes two totals of five hundred thousand souls. The _Baktiars_, of all the tribes, send the most troops to the King’s service. The King’s body-guard consists of twelve thousand men, half of whom are disciplined in the European manner, and are called _Jan-baz_, in contra-distinction to those raised and disciplined by the Princes, (and particularly ABBAS MIRZA, Governor of _Aderbigian_,) who are called _Ser-baz_. “_Jan-baz_” means one who plays away his soul; “_Ser-baz_” means one who plays away his head only. The Twelve thousand who form the King’s body-guard are taken indiscriminately from the tribes, or from the population of the cities, but principally from _Mazanderan_ and the tribes connected with the King’s own race. They have their families and homes at _Teheran_, and in the neighbouring villages, and are ready at every call. They are divided into bodies of three thousand men and do duty by turns in the King’s palace, called the _Ark_. They are called _Kechekchees_ or Guards, and every such body has a _Ser Kechekchee_, or Head of the Guard, who always attends when his corps is on duty; and on the relief of the guard a _Mirza_ belonging to the corps reads over every man’s name, and in case of non-attendance the defaulter receives punishment. These _Ser Kechekchees_ are men of so much family and distinction, that one of the King’s own sons enjoys the dignity. The _Kechekchees_ are distributed in all parts of the palace, and are always seen on guard on the the towers of the _Ark_. Their watch-word is “_hazir_, or ready,” which they continually pass from one to the other. They are a distinct body from the _Kechekchees of the city_, who are solely attached to the police office, and do the duty of our watchmen, with this difference, that they have a right to ascend the tops of the houses in their midnight rounds. Besides this body-guard of twelve thousand, the King has three thousand _Goulams_ or slaves, who are horsemen and always attend him when he makes an excursion. All these people, both horse and foot, are paid, fed, clothed, armed and mounted at the King’s expence. _Goulam_ (slave) is here figuratively used to express their devotion to the King’s service; for they are not in reality entered into a state of servitude by actual purchase: on the contrary, they are particularly honoured by the King, and his own favourite ISMAEL BEG is their commander. This chief is one of those who still exercise the _noose_ with great skill; it is called _kummund_, and there are some instances of its being still used in their engagements. DRESS. The dress of the Persians is much changed since the time of CHARDIN. It never possessed the dignity and solidity of the Turkish dress, and much less now than ever. So materially indeed have their fashions altered, that in comparing with the modes of the present day, the pictures and descriptions in CHARDIN and LE BRUN, we can recognize no longer the same people. It is extraordinary that an Asiatic nation, so much charmed by show and brilliancy, (as the Persians have always been supposed to be), should have adopted for their apparel the dark and sombre colours, which are now universal among all ranks. In the reign of the _Zund_ Family indeed, light colours were much in vogue; but the present Race, perhaps from a spirit of opposition, cherish dark ones. A Persian therefore looks a most melancholy personage, and resembles much some of the Armenian Priests and Holy Men, whom I have seen in Turkey. Browns, dark olives, bottle greens, and dark blues, are the colours mostly worn. Red they dislike; and it is singular that this is a hue, which fashion seems to have discarded even in the countries far beyond the Northern and Eastern confines of Persia; for the merchants of _Bokhara_, who come down annually to _Bushire_ to buy cloths, totally disregard scarlets, and for that colour will not give any thing like the price, which they will pay for others. Although the climate requires full as much clothing as that of Turkey, I did not find in my stay among them, that the Persians clothed themselves by any means so warmly as the Turks. As the cold increases, the Turk increases the number of his pelisses, till in the progress of the winter I have frequently seen a small and puny man expand into a very robust and athletic figure: but the Persian’s wardrobe does not thus extend over him as the season advances. The following is a general catalogue of the articles of their dress:--1. The _zeer jumah_: a pair of very wide trowsers, either of red silk or blue cotton, reaching below the ancle, and fastened by a string which passes through the top, and is tied before. 2. The _peera hawn_: a shirt generally of silk, which, going over the trowsers, reaches a few inches below the hips, and is fastened by two buttons over the top of the right shoulder. It goes close round the lower part of the neck, where it is sometimes ornamented by a ribband or thin cord of silk. The opening of the shirt extends to the bottom of the ribs. 3. The _alcalock_: a tight vest, made of chintz, and quilted with cotton, which ties at the side, and reaches as low as the thin part of the calf of the leg. It has sleeves extending to the wrist, but open from the elbow. 4. The _caba_: which is a long vest descending to the ancle, but fitting tight to the body as far only as the hips: it then buttons at the side. The sleeves go over those of the _alcalock_, and from the elbow are closed by buttons only, that they may be opened thus far for the purpose of ablution, when the _namaz_ or prayer is said. There is another species of _caba_, called the _bagalee_, which crosses over the breast, and fastens all down the side by a range of buttons to the hip. This is generally made of cloth, or of shawl or cotton quilted, and, as the warmer, is most used in winter. 5. The outer coat is always made of cloth, and is worn or thrown off according to the heat of the weather. Of this dress, there are many sorts:--the _tekmeh_; which has sleeves open from the elbow, but which are yet so fashioned as to admit occasionally the lower part also of the arm. These sleeves are generally permitted to hang behind. The coat itself is quite round, buttons before, and drops like a petticoat over the shawl that goes round the waist. The _oymeh_, which is like the _tekmeh_, except that from the hips downwards, it is open at the sides. The _baroonee_, which is a loose and ample robe with proportionally ample arms, generally made of cloth and faced with velvet, and thrown negligently over the shoulders. 6. Over the _caba_, comes the _shâl kemer_, which is the bandage round the waist. This is made either of Cashmirian shawl, or of the common shawl of _Kerman_, or of English chintz, or of flowered muslin. The proper size is about eight yards long, and one broad. To this is fastened (by a string neatly tied around it) a _kunjur_, or dagger, ornamented according to the wealth of the possessor, from an enameled pummel set in precious stones, to a common handle of bone and wood. 7. Besides the outer clothes, which I have just mentioned, they have also coats trimmed with fur. Such is the _catebee_, which is an uncommonly rich dress, covering the whole of the body, with fur over the back and shoulders, fur at the cuffs, and fur inside. It is made of cloth of gold and brocades, with large ornaments of gold lace in front, and forms altogether the most dignified among the habits that I remarked in Persia. 8. They have also a short jacket, called the _coordee_, which fits close to the body, but with loose flaps as low as the commencement of the swell of the thigh. 9. The warmest of their dresses is a sheep-skin with the fur inside, and the leather part outside. It is called, from its sudorific qualities, the _hummum_ or bath, but it is more generally named the _pooshtee_ or skin. It is an ugly and unpleasant article. The better sheep-skins come from _Bokhara_, and are covered with the finest wool certainly that I ever saw. The head-dress of every Persian from the King to his lowest subject, is composed of one substance, and consists of a black cap about one foot and a half high. These caps are all jet black, and are all made of skins of the same animals. The finest are taken from the lamb, in the first moments of its birth; and they decrease in value down to the skin of the full-grown sheep, which the common _Rayat_ wears. The lamb-skins are also used to line coats, and make very comfortable pelisses. The only distinction in the head-dress of Persia, is that of a shawl wrapped round the black cap; and this distinction is confined to the King, to the Princes his sons, and to some of the nobility and great officers of state. _Cashmire_ shawls have been discouraged of late, in order to promote the domestic manufacture of brocade shawls. Like the Turks, and indeed generally like other Asiatics, the Persians are very careful in preserving warmth in the feet. In winter they wear a thick woollen sock; and in the air or in a journey, they bind their feet and legs with a long bandage of cloth, which they increase with the advance of the cold. They have three different sorts of shoes, and two sorts of boots. 1. A green slipper, with a heel about an inch and a half high, with a painted piece of bone at the top. These are worn by the higher classes, and by all before the King. 2. A flat slipper, either of red or yellow leather, with a little iron shoe under the heel, and with a piece of bone over that shoe, on which, as in the first instance, the heel rests. 3. A stout shoe (with a flat sole, turning up at the toe) which covers the whole foot, and is made either of leather, or of thick-quilted cotton. It is worn by the peasants, and by the _chatters_, or walking footmen. The boots are, 1. a very large pair with high heels, turned up at the toe, made generally of Russia leather, and covering the leg. 2. A smaller and tighter kind, buttoning at the side, and reaching only to the calf of the leg. When the Persians ride, they put on a loose trowser of cloth, called _shalwar_, into which they insert the skirts of the _alkalock_, as well as the silken trowsers; so that the whole looks like an inflated bladder. The _shalwar_ is very useful in carrying light baggage, as handkerchiefs, small books, &c. &c. not unfrequently a slight meal. The Persians shave all the head except a tuft of hair just on the crown, and two locks behind the ears: but they suffer their beards to grow, and to a much larger size than the Turks, and to spread more about the ears and temples. They almost universally dye them black, by an operation not very pleasant, and necessary to be repeated generally once a fortnight. It is always performed in the hot-bath, where the hair being well saturated takes the colour better. A thick paste of _Khenna_ is first made, which is largely plastered over the beard, and which after remaining an hour is all completely washed off, and leaves the hair of a very strong orange colour, bordering upon that of brick-dust. After this, as thick a paste is made of the leaf of the indigo, (which previously has been pounded to a fine powder), and of this also a deep layer is put upon the beard; but this second process, to be taken well, requires two full hours. During all this operation, the patient lies quietly flat upon his back; whilst the dye (more particularly the indigo, which is a great astringent) contracts the features of his face in a very mournful manner, and causes all the lower part of the visage to smart and burn. When the indigo is at last washed off, the beard is of a very dark bottle green, and becomes a jet black only when it has met the air for twenty-four hours. Some, indeed, are content with the _Khenna_, or orange colour; others, more fastidious, prefer a beard quite blue. The people of _Bokhara_ are famous for their blue beards. It is inconceivable how careful the Persians are of this ornament: all the young men sigh for it, and grease their chins to hasten the growth of the hairs; because, until they have there a respectable covering, they are supposed not fit to enjoy any place of trust. Another singular custom is that of dying the hands and feet: this is done by the abovementioned _Khenna_, which is generally put over every part of the hands and nails as far as the wrist, and on the soles of the feet, the toes, and nails. * * * * * From the comparative shortness of my stay in Persia, I cannot presume to delineate the national character. I shall therefore spare the reader any general observations which can be rendered of decisive authority only by the experience of years, and an intimate acquaintance with the literature and amusements, as well as with the administration of a country. The simple incidents of my journal, as they occur, may perhaps afford to every reader better materials for the illustration of the manners and society and government of Persia, than any systematic conclusions which I might have been able to extract from the same scenes and subjects. [Illustration: _ROUTE_ _From_ =TEHERAN=, _the_ Northern _Capital of_ =PERSIA=, _To_ =AMASIA=, _in the Road to_ =CONSTANTINOPLE=, in 1809. Corrected, _in different Points, by reference to Geographical Positions, previously ascertained, or approximated,_ _By_ James Morier. With _Additional Particulars by_ Major Rennell.] CHAP. XIV. TEHERAN TO TABRIZ. DEPARTURE FROM TEHERAN--PLAIN--TUMULI--CASVIN--SULTANIEH; TOMB OF SULTAN MAHOMED KHODABENDEH; CITADEL: NEW TOWN OF SULTANABAD--MARMOTS--KING’S PLEASURE-HOUSE--ZENGAN--ELAUTS--INSCRIPTION AT ARMAGHANÉH--RIVER KIZZIL OZAN--MIAUNÉH--DISPUTE--ESTABLISHMENT OF COURIERS--CARAVANSERAI--WOMEN IN PERSIA. The 7th of May 1809, which (as being the festival of _Omar-Coushen_, or the killing of OMAR) was considered a very lucky day, was at length fixed for our departure. MIRZA ABUL HASSAN (the Persian Envoy Extraordinary) and I sent on our baggage in the morning to _Imaum Reza_, about three miles from the city, and followed ourselves at five o’clock in the evening. I was accompanied by my best of friends, Sir HARFORD JONES and the rest of his suite, and we had our parting dinner in a tent which he had pitched there for the purpose. The spot at which we stopped was the tomb of a son of _Imaum Reza_, frequented as a place of devotion. It is a square building, covered with a cupola, and enclosed in a square by a wall; beyond which, in a row on each side, are some young trees and shrubs and flowers. The country all around was in a high state of verdure. I went to the top of the gate of the tomb, from which I took the following bearings: _Teheran_ N. 70 E.; _Demawend_ N. 50 E.; extremity of the _Albores_ (at the foot of which leads the road to _Casvin_) N. 70 W.; _Rey_ S. 45 E. 8th. After having conversed with Sir HARFORD on matters of business, I slept till three in the morning, and then set off. Sir HARFORD accompanied us for some time, but quitted us at half an hour after sun-rise. The plain of _Teheran_ is covered with villages: I could count twenty to the right and to the left. The road followed, as far as _Karatch_, the bearing of N. 70 W. which I had taken on the preceding day. At about ten miles from the _Imaum Reza_, we came to a dike cut from the river at _Karatch_, from which our water-carriers were used to bring drinking-water for our party at _Teheran_. At about six miles from _Imaum Reza_ is a village called _Geldisi_, distant three miles on the left: another at the foot of the _Albores_ called _Kend_; further on the left is _Ali-shah-abad_, a larger place, with many trees around; then _Sherar_; then high on the hills to the right a pretty village called _Boragoun_. As we approached we saw the bed of the river called _Aub Karatch_, running about S. W. which I am told takes its source in the _Albores_, and runs towards _Kinar-à-Gird_. The bed is large, but it was then only partially filled. We crossed at the winding of the road over a brick bridge of two arches of different sizes: near it are some ruins of other brick buildings, apparently of the same age. In this spot is an inlet of the mountains, which seems to form a pretty plain, and in which I remarked some hamlets. The tomb of the son of IMAUM HASSAN renders _Karatch_ a pleasing object at a distance. The dome is shaded by the rich foliage of two fine _ehenar_ trees, and a stream cut from the river runs near the walls. The Persian Envoy informed me that this village, and those on the plain, belong to his brother-in-law the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_, and were formerly the property of his uncle the late Prime Minister. The _Mirza_ himself took up his lodgings in the tomb; my _Mehmandar_ put us in the house of a peasant, which was clean though small; the people here burn cakes of cow-dung for their common fuel. In a little enclosure behind the house was a vine. The sun-set N. 70 W. 9th. We departed from _Karatch_ at one o’clock in the morning, and, as well as I could ascertain our bearing by the stars, continued our route in the direction of the preceding day. Two _fursungs_ from _Karatch_, in a plain of immense extent, is _Kemelabad_. We were told that the road to our stage through the plain was swampy; we therefore chose another to the right, which (after a ride of four hours and a half, and a distance perhaps of sixteen miles) brought us, about sun-rise, to a delightful village called _Koran_. On the breaking of the morning we had discovered an immense plain, so thickly strewed with villages, that no one could repeat to me all their names. The whole, in number about one hundred, compose the _bolouk_ or district of _Souj-bolouk_, and are mostly under the _Ameen-ed-Doulah_. At _Koran_ we saw the _Hakim_ or Governor, as he was setting out on an expedition to collect the tribute from the peasantry. The village and the surrounding territory are delightfully watered by a river, which, issuing from between an Eastern and a Western chain of mountains, flows through a very steep channel, (in a N. and S. direction, after meandering some time from E. to W.) A great number of dikes, are cut from it, and extend the fertility beyond the course of the river, through the whole plain; which, particularly near the villages, is admirably cultivated. From _Koran_ we returned to the line, and met the road at a point where stood a _caravanserai_ and a tomb, both in ruins, and a clump of trees. We were four hours in reaching _Gauzir-seng_, our _Menzil_, a total distance from _Karatch_ of twenty-eight miles. In the plain through which we passed, we saw at a distance about five tumuli. They are such as are seen on the plains of _Troy_, and here also are called _Tapé_. We may account for them by the battles between the Persians and Turks, who buried their dead under similar mounds. There are numbers all over the plain: the people of the country say, that _borges_ or towers were built on these mounds; and our host at _Gauzir-seng_ told us that a large tapé called _Murad-tapé_, or the Hill of Charity near the village, received its name from a man who had made it his residence. His story (if it be worth telling) continued however, that a stranger, who had asked charity in vain even on this hill, found at the door the master’s horse, and rode off with it, exclaiming, “this is your charity.” At _Gauzir-seng_, we were lodged in one of the towers that flank the walls of the village. It was open on all sides by windows; we could thus enjoy the Westerly breeze, which allayed the great heat of the day. We were very well treated by the _Ket Khoda_ of the village, who seemed to me a well-bred and well-meaning man. We had good _moss_, (curdled milk, the same as the _yaourt_, in Turkey) and a sort of drink made of _moss_ and water, of which the common people all drink very plentifully at this season. 10th. We left _Gauzir-seng_ at midnight, and came to _Kish-lauk_, bearing West of our last station, on a distance of about fifteen miles. The Prince of _Aderbigian_ has a pleasure-house here, which is extolled by Persians as a wonder and a paradise. I could discover the extent of the grounds, and the house, which is built on one of the artificial _tapés_ or mounds. A most beautiful morning opened the day to us; the twilight commenced at four o’clock, and the sun rose at five. The mountains, still bearing East and West, declined in their height to the Westward, terminating towards the plain by small hills. After passing _Kish-lauk_ we came on a common, on which large herds of cattle were feeding. To the left of the road were many villages spread all over a plain, the extent of which was concealed by a haze: the whole district is divided into many _bolouks_, and is under the jurisdiction of _Casvin_. The principal villages on the left are _Hossein-abad_, _Hassan-abad_, _Shahinerlou_, _Shahin-tape_. Some on the right, are _Angouri mahalé_, and compose part of a _bolouk_ called _Kou-payéh_, belonging to MIRZA REZA KOULI, who was Embassador to France, and signed the treaty of _Finkenstein_. At about seven miles from _Casvin_, we turned from the road at a small mud-walled village, to eat something ourselves, and to give our horses some grass. On entering a room, the master talked Turkish to me, and said that he had seen me before at _Constantinople_. In fact I recognised him as one of those whom I had seen at _Constantinople_, with the Persian Embassy to France. He talked to me with much pleasure of _Frangistoon_ or Europe: and this man, who boasts of having sat in the same room, and of having been taken by the hand by BUONAPARTE himself, now lives in misery and solitude in an unknown village. It is not uninteresting to know the extreme attention which BUONAPARTE paid to his Persian guests. He lodged the Embassador and his suite in an house adjacent to his own at _Finkenstein_, and every day used to walk in amongst them, take them by the hand, and use every little art to conciliate their affections. We reached _Casvin_ at half past twelve. The day was hot and suffocating, and there was an appearance of storm in the Westward. For about two miles before we entered the gates, we passed by fields and gardens, mostly producing vines, which, as I am told, yield the best grape in Persia. This place labours under great inconvenience from the want of water; indeed, through the whole extent of the immense plain, that we traversed during the day, there was not one natural stream; but many _kanauts_ were making, and wherever there is irrigation, there is fertility, and the cultivation is rich. Upon the whole therefore, our route from _Teheran_ displayed a country of much more promising appearance, than (if we had trusted only to the experience of our own journey from _Bushire_ to the capital) we might have expected in Persia. The brother of the Minister of SHEIK ALI KHAN, one of the King’s sons, and Governor of the city, came out to meet us as an _istakball_, and accompanied us to an house, which had been once a good one, but was then abandoned and in ruins. Our _Mehmandar_ had great difficulty to procure the refreshment that was due to us; but when at length it arrived, there was a supply of cooks, pots, and provisions, which would have satisfied an army. _Casvin_ is almost one mass of ruins. A _Zibzileh_ (an earthquake), within no distant period, threw down the buildings which were in the _Tottie_, and made cracks in almost every wall. A large mosque, built by the _Abbasses_, has been rent in many places in its thick walls, and totally ruined. 11th. The storm of thunder and rain which we had foreboded, fell in the evening of the preceding day, and refreshed the air which had been sultry, and gave us a most delightful morning. We left _Casvin_ just as the morning broke at about four o’clock; and proceeded in a direction of S. 40 W. to _Siah Dehan_, a village in the plain of _Casvin_, a distance of twenty miles, called six _fursungs_, which we performed in five hours. The road over this part of the plain was the most beautiful and the most level of any that I had seen in Persia. It was fine hard gravel; and the plain on each side of it was in high verdure, one grass plat on which many thousands of cavalry might manœuvre admirably. The villages continued as numerous as those that we had before remarked in our last day’s route. They were neatly entrenched in square walls with towers at each angle. The wind which blew from the Northward refreshed the air, and made it even cold: this, which is here the prevailing wind, is called the _Baad Gagazgoon_, as it blows from a little district of that name, composed of ten or fifteen small villages, situated on the N. hills. At four miles from _Siah Dehan_ we stopped at a village on the side of the road called _Keck_. The inhabitants looked at us over the walls, and did not seem willing to come out to us; at last a little boy ventured forth: I questioned him about his own village and those around, but he seemed shy in giving answers; and when he saw me take out my pocket-book to write down the memoranda, he asked me with a very suspicious face, “What are you writing there?” and then ran off as fast as he could. In a little time after we heard his companions cry out, “they are _Roos_,” (or Russians), a report which, of course, he had spread abroad in his village, to the fear of all the inhabitants. The name of the villages, according to his intelligence, were, _Kenish_, distant two _fursungs_, N. 10 W.; _Akchegan_, one _fursung_ and a half, N. 60 W.; _Ash-hasar_, N. 40 W.; and _Alangaya_, two _fursungs_, N. 30 W. All this plain is under the jurisdiction of _Casvin_; I should think it about thirty miles in breadth, but a haze over the country might deceive me. The mountains to the right are here diminished to hills; and, joining the Southern mountains on a bearing of S. 40 W. terminate the plain of _Casvin_. On the plain we saw the _houpe_, partridges, and two deer, with many flocks of sheep. _Siah Dehan_ has about five hundred houses. The inhabitants complain of a great scarcity of water; and, though their village is surrounded by gardens, they expect altogether but miserable crops. They told us, with much warmth, of the injustice with which another village had appropriated the water of _Siah Dehan_ to their own use, by turning the course of the _Kanauts_. We were lodged in the best house that the place could afford, and had a barber to wait on us. This custom of making the barber the _Homme d’Affaires_ is common to the villages around. 12th. We went from _Siah Dehan_ to _Nouri_, a place situated at the end of the plain of _Casvin_, and the first in the _Bolouk_ of _Hamzé_. The distance is called six _fursungs_, but from the time (seven hours) that we were on our horses, I should reckon it at twenty-five miles. As we set off at midnight I did not distinguish much on either side, till the break of day, when I discovered several very pretty villages, on the hills and near the side of the road to the left. The plain had here narrowed to a breadth of about three miles: the hills to the right were quite diminutive, and those to the left were decreasing in their height. The bearing of _Nouri_ from _Siah Dehan_ may be about W.; this is a guess, for at night I could only judge by the position of the stars, and in the day my compass would not traverse. We stopped at a village called _Courvé_, to feed our horses on the new barley which was in some places breast-high. A peasant told us that two neighbouring villages to the Eastward were called _Ziabet_ and _Parsin_; they are situated on the banks of a small stream, which meanders through the plain from W. to E. There are many other villages, the names of which I did not learn, all surrounded by cultivation, and forming green and picturesque objects. The whole country, indeed, was one carpet of verdure; and on the breaking of the morning the freshness of the odour was beyond any thing grateful. We had several severe showers; the storm gathering over the Western hills, and falling down in great torrents. This rain, so providential for the poor _Rayats_, seemed to spread universal joy amongst them. 13th. We proceeded this morning just as the sun rose, and were four hours on the road, to _Sihin Caléh_, on a bearing of N. 45 W. and a distance called four _fursungs_, and by my calculation about fourteen miles. At about three miles on the left of the road, amid very picturesque scenery, is the small village of _Sherafabad_. From this at the distance of a mile, (in a situation equally picturesque, and surrounded for a considerable distance by trees and cultivation) is the large place of _Abhar_. About three miles further on, still on the same side of the road, lies _Khorremderré_, in the bosom of trees and gardens. We stopped on its skirts to feed our cattle, and to breakfast. We seated ourselves under the shade of some cherry trees, and by the side of one of the running streams of fine pure water, which abound in the neighbourhood. We met a caravan on a pilgrimage to the tomb of IMAUM REZA, at _Mesched_; the _Chaoush_ or conductor of which, (a man on horseback carrying a green triangular flag) complained to us that the people at _Khorremderré_ had stolen his cloak. We sent a man with him into the town, and after some difficulty, procured the recovery of the garb to its right owner. [Illustration: _Sultaniéh._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown. Paternoster Row. May 1, 1811._] The next village was _Heeah_, still on the left; and then _Sihin Caléh_, to which (at the distance of about a mile) we turned off from the road on a bearing of W. All these villages are in the _Mahalé_ of _Hamzé_. Grass is extremely plentiful all over this country; and, from all that I can see, the passage of a large body of men would not be impeded by the want of provisions. On these plains the King’s horses graze annually: and here every summer his troops are collected. Magazines for their supplies are formed at _Sultaniéh_. A strong wind from the Westward blew from two hours before sun-rise to two hours before sun-set, and brought clouds with it; in the morning it was unpleasantly cold. On the rising ground to the Southward of _Sihin Caléh_, are some ancient tomb-stones, some of which are carved in a curious manner; among other things, there was a lion in stone--a certain sign of antiquity. The Arabic character also appeared to me very old. 14th. From _Sihin Caléh_ we went to _Sultaniéh_, a distance called five _fursungs_; we were five hours on the road, and, as we walked a good pace, I should place the whole at sixteen miles. Of these twelve are on a bearing of N. 40 W. to a pass (called _Teng Ali Acbar_) through a small rising of the plain; and the remainder to _Sultaniéh_, N. 80 W. On the height of the pass are the ruins of buildings, which are said to be those of the gate. From this pass _Sultaniéh_ is immediately seen; it lies near the Southern hills, and spreads itself N. and S. over the plain to a considerable extent, containing the present village among the ruins of the ancient city. I went to a _tapé_ on the South, before we entered the place, and took a general view of the whole. The principal object among the remains of the ancient town is an immense structure, which is called the tomb of _Sultan Mohamed Khodabendeh_, and is said to be six hundred years old. A cupola rests on an octagonal base, on each angle of which arose a minaret; one only of which is now entire. At each angle also was a staircase, and in each of the sides was a door; and, as there is one wing which projects from the base, the whole probably, in its original plan, was similarly surrounded by additional buildings. The principal gate fronted the East: it is now in part remaining, but in a short time will be entirely demolished; as during our visit there were many workmen employed in pulling it down, to use the materials in some of the King’s pleasure-houses. The whole structure is of a fine brick admirably put together. The cupola and minarets were covered with a green-lacquered tile, most of which is now pealed off. The great architrave was of Moresque work of a dark-blue-lacquered tile. The arches of the gates were all enriched with curious ornaments in plaster. The interior is still admirable, though it is now converted into a magazine of straw. Nothing however intersects the beautiful symmetry of the dome. The interior diameter is thirty-five paces, and on a rough calculation, the height of the dome must be about one hundred feet. In the centre of the floor among the straw is a pillar of white marble, probably belonging to the tomb of the King, which is said indeed to be immediately in that position below the surface. The people told me that there were many fine marbles under the straw; and I saw (without being able to find any descent to them) several arches under ground, which perhaps, support the whole floor. Over each gate is a gallery, which extends along the base of the dome, and leads into smaller galleries within, and into others also on the exterior of the building. These are beautifully adorned with the neatest work that I had ever seen; all the cornices of the doors, the segments of the arches and the various niches are covered with Arabic sentences; which in some places are surmounted in a smaller character by _Cufic_ inscriptions, all either painted in fresco, or raised in plaster. The whole structure looks more like a mosque than a tomb, compared at least with those at _Constantinople_; but of any description, and in any place, I do not recollect a building which could have surpassed this in its original state. I ascended to the top of one of the shattered minarets, and took the following bearings; road to _Hamadan_ S. 50 W.; _Teng Ali Acbar_, S. 70. E. This monument appears to stand in the _Ark_ or citadel of the ancient _Sultaniéh_. Its area is a square (a side of which, on a rough calculation, might be three hundred yards) and is marked out by a ditch still full of water. Part also of the ancient wall is yet standing, and bears N. 40 E. from the tomb; it is about fifty feet high: the exterior surface is fine, and the stones, which however are soft and crumbling, are well fitted together. At the angle of the ditch, there is the segment of a round tower still remaining; on one of the stones of which is an Arabic inscription, stating that it was built by SULTAN MAHOMED KHODABENDEH; and there is likewise a small rude sculpture of a combat between two horsemen. At the summit of the wall also, there appears to be some representation of lions or sphinxes’ heads. MIRZA ABUL HASSAN told me that he remembered, when twenty years ago the greater part of this wall was standing. The Persians, to illustrate the original splendour of the city, say, that when the army of JENGHIZ KHAN took and plundered _Sultaniéh_, they found in it six hundred thousand golden cradles. Here are the remains of several mosques without the enclosure of the ditch, one of which seems to have been a fine edifice; they are all built of the same materials as the tomb. Few monuments in Persia can hope to survive many ages; for the Kings, who succeed the founders, are anxious only to be founders themselves, and instead of taking a pride to preserve the works of their predecessors, as records of the genius or greatness of their monarchy, they take pains only to destroy them, that they may build new structures with the materials, and attach their own names also to great buildings; never considering how short-lived, by their own example, will be their reputation after their decease. The principle extends to private life, and to a certain degree accounts for the numbers of ruined houses which swell the circumference of Persian cities. Every son is unwilling to repair and inhabit the house of his father, and is eager to impose his own name on some new work. The present King has undertaken to found at _Sultaniéh_ a new city, which is to be called _Sultanabad_. The inhabitants are to be supplied from the neighbouring villages, and from the population of _Aderbigian_. The _Ark_ or citadel is already built: it is situated close to the King’s pleasure-houses, N. 50 W. from the tomb. The King and all his troops encamp about June in the plains for many miles around. There are an immense number of a peculiar species of rats in the plain, which dig themselves holes in the ground. Our people caught several: they have the squeaking of a musk rat, and sit on their hind legs; I caught one and took a drawing of it; it was big with young, and had four teats on each side; in colour it was an ugly dun, and in length measured fifteen inches from the head to the tail: it had five claws on both fore and hind feet, and long nails at the end. Its head was flat with a black nose, large black eyes, and an orifice for the ear without any skin to cover it; its tail was bushy, and spreading at the end.[39] 15th. On quitting _Sultaniéh_ we stopped at the King’s pleasure-house, which is built on the _tapé_ or hillock, about three quarters of a mile from the present village. It consists of four divisions, all enclosed within walls, and raised with materials from the demolished structures of the ancient city. The first contained a suit of apartments for women; the second was a polyangular building, as yet unfurnished (crowned at the top by a small dome) surrounded by a railing, and called like so many others, _Koola-frangee_. This, as we are told, was built after a drawing given to the King by one of the Gentlemen of the French Embassy. From this we went through a long arched and gloomy passage to the King’s _Khalwet_ or private room. Here there is a picture of his Majesty killing a stag in the chase, and a portrait of each of his principal sons, painted in fresco on the walls. From this we went to the fourth, which is the _Dewan Khonéh_, and opens upon the whole of the plain. Here the King sits in state; and, on a terraced platform below stand his sons and nobles: the whole is on a small and trifling scale, and displays no great ingenuity in the builder or wealth in the possessor. We proceeded to _Zengan_: the distance is called six _fursungs_, and we performed it in six hours; but from the quick pace at which our horses walked, I may reckon it at twenty-four miles. Till the last four miles our route bore N. 30 W.; we then turned to N. 80 W. The mountains on the left diminished very much, and were green to their summits. They terminated at a bearing of W. and behind them commenced another chain, which, when the immense clouds on their summits occasionally rolled off, appeared very high. The plain ground over which we had travelled from _Casvin_, now became hilly and broken; and in some places the soil, which before had been universally hard, was soft; and the road, from the rain which had fallen, was rendered swampy and muddy. In the course of the day indeed we had much rain, though only in showers; and in the morning there was a rainbow. All this part of the country is well watered by a variety of small streams, but by no one of any note. We saw the plough at work in many parts of the country on a fine rich soil. The plough here is a rude instrument indeed; it is a large piece of wood making an angle with another, which being sharpened at the end, and frequently tipt with iron, forms the plough-share. It is drawn by two oxen or sometimes by one, and sometimes only by an ass. About six miles before we reached _Zengan_, on the left of the road there is a well-built village with walls and towers all around, and a small _Ark_ in the centre, called _Dehsis_. The vegetation all over the country is extremely rich, and certainly the most luxuriant which we had seen. _Zengan_ is a large town, and is the capital of the _Mahalé_ of _Hamzé_, which contains one hundred villages. The whole district, by the gift of the King, is the property and government of FERRAJOULA KHAN, the _Nasakchee Bashee_. The _Mahalé_ pays no revenue, but it furnishes the King five thousand horsemen complete, who are paid, fed, and clothed from its own produce. On entering the town there is an immense enclosed garden full of every species of trees. 16th. From _Zengan_ we went to _Armaghanéh_, and were six hours on the road; on a general bearing of N. I call this also twenty-four miles, as we walked a good pace. On the left, in a valley, I saw several villages; the two principal of which are _Koushek_ and _Barri_. Others are also situated on the declivity of the hills; the road all the way is full of ascents and descents; and at about five miles from _Zengan_ we came to a valley, perhaps a bend and a continuation of that which we had already noticed. At the bottom flowed from E. to W. a stream of beautiful water, which came from the mountains to the N. E. of our route, and which was formed indeed principally by the melting of their snows and the rains. In its vicinity was much cultivated ground; and the peasants had raised its waters in many places to carry the fertility still further into the fields. At the interval of about six miles there is a similar valley and a similar stream, the waters of which equally assist the cultivation of the country, and redeem it from the waste of the intermediate tract. We saw many tents of _Elauts_ of the tribe _Choisevend_, whose cattle were grazing in the line between the two streams. They were represented to me as very warlike and brave, on which account the King enrolled many of them in his _Goolams_ and troops; and I was told, that they had been the principal heroes in the war with the Russians. Their tribe consists of six thousand families. Their chief is at _Teheran_, and is a _Khan_ of much consequence. They live always in tents, changing their situation with the seasons, and are very rich in camels. After having crossed the second stream we rested, and fed our horses on the new barley, which was there about a knee high. As we proceeded we met a caravan of pilgrims, from _Derbend_ on the _Caspian_, going to the _Zeeauret_ of _Mesched_. Not one could speak a word of Persian; indeed Turkish, from this point and henceforward, is the vernacular language spoken by the people of the villages; and it is rather rare to find any one of the inhabitants who can talk Persian fluently. These pilgrims wore a white band about their sheep-skin caps as a mark of their holy destination; and preceded by a _Chaoush_ bearing a green flag, joined all in loud cries as he excited them. About four miles before we reached our stage we came to a third stream, which run with great velocity through different artificial channels, and the borders of which were richly cultivated with rice and barley. On the right, just before _Armaghanéh_, is a little village called _Houlouléh_. The whole region from _Zengan_ is intersected at almost regular distances by vallies; in one of which lies _Armaghanéh_, so concealed by its situation, that it is scarcely seen till it is entered. To the Westward appears a long range of mountains; but the hills which we had passed in the day’s march, though sometimes of rock and flint, were generally green to their very summits; and the soil was mostly rich earth, which, in some places, was spread with the hues of a thousand flowers. Throughout the whole tract, indeed, every thing was in life and spring. The animals felt the influence of the season; and our horses in passing the herds around were scarcely manageable. One threw his rider; and after having given him a bite on the shoulder, attacked his fellows, and fought with some fury. The singing of the larks in the morning, and the whole tribes that swept along the air, gave a zest to the freshness of the dawn that was beyond description. The whole creation seemed to give praise to its great Creator. _Armaghanéh_ also is included in the _Bolouk_ of _Hamzé_. In the town there is a square fort. In the room, into which we were introduced, there were several European inscriptions, mostly in Russian, but one in Latin, written I suspect by a Frenchman’s pencil, and worthy therefore to be transcribed, as displaying the spirit and temper with which they left the country: “VENIMUS, VIDIMUS, ET MALEDIXIMUS PERSIDI; “REGIQUE, AULÆQ; MAGNATIBUSQ; POPULOQ;-- “SCRIBEBANT IDIBUS APRILIS, 1809 * * *.” M. JOUANNIN and his companion indeed, by all the accounts which I received in following the line of their route, had no greater reason to be satisfied with their accommodations on the road, than with the mode of their leaving _Teheran_. We were told at _Sultaniéh_, that no one there would furnish them with mules to transport their baggage, and they were obliged to be content with asses. The night was so cold at _Armaghanéh_ that we had a fire, and our people wore their sheep-skins. _Armaghanéh_ indeed, and our next stage, _Auk-kend_, are very high. 17th. We quitted _Armaghanéh_ at four o’clock (an hour before sun-rise, and enjoyed the freshness, not to say cold) of the twilight, and the beauty of the breaking morning. We were seven hours on the road to _Auk-kend_, which I shall reckon a distance of twenty-eight miles, on a general bearing of N. 15 W. Our road was over a succession of hills, the vallies of which were mostly cultivated. The whole surface indeed was generally green, and displayed an appearance of more prosperity than any part which we had seen on the other side of _Teheran_. The soil, though in many places broken by rocks and slate, was fine, and watered by many small streams. At about twelve miles from _Armaghanéh_ on the left of the road, is the village of _Dasht-Bolagh_, situated nearly between two conical hills; on the tops of which are collections of rocks, appearing at a distance like the ruins of towers. After this we reached an eminence, from which an immense range of high mountains covered with snow, extended itself before us. The highest peaks bore on a general line of North; and, from all that I could learn, are not far distant from _Resht_. The general chain approaches the shores of the _Caspian_; but on all geographical subjects it is difficult to trust the class of persons, from whom alone on the spot the information can be obtained. They very generally exaggerate, and are at any rate very ignorant. The whole region (between these mountains and those to the S. and W. indeed on every side) is undulatory, without a single clump of trees to enliven the sameness of the prospect; if therefore I had seen this part of the country in winter, I might perhaps have felt it still more inhospitable than any that we had crossed in the South. But now cultivation was seen in patches; here the corn was green, there lands were just under the ploughman’s hands. As we were eating our breakfast we were overtaken by a man from _Teheran_, who was carrying to the Prince of _Tabriz_ the intelligence that (after a siege of twelve successive years) the King’s troops had taken the strong place of _Tourchiz_, on the confines of _Khorassan_ and _Usbec Tartary_, together with MUSTAPHA ALI KHAN ARAB, the Governor, his troops, and the treasures that it contained. It is six days journey, as far as I could learn, South from _Mesched_, and is a fortress on the summit of a mountain, rendered strong by its natural situation. It gives its name to a very warlike tribe in _Khorassan_, of which the Governor, MUSTAPHA ALI KHAN ARAB, was the chief. A great part of the treasures of NADIR SHAH is said to have been preserved unbroken in _Toorchiz_, which would thus further swell the King’s collection of jewels and gold. I asked a Persian what the King would do with the Governor? he said, “Kill him to be sure;” and when I suggested, that it might be better to retain in his own service a man so bold and determined, he answered, “No: such sort of things may be very well with you; but the Persians are not so; the better you treat them, the worse they will treat you. The King, if he were not to kill him, would never be sure of him, for he would certainly rebel against him.” On approaching _Auk-kend_, one of our attendants, who had dismounted for the purpose of letting his horse walk easily up the hill, by some chance suffered him to escape: all attempts to catch him were vain, until a _chatter_ or walking footman, belonging to MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, seized him by the bridle, when the horse retired some steps, and then open-mouthed made a bound at the _chatter_, caught him by the neck, and placing one of his fore-knees upon him, kept him thus with his head on the ground, until he was beat off. He was then seized by his master, to whom he meditated the same fate, and whom in fact he threw down most violently with his fore feet, though the final and furious gripe was prevented. _Auk-kend_ is now the frontier place in _Aderbigian_; the original boundary was the river _Kizzil Ozan_, but it has been thus extended through the King’s favour to his son ABBAS MIRZA, the Governor of the province. _Auk-kend_ indeed is in the district of _Khalcal_, which, though certainly under the jurisdiction of the Prince, is immediately administered by two Khans, and contains two hundred villages, extending between _Resht_ and _Ardebil_. Formerly it was a very flourishing region; but the war with Russia, in which it has been obliged to supply troops, and at its own expence pay, feed, and clothe them, has much impoverished it, and, as the Persians say, “_Kharrab Shoud_, it is ruined.” 18th. We proceeded from _Auk-kend_, at twenty minutes before five, and arrived at _Miaunéh_ at one o’clock. We stopped on the road to feed our horses, which detained us one hour and an half, so that we had six hours and forty minutes riding, which, at three miles and a quarter in the hour, gives a total of twenty-two miles: I reckon thus little to the hour, because the whole of our march was over mountainous country. Our road was much to the Westward. The mountain _Coflan Kou_, which rose above us, bore S. 80 W. but, as we went somewhat more to the W. I shall place the general bearing at W. The whole country here (and particularly that to the W. and N.) seems to have been just formed by a great convulsion of nature; there are lands of every soil, of every colour, and of every form. At the distance of six miles from _Auk-kend_ we came to a small village called _Kultepé_; we should have stopped here to have fed our horses, but there was nothing but wheat-corn growing around the place; from this our suite always abstained most religiously, though they never scrupled to enter any barley field that might border on the road, and turning their cattle into the very middle without their bridles suffered them to eat their fill unlimited, nor was there any one that dared oppose such an inroad, which is indeed the privilege of every officer of government. I was quite vexed one day (when a poor man came and intreated the Persians to take their horses out of his field, for that its produce was his sole subsistence) to see the inhumanity with which they treated him; and, after having administered a few blows to his shoulders, compelled him to hold their horses as they were eating his own property before his face. [Illustration: _Bridge over the Kizzil Ozzan._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] At about half past nine o’clock, and about fifteen miles from _Auk-kend_, we came to the banks of the _Kizzil Ozan_. The stream runs from West to East, in a bed of about two hundred yards in breadth, which was then in a great measure dry. It rises in the mountains of _Gerustan_, about five days journey from _Miaunéh_, and flows into the _Caspian_ near _Resht_. We crossed it on a bridge, which appeared a very ancient structure, and is now falling fast to decay. It has three principal arches, the one to the W. is modern compared with the other part of the structure, having been restored by AGA MAHOMED KHAN; as a small inscription on the new buttress intimates. The original bridge is attributed to SHAH ABBAS; but, from its structure, which does not resemble that of the _Seffis_, and from an inscription in the _Cufick_ character (which is worked in brick all around the principal arch) and another in a square on one of the old buttresses, I should suspect that it is much more ancient, and must be referred indeed to the earliest ages of Mahomedanism. When on the borders of the stream I was too distant to see the characters distinctly enough to copy them. We commenced the ascent of the _Coflan Kou_ immediately on quitting the river, and were just one hour in gaining its greatest height, and half an hour in descending into the plain on the opposite side. The chain of mountains, of which this forms a part, is the proper boundary of _Aderbigian_. Near the bridge on the right, in ascending the mountain, there is a singular rock which has been fortified with walls and turrets, probably coeval with the bridge. This also, however, appears to have been restored in some parts by a modern hand, as in front there is a structure of fresh brick, which does not correspond with the turrets of the main building. All is now in ruins: indeed it could have been of value as a military hold, only in times when artillery was not used, as it is commanded by every hill around. I took a sketch of it from the ascent of the mountains. The old bridge below adds a very picturesque object to the surrounding heights and the scenery of the stream. On the ascent of the mountain, (over that part which in winter must be of more difficult passage,) there are the remains of a causeway, attributed in like manner, to a SHAH ABBAS, and extending for several miles. In descending to the plain on the Western side of the _Coflan Kou_, we saw another river called _Rood Khonéh Miaunéh_, which also flows from West to East, having combined before we crossed it, three several streams (the _Ceransou_, the _Sheher Cheyee_, and the _Aye Dogmoush_,) and about one _fursung_ to the Eastward, carrying their united waters into the _Kizzil Ozan_. The sources, according to my informer, an old mountaineer at _Miaunéh_, were about two day’s journey from his town; in a direction, by the pointing of his hand, of N. 70 W. among the mountains of _Sahat Dun_. We passed the river over a bridge of twenty-one arches, in appearance indeed as old as that just described, but in style of structure resembling so much the bridge of _Aliverdy Khan_ at _Ispahan_, a work of the age of the _Seffis_, that it may be ascribed to a Prince of the same race with much less improbability, than that over the _Kizzil Ozan_ can be attributed to SHAH ABBAS. If there are not immediate repairs, the whole in a few years will fall into the water. It was extremely hot in the recess of the mountains, with a light haze from the Westward. The sun set N. 73 W. _Miaunéh_, where we passed the night, was once a large town, and its broken walls and gates are still to be seen. It is now, indeed, a poor miserable village, yet is the chief place of a tribe called _Chedaughee_, who are reputed to be very ferocious. The master of the house, where we lodged, was gone to _Tabriz_; and his son, a boy of fourteen, officiated in his place with a propriety and dexterity which were quite amusing. He asked the _Mehmandar_ for his _firman_, very gravely sat down and read it, then with a fine flow of compliments said, that every thing that he had was freely at our command; and that we must make his kitchen ours, and that, in short, he was our slave. In these countries the manners and faculties ripen long before those of Northern climates. An English boy in the same predicament would have run and hid himself in the stable. We were, however, rather annoyed by a great big fellow, a _Ferosh_ of Prince ABBAS MIRZA, who pretended to much power in the place. In the _firman_ which the _Mehmandar_ carried from the King, one of the articles with which the village was required to provide him was the sum of three _tomauns_. These he was wont to receive as his own perquisite; and this is one of the various modes by which the King pays his servants without the necessity of applying to his own treasures. But to this, in this instance, the _Ferosh_ objected, swearing that there was no money in _Miaunéh_, and that none could be raised. The _Mehmandar_, on his side, talked of nothing but the King’s Royal command, which must be obeyed before all things: to this again the _Ferosh_ objected, and said that he would abide by nothing but an order from his own immediate superior, the _Ferosh Bashee_ of Prince ABBAS MIRZA. The _Mirza_ was at length obliged to interfere: the _Ferosh_, in fact, had been paid by the peasantry to guard them from the extortion of strangers, and like a faithful servant he was endeavouring to do all that he could in their favour. To complete the business however, the _Mehmandar_, on our arrival at the close of the day’s journey, missed a pair of new green slippers, which loss he naturally charged to the dishonesty of his antagonist the _Ferosh_. Since there have been such great interests pending in the North of Persia with the Russians, the Government has established _Chopper Khonéh_, or post-houses, from _Tabriz_ to _Teheran_, to facilitate the transmission of news, so that a courier may traverse the distance easily in three days. A _Ferosh_ has been placed by the Prince Governor of _Aderbigian_, in each of the villages within his territory, (in which these establishments are formed) to see that every department be carried on with dispatch and regularity. Twenty to twenty-five horses (purchased by the Prince, and kept at his own expence) are always ready at each of these houses, and the whole institution is supported from his own purse. But beyond the bounds of his province, this public service is defrayed by the _Rayat_ on the line of road. 19th. We were six hours and a half on the road, a distance of twenty-one miles, from _Miaunéh_ to _Turkomen Cheyee_. The road is one succession of high hills, generally with a small stream in the vallies below, flowing from the mountains of _Bisgoush_, which extend almost to _Tabriz_ on the N. W. and to near _Resht_ in the territory of _Khalcal_, on the N. E. and the snows of which seemed then to be rapidly melting, and (by the discolouration of the water) to have formed these streams. On setting out from _Miaunéh_, we rode by the banks, and frequently crossed one of these streams, which was up to the bellies of the horses and very rapid. I frequently set the bearing of our road from the top of the hills, which was N. 70 W. and (though varying now to the W. then to the E.) may be fixed generally at that point. The whole is very easy of access, nor indeed did I see any part on this side of _Teheran_, where an army would meet with impediment, except on the _Coflan Kou_, and there only in a few passes: and from the present appearance of the country, magazines might be formed every where. The weather during the last two days was extremely sultry, and we suffered greatly from the heat. The tract indeed, over which we were passing, is called by the Persians _Germesir_, or the hot, from the notoriety of its temperature. The corn at _Miaunéh_ was accordingly much more advanced than in any previous part of the country. There is a small village to the S. of _Turkomen Cheyee_, called _Carayeh_, situated on the back of the hill. The valley of _Turkomen Cheyee_ is one carpet of green, richly cultivated in every part. About noon the clouds gathered; and as we were feeding our horses, a shower of rain, with thunder, surprised and refreshed us after our hot ride. On the 20th, we went to _Tekmé-dash_, twenty-one miles, on a bearing of N. 40 W. over the same sort of country as that which we had crossed on the preceding day; but the ground was much saturated by the late rain, and, as the soil was soft, our road was rendered very disagreeable. At about six miles from _Turkomen Cheyee_ we came to a valley richly cultivated; and about two miles on the right, was the village of _Uzumchee_. We saw some other villages, situated at a distance from the road, on the heights of the mountain. We passed two ruined _caravanserais_. The last was about three miles from _Tekmé-dash_; and, by an inscription on the gate, was built by a servant of SHAH ABBAS. Not a tree appears over all the country, but there is generally much cultivation. A little after sun-rise we saw some high mountains bearing about N. W. Soon after our arrival a smiling lad came in with a paper in his hand, and presented it to the _Mirza_. It was a petition from himself and his school fellows, to beg a holiday for them from their master; an address which they never fail to make to any man of consequence, who may happen to pass through their village. The children here are taught Persian in the schools; the Turkish being the native tongue of the country. There was a very strong wind from the West, which, as the people told us, had blown for five or six days; and, though it fell as the sun went down, the cold during the night was very severe. 21st. The six hours and a half which we spent on the road to _Saidabad_ to-day, were very pleasant, as we had covered weather with a fine fresh breeze from the W. We went twenty-five miles in the direction of N. 40 W. on a good road, which had been hardened by the late wind. At about five miles from _Tekmé-dash_, on the left, is the village of _Bini Kieu_; and a little further, (on a rising ground through which the road passes,) are a collection of large stones, apparently the remains of a building, with a few large oblong blocks curiously carved, which certainly belonged to it. They resembled, indeed, rather the tomb-stones which I had remarked before; but they had no characters upon them. At about five miles before we came to _Saidabad_ we entered a pass in the mountain, on the right of which, as we left the plain, we noticed a piece of water with much wild fowl upon it. After having ascended and again descended the pass, (from the summit of which we had a view of the mountain of _Tabriz_), we came to a _caravanserai_ situated amid very picturesque scenery just at the bottom. The right wing, and many other parts of this edifice, were falling into ruin. It contains a square area of two hundred and sixty paces of an admirable and solid construction; the work of the _Seffis_, strongly contrasted with the comparatively miserable buildings of the present day in Persia. The fine arches of the domes attest the excellence of art in the age of its erection. The interior arrangements are very good: on each side of the square are rooms, each with a fire-place, and in the centre of the whole is a large square compartment, divided into a variety of chambers of all descriptions, with recesses for horses. All this is built of a fine brick, with a strong foundation, and occasional reliefs of stone. At the foot of the whole building, at close intervals, are stones cut for the convenience of tying up cattle. At this spot we were overtaken by a storm of thunder and hail, and driven to seek refuge in the _caravanserai_; where the gloom of the old building, enlivened by the grotesque figures of our party, reminded me of those scenes of romance which modern writers have so frequently laboured to describe. We turned off from the high road to the left, and at about two miles and a half from the _caravanserai_ reached _Saidabad_. We found in it a mud fort, and houses with roofs arched but extremely low. Our servants were introduced into a chamber, a part of which was already occupied by a family of young asses; the rest was all their own. In all parts of the village were small pyramids of cow-dung, the different collections of the poor inhabitants for their winter fuel. The walls of their houses were likewise covered with great cakes of the same materials, which were then drying as additions to their stock. The common children collect this; and I have frequently seen two little creatures contending for it with the highest anxiety and animation. There is so great a scarcity of wood over the whole country through which we have passed, that the poor are necessarily reduced to these extremities for the supply of their wants. In general they are miserably clad; the children have scarcely any thing to cover them but a shirt of coarse linen, which hardly reaches their middle; and the women wear nothing but a shirt, a pair of drawers, a jacket, and a veil, which covers their head and serves them on all occasions. Even in these poor villages the females are inconceivably shy. I happened to be standing near the place where the people were loading our baggage, when a poor woman seemed anxious to come forth from the neighbouring house, but durst not whilst a man was near. She kept peeping at intervals through the door for nearly half an hour, and drew in her head precipitately, although muffled, whenever a man’s face was turned towards her. When I have told the Persians that in Europe a husband has but one wife, and that in company we pay more civility to any female than to the greatest man, they have remained astonished, wondering that creatures (as women in their eyes appear), born only for their pleasure and convenience, should at all partake of any of those attentions which they deem to be due to Themselves exclusively. As we were seated in our miserable dwelling, the village music attended us, composed of a singer, and players on the _tambourine_ and on two _kamounchas_. To the great mortification of these poor people we dispensed with their noise, which, if it had begun, would not readily have ended. 22d. From _Saidabad_ to _Tabriz_ is a distance of about fourteen miles, on a direction of N. 50 W. There are said to be two volcanoes in the neighbourhood. Having travelled ten miles, we stopped to breakfast at a charming spot, near a beautiful stream of water, crossing us from S. W. to N. E. and surrounded by more wood than altogether we had seen all over the latter part of our journey. They are principally poplar (almost the only tree indeed which we had remarked in our route) and many are felled for building. Within two miles of _Tabriz_ there is a village on a hillock, called _Condorood_; and immediately on the skirts of this spot is another, called _Basmidge_: on leaving which we saw great numbers of those square and oblong stones, so often mentioned in my Journal. As among them there are modern tombs, the original intent of the more ancient stones is certainly the same. CHAP. XV. TABRIZ. APPROACH TO TABRIZ--ENTRANCE--HEALTHINESS OF THE SITUATION--GARDENS--MARBLE OF TABRIZ--DESCRIPTION OF THE CITY--CHARACTER OF THE PRINCE--ANECDOTES--PERSIAN HORSEMANSHIP--MILITARY QUALITIES--FORCE OF THE PROVINCE--THE FIRST MINISTER--GOVERNMENT AND SUCCESS OF THE PRINCE--PROJECTS OF IMPROVEMENT--SHIPS--REVENUE OF THE PROVINCE--POPULATION OF TABRIZ--ENTERTAINMENT--PERSIAN CONVERSATION--MANNERS--ACCOUNT OF MAZANDERAN--FAUCES HYRCANIÆ?--VESSELS OF THE CASPIAN--GHILAN--THE GOUDARS--TURCOMANS; INROADS; CONDUCT TO THEIR PRISONERS--KAMCHAUKS. The road across the plain towards _Tabriz_ is very fine; and on each side of it we saw numerous ploughs. Four oxen were employed to each; for the soil is here hard, and turned with more difficulty. The implement itself, however, appeared more ponderous than any that we had seen before. About three miles from _Tabriz_ the road is intersected by hills of a sandy and stony soil. Here we were met by an officer deputed from the Prince to greet our arrival. He was accompanied by ten or fifteen men, and preceded by a led horse. As soon as our party perceived their approach, it was ridiculous enough to see how every one put on any the smallest piece of finery that he possessed, in order to strike the others with respect. The _Mirza_ alighted from his mule and mounted a horse; and when we met, all the flattery and compliments were repeated with the same sincerity as before on our road to _Teheran_. They talked of themselves and their government with singular complacency, and of the Russians with the utmost contempt. The officer who came to meet us said, “they fear us like dogs; we have every thing better than they have; they will never dare to shew their faces again.” _Tabriz_ first appears between the angle of the bases of two hills, and then opens to the view by degrees. In the season in which we saw it, it formed a pretty object; as the constant monotony of the mud-walls and mud-brick houses was hid by the rich foliage of the trees, which are interspersed throughout the city. Close to the walls, near the _Teheran_ gate, is the complete ruin of a mosque, but still sufficiently preserved to shew how fine a structure it must once have been. It was built about six hundred years ago, by SHAH SHEM GHUZAN, (the successor of SHAH MAHOMED KHODABENDEH, whose tomb has been described at _Sultaniéh_,) but it has been destroyed by an earthquake within thirty years. The inhabitants extol the fruitfulness of the territory, and the salubrity of the air of _Tabriz_. Its very name, according to the Persian etymology, indicates the excellence of its situation, for it is composed of _Tab_ a fever, and _riz_ fled.[40] They complain, however, (though as of their only inconvenience) of frequent and violent earthquakes, which they attribute to the volcanoes in the district, which throw out smoke but no flame. The smoke is so mephitical, that it kills immediately a dog or fowl placed over it. The volcanoes are particularly to the East, in mountains of a red and copper-like appearance, announcing much mineral matter. The climate of _Tabriz_ is subject also to much thunder, lightning, and rain. _Tabriz_ is no more the magnificent city described by CHARDIN: all its large buildings have been destroyed by earthquakes. I rode round the walls, and estimated the circumference at three miles. Three of the gates are ornamented with pillars, inlaid with green-lacquered bricks, and look very respectable; the other five are very small and mean. The walls are very weak, and here and there renewed with mud-bricks baked in the sun. The whole town is surrounded by gardens, which the Persians call _Meewa-khonéh_, or fruit-houses. One of these, to the West, belonging to HAJEE KHAN MAHOMED, is very extensive, and planted entirely with fruit-trees, excepting one row of poplars; the only other wood indeed which I saw at _Tabriz_, and that of which all the timber-work of their houses is constructed. There are thousands therefore planted on the borders of every stream about the city. The abundance of fruit in the season was already evident, by the state of the gardens, and particularly of the apricot trees. In the spaces between the lines, were mounds of earths in rows, on which vines were extended on an angle of about 60°, and irrigated by water introduced through channels formed by the bases of the mounds. To the N. W. of the city is a very extensive burial place; over the whole of which are strewed black blocks of stone or granite, carved in the manner which I have frequently described, and mostly without an inscription, though some bore the Arabic character. To the S. W. of the town are some more of these ancient tombs, one of which is of the red stone, evidently cut from the adjacent mountains; the others are of a black marble, which takes a fine polish, but which is now no longer used, nor could I learn even the situation of the quarries. One of the stones measured eight feet and a half in length, and two feet and a half in breadth; and covered probably some very distinguished hero: near it is a small mosque. The transparent or rather diaphanous substance, with beautiful veins, (which is called the marble of _Tabriz_, and which I have described in some of the public buildings at _Shiraz_ and _Ispahan_) is not procured near the city or taken from a quarry, but is said to be rather a petrifaction found in large quantities, and in immense blocks, on the borders of the lake _Shahee_, near the town of _Meraughéh_. It takes the finest polish, and is employed in baths, in the wainscoting of rooms, in tomb-stones, and in every other purpose where ornamental marble is necessary. There are twelve public baths, some of which are handsome; and there is a _bazar_, which extends the length of the city, but it is mean and dirty. _Tabriz_ has no mosques of any particular merit: on entering indeed there is the large ruin already mentioned; and to the S. W. of the city (enclosed in the _Ark_ or fort of _Ali Shah_, which contains the barracks and magazines) are the remains of another, now converted into a look-out house. This is a conspicuous, but very unseemly object, and to me seemed of little use, and from its height to be the most exposed either to the shock of an earthquake, or to an attack from a battery. The danger of earthquakes has taught the inhabitants of _Tabriz_ to build their houses generally as low as possible; and to employ more wood than brick and plaster, in their construction. For the same reason the _bazars_ have only wooden roofs, and are not arched as those in the better cities of Persia. Yet I am told that in earthquakes, the domed buildings (particularly the _Hummum Khan_, the largest in _Tabriz_) have invariably stood; where others, the strongest walls, have been rent asunder. _Tabriz_ had declined to an insignificant place, when about four years ago the present Prince, ABBAS MIRZA, the Heir Apparent of the crown, was appointed to the government of _Aderbigian_, and made it his capital. When we visited his city, he had resided there four years, and had guarded the frontiers of Persia against the Russians. During that time he had repaired and beautified the walls, had made a new _Maidan_, and erected some new buildings. Indeed, before, there was no place fit for his habitation; and all the great men attached to his court have since been obliged to build houses for their own accommodation. The Prince is said by the Persians to possess every quality, that can grace a mortal; and (as there are many circumstances in his character, which his countrymen would never think of inventing) I am inclined to believe them. They were related to me by the _Hakim_ or Governor of the city, at whose house I lodged during my residence at _Tabriz_. Some time ago, three of the Prince’s children died; his _Vizir_ appeared before him with a mournful face; the Prince observed him, and inquired the reason: the _Vizir_ hesitated, “Speak,” said the Prince, “is there any public disaster? have the Russians been successful? have they taken any more country from us?” “No,” answered the Minister, “it is not that; your children are sick:” “What of that?” asked the Prince; “But very sick indeed,” continued the _Vizir_: “Perhaps then they are dead,” interrupted the Father. His Minister confessed the truth. “Dead!” said the Prince, “why should I grieve? the state has lost nothing by them; had I lost three of my good servants, had three useful officers died, then indeed I should have grieved: but my children were babes, and God knows whether, if they had grown up to man’s estate, they would have proved good servants to their country.” The Prince is remarkable also for the plainness of his dress; he never wears any thing more than a coat of common _Kerbas_ (a strong cotton cloth) and a plain shawl round his waist. Whenever he sees any officers of his court in fine laced or brocade clothes, he asks them, “What is the use of all this finery. Instead of this gold and tinsel, why not buy yourself a good horse, a good sword, a good gun; this frippery belongs to women, not to one, who calls himself a man and a soldier.” He inspects himself all the detail of his troops, their arms, horses, and accoutrements, adopting those that appear to him fit for use, and rejecting those that are below his standard. The Governor of the city, who related these traits to me, had in his house at the time two hundred muskets, which the Prince refused out of two thousand, that had been sent to him from _Teheran_, having himself examined every single gun, and tried every lock. He is said also to be extremely liberal to his troops, and to give all his money among them. When I asked the Governor, if Messrs. JOUANNIN and NERCIAT, of the French Embassy, (who had arrived a few days before us, and whom I overtook at _Tabriz_) had as yet departed, he replied that they were gone. When he came back to me in the evening, he told me that they were not. He added, that on appearing before the Prince in the morning, he had related my question and his own answer; on which the Prince exclaimed, “You told him that they were gone! How could you tell him such a falsehood; I will not allow any of my servants to speak an untruth--Go and tell him that they are not gone.” It appeared that the Governor had been really mistaken in his first report. The Governor talked also of his Prince’s horsemanship, and skill in the chase, which were unequalled. He told me that at full gallop the Prince could shoot a deer with a single ball, or with the arrow from his bow, hit a bird on the wing. He combines indeed the three great qualities of the ancient Persians, which XENOPHON enumerates, riding, shooting with the bow, and speaking truth. His countrymen however are, in general, less severe in their estimate of the requisites of a great character, and are content to omit the last trait of excellence; but they never praise any one without placing in the foremost of his virtues his horsemanship; in which alone perhaps they possess any national pride. I once in fact was in some danger of a serious dispute, by hazarding a doubt, that the Turks rode better than the Persians. It is quite ridiculous to hear them boast of their own feats on horseback, and despise the cavalry of every other nation. They always said, “Perhaps your infantry may surpass ours; but our horsemen are the first in the world; nothing can stand before their activity and impetuosity.” In fact, they have courage--one of the first qualities of a horseman; they ride without the least apprehension over any country, climb the most dangerous steeps over rock and shrub; and keep their way in defiance of every obstacle of ground. They have also a firm seat, and that on a saddle which, among an hundred different sorts, would be called the least commodious. But that is all; they understand nothing of a fine hand, nor indeed with their bridles can they learn; for they use only a strong snaffle, fastened to the rein by an immense ring on each side, which they place indifferently in the strongest or weakest mouths: nor do they know how to spare their horses and save them unnecessary fatigue; for their pace is either a gallop on the full stretch, or a walk. As a nation, as fit stuff for soldiers, I know of no better materials. The Persian possesses the true qualities of the soldier; active, inured to labour, careless of life, admiring bravery, and indeed (as the chief object of their ambition) aspiring to the appellation of _resheed_ or courageous. The greater part of the Prince’s horse were sent out at this season into different districts, where grass is the most plentiful; and there were said to be only three thousand men in garrison at _Tabriz_. The amount of the general force under the government of the Prince, according to the information of his Prime Minister, is as follows:-- Cavalry 22,000 Infantry 12,000 Infantry disciplined in the European manner 6,000 ------ 40,000 The troops under these descriptions are composed principally of men furnished in different quotas in lieu of rent by the villages, but paid, clothed, and fed by the Prince. But besides this number actually enrolled, each man has also a substitute, who is similarly instructed in the use of arms, ready to supply his place if he should be cut off in battle, or prevented by any other accident. MIRZA BOZURK, first Minister to the Prince, appeared to me by far the most superior man whom I saw in Persia. I brought a present to him from the Envoy, which, however, he advised me to offer to the Prince in my own name, as it was not the custom in their country to pay a visit empty-handed to a person of rank. I resisted this, because, in the first place, I saw no necessity for the visit at any rate, as I was merely a passenger through the province, and had no business at the court. I mention this trait of liberality, because it is so singular in his nation. He talked much of the state of improvement in which the Prince’s administration had brought the province of _Aderbigian_; never speaking of his own counsels or co-operation, to which so much is due, but always referring the whole merit to the talents of his Prince. He said, that within one year they had brought their artillery to a state of perfection which might rival that of their enemies the Russians; that their infantry had now learned the perfect use of arms; and that, by the acknowledgment of the Russians themselves, the Persian soldiers were now a match for them. He added, that no pains had been spared to acquire a knowledge of military tactics, and the theory of fortification, which they had gleaned from French and Russian books, translated by the Prince’s order into Persian. The Minister said, that the Prince was the only person in Persia who had a complete set of charts, besides drawings of every instrument and weapon used by Europeans in war. He told me that they had discovered in _Aderbigian_ mines of iron and brass, which, entirely by their own ingenuity, they made productive; but that they still laboured under the greatest inconvenience from the want of proper artists and miners, and could not therefore derive the full profit which they might otherwise expect, or as yet reduce the price of their produce. According to the Minister, better guns are now cast at _Tabriz_ than at _Ispahan_; and they had invented also a small kind of artillery, which was sufficiently light to be carried by mules keeping pace with the march of their cavalry over mountains and difficult passes. When I offered to procure from England any books and other necessaries to facilitate their operations and give new light to those subjects upon which they were imperfectly informed; the Minister replied, that nothing in the world could afford greater satisfaction to the Prince and himself; but he added, “there is only one thing which England will keep from our knowledge, as she has done from every other nation, the art of building ships.” I assured him that England would furnish Persia not with instructions only, but with masters, as she had done for Turkey and Russia. He answered, “all this may be very true; but there is still an art which she possesses in matters of navigation which she will never disclose to any nation. If it be not so, how is it possible,” he continued, “that her ships should be so superior to all others, and that none have ever yet been able to defeat her in any combat at sea.” I answered, that her superiority consisted not in the ships, but, by the blessing of God, in the men that were in them; that, in fact, in building ships we were equalled, if not exceeded, by the French; and that the superiority could not rest in the vessels, since a considerable proportion of our navy consisted of prizes taken in battle. The Minister, however, was unconvinced, and continued to believe that there was some secret in our naval architecture on which our success depended. At our parting visit the Minister added, that the Prince was anxious to have some insight into the history of England, and desired me to bring with me on my return some book on the subject. He wished me also to procure for him histories of France and Russia, in order to compare them with those which he had already got; for, said he, “the English being known ever to tell the truth, and the French and Russians to be less scrupulous, the Prince will not be satisfied with what he has learnt, until He hears it confirmed by an English pen.” During our residence at his capital, the Prince received intelligence of the discovery of a lead mine in the territory of _Khalcal_, fourteen _fursungs_ from _Tabriz_, in the direction in which they had found mines of saltpetre and copper. As a specimen, a large piece of ore, almost pure and free from earth, was produced. At _Bakouba_ there is a mine of sulphur. The district of _Khalcal_ alone furnishes to the revenue of _Aderbigian_ fifty thousand _tomauns_; the whole of that revenue was stated to me at seven hundred thousand; but whatever may be the correctness of this account which I received from a Persian, the province is certainly the choicest part of Persia that we saw. The population of _Tabriz_ is to all appearance much exaggerated; I was told indeed that it contained fifty thousand houses, and two hundred and fifty thousand persons. There are about two hundred Armenian families, who live in a _Mahalé_ or parish by themselves. _Tabriz_ manufactures a great number of silk stuffs, which are much used. During our stay at _Tabriz_ the Prince spent a day in the garden of HAJEE KHAN MAHOMED. Whenever he wishes to shew any mark of attention, he sends to let the person know that he will be his guest on such a day. This sort of visit, however, generally costs the entertainer a large sum (in this instance two thousand _tomauns_) as the Prince is followed by his whole household. When he alights from his horse, shawls and gold stuffs are strewed on the ground, over which he walks: a part of the ceremony which is called the _Pai-endaz_. 28th. I dined with MIRZA HASSAN, son of the first Minister, MIRZA BOZURK. There were a number of young and pleasant men, who would have enlivened any company; but they seemed to vie with each other in the marvellous. As a specimen; a _Derveish_ had told one, that he was in his room when a shock of an earthquake threw him on the floor, where he lay for a long time in a trance; and on recovering, found himself, to his great surprise, extended in the court-yard, close under his apartment: a second shock having projected him senseless out of the window. Of slight-of-hand they recounted the most wonderful feats; and to all this, they swear by each other’s heads, eyes, sons, and fathers. The surest prognostic, indeed, of a falsehood is the number of emphatic oaths by which it is preceded. The Persians are called, with sufficient propriety, the Frenchmen of the East; they are indeed a talkative, complimentary, and insincere people, yet in manners agreeable and enlivening. A description of the etiquettes of the court, or even of private life, in Persia, would be a work of endless and trifling minutiæ. They are such however, and so well recognised, and so easily observed and imitated by every class from their youth, and indeed (in the government under which they live) so strongly mark the gradations of rank, that no person, even of the meanest condition, is ignorant of his proper situation, and of the several etiquettes attached to it. In the education of a young man of family, the principal feature is the course of instruction which he receives in the forms and phrases of society. For that purpose, from the earliest age of the pupil, masters attend who teach the modes of salutation, and the appropriate compliments to superiors and inferiors. They also instruct him, where to sit on entering a _Mujlis_ (or assembly); of whom he has the right of precedence, &c. and greater importance is assigned to this knowledge than almost to any thing else. Nothing marks this more strongly than the forms which gradually ascend in a regular scale from the peasant to the King. The first Minister appears under the same discipline of humiliation before his Majesty, as the _Rayat_, before the _Ket Khoda_ of his village; and it is somewhat ridiculous to see that man, who sat in state in his _Dewan_, surrounded by a numerous circle of obsequious attendants, performing the next moment, in his turn, all the offices of one of those attendants before the King. In Persia, and I believe generally over the East, a son never sits down in the presence of his father. Thus the King’s sons always stand before him, and are regarded only as the first of his servants. Prince ABBAS MIRZA, who is Governor of _Aderbigian_, and Heir Apparent of the crown, when he repairs to the court of his father, appears there like any one of the other sons, with the single advantage of taking the precedence of the rest. The King is never approached by his subjects without frequent inclinations of the body; and when the person introduced to his presence has reached a certain distance, he waits until the King orders him to proceed; upon which he leaves his shoes, and walks forwards with a respectful step to a second spot, until His Majesty again directs him to advance. No one ever sits before the King except relations of Kings, Poets, learned and Holy Men, and Embassadors: His Ministers and Officers of State are never admitted to the privilege. The place of honour is on the left. When an inferior visits a superior, he sits at a distance, and not on the same _musnud_. He places himself on the _Nummud_ (the long carpet that skirts the room); nor even there, till he is desired: and, in approaching his superior, he is very careful to cover himself with his outer-coat, and to sit down directly on his heels, so that his feet are completely hidden. When a servant comes before his master, he makes an inclination of his body; and, when he goes away, he walks backwards until he reaches the door, where he makes another inclination. There is as much etiquette in smoking as in sitting. No inferior calls for his _kaleoon_, until the superior has given the lead. No one can smoke before the King; and only particular persons before the Princes. I had some conversation with a native of _Mazanderan_, who extolled the virtues of his countrymen, and complained of the ill-conduct of their rulers, in equal proportion. He himself had been despoiled of his property, and reduced almost to beggary; but, as he added, many from his province had gone to India, and by their abilities on a more favourable ground, had realized fortunes. He told me that there were two entrances into _Mazanderan_; one, by the _Pile Rud-bar_, the road through which leads off the bridge over which we crossed the _Kizzil Ozan_; and the other, by the way of _Resht_ on the borders of the sea. The _Jungle_, or wild woodland, is so impenetrable, that, according to his illustration, an arrow discharged from a bow cannot force it, but strikes on the exterior reeds. The _Pile Rud-bar_ is perhaps the ancient _Fauces Hyrcaniæ_; and the accounts of OLEARIUS, and other modern travellers, as well as the intelligence that I received, confirm the original tremendous descriptions. I had been told at _Teheran_, that men are stationed at different intervals to give notice to travellers of the approach of others in an opposite direction; for in the narrowest part two mules cannot pass, nor can they turn back. I was further told at _Tabriz_, that the great causeway built by SHAH ABBAS, is falling into total decay; and in some places is so much ruined, that though mules and horses may still travel upon it, camels can no longer be used. The avenues therefore to _Mazanderan_ might be successfully guarded by twenty expert fusileers, against any force that could be brought. The people indeed had frequently petitioned their government to repair the causeway; but it has been the policy of the court to leave it in its present state, that in case of any necessity the King might retire there in safety, and defend himself in the inaccessible fastnesses which the condition of the province thus opposes to an enemy. The vessels which navigate the _Caspian_, are (according to the same authority) very rude and ill-built, being planks put together without any caulking to their seams; the people are therefore obliged incessantly to bail the water off in buckets; for they have not learnt the use of pumps, a knowledge indeed to which alone he attributed the superiority of the Russian vessels. He told me that the people of _Ghilan_ have a language of their own, distinct from both the Persian and the Turkish, and bearing indeed no affinity to either; although, on questioning him further on the subject, I found that they had no books written in that language, and that it was merely a _Patois_, or corrupted Persian, which the common people spoke. In continuing our conversation, he mentioned that near the town of _Ashreff_, on the West of _Asterabad_, is a tribe of people called _Goudar_, in number about one hundred houses, or five hundred souls, who inhabit the wild country in the neighbourhood. If my _Mazanderan_ informer may be credited, they are of no religion; and in the intercourse of the sexes, appears to descend low into savage life. A man feeling an inclination for a woman, asks her mother’s leave to carry her out into the woods, where he passes two or three days with her; and then either lives with her himself, or returns her to her mother. Their principal food is the flesh of the wild hog, of which there are vast numbers in the district. These hogs are killed by the children of the tribe, who are exercised almost from the time that they can walk, in the bow and the matchlock, and are described, in consequence, as never erring shots. From him too I received an account of their more celebrated neighbours the _Turcomans_, the confines of whose territory are close to _Asterabad_. They are _Sunnis_, and in consequence execrated by the Persians, who call them _Giaours_ or Infidels. They live in tribes or _eels_, being subject to no particular master. Each tribe has, indeed, a nominal chief chosen by themselves, but possessing no further authority among them than that of settling differences, and arranging their civil economy. As a people, they have no fixed habitations; but carry about the tents in which they live, and which the Persians call _Kara Khader_, black tents. Their general characteristics are those common to all wandering nations; great hospitality within their own boundaries, and universal depredation abroad. The _Turcomans_ make incursions into Persia; frequently crossing the wide intervening desert of sand, and surprising and carrying away from the centre of towns and villages men, women, and children. They, even now, extend their inroads as far as _Koom_, _Kashan_, _Langarood_, _Nusserabad_; and the ruined villages about _Koom_ were destroyed by them. These Raids, which are called _Chappow_, are performed on horseback by parties of twenty or thirty with incredible speed and activity. Their horses (renowned over the East for swiftness and hardiness) support them admirably in these expeditions, as like their riders they undergo immense fatigue with a very small portion of food. They are, therefore, bought by the neighbouring nations at vast prices; which, (with the sale among other tribes of their captives, and of their camels, sheep, &c.) supply the chief source of the _Turcoman’s_ wealth, and accumulate immense sums in ready money. The captives lead a wretched life: if young, they are sent into the interior to tend the cattle; but when they grow old and unfit for service, they are killed by their masters; who comfort their consciences by placing the skin of the deceased at the threshold of their door, in the belief that he approaches Paradise in proportion as his skin gets pierced with holes and worn out. On the other hand, their hospitality, the theme of so many pens, is not exaggerated. A stranger, laden with gold and precious stones, who claims protection at the tent of a _Turcoman_ is sure to find it. He remains there as long as he pleases, his person and his property are in perfect safety, and, when he is desirous to depart, he is escorted by one of the tribe, which alone is a sufficient protection to him through the whole of their own district, and through every other kindred people. Caravans thus travel from _Asterabad_ to _Astrachan_ without molestation, and in the full security of the property which they convey. _Turcomania_ is said to be extremely populous, but wholly uncultivated. The people feel not the want of corn, and are content therefore to live upon the flesh of horses, camels, and sheep, and on the milk of mares and camels. They excavate a large hole in the ground, in which they make a fire; and, placing the meat in the embers, cover it up until it be baked. To the Northward of _Turcomania_ are the _Kamchauks_, who inhabit a desert, and are reported to be most ferocious and warlike, and hitherto unconquered. All these inhabit the Eastern borders of the _Caspian Sea_, called by the Persians _Dereea-Kulzum_.[41] The Persians are at present at peace with the _Turcomans_, although they are still equally liable to be surprised by their _Chappow_ parties. In the time even of SHAH ABBAS these depredations were carried to an inconceivable extent. AGA MAHOMED KHAN, the late King, made several attempts against them without any profit; and particularly indeed against the _Kamchauks_, where he met with a defeat. In former times the _Turcomans_ used to make their attacks on the coasts of _Ghilan_ and _Mazanderan_ in boats. Now they are not so depredatory; because the country is more inaccessible, and the people, according to my informer, are more dextrous in their matchlock guns and bows; so much, indeed, are they improved, that, in the true Persian style, he added, “Twenty men of _Mazanderan_ will beat one thousand _Turcomans_.” We recommenced our journey on the 1st of June; and on that day waited upon MIRZA BOZURK to pay our respects to him on leaving _Tabriz_. He told us that we were now departing at a most lucky hour, for that this had been the morning fixed some time ago by the astrologers as the most fortunate for the Prince to leave his capital, preparatory to his usual summer campaign. He informed us, among other news, (that had just reached him from _Constantinople_) that the Turks had defeated the Russians, and had taken so many prisoners that they were selling them in the _bazars_ at _Constantinople_. CHAP. XVI. TABRIZ TO ARZ-ROUM. PERSIAN TRAVELLING--DEPARTURE FROM TABRIZ--BEAUTY OF THE COUNTRY--LAKE OF SHAHEE--STATION OF RAHDARS--KHOI; TOWN; GARDENS; PLAIN--AGRICULTURE--ELAUTS--CONVENIENCE OF TENTS--COURDISTAN ROBBERS--HERDS OF MARES--FRONTIERS OF PERSIA AND TURKEY--BAYAZID--MOUNT ARARAT--RECEPTION IN THE TENTS OF THE ELAUTS--DIADIN; THE EUPHRATES--IBRAHIM PACHA; VISIT TO HIS ENEMY TIMUR BEG; RECEPTION AT THE CASTLE OF TURPA CALEH--DEPOPULATION OF THE COUNTRY--OMEN--RIVER ARAXES--CONDUCT OF THE AGA OF ALWAR. The mode of travelling in Persia is easy and commodious. In winter they generally begin their journey at sun-rise. The baggage proceeds, and then the master. He breakfasts either before he sets off, or in a more pleasant spot on the road, (regarding in each case the advantage of a stream of running water as the motive of preference;) and thus he allows time for his luggage to reach the stage before him, and his people to prepare every thing for his reception, spread his carpets, and get the necessary articles for cooking his dinner. On his arrival he eats his _choshtá_, or intermediate meal, and then sleeps. At sun-set he takes another repast (his _noshtá_); and his servants then pack up every thing ready for his departure the next morning. He proceeds by easy stages, generally from five to six leagues a-day, which, as he always rides his own horses, is a good day’s journey at the common rate of travelling. If he has a _Mehmandar_ with him, he is fed and lodged and travels entirely at the public expence. When the _Mehmandar_ arrives at the village, he produces his _firman_, (in which the kind and quantity of the articles to be provided are specified;) and demands a correspondent supply from the inhabitants. 1st June, 1809. We left the _Khoi_ gate of _Tabriz_ at seven o’clock, and in six hours and a half reached _Ali Shah_, a distance called by the people of the country six _fursungs_, and which I reckoned at twenty-four miles. From the top of our lodging at _Ali Shah_, I could see the mountain near which _Tabriz_ is situated, I can therefore place exactly the bearing of our route, at N. 75 W. We kept to the Eastward of the plain in consequence of the difficulties along the road through the centre, which was then in many places overflowed. Near _Tabriz_ on the left, are some gardens and houses, called _Hucknavar_; then the village of _Mayan_. To the Eastward of the city itself, is a conspicuous hill called the _Bahalil Tapé_, which abounds in every kind of game. Having travelled three miles from _Tabriz_ on a bearing nearly N. we came to a bridge of nine large and three small arches, thrown over the river _Agi_, which, flowing from E. to W. falls at length into the lake of _Shahee_. The river rises near _Ardebil_; and is fordable by mules where we crossed it, though we preferred the bridge, which happened indeed to be in better repair than those between _Teheran_ and _Tabriz_. At about four miles from the city, we passed a village called _Alwar_; and three miles further another of the same name, each surrounded with a cultivated territory, intersected by a thousand dikes and _kanauts_. The greatest part of the plain is of a soil strongly impregnated with salt; and as in every other district of the same quality, we witnessed the curious effects of the vapour, (called _Ser Aub_) which overspread the plain. About four miles before we reached _Ali Shah_, we crossed a bridge of four arches, over a pool of standing salt water. The industry of agriculture was visible, and the crops of barley and corn were luxuriant and promising. The plain of _Tabriz_ extends far to the W. and S.; the mountains which border it on those directions being just designed in very light tints in the horizon. To the Northward and Eastward it is bounded by hard-featured lands of an inferior elevation, indicating on their surfaces the minerals below. There are several pretty villages situated to the North, on the declivity of the mountain about three or four miles from _Ali Shah_, and which, together with it and others to the W. are in the _Mahalé_ or district of _Ghunéh_. The lake of _Shahee_ is about seven _fursungs_ from _Ali Shah_, and the middle of the long mountain (which extends into the centre of the lake, and which now appeared isolated on the horizon of the plain) bore S. 50 W. of our station. In my progress to _Constantinople_, I traversed a country in its conformation most picturesque, and in its productions most luxuriant. No traveller in any season, or in any direction, could have passed these scenes without admiration; but I saw them in all the richness of spring, contrasted with a winter in Persia; and after the leafless and barren region which I had passed, I enjoyed doubly the wild prodigality of vegetation, which in the early part of the year is displayed through Asia Minor. The impression therefore of delight which I experienced, was strongest at the first point of contrast; and the first verdure and foliage which I saw near _Tabriz_, appeared to me to constitute the very perfection of landscape. 2d June. If a writer of romance would describe beautiful scenery, he might select our departure from _Ali Shah_. We began our journey by a most charming moonlight; and the sky was delightfully serene. Just as the sun was rising we reached an orchard, (full of every species of fruit, particularly almonds, and) skirting the town of _Shebester_; which, embosomed in trees of every hue, was situated on the declivity of the mountains on our right. _Shebester_ is a large town, surrounded by several villages, and by more wood and cultivation, than any spot I had yet seen in Persia. Hitherto indeed the want of trees, either as a shade to the road, or as a relief to the inequalities of the heights, had been constant and uniform. We admired therefore doubly the beauties of our present course. Streams of running water were meandering in every direction amid the numerous willows, poplars, almonds, and other trees, which bordered our road: and at intervals the artificial dikes were opened to admit water into the beds of rice. The greater part of the country was covered with verdure, for the new corn was already well advanced both in maturity and plenty. Peasantry enlivened the fields by the labours of the spade or the plough. After quitting _Shebester_ we came in full view of the delightful lake of _Shahee_. It derives its name from the surrounding _Mahalé_, which may contain twenty villages. I was told that its waters are as salt as the sea, and that the sand over which they flow, produces the salt used at _Tabriz_. It extended itself N. W. and S. E. before us, and its Western extremities were terminated by a stupendous chain of mountains, whose snowy summits, softened by the haze, contrasted admirably with the light azure of the lake. As we proceeded, the long mountain (which I mentioned in the route of yesterday, extending itself and forming a peninsula in the lake) appeared to have no connection whatever with the surrounding lands; and, by a stranger to the real topography, would have been pronounced an island. Its termination (to the south as seen from our road) was in the form of a sugar-loaf. Near _Shebester_ we passed the village of _Misholéh_, and, lower down in the plain, those of _Arsaléh_ and _Halee_, on the left of the road. Others indeed are seen at every turn, situated at small intervals on either side alternately, all in the _Mahalé_ of _Ghunéh_. Among them are _Besh-kefelout_, on the left; _Khomyéh_, prettily surrounded with verdure, on the right; _Shinwar_, on the left again; _Kuzec-dunar_, on the right, three _fursungs_ before we reached our stage at _Tasouj_; and on the left, about two miles from the borders of the lake, _Alibanglou_, the first place in the _Bolouk_ of _Aeenzaub_. In this line we stopt and fed our cattle and ourselves; while a refreshing breeze from the Westward just curled up the waters of the lake, and waved the corn fields which extended themselves on all sides of us. Our bread and _moss_ was shared by a stranger who was going to _Oroumi_, a large town, distant thirty _fursungs_ from _Tabriz_; and situated, by the pointing of his hand, S. 50 W. from us, on the left or West side of the lake, which the road continues to skirt through its whole course. On the East of the lake is _Saouk Bolag_, the site of the ancient city of _Sheherivan_. The country, through which we passed in the day, was interesting and picturesque; in every turn of the view enriched by the lake and its surrounding capes and mountains. From all that I could learn in this region, (and I inquired of many who had travelled repeatedly over this part of _Aderbigian_), there appeared to exist no other lake than this of _Shahee_. And I have as regularly made direct inquiries about the situation of the city of _Van_ and its lake, without obtaining any thing like a satisfactory answer. On the contrary, the very existence of such a place, and such a lake, was always denied; I mention this, when the position of _Van_ has been clearly ascertained, to shew how general was the ignorance of the people on every subject which was not immediately within their own circumscribed district. Nor was I more successful in my inquiries on the real extent of the lake before them: every one said that it was very large, and that it reached further, than from its appearance we might suppose. At about five miles from _Tasouj_, there is a village on the left called _Rahdar Khoné_; and then a station of _Rahdars_, or custom-house officers. As we passed it, one of them, a man of a much more respectable appearance than any of the class whom we had seen on other occasions, told us that a driver with seven loaded mules had gone forwards, and refused to pay the duties, alleging that his beasts were carrying part of our baggage; and were therefore in the King’s service, and as such exempt from the impost. In fact, however, my _Charwardar_ (or conductor of the mules or caravan) had added to my charge this number, above those that were necessary for my purposes; and, having already received a part of their hire from me, was now employing them still more to his own profit, by conveying upon them, duty-free, in my name, the goods of some _Tabriz_ merchants. On discovering the fraud, I resigned him into the hands of the officer, with full liberty to exact his dues; a licence, under which he begun immediately to cudgel the shoulders of the defaulter. The duties here are high, being five _reals_ on each load. Some miles before we reached _Tasouj_, the lake begins to make an elliptical termination, and the road to turn off on a more Northern angle. We were eight hours in travelling the whole distance from _Ali Shah_, which we reckoned at thirty-two miles, on a bearing of N. 60 W. _Tasouj_, from the great extent of the ruined walls about it, appears once to have been a large place, but it is now reduced, by earthquakes, to the denomination of a village. There are remains of domed bazars and mosques, spread in every part of the place. June 3. The distance from _Tasouj_ to _Khoi_ is called eight _fursungs_; we were however nine hours on the road, and calculated the journey at thirty-six miles. The general direction was N. 30 W. Our course for the first ten miles, to the foot of the range, (which encloses the plain and lake of _Shahee_) bore nearly West; when we suddenly turned to the North through the mountains; and, for ten miles more, wound among them through some very narrow defiles, and by some sharp ascents and descents, till we reached on the opposite side the plain of _Khoi_. Towards the lake the mountains are mostly of an argillaceous soil, but change into fine earth as they approach the plain of _Khoi_. In this direction they are green to their very summits, and their intervening vallies are covered with the finest pastures. We had left _Tasouj_ by moonlight: we could not therefore discover with any accuracy the nature of the country, which we traversed in the first part of our route; though we discerned indistinctly groves of trees, and heard the falling cascade in the recesses of the vallies. The first view of the plain of _Khoi_, from the summit of the pass in the mountains, is sublime. The city and its more immediate territory are seen on the N. but separated from the rest of the plain by a border of green hills, which seem to divide the expanse into two parts. At the distance of two _fursungs_ from _Khoi_, we passed on the right the village of _Disajiz_, surrounded by fields of wheat and barley. On the left of the plain are some more villages; and one curious mound of red soil, crowned by a hillock of salt, besides several other white mounds, which are described as entirely of the same substance. We passed the small range of hills, and came all at once upon the more circumscribed plain of _Khoi_, which is opened by a seven-arched bridge, bordered on each side by rocks, and forming with the fine stream below a complete picture. The river is called the _Otour_, and flows from W. to E. falling into the _Arras_ or _Araxes_, about twelve _fursungs_ further to the Eastward. The plain of _Khoi_ (in breadth from N. to S. five miles, and in length ten) was the richest tract that we had seen. It was covered with corn, broken only here and there by the foliage of enclosed gardens. Of these gardens we ventured to enter one, which was renowned all over the country for its beauty and fruitfulness. It stands on the left of the road about two miles from the walls of _Khoi_, and was made by HOSSEIN KHAN, Governor of the city in the time of AGA MOHAMED KHAN; but it has now become the property of the government. It consists of a fine alley of _chenar_ trees, which leads up to a pleasure-house, now falling into decay, built on the elevation of six terraces, from each of which falls a beautiful cascade, conducted by _kanauts_ from the neighbouring mountains. On the right and left is a wood of fruit trees of every sort and description, with a fine crop of grass at their roots. From the pleasure-house is seen, through the alleys of _chenars_, the whole territory of _Khoi_, one of the most lively landscapes that we found in Persia. The _chenar_ is really a delightful tree; its bole is of a fine white and smooth bark, and its foliage, which grows in a tuft at the summit, is of a bright green. Those in the garden had not attained their full growth. Their trunks are every where carved with the invocation of “_Ya Ali_;” proceeding probably from the ecstacies of those, who visit this little Persian paradise. _Khoi_ is surrounded with a wall, and with towers of a different construction to any which we had remarked in other fortified towns of Persia. They are triangular in front, with a species of connecting work behind them. There are four gates, which are of stone, and very superior to most of those that I had noticed elsewhere. Within the walls are twenty mosques and six baths. There are said to be ten thousand houses, and a population of fifty thousand persons, of which the larger proportion are Armenians. The Mussulmans live in a parish or _Mahalé_ of their own. The territory is so extremely fertile, that _Khoi_, with the surrounding villages, pays annually to the public treasure the sum of one hundred thousand _tomauns_. _Khoi_ is much warmer, from its local situation, than _Tabriz_. Roses here were in full flower, whereas a little opening bud was reckoned a rarity at _Tabriz_; and probably in twenty days from the date of our visit, the plain lost its verdure, and assumed the beautiful gilding of a ripe corn-field. Six _fursungs_ South from _Khoi_ is an equally large and populous town called _Salmas_; where, as I afterwards learnt at _Arz-roum_, are “sculptured rocks and many ruins.” My informer added, that one of the subjects represented two men, of whom one, looking over his left shoulder, pointed with his hand to a spot which the people of the neighbourhood affirm to contain a hidden treasure, though they admit that the deposit has escaped all research. 4th of June, 1809. The Prince had ordered four men to attend us into the Turkish territories; and as they did not reach us at _Khoi_, we should probably have awaited their arrival there, if I had not resisted such an arrangement, declaring that it would be better to advance one mile, than in our circumstances to remain idle for one single day. Accordingly, notwithstanding the pressing invitation of NEJEF KOOLI KHAN, the Governor, to stay the day with him, we departed for _Péréh_, a village two _fursungs_ from _Khoi_, which I call six miles, and in a bearing of N. 60 W. The morning was one of the loveliest in Spring, lightly covered with clouds, with a softness in the air which seemed to soothe every varied work of nature into tacit enjoyment of the bounty and munificence of their Almighty Creator. I shall ever recollect with thankfulness the delightful sensations which I experienced in passing the beautiful plain of _Khoi_; where every innocent sense received its gratification, and ripened into thoughts teeming with love and gratitude to their divine Maker. Every thing was rich and beautiful: the mountains were green to their very summits; and their inequalites were here and there enriched by beds of wild flowers of the most lively and luxuriant hues. Scarcely two miles from _Khoi_ is a very large collection of houses and gardens, which is a _Mahalé_ or parish of the town, and is well inhabited. A stream from the mountains runs through it; and on the skirts to the N. are two pillars of brick, which are described either as the tomb or the cenotaph of a famous poet and learned _Mollah_ of _Tabriz_, called _Shemsé_. _Péréh_ is a pretty village, situated on the declivity of the hills, which gradually form the bases of the adjoining mountains; on the summit of one of these hills is an old square fort, now in ruins: and in its neighbourhood are two other villages called _Pesé_ and _Zaidé_. There are walnut-trees, willows, poplars, elms, and fruit-trees of every description in the highest perfection, with a great profusion of grass. On this as well as on the other side of _Tabriz_, the peasants convey their loads on the backs of oxen, on which indeed they frequently ride themselves. At _Péréh_ I saw the first wheeled-carriage (excepting gun-carriages) that I had noticed in Persia. It was exactly similar to the Turkish _Araba_. Besides their plough, which I have already described, the Persians have the large rake, which serves as a harrow, and is fastened to a pole and drawn like a plough by yoked oxen: they have another implement of agriculture, which is certainly capable of much improvement. It is a pole fixt transversely on another to which the oxen are yoked; on each of these is a small wooden cylinder about half a foot long: and these insignificant things are dragged as a roller over the ground. June the 5th. We went from _Péréh_ to _Zauviéh_ in six hours and a half, on a bearing of N. 50 W. which may be twenty-four miles. During the whole of the preceding evening it had rained, accompanied by thunder and lightning. Our ride, therefore, was rendered muddy. From _Péréh_ we entered some mountains of easy access; which, about ten miles before we reached _Zauviéh_, opened into a plain surrounded like a basin by mountains, on all sides gradually inclining to the centre. On entering the plain, high on the right on the declivity of the mountain, is the village of _Selawan_; and on the left a small village called _Khoré_; and on the turn of the road towards it, are two stone lions among some rude and ancient tomb-stones. The greater part of the population of the plain is composed of Armenians. To the West are very high mountains, the tops of which were covered with snow, and their roots, when we passed by, were nearly concealed by the heavy clouds that rested upon them. The snow was melting, and frequently streams were pouring from the mountains. Yet the difference of the temperature of the air here, and that which we had experienced within a few days, was very sensible; and before sun-rise it was piercingly cold. The plain was cultivated in all parts. The whole of the soil, over which we passed, was of the finest brown mould; so that, excepting some summits of the mountains, the country was one universal carpet of verdure. We met a large party of the _Elauts_ or wandering tribes, composed mostly of women and children, who were travelling to a fresh encampment. One of the women, who had the care of two children, had dismounted; and the extreme agility with which she got on her horse again, without any other aid than her own hands and feet, shewed how much she was accustomed to this sort of life. We sent forwards our _Mehmandar_ to desire that tents might be pitched for us, because we had been advised to avoid the village on account of the plague, which sometimes visits these parts. Accordingly we found four tents pitched for us, two of horse-hair, (the real _Kara Khader_ of the _Eels_), and two white tents, rude enough indeed, but so delightfully situated in the plain, surrounded by corn fields, that we quite revelled in the exchange. We had not long taken possession of our humble encampment, when a storm of thunder, lightning and hail overwhelmed us, in a manner which completely destroyed all the comfort of our interior arrangements. Hail-stones fell in numbers which entirely filled every corner of our tent, and so large, that measuring one I found it to be an inch in diameter, and so strongly congealed that they lay on the ground undiminished in size, until the sun once more broke out and dissolved them. The hills near us received a new covering of snow, shewing their summits as the storm rolled away, in sublime grandeur. The peasants told us, that this weather was very common to them. Although this was but an ungracious beginning to a pastoral life, yet I must own that to me it still had so many delights compared with the confinement of houses, that with all the present disadvantages I would willingly prefer it to a residence in the towns of Persia. Among its enjoyments is that of its freedom from vermin, from which (particularly fleas) we had hitherto suffered so much; not that the people are singularly dirty, but the creatures are the usual productions of the place and season. A Persian who was conversing with us in our tent, on seeing my servant beating a coat with a cane to clean it of the vermin which it had collected at the former stage, very gravely asked, “Pray what crime has that coat committed, that makes the _Frangee_ beat it so?” June the 6th. The quantity of rain that had fallen during the course of the day had completely saturated the greatest part of our clothes and baggage, and materially increased the weight of the lading of our mules. Thanks to God, it did not rain in the night; and we slept soundly till about an hour before the break of day, when we quitted our black tents for the village of _Cara-ainéh_. The distance, on a bearing of N. 20 W. is called five _fursungs_; but though we were nearly six hours on the road, I shall not reckon it at more than eighteen miles, because we were delayed in our progress by the mud, which the rain and hail had created. We took a turn to the Eastward from our encampment, and came to a village called _Iekaftee_, on the borders of a mountain torrent swoln and rendered so rapid by the late storms, that two or three of our mules had nearly been carried away by its violence. On the right of the road (at the distance of five miles from our last station) is a spring dammed up, except at an aperture in one of its corners, through which a small quantity of water is permitted to ooze out, called in Turkish, _Ak-bolagh_, or “white spring:” and three miles further, and distant from the road two miles, on the left, is a collection of a few wretched hovels called _Kurkendéh_, surrounded by cultivated fields. About this spot the road was formerly so infested with the _Curdistan_ robbers, that it was never passed without danger: but since Prince ABBAS MIRZA has had the government of _Aderbigian_ in his hands, he has so completely expelled the freebooters from their haunts, that no district is now so safe. We traversed a pass formed by the gradual meeting of the roots of the mountains, and then entered an oval plain, extending, on a rough calculation, in length eight miles from N. to S, and three in breadth. The village of _Cara-ainéh_, our _Menzil_, is here immediately seen, and is easily marked by a square fort, which, rising from the midst of its miserable huts, appears a palace in comparison. This village is the chief of a _Mahalé_ of the same name, composed of about twenty-one villages, the principal of which are _Hiderlou_, _Nabekandi_, _Gelish Acha_, _Sedel_, _Zaiveh_, and _Ak-dezeh_. From _Cara-ainéh_ there is a road to _Van_, a distance of fifty miles, on a bearing of S. W. We had now reached the dregs of Persia. Beyond _Khoi_ and _Péréh_ both the habitations and the people bore an appearance of misery, indicative of a neglected country. This deterioration is probably inseparable from the borders of two states, which are ill-defined as to territory and actual property. None but the _Ket Khoda_ had a decent coat, and all the rest were in tatters and beggary. The _Thaubet_ of _Cara-ainéh_ had been appointed to his government only the day before our arrival, an excuse which he alleged for his inability to satisfy us in several of our inquiries. His appearance, indeed, bespoke the truth of his apology; for he was dressed from head to foot in new clothes, new cap, new coat, new slippers; doubtless to impress his peasantry with a sense of his superiority. We had rain all the day, and almost incessant thunder and lightning. The tract over which we passed, though generally of admirable soil, was for the greater part waste. We saw, however, immense flocks, some perhaps of one thousand sheep, grazing in the fat pastures on the declivities and in the recesses of the mountains; and large herds also of mares with their foals. These were the property of the _Elauts_: the mares belonging to the King are kept in _Mazanderan_, which is said to afford the finest pasture of his dominions. Their foals are thence distributed to the troops as they may be wanted. The Guardian or Controller of these Royal herds is an officer of considerable consequence, and is selected always from men of rank and importance in the state. He is called _Elkhee-chee_ or Master of the Mares, and resides at _Asterabad_, where he holds his office, registering every foal as it falls. He has subordinate agents, entrusted severally with the charge of twenty mares, and with the choice of their pastures, besides the inferior grooms who tend the animals daily. The foals are not backed until they have completed their third year. 7th. The morning was darkened by clouds which covered the whole sky; the thickest resting on the tops of the mountains, and extending themselves in some parts nearly to the bases. We quitted our wretched habitation at _Cara-ainéh_, to pace a miserable road; the bottom of which, always wet and deep, was rendered still more impracticable by a shower of rain that overtook us, soon after we had quitted the village. Almost at the extremity of the plain is a swamp; on the surface of the waters of which were innumerable flocks of ducks and other wild-fowl. We noticed two cranes stepping away before us at a great pace, and hiding their legs from us by letting fall their tails. The soil was rich almost beyond calculation, and afforded the finest pastures. We crossed the village of _Ak-dezeh_, and then leaving the plain, wound through the vallies which were formed by the Western mountains. The whole country was watered by numerous torrents; on the borders of one we spread as our breakfast, the scanty remains of our yesterday’s meal; which, in such a spot however, would have been a real treat to the lovers of romance. The scene indeed, alone, consoled us for our bad fare at _Cara-ainéh_. A stupendous mass of rock rose perpendicularly over our heads; and at our feet foamed and roared the torrent, while the whole view was enriched by the verdure of the distant landscape, and enlivened by the chirping of innumerable birds. About twelve miles from _Cara-ainéh_ are several hills; the declivities of which are strewed with large masses of black rock, evidently from their weight and their calcined appearance, full of metal. The whole seems to be volcanic matter. After quitting these hills we came into the plain, at the extremity of which is situated _Agajik_, a miserable Armenian village, about the same size as our former stage. We were six hours and a half in travelling the distance, twenty-two miles, on a bearing of N. 20 W. In the centre of the plain a caravan, from _Oroumi_, was grazing its mules: the driver of it told us, that he had been eight days on the journey, at the rate of four _agatch_ a day, making a total of about one hundred miles. Here the distances are measured by the _agatch_, which corresponds exactly to the _sahat_ or hour. The village consisted of huts, surrounding an old square fort on a hill. Our lodging was a covered building, in the roof of which were two small holes to admit light; and in the interior of which a square of twenty feet was parted off by a wall three feet high, for the residence of the master, while the remainder was reserved for his cattle. The costume of the people was changing fast; and the black sheep-skin cap of Persia was scarcely seen. The day was overspread with clouds till near sun-set, when it cleared away a little to the Northward, and shewed us the sublime and venerable mountain of _Ararat_. It bore N. 10 E. of our station, and presented a stupendous mass to our view. The Persians told me that it was eight hours distance from us; and added many a story of its wonders. Such as--that no one, who attempted to ascend it, ever returned; and that one hundred men who had been sent from _Arz-roum_ by the _Pacha_, to effect the undertaking, all died. The Armenian priest assured me, with a very grave face, that the ark was still there. There is a smaller mountain on the same range, bearing N. 30 E. which is called by the Turks, _Cochuk Agri-dagh_, as the larger _Ararat_ is called _Agri-dagh_. _Ararat_ is the _Macis_ of the Armenians. The sources of the _Euphrates_ are twelve hours from _Agajik_, in a direction of N. 50 W. by the peasant’s pointing. The Armenians told me that they had a _Zeeauret_, or place of devotion, at the sources called _Wes Kionk_. 8th. We left _Agajik_ with five men, who, according to the custom, accompanied us out of their frontier into the Turkish territory. At about two miles and a half from _Agajik_ is another Armenian village, called _Kilsé_, from the ruins of a church (_Ecclesia_), which forms a conspicuous object among its mean huts, being well-built with a fine white stone, with arched doors and windows. Even in its ruins, however, the present poor inhabitants still contrive to keep up a place of worship within the interior. About three miles and a half N. 30 W. from _Agajik_, are the boundaries of the Persian and Turkish territories marked by a ruined tower, situated in the centre of a valley. [Illustration: _Mount Ararat._ _Drawn by James Morier Esq^r._ _Published by Mess^{rs}. Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, Paternoster Row, May 1, 1811._] As we were feeding our horses, the person whom we had sent to _Bayazid_ (to intimate our approach to the locum-tenens of IBRAHIM PACHA, who was himself on an excursion against the _Courds_) returned, and told us that the Acting-governor would not receive us into the city, nor give us a passage near it; alleging as a reason, that his master the _Pacha_ had left strict orders, that during his absence no strangers, and particularly no Persians, should be admitted. This unexpected news staggered us at first, but at length we determined to send one of the _Mirza’s_ own men to exert the influence of his master’s station in our favour. We proceeded, following our messenger: the road took a turn to N. 30 E. and shewed us once again in a much larger exposure than before the stupendous _Ararat_. It is indeed a sublime and almost terrific object. It rises from an immense variety of lands; and is covered with snow, and almost always surrounded with clouds. We stopt at a small Armenian village called _Kerdek_, (on the left of the road, one _fursung_ from _Bayazid_,) to await the return of our second messenger. We did not tarry long, when he appeared, though only to confirm the report of his predecessor. The Turks would not suffer him even alone to enter the city; for as soon as he approached, they fired a musket or two, to convince him that their resistance would not be confined to threats; and when he endeavoured to come to a parley, they answered him only with ill language and abuse. We determined therefore immediately upon taking a circuit to avoid _Bayazid_, and seeking IBRAHIM PACHA himself, from whom we expected a handsome reception; as the Persians represented him to me as a vassal of their Prince ABBAS MIRZA, fearing Him rather than his own sovereign. Our road to day averaged N. 10 W. a distance of ten miles; the same bearing indeed may be extended to _Bayazid_, on a further distance of four miles. _Bayazid_, as I learned in its neighbourhood, is situated close at the foot of Mount _Ararat_: it is peopled principally by Armenians. On a hill about it, is a castle, which by its defenders is said to be strong; they are very jealous however of the curiosity of a Persian. 9th. Three men, whom we anxiously expected from Prince ABBAS MIRZA to accompany us to _Constantinople_, joined us on the evening of the 8th; and so far therefore our delay at this miserable village was convenient. We gave them just time to feed their horses; and then, about an hour before sun-set, resumed our march to take up our quarters for the night on the bank of a little running stream; the rich pastures, through which the waters flowed, refreshed our cattle, but we ourselves were obliged to pass the night in the open field with a heavy dew falling, yet, thank God, with a fine clear sky. During the course of the night a Turk arrived from _Bayazid_ to say, that he was sent by the _Kiayah_ to be our _Mehmandar_ to the presence of his master; adding, indeed, that the Vice-Governor regretted the misunderstanding on which he had acted, for he had been told that we were followed by a large body of horsemen. On further questioning the Turk we found, that the wife of IBRAHIM PACHA (hearing that there was an _Elchee_, an Embassador, without the town, and that admittance had been refused to him) made loud remonstrances to the _Kiayah_ on the impropriety of his conduct, and interceded so far in our behalf that he sent us these excuses. Though we were ill satisfied with the conduct of this person, we thought it better not to reject the attendance of the officer whom he had deputed to escort us, as we were among a wild and unmanageable people. We travelled an hour and a half, in one of the clearest and most beautiful mornings that the heavens ever produced; and passing on our left the two villages of _Dizzéh_ and _Kizzil Dizzéh_, we came to an opening of a small plain covered with the black tents and cattle of the _Elauts_. Here also we had a view of Mount _Ararat_; the clouds no longer rested on its summit, but circled round it below. We went to the largest tent in the plain, and there enjoyed an opportunity of learning that the hospitality of these people is not exaggerated. As soon as it was announced at the tent that strangers were coming, every thing was in motion: some carried our horses to the best pastures, others spread carpets for us, one was dispatched to the flock to bring a fat lamb, the women immediately made preparation for cooking, and we had not sat long before two large dishes of stewed lamb, with several basins of _yaourt_, were placed before us. The senior of the tribe, an old man (by his own account indeed more than eighty-five years of age) dressed in his best clothes, came out to us, and welcomed us to his tent with such kindness, yet with such respect, that his sincerity could not be mistaken. He was still full of activity and fire, although he had lost all his teeth, and his beard was as white as the snow on the venerable mountain near his tent. The simplicity of his manners and the interesting scenery around reminded me, in the strongest colours of the life of the patriarchs: and more immediately of Him whose history is inseparable from the mountains of _Ararat_. Nothing indeed could accord better with the spot than the figure of our ancient host. His people were a part of the tribe of _Jelalee_, and their principal seat was _Erivan_; but they ranged through the country: And pastured on from verdant stage to stage, Where fields and fountains fresh could best engage. Toil was not then: of nothing took they heed But with wild beasts the sylvan war to wage, And o’er vast plains their herds and flocks to feed; Blest sons of nature they! true golden age indeed. _Castle of Indolence_, xxxvii. We quitted our hospitable friends, (who appeared to be almost more grateful for our visit than we for their kindness), and passed along the plain. Mount _Ararat_ bore N. 40 E. and extended itself completely to our view. Its N. W. ascent is not so rapid as its S. E. and I should conceive that in this quarter it might be possible to ascend it. In six hours and a half, after leaving our last encampment, we reached _Diadin_. It is a large village with a fort and towers; under which, in a deep channel of perpendicular rock, runs the eastern _Euphrates_, there a shallow stream about twenty feet in breadth. It rises about four _agatch_ or twelve miles from _Diadin_, on a bearing of S. 50 W. by the direction of a man’s hand; and in the country is called the _Frat_; the name assumed at _Arz-roum_, by the Western stream. At _Diadin_ we were not permitted to go near their miserable castle. The houses of the place are built of mud and stones, and the rooms are calculated to lodge the animals as well as the family. A small compartment only is reserved for the master; and in general the rest of the space is left for his cattle. We did not, indeed, enter their habitations, for every door was shut against us; and when, by great management, we had secured shelter for ourselves, our people, and our cattle, we found equal difficulty in procuring food. ABDULLA PACHA, a rebel _Courd_, with whom IBRAHIM PACHA was at open war, had in fact carried away all the flocks, and destroyed all the crops of this village. We could not therefore expect an easy supply of corn for our horses; but after much intreaty a little was produced, for which indeed we paid an amazing price. A piece of barley bread was delivered to each man; and the masters, by a very marked favour, were supplied with a mess of eggs and a basin of _yaourt_. The houses for the _Conaks_ or reception of strangers, here as in all other places in Turkey were regularly defined; but when the _Mirza_ and I were entering that appropriated to ourselves, we were received at the door by a woman, who, with her face totally uncovered, boldly bad defiance to the _Conak-chee_, and (with the most threatening looks, and with all the volubility of her sex,) swore that nobody should enter her dwelling. However, by a little negociation we pacified our hostess, and were at length admitted into her stable, where we spread our carpets and composed ourselves to sleep. The women here barely cover their faces; and, as we afterwards learnt, are notorious for depravity: they appear very healthy. The men are as wild as savages, and seem to be under no law. Independently of their own immediate distresses, one of the reasons for their inhospitality to Persians is very natural; several Embassadors had been sent to _Constantinople_, and since that time every traveller, who had two or three attendants, assumed the same dignity. The discovery of the fraud has necessarily roused the caution of the Turks. 10th. We were nine hours on the road to _Youngali_, called nine _agatch_, and which I calculated at thirty-two miles on a bearing of N. 65 W. The _Euphrates_ accompanied us all the way through a country of grass, but of little cultivation. Four miles after leaving _Diadin_ we passed the village of _Jugan_, about a mile and a half on our left: then four miles further, still on the left and on the other bank of the _Euphrates_, _Utch Klissé_. Here a high and snow-covered mountain called _Kussé Dagh_ appears in view; and (extending to the S. and W.) the range of _Ala-Dagh_. In the village is an Armenian Church, a very respectable looking building, much resembling an European structure. It has two wings with a shelving roof, and is covered by a small dome built of stone, apparently not in much decay. At the termination of that branch of the mountain near which _Utch Klissé_ stands, there is a stone bridge thrown over the _Euphrates_. We continued by the bank of the river, which winds from E. to W. creating verdure on each side as it flows. We passed through a village now in ruins called _Alakou_; and on the slope of the hill (three miles on the left of the road) that of _Comoulja_; another called _Belasou_, is close on the banks of the river; and, about eight miles further, having passed the miserable huts at _Cadi Kieu_, we reached after a very sultry ride, our _Conak_ at _Youngali_. All these villages are in the _Mahalé_ of _Alashgerd_. When we had been about an hour on our road, I missed a small carpet from my baggage, and sent back therefore my servant to reclaim it from our host at _Diadin_. From the looks which he cast at our goods, I had frequently suspected his honesty, but I might have spared my suspicions and my trouble; for I received nothing but oaths. Near to _Utch Klissé_, we met the battering train of IBRAHIM PACHA, which consisted of two field pieces, returning from the siege of _Turpa Caléh_, the castle of TIMUR BEG, who had revolted from his authority. We learned that after a siege of five months, in which the _Pacha_ had fired his guns one hundred and fifty times at the town and castle, he had succeeded in killing one fowl and one dog. IBRAHIM PACHA, who was at another village three miles from _Youngali_, sent his _Haznadar_ or treasurer to escort us to our lodging. The misery here was even greater than that of the preceding day. No corn for our horses, nor even grass without hard blows. The whole of the country was in a state of absolute devastation from the incursions of the _Courds_; and our course presented nothing but difficulties, for IBRAHIM PACHA was at war with all the country round. He professed indeed to respect the _firman_ of ABBAS MIRZA, and when we sent him that with which we had been furnished, he immediately carried it to his head, saying that he was the Princes servant in all things; and that there was nothing which he would not willingly do to serve him. We never fared worse, however, than at this village. The people that surrounded us bore the looks of savages, and their general behaviour corresponded with their appearance. To the South of _Youngali_, as I was told at the place, lies _Van_; and to the S. W. the large _Mahalé_ of _Kensus_. 11th. We left _Youngali_, dissatisfied with our host: the Persians indeed were miserable with the scanty hospitality which they received at his village. When we were left by the two officers, who escorted us to their master’s frontier, we were advised not to go near _Turpa Caléh_, as we should undoubtedly be molested. Yet the situation, in which this war of the rival chiefs had placed us, was so difficult, that we incurred equal hazard either in passing the castle of TIMUR BEG, without offering our respects, or in venturing near it after coming from the domains of his enemy. We determined therefore to state our story simply, and throw ourselves on his hospitality. We crossed a most beautiful plain covered with villages, and watered by numerous streams. We forded three considerable torrents, which poured from the N. mountains, and, swoln by the melting snows, threw themselves into the _Euphrates_, which was flowing at the Southern extremity of the plain from E. to W. Three miles from _Youngali_ we came to _Cara-Klissé_, a large village peopled by _Courds_ and _Armenians_; and then made a circuit to the N. to avoid a swampy road in the centre of the plain. We passed through several villages, the inhabitants of which seeing the numbers of our company mistook us for one of the fighting parties, and crowded on the tops of their houses at our approach. Of these places, the principal were named _Datté Tapé_, _Kesick_, and _Arnat_. _Turpa Caléh_ is situated N. 60 W. from _Youngali_, on a distance of about fifteen miles or four hours. It is a larger place than any that we had seen since _Khoi_. The town is scattered on the slope of a conical hill, on the top of which is a castle. This the Turks deem impregnable, and with justice, if the failure of the late siege be a criterion, though the fort seems in every part accessible to cannon. The high mountain of _Kussé Dagh_ overlooks the town and attracts continual clouds over it. We proceeded warily; and, about a mile before we reached the place, halted and sent forwards a man to reconnoitre the appearance and dispositions of the people, and to report on the expediency of our advance. He returned with the intelligence that we had nothing to fear; and we directed our course therefore to the _Conac_ or dwelling of the _Kiayah_, the chief officer of TIMUR BEG. Here we dismounted, and were introduced immediately into a dark room, where twenty torpid Turks were indulging themselves in the quiet delights of smoking. The _Kiayah_ sat in the corner, but rose when the _Mirza_ entered; and, having said the usual “_Khosh gueldin_” (you are welcome,) closed his lips and left his guest to display the compliments and insinuative flattery so natural to his nation. The loquaciousness and vivacity of the Persian formed an inimitable contrast with the dull and heavy laconism of the Turk. When we had smoked and drunk coffee, a man came to inform us that TIMUR BEG was ready to receive us. The _Mirza_ and I immediately proceeded, leaving the rest of our party with the _Kiayah_. We ascended to the castle by a steep and difficult path, and entered it by a large iron door. We were introduced into a spacious room at the summit. The Chief (attended by all his principal warriors gravely seated around) occupied a window commanding an extensive view of the country over which we had travelled, and more particularly the district of his rival, the _Pacha_. When we also were seated, and the usual compliments had passed, the _Mirza_ begun a prepared speech unfolding our condition, announcing that we threw ourselves at his mercy, asking the rights of hospitality from him, and intermixing throughout some very severe invective against his enemy the _Pacha_. The mode succeeded: and TIMUR BEG instantly replied, that we had nothing to fear; that under his protection we were safe; that our necessities should be supplied, and that his officers should receive orders to treat us with distinction and kindness at a neighbouring village; for he hoped, as the only favour that he required of us, that we would not sojourn in his castle for that night. When these preliminaries were settled, I had time to observe that there was much to admire in our host. He was about forty years of age, with a singularly open and manly countenance, and with manners the most graceful and dignified. He related his own history and his differences with IBRAHIM PACHA in language so simple, yet so expressive, that we acquired a deep interest in his fate; particularly, when he expatiated on the _Pacha’s_ tyranny and inordinate rapaciousness, and on the misery in which his exactions had involved all the peasantry of the district. During the course however of his conversation with the _Mirza_, I remarked one of his observations which was very characteristic of a semi-barbarous society. He inquired who I was? and being informed that I was of the _Sect of Isau_ (JESUS), or, in other words, a Christian, he continued (with a look of pity, having observed that I had refused a pipe), “These fellows, I hear, have neither pipes nor tobacco in their country: _haivan dar_, they are beasts:” as if to say, assuming that we did not possess the knowledge or the means of their favourite enjoyment, “how far inferior to us must those be who cannot smoke.” Our host kept strictly to his word: we were sent forwards four miles further to the promised village of _Molah Suleiman_, escorted by two of his officers; and supplied with all that the place could afford, a sheep, fowls, and rice for ourselves, and corn for our horses. 12th. We passed over a mountainous tract of country from _Molah Suleiman_ to _Deli-baba_, a distance which we travelled in ten hours, and which I reckoned at thirty-five miles, on a bearing of N. 30 W. as well as the intricacies of the turns would permit me to observe. Before we entered the mountains, (when we had travelled about three miles, and just above the little village of _Zadiéh_,) I had the parting view of Mount _Ararat_, which bore from us N. 80 E. We were told that the road was much infested by the _Courds_, particularly at a pass in the mountains called _Gerdina_, and we placed ourselves therefore in a posture of defence. But we traversed the whole extent without seeing a human being, till we reached _Dahar_, a village of _Courds_ in the mountains twenty miles from _Molah Suleiman_. We then proceeded winding in a variety of directions, with a scorching sun over our heads, to the entrance of a pass which, through two stupendous rocks, leads into the plain of _Deli-baba_. This pass might be made an admirable military position, and in its present state is a most picturesque object. A stream from the mountains runs through it: on the left is a rock three hundred feet perpendicular, and on the other side is another of less height, but pierced with three holes, as if it were by the hand of man. On entering the plain we saw numbers of peasants with their _arabahs_ or carts. They told us they had fled from their village in the fear of ABDULLA AGA, who, from his station near _Erivan_, makes predatory excursions all over the country. They added that _Deli-baba_ was totally depopulated; however we did not believe them, and proceeded. We found indeed a very bad reception, for the inhabitants mistook us for enemies, collected together at our approach, refused us admittance, and fired several muskets at us. At length the chief of the village came out to meet us, and we agreed to establish ourselves at a distance, feed our cattle, and depart. The fear of ABDULLA AGA created such a distrust, that we were avoided by every one whom we met; and even when any permitted us to approach, all our assurances were insufficient to inspire them with confidence. Although we offered great prices for the necessaries of our supply, the people would hardly sell a single article; and the few pieces of bread and eggs which formed our meal at _Deli-baba_ were not procured without the greatest difficulty. Although the country is in a terrible state of disturbance, caravans travel freely on the road. We met a large one which had been eight days from _Arz-roum_. Our mule-driver happened to kill a serpent; he cut it immediately in two pieces, and threw the parts on different sides, saying, “It is a lucky sign, our enemies will not overcome us.” The soil over which we passed was admirably rich, and the most delightful spring reigned on the tops of the mountains, where we culled nosegays of a thousand hues; yet the snow lay in several places, and covered the fetlocks of our horses, while close to it rose every flower. 13th. We quitted the village of _Deli-baba_ early in the morning, having passed a night full of anxiety and watchfulness in the open fields; as we were told that we were not safe, and might probably be attacked, though nothing, thank God, disturbed us. We proceeded on a bearing of West to _Amra Kieu_, a village prettily situated at the utmost extremity of a plain, and surrounded by some trees, (in our later course a very scarce object) the willow and the plane. We crossed a beautiful country cultivated in most parts, and considering the extreme misery of the inhabitants themselves, looking very prosperous. The spring was here in its first burst, and the corn was scarcely a span high: the fields were no longer watered by dikes as in Persia, for the nature of the seasons and of the country render unnecessary any artificial means of irrigation. The hills to the Northward of the plain, through which we passed, rise in a gentle acclivity, and to our view displayed habitations and culture; but as we met no person on the road, I could not learn the names of the villages in various parts. At two hours, (seven miles,) from _Deli-baba_, and about a mile from the road, is _Batman Kieu_, situated in the bosom of a valley delightfully watered and cultivated. The houses of _Amra Kieu_, our resting place, are built with the fir tree, and their roofs are formed by rafters of wood, geometrically placed, which are afterwards covered with earth, and constitute a strong dome. This is a better construction than any that we had lately observed. Small two-wheeled carts, to which oxen are yoked, are used here by the peasantry. The sheep are very fine, with large tails and good wool. 14th. We went from _Amra Kieu_, due West towards _Alwar_, ten miles. Three miles after quitting _Amra Kieu_, we came to the banks of the _Araxes_; which enters the plain from the mountains near _Yaghan_, a large village situated about three miles from the road. The stream flows here from N. 65 E. to S. 30 W. It takes its rise in the _Mahalé_ of _Khunus_; and where it issues from the ground is called _Bin Gieul_, or a thousand springs. In its course it closely follows the mountains which we had left at the extremity of the plain. Little irrigation is drawn from it through the neighbouring territory. We crossed it over a very well-built stone bridge of seven arches; by the measurement of which the river was about one hundred and sixty paces in breadth. Just at this point a stream flows into it from the Westward, taking its course close to _Hassan Caléh_. Immediately on passing the bridge we came to a village called _Kupré Kieu_, and then continued on a fine road, and through a delightful plain strewed with villages, distant in general two or three miles from each other. The principal of these are _Arsunjéh_, on the left, and _Gumec_ and _Miagen_, on the right of the road. All the plain was well cultivated; and the peasants were here sowing their corn. We passed by _Hassan Caléh_, a large town situated around a hill; on the summit is an old fortification, the curious walls of which are chequered with the embrasures of former times. We crossed the stream by the town, over a bridge of two arches. Close to the bridge is a bath built over a spring, the heat of which is almost that of scalding water: yet when we looked in, several men were up to their chins in it. The basin is about thirty feet in diameter, and is enclosed by an old structure. Several other springs of the same temperature adjoin it. We had procured a man from the Governor (_Cazi_) of _Hassan Caléh_, to conduct us to _Alwar_, but the _Aga_ of that place positively refused to admit us or to lodge us, and added in direct terms that he did not care for _Cazi_, _Pacha_, or any one else, and that we might go any where we chose; if at least we did not disturb Him. After vollies of abuse on both sides, we were content as before to take up our quarters in the open fields, under the shade of a tree, that luckily was situated near the village, and saved us from an ardent sun. Here we saw geese for the first time. Whilst seated under the tree, vowing vengeance on the _Aga_ of _Alwar_, (having dispatched a man to the Governor of _Arz-roum_ to state our case), we were visited by a respectable, yet sly-looking Turk, who came quietly and settled himself on our carpet. He begun by telling us that he was a _yoljee_ (a traveller) like ourselves; and inquired what made us so angry. We broke out into every species of invective against the _Aga_ of the village, who had obliged us to remain like our horses and mules, under a tree, refusing us the most common offices of hospitality; and added, that we had in consequence sent a messenger to the Governor of _Arz-roum_ to complain of the affront, hoping at the same time that the inhospitable _Aga_ would either lose his head, or at least get a severe bastinado. We had some suspicion that the personage to whom we were talking was the very _Aga_ himself, and were therefore less scrupulous in our abuse. This suspicion proved true: our visitor begun by taking the _Aga’s_ part, saying that the country was in a great state of alarm, and that the people feared to receive into their towns so many strangers, and particularly Persians, and finished in his own person by intreating us not to write to the Governor of _Arz-roum_. He went away accordingly in some fright, and allowed us to get provisions from his village, a permission which he had not granted before. We spent the night, however, in the open air, and in the fear of rain: much, indeed, was falling on all sides of us with thunder and lightning. CHAP. XVII. ARZ-ROUM TO AMASIA. ARZ-ROUM: DESCRIPTION OF THE CITY; ANCIENT STATE: POPULATION: CLIMATE: VISIT TO THE GOVERNOR; ENTERTAINMENT; TURKISH DISHES--DEPARTURE--BATHS OF ILIJA: THE DELHIS--THE EUPHRATES--BUILDINGS AT MAMAKHATOUN--TRADITION OF THEIR ERECTION--CHIFLIK: CULTIVATION--TARTARS ON THE ROAD FROM CONSTANTINOPLE--CARAJA: DINNER--PERSIAN FROM PARIS--STORM--GRANDEUR OF THE APPROACH TO CARA-HISSAR--DELAY IN THE TOWN--THE RIVER KELKI IRMAC, THE ANCIENT LYCUS--KULEY-HISSAR--DIFFERENCE OF PROPERTY IN TURKEY AND IN PERSIA--EXCAVATED ROCK--HISTORY OF A BOSNIAN STRANGER--COUNTRY ROUND NIKSAR, THE ANCIENT NEOCÆSAREA--ENTRANCE INTO TOCAT: DESCRIPTION; TRADE--TURKHAL--STATION OF GUARDS--APPROACHES TO AMASIA. 1809, June 15th. We arrived at _Arz-roum_, after riding fifteen miles on a bearing of W. over a chalky road. The city presents itself in a very picturesque manner; its old minarets and decayed turrets, rising abruptly to the view. Our baggage was carried to the Custom-house, notwithstanding all our remonstrances and claims of privilege. The caution of the Turks, though in this instance unnecessary, was not unjustifiable, for a former Persian Embassador had concealed merchants in his suite, who, under his name, passed large quantities of fine goods. _Arz-roum_ is built on a rising ground: on the highest part is the castle, surrounded by a double wall of stone, which is chequered at the top by embrasures, and strengthened here and there by projections in the fashion of bastions, with openings fit for the reception of cannon. It has four gates, which are covered with plates of iron. The whole is well-built, and to me does not appear the work of Mussulmans. A ditch runs by it to the S. W.; near it is a tannery; and further on is a row of blacksmiths’ forges, which seemed in good employ. In this direction (N. E. of the town) is the Custom-house, a spacious building. The _Pacha’s_ residence has a large gate opening into a court-yard. The houses are in general built of stone, with rafters of wood, and terraced. Grass grows on their tops, and sheep and calves feed there; so that, when seen from an eminence, the roofs of the houses can hardly be distinguished from the plain at their foundation. I walked through most of the _bazars_; few are domed, the rest are terraced, like the dwellings, but affording a common road for foot-passengers, who ascend by a public flight of steps. Wherever a street intervenes, a bridge is thrown over, and the line continues uninterrupted. The shops in the _bazars_ are well stocked, and the place exhibits an appearance of much industry. The streets are mostly paved; but, as in Turkey, in that manner which is more calculated to break the passenger’s neck than to ease his feet. There are sixteen baths, and one hundred mosques; several of the latter are creditable buildings, the domes of which are covered with lead, and ornamented with gilt balls and crescents. This is the present state of _Arz-roum_; its remains prove that it must have been still more considerable. Every thing attests the antiquity of the place; the inhabitants indeed date the foundation from the time of NOAH, and very zealously swear, that some of their present structures were contemporary with the Patriarch: with less hazard of truth, or rather with much appearance of probability, they aver that others were the work of the _Giaours_, or Infidels. One in particular is attributed to the latter origin; it consists of an arched gateway, curiously worked all in strong stone, situated N. W. in the castle, and close to a decayed minaret of ancient structure. Yet many of the older fabrics appear by the true Moresque arch, to be certainly of Saracenic origin; and many of the remains of mosques resemble those buildings in Persia, with curious bricks, and lacquered tiles, which were raised in the first ages of Mahomedanism. In all those at _Arz-roum_, I observed a round tower, with a very shelving roof, covered all over with bricks. There are still erect several minarets, obviously works of the early Mussulmans. Near the Eastern gate of the castle are two of brick and tile, and a gate (with a Saracenic arch and a _Cufic_ inscription) and many strong stone buildings around, the remains of the fine portico of a mosque. To the East of the town is an old tower of brick, the highest building in _Arz-roum_, which is used as a look-out-house, and serves as the tower of the _Janizaries_ at _Constantinople_, or that of _Galata_. There is a clock at the summit, which strikes the hours with sufficient regularity. In _Arz-roum_ there are from four to five thousand families of the Armenian, and about one hundred of the Greek persuasion: the former have two churches, the latter one. There are perhaps one thousand Persians who live in a _Caravanserai_, and manage by caravans the trade of their own country. _Trebisond_ is the port on the Black Sea, to which the commerce of _Constantinople_ is conveyed. The Turkish inhabitants of _Arz-roum_ are fifty thousand families. This amount of the population I give from the authority of a well-informed Armenian; but as all such details in a country so ill-regulated are exceedingly suspicious, I have already taken the liberty to deduct more than one-third from the number of Turkish families in the original estimate. But the reduced statement still leaves in _Arz-roum_, at the rate of five persons in a family, a total of two hundred and fifty thousand persons, besides Armenians. The climate of _Arz-roum_ is very changeable, and must in winter be piercingly cold. It rained throughout the whole of the 19th, but the clouds dispersed on the morrow, and discovered the adjacent hills overspread with snow. The high lands which arise from the plain around, attract constant thunder-storms; the elevation, indeed, of the whole region from the base of the sea is itself very considerable, and is sufficient to account for the cold. On the 17th we visited the Governor. He treated us with the usual civilities of the occasion in Turkey, pipes, coffees, sweetmeats and sherbet, for which we paid dearly by the numerous _backshishes_ or vails that are given in such circumstances. EMIN AGA, who then filled the station and was _Musselim_ of the town, was also _Gumruckchee_ or Collector of the Customs, an office which in Persia is confined to very inferior persons, and which therefore drew upon the Commandant of _Arz-roum_, who unluckily bore it, the laughter and contempt of the Persians. Yet when he invited us all to dinner, they were not the less anxious to make their best appearance before him. Throughout the day, the Persian Envoy was occupied with the arrangement of his clothes; he consulted every one of his servants on the suit which might become him best, and at length fixed on a fine gold-brocade coat. On the 20th we went accordingly to the entertainment. After smoking and drinking coffee, the _Aga_ called for dinner. Water for the preliminary ablution was first brought, when I observed that the Turks washed both their hands, and the Persians the right only. The servants who brought the basin and ewer were attended by two others: one who spread a towel on the knees, and another who was ready to take it away, and replace it by a second for the hands. After this an octagonal stool two feet and a half high was placed in a corner of the sopha, on which was put a large round pewter tray carved all over in various fashions. On this were placed piles of bread all around, onions, endive, and basins of _yaourt_, milk, and plates of cheese, with two wooden spoons at intervals for the guests. When all was ready our host said, “_booyouroun_,” or “you are served,” and we approached the table. When seated each guest was attended by a page, who threw a large napkin with gold-embroidered borders over each shoulder, and arranged another on our knees; an apparatus not unlike that of the preliminary service of shaving. A small cloth was placed in the centre of the tray, on which stood the dish. First, in a glass vase, came a species of sweet soup which was not unpalatable; then a lamb roasted, stuffed with rice and almonds; then stewed pears, then a stew of mutton, then sweet jelly; in short, there was a succession of at least one hundred dishes, consisting generally of an intermediate sweet article between the meats, besides pastry to each. The master of the entertainment said, “_Booyouroun_,” when it was brought in, and “_Calder_,” or “take away,” when we had eat two or three mouthfuls, and scarce any other words but these two were heard during the whole feast. Servants attended behind each guest, with a vase of lemonade or sherbet. The dishes were not, in general, badly cooked, although much coarser than those of Persia. The whole was closed by an immense _pillau_. The principal dishes were the _yakné_, which resembles our Irish stew; the _dolmah_, meat balls enclosed in vine leaves; the _kabob_, which is roast meat; the _chorbah_, or soup; the _baklavah_, a cake of honey, paste, and other sweet ingredients; the _lokmah_, a light paste puff; and the _pillau_, which is nothing but rice intermixed now and then with plums, almonds, and always well peppered and spiced. When all was over we washed our hands with soap and hot water, smoked, drank coffee, and went away, and were dunned as usual for _backshishes_ on departing. A strange character joined us at _Arz-roum_; he was a native of _Bosnia_, and took the opportunity of our escort to reach _Constantinople_. He seemed to fear the wild inhabitants of the country through which we had to pass, and wore accordingly a coat of mail under his clothes, and a burnished helmet on his head, and was armed with two heavy rifle guns, a pair of pistols, a long _kunjur_, and a sword, besides a variety of powder flasks, &c. which, altogether, made him weigh thirty stone. On the 21st we left _Arz-roum_, and proceeded across the plain to _Ilija_, a distance of five miles only, on a bearing of N. 80 West. The plain is covered with villages: I counted thirty on one part, and the cultivation is proportioned to the population. The season was advancing: in some places the corn was a foot from the ground, and there was besides much fine pasture. Close to the village we crossed a bridge over a nice stream, there called the _Kara Sou_, which flows in this quarter from E. to W. and according to the information which I procured on this spot, finally flows into the _Euphrates_. On comparing, however, my authorities and my observations, I suspect that it is itself larger than its confluent stream, and deserves therefore to be considered as the primary river. Its sources are in the mountains at _Suzdan_, about nine miles from _Arz-roum_; and it meets another river at _Serchembéh_. The sources of the _Tigris_ are said to be at a village called _Nehel_, near _Gever_, a place ten _fursungs_ from _Oroumi_. At _Ilija_ are warm springs, two of which are enclosed within walls, for the separate use of men and women. Large parties had collected from _Arz-roum_ to bathe here, and had pitched their tents among the rocks to pass the night. During the night an alarm was given in the village, that a number of _Delhis_ (who have been called the “_Enfans perdus_” of the Turkish army,) had taken up their quarters among us, and that every one must in consequence look to his own property. Perhaps there were not two hundred of these desperadoes, yet they had given more trouble to the Government of _Arz-roum_ than an army of ten thousand men could excite in any European country. They commit with impunity every act of cruelty and extortion; no one dares to reprimand or to punish them; and a few days before our rencounter with them, they chose to be dissatisfied with the conduct of the Governor of _Arz-roum_, and informed him that they intended to desert. To pacify them, therefore, he was obliged to send them loads of victuals. We passed the night, however, without disturbance, and fared well indeed, by the kindness of the Armenians of the village. From this place Southward to _Bin Gieul_,[42] the sources of the _Araxes_ is five _sahat_ (hours) Turkish. The villages nearest our road were _Gez_, _Belour_, _Arouni_. 22d. Our route to _Purtun_ bore W. on a distance of twenty miles. From _Ilija_ to the right and left, the country was still as on the preceding day, studded with villages, and still richly cultivated. But it is almost destitute of timber; a few bushes and small trees only are sprinkled here and there over the hills; and the great number of _Arabahs_ which we met loaded with wood had been all brought from a distance. About six miles on the right is the village of _Alaga_, and on the left _Arranli_. Having proceeded five miles from our last stage we stopped at _Jennis_, a very pretty spot, where the Armenians brought us a breakfast of eggs, fritters, _yaourt_ (curdled milk), and _kymack_ (clouted cream). On leaving _Jennis_, the village _Nardiran_ lies at the declivity of the hill. We quitted here the road to the right, which would have carried us to _Ak Caléh_, the regular _Menzil Khonéh_, and took a bye-path, because a pass in the mountains along the direct line was possessed by a party of _Courdistan_ freebooters. We reached _Purtun_ about four miles S. from _Ak Caléh_, and sent thither for the horses (fifteen in number,) which were necessary to convey us forwards. Our resting place was a small village in the bosom of the mountains, near a pretty stream which fell in a cascade (almost under the roots of three picturesque trees in the middle of the water), and turned a mill below. At about twelve o’clock the clouds arose from the S. E. and brought thunder, hail, and rain; a circumstance which I had remarked almost every day at the same hour since our arrival at _Arz-roum_. The weather then cleared up towards the close of the evening, and a fine morning with an almost cloudless sky opened the following day. On the 23d, we left _Purtun_; and retraced the route of the preceding day for two miles and a half, when we took a general Westerly direction for twenty-four miles. Our road was carried through a long chain of mountains, in a line of easy access, though the surface was rendered difficult by the mud which the rains had made. The whole soil was an admirably rich earth, producing the greatest luxuriance of grass, wild herbs, and flowers. Here and there the country begun to be wooded; and to be intersected by a great profusion of streams; and in one particular view (about two miles from our stage) displayed the most romantic scenery with fine wild precipices washed by the waters below, and shaded by shrubs and pine trees. The neighbouring district however, in consequence of the depredations of the _Delhis_, and the recent incursions of the _Courds_, was entirely unpeopled; and we learnt that the village of _Mama Khatoun_, at which we intended to take up our quarters for the night, was in the same manner deserted. From the eminence above we enjoyed a beautiful prospect; a river, swoln by the rains and melted snows, poured from the mountains on the S. E. and meandered at the foot of two stupendous rocks; and the large buildings from which the place derived its name, were below us. They are close to the village, and consist of a _caravanserai_, a mosque, a bath, and a tomb, all constructed with a fine white free stone, and finished in a manner worthy of the best ages. The _caravanserai_, in the usual shape of such buildings, is a hollow square, with a gate to the East. Round the court are built small rooms, all arched in the most solid and magnificent style. There are also two vaulted chambers, each fifty yards long by forty broad, for the accommodation of the cattle of travellers. In the middle of the square is an arched chamber, erected probably as a cool retreat in summer. Though many parts of the building are falling into ruin, the _caravanserai_ may be considered generally in very good preservation. The mosque is situated to the right. It is entered by a small court yard, from which a vaulted Peristyle leads under the dome, into the principal chamber, where is a stone pulpit. Though the dome is covered with weeds, and though of the single minaret the upper part has fallen, the main structure is still entire; and its fine materials, and its admirable masonry, are very strikingly and advantageously opposed to the more modern works of the country. Close to the _caravanserai_ is the bath, and on the other side the remains of a building; the use of which I could not ascertain. Nearly facing the _caravanserai_, is a kind of small round temple, probably a tomb, enclosed by a circular wall, which is entered by a gate way of Saracenic architecture. On the exterior of the arch is an inscription in _Cufic_. The small building inside is covered by a shelving roof, of the same construction as many of the buildings at _Arz-roum_. The interior is arched, and carved in a variety of ornaments, and under it is a subterraneous chamber. The court is full of fragments, which may perhaps suggest the supposition, that the whole was originally covered. Around are many tomb-stones, inscribed with _Cufic_ characters. The popular story of the erection of those different buildings is as follows: a wealthy Turk fell in love with an Armenian woman of this village, but as she doubted the extent of his affections, she required as a proof before she yielded her consent to marry him, that he should build a _caravanserai_, mosque, &c. at the place of her birth. The Turk immediately accepted the conditions; and, proving that his love was equal to his wealth, raised these structures, and called them by her name, _Mama Khatoun_. The people add, that a treasure is concealed in a part of the _caravanserai_; which, according to an inscription, is destined for the reconstruction of the whole, after the decay of the present buildings. In one of the corners of the _caravanserai_ we luckily found a stray calf, of which we took possession, and of which the Persians, in disregard of their scruples and distaste of ox-flesh, eat with great appetite. At noon we had the usual thunder storm. The surface of the mountain is hard, and apparently contains much mineral matter. A very elevated chain covered with snow extends before the village; the highest part bearing W. and taking a N. direction. The _Kara Sou_ is no longer known by that name at _Mama Khatoun_, though by the description of the country, we recognized it under that of _Frat_. The water at this place has no distinct designation, but is called simply, the river of _Mama Khatoun_. On the 24th we proceeded to _Kara Colagh_, a distance called twelve hours, which we performed in ten, and which in road measure may be reckoned at thirty-two miles. We travelled for eight hours on a bearing of W. and for the remainder of the stage turned to the N. When we had advanced about six miles and a half, we came to the river, which in its earlier progress we had passed as the _Kara Sou_, but which here, as we suspected at _Mama Khatoun_, was known as the _Frat_, and was said to flow finally near _Maaden Kebban_, into that which rises at _Diadin_. We crossed it over a very good bridge of eight arches, constructed altogether of the same materials, and in the same style as the buildings at _Mama Khatoun_. At the distance scarcely of a stone’s throw is the confluence of the _Frat_, and that river which flows near _Mama Khatoun_; their united waters form a considerable stream, following the direction N. to S. 40 W. Near the bridge is the village of _Manastour_. We traced upwards to the N. for two hours, the river which I conceive to be the original parent of the _Euphrates_, enjoying at every turn new and beautiful pictures of cultivation, and woodland. At the distance of about twenty miles we came to a large but completely deserted village, called _Moss_. Its inhabitants had fled the day before to their mountains, from the depredation of the _Courds_. Near it are very ancient tombs, some placed evidently over the bodies of Christians, for among the ornaments on some of the stones is carved the cross. One has an Armenian inscription. Here and there are collections of very large stones, rudely piled one over the other. On the other side of the stream is _Pekesidge_, a town with a castle on a conical hill. This is on the high road leading from _Ak Caléh_ to _Constantinople_, through _Shoghoun Deréh_, the pass occupied by the _Courds_. After this is the village of _Ak Doghan_, and then that of _Kismisore_, but both deserted. The cultivation is however very plentiful. In our line to the W. we crossed a branch of the river, where the water was up to the horses’ bellies. _Kara Colagh_ is a large village, and the _Menzil Khonéh_ is here. The surrounding mountains still bear an appearance of mineral. The clouds gathered at the usual hour, but in a much smaller quantity than on the preceding days. There was round the road a great profusion of wild herbs, and amongst others asparagus. 25th. On the next morning we had a great dispute at the _Menzil Khonéh_. The master peremptorily required that we should pay for the horses with which he furnished us. In vain did the _Mirza_ persist that he was an _Elchee_, an Embassador; our host swore that he cared neither for the _Shah_ of Persia, nor for his own _Sultan_, and that he must have our money before we should take his beasts. We agreed at last to give twenty-five piastres for the hire of twenty horses. Our road first took a N. direction among uncultivated mountains, where I am told that the snow is frequently so deep in winter as to impede the passage of travellers. It then varied W. and N. and N. and W. frequently; but on a general bearing, I think that we averaged N. 60 W. to _Chiflik_, a distance called twelve hours, and which we performed exactly in that time, on a reckoning of forty miles. In winding through the mountains, we came to parts beautifully wooded with fir, pines, and walnut-trees; and forming, particularly on a long descent, the most picturesque forest scenery that can be imagined. At the summit of the mountains we had a continual rain for two hours, accompanied with thunder. When we reached the close of the descent, we discovered on our left hand the village of _Sadac_, situated about two miles from the road on the declivity of the hills, with a surrounding territory admirably fertile in corn, and well watered. From this place to _Chiflik_ is fifteen miles: the road leading through one of the most beautiful and happy looking vallies that I ever saw. A stream, swoln when we saw it by the rains, runs through it, and on each side spreads a more abundant vegetation. On quitting the valley we came on the plain in which _Chiflik_ lies, so well cultivated that it quite transported me into some of the best parts of England. The peasants were ploughing the ground, while immense flocks of sheep, goats, and oxen were spread over the whole country. The fields were parted off by hedges and ditches; the road was well defined; and pretty villages rose here and there, intermixed with the most luxuriant verdure. Spring was here in its bloom, and the whole plain was a little Eden. At about six hours from _Kara Colagh_, the road leads N. to the district of _Bybourg_ or _Baibort_, whilst our road led us W. The village of _Chiflik_ is interspersed with poplars and willows; the out-houses for cattle were built of rafters laid horizontally, and covered with a roof of earth. A _Musselim_ resides here under the government of _Arz-roum_. 26th. From _Chiflik_ we went to _Caraja_, distant twenty miles (six hours) on a bearing of W. We continued through the plain, which we had entered on the preceding day; and found it to its close as beautiful as in its commencement. The stream which we had admired in the valley of _Sadac_, issues into the plain and follows the road. We crossed it over a wooden bridge. It supplies the inhabitants of the neighbourhood plentifully with fish, of which indeed we had a specimen in some excellent trout, served up to us for breakfast. We passed the village of _Ger_, and on the Eastward of the plain we saw the village of _Kizziljay_. The whole country around was enlivened by people employed in the works of agriculture. On entering the hills we found their declivities on all sides beautifully wooded with firs, pine, oak bushes, and a variety of thorns, with every shrub common to a Northern climate. All the mountains which we had passed were of easy access, and of no difficult ascent or descent. About twelve miles from _Chiflik_ there is in ruins, a small circular building of stone, which is probably a Turkish tomb. We rested for the night at _Caraja_, though the proper _Menzil Khonéh_ is three hours distance, at a place called _Sheyran_, which gives name to a district, or _Mahalé_, containing this and between thirty and forty other villages. Our horses were collected from the individual villagers; for the regular establishments were broken up about a month before our arrival, by the disturbances in the country. From _Caraja_ to _Gumuck Khonéh_ (a large town) is twelve hours, and thence to _Trebisond_ ten hours, on a general bearing throughout the whole distance of N. _Arsinghan_ is a considerable town, twenty-four hours S. from _Caraja_. The corn fields in all this region are fenced off with rails, made of the trunks of pine trees; and here and there the boundaries of each man’s territory are marked by large stones; a greater evidence of property, and consequently of prosperity, than we had seen any where. On our road to-day we saw a great number of juniper bushes with very fine berries upon them. In our passage through the woods we met three _Tatars_ going in great haste to _Arz-roum_, bearing to EMIN AGA the news of his having been created a _Pacha_. They told us that they had then been seven days from _Constantinople_. Their errand is called carrying the _Mudjdéh_, which is merely a verbal notification of the appointment, and which very frequently proves false; for the _Tatar_ who is the bearer of it generally gets it from the _Capi Kiayah_ or _Hommes d’Affaires_ of the great man in the province, and then takes the chance of the news proving false afterwards. As soon as the _Tatar_ arrives, he is carried immediately into the presence of the person whose new dignity he announces, and simply informs him of his promotion. If the news which he brings prove correct, he receives perhaps one thousand _piastres_, and the succeeding _Tatars_ (for there are frequently twenty who set off on similar expeditions) get sums in proportion to their early or tardy arrival. The person indeed who on these occasions secures the highest prize, is generally he who brings the pelisse of office, which is the common mode of investiture in Turkey. On the present occasion we were told by the _Tatars_ that the pelisse was actually on the road. The _Aga_ or Governor of _Caraja_ was a Turk of a very fierce appearance, but of a behaviour more agreeable than his looks. He accommodated us with the upper part of his own house, an open room looking over a beautiful plain, and in the evening treated us with a dinner. The greatest and best ingredient of the entertainment was a large lamb roasted whole; round this were seated twelve persons, mostly the farmers of the place, among whom however I could distinguish the _Imaum_, or parish priest, and the _Hodja_ or schoolmaster. All these gentlemen arrived with very good appetites to the feast; for no sooner were they seated and the lamb placed before them, than every one had his right hand in the dish at once, tearing off as large pieces from the animal, as his strength and dexterity would admit. This species of attack did not finish, until there remained nothing but the bare bones of the lamb; when every man very deliberately retired to smoke his pipe in a corner of the sofa, and to drink a cup of coffee, that was then handed round to each of the guests. Although such a meal may be repugnant to the delicacy of those, who have been accustomed to a civilized mode of eating, yet there was a species of wild and generous hospitality in the manners of these people, that I could not help admiring; and a few ingredients of which would add extremely to the delights of a modern table. 27th. We proceeded from _Caraja_, and halted at the distance of twenty miles, on a bearing of N. 60 W. Our station was on the banks of a stream in a beautiful valley, and we reached it through a country, which (almost above that of the preceding march) was finely wooded, and in the intervals among the mountains richly cultivated. Among the forests the pines were of an uncommon size. Whilst we were eating our dinner under a tree, a heavy storm of thunder and lightning and rain, from the Westward, came over us. In this situation we were joined by a Persian who was coming post from _Constantinople_. He was of the suite of ASKER KHAN, the Persian Embassador at Paris, and unburthened himself of a volume of news to us. He soon convinced me that he had gained some knowledge in France by saying, “_Les dames de Paris sont bien jolies_.” The storm continued with little intermission till near midnight. Some sought shelter among the rocks; others covered themselves with carpets, horse cloths, or any thing which they could seize for the purpose, whilst others, and I among the rest, sought refuge in a neighbouring water-mill, half in ruins, where we made a large fire and defended ourselves as well as we could from the pelting of the storm. I passed the night in the trough of the mill. 28th. We again continued our route on a general bearing of W. to _Carahissar_, a distance called eight hours, but which we performed even in ten hours with difficulty, from the extreme debility of our cattle. The road measurement may be thirty miles. The whole country, through which we passed, presented the luxuries of a garden, with the grandeur of a forest. Flowers of all hues embellished the slopes of the rich pasturage, and embalmed the air with their aromatic odours. I never saw spring so luxuriant, so exuberant, as it was in these regions. At the bottom of every valley invariably runs a stream, the progress of which is marked by the trees and by the fertility which borders it, and which accompanies it in all its windings. The soil is of a fine red earth; and when occasionally turned up by the plough, breaks the monotony of the universal verdure that now covers the country, and contrasts admirably with the splendid brilliancy of its tints. The corn on the summit of the mountain was about a foot high, but in the valley was much more advanced. The great cultivation consists in barley, besides many fields of rye, the latter indeed in many places grows wild, and indiscriminately with other plants. Wheat does not appear to be one of the necessaries of the inhabitants, for almost all the bread which we ate was made of barley. Great numbers of pear-trees border the road, with pines of a form most picturesque, and presented often in the most striking views. The pencils of an hundred artists would not accomplish in as many years the task of delineating all the landscapes which this country affords. The inhabitants are as well adapted for the painter as their country, and would add a new interest to the charms of the picture. On reaching the eminence of _Carahissar_ a splendid panorama opens. The various masses that erect themselves in an infinity of curious forms suggest forcibly the wild convulsion of nature which had thrown them in their present disorder. To the North is a large mass of mountain of a rude outline, and a tint which indicates the mineral below: this joins a stupendous chain of rock which, taking a turn to the Westward, is terminated by the great isolated height of _Carahissar_. On the extreme summit of this is the castle, a small fort rendered tenable by its position. There are houses also on the top to which a ziz-zag road leads. The remainder of the surface is also inlaid with walls, which, as seen from below, appear more ancient than the main building. The town of _Carahissar_ is spread about on the declivity. At the distance of about two miles from the place, and at the bottom of the valley, formed by the steeps of the great mountains, flows a torrent from the N. E.: the waters of which foam through a bed of rocks and loose stones, and spread through the cultivation around _Carahissar_. We passed on a bridge of one arch: the bases of the arch are of stone built on two projecting rocks, and the superstructure is of wood. Immediately after passing the bridge is a fountain, and near it a garden, from which we got some of the finest cherries that I ever eat. From this spot the rock of _Carahissar_ was singularly striking. Proceeding further, we entered the great tract of cultivation and gardens, more immediately surrounding the town, and certainly constituting one of the finest spots which I can recollect in Turkey, or indeed in any other country. Plane trees, poplars, fruit trees of every denomination in the thickest profusion, intermixed with corn fields, and enlivened by the murmuring of a thousand streams, formed the fore-ground of the view. We came to a second torrent which flows through the gardens with great precipitation and noise, and adds its waters to the first. The heat was that of summer; the corn had lost its green tints, and was ripening into yellow. Such was the difference of our elevation since the preceding day: our descent to _Carahissar_ indeed had been gradual for nearly four hours. The houses are terraced, and are built of all materials, mud, bricks, stone, and wood. There is a custom-house: the town is administered by a _Musselim_ under the jurisdiction of _Arz-roum_. The place has two mosques, and two baths: one of the former is a good structure with a dome covered with lead. In the vicinity are many villages: among others to the South, are _Gezliché_, _Yaiché_, _Sayit_ and _Soucher_. Scarcely a fortnight before our arrival the town and the adjacent country had been in a state of great disturbance; a party of _Janizaries_ inimical to JUSSUF PACHA (now (1809) the Grand Vizir, who had lately governed the district) set fire to a large house which he had built at _Carahissar_, and the whole, with an immense property which it contained, was totally consumed. We were delayed some time, at the moment of our departure, by a fierce dispute that arose between the Persians and the Turk and his family at whose house we had lodged. One of the Persian servants had lost his _shalwars_ or riding breeches, and, in his anxiety to find them, taxed the Turk with having stolen them. The Turk retorted with warmth; and the contention was already going on at a high rate, when the Embassador arrived, brandishing the breeches in the air, and joining in the attack on the Turk. It seems that the Embassador, who had before suspected the integrity of our host, immediately on hearing the affray, searched in the suspicious parts of our chamber, and in a bye-corner found (wrapped up in a slip of hay) the unlucky object of dispute. The confusion of the Turk, who, by his dress and exterior possessions, was passing for a man of respectability in the town, may be better imagined than described. We at length left _Carahissar_, and travelled eighteen miles W. on a mountainous and stony road. About three miles from our last station we saw the road to _Diarbekir_ and _Bagdad_, bearing S. 25 W. We continued our own course to the W. and came to the banks of a large stream called (like the earlier part of the _Euphrates_) the _Kara Sou_, and flowing from E. to W. in a channel between two chains of rocks. In its subsequent progress, like the _Euphrates_ also, it assumes a new name; and at _Niksar_ is called the _Kelki Irmak_[43]. I am told that it takes its rise near the mines, fifteen days journey from the point where we saw it, and that it finally falls into the Black Sea. We encamped on the banks, having followed the windings of the river through the mountains, on a bad road, now and then rendered dangerous by narrow and steep passes. Our halt was on the extremity of the range, with a village to our right; on the eminence on the opposite side of the water, appeared a ruin of which no one could give me any better account, than that it was a church built by the _Giaours_ or infidels. I could observe a portico with a Roman arch; and, not being able to cross the stream and take a nearer view, I was obliged to be contented with this scanty information. About noon a strong wind arose from the S. W. bringing together an immense collection of thick clouds; which at the close of the evening fell in heavy torrents of rain. Here again we were exposed to the storm for the night, without any other shelter than that which the foliage of two trees, and the partial covering of a shelving rock might yield. 1st. July. We proceeded W. again about eighteen miles, and as on the preceding day, stopped by the banks of the river, which continued to wind at the foot of two ranges of mountains. On the right chain was the line of our route, in parts singularly dangerous: in one pass the soil crumbled under our feet as we advanced, and fell a horrid depth into the precipice over the river below. Nor indeed, if a little more rain had fallen, would the road have been practicable at any hazard. About eight miles from _Kuley Hissar_ (on the left of our course, and on the other side of the river) is a small structure built over a hot spring. In the little plains and vallies that now and then intervened we met with much vegetation. The acacia was in great plenty; with plants of every hue. At the end of the stage we saw the castle of _Kuley Hissar_, situated on the pinnacle of a very high part of the mountains. We ascended a very steep and intricate road, and from the summit saw in the deep valley extended at our feet, the beautiful village of _Kuley Hissar_. It consists of houses unconnected with one another, and scattered in a wood of every description, (particularly of fruit-trees;) the refreshing tints of which were admirably contrasted with the arid surfaces of the surrounding heights. A little art would render the scene perfect. Streams of running water murmured in every part of this plantation; and an exhilarating breeze kept up a delightful temperature in the air. The situation however, girded close by high land on every side, was in itself much warmer than _Carahissar_, or any part of our preceding route. Here indeed we found the season for cherries expired; and we got only the _vishna_ (sour cherry) and the white mulberry. The corn was generally approaching to a state fit for the sickle: and in some warmer exposures had already been cut. The fort at the summit was some years ago destroyed by JUSSUF PACHA, (the present Grand Vizier, 1809) who found that the inhabitants of the neighbouring region were inclined to be turbulent and independent; a disposition which, I understand, is so little subdued, that they are now rebuilding their strong hold. To the port of _Janik_ on the Black Sea, the distance from _Kuley Hissar_ is not more than twelve hours. 2d. July. We were obliged to hire our horses from this stage forwards at four _piastres_ each. The master of the _Menzil Khonéh_ assigned as a reason, that this village paid more than others to the _Miri_, and was consequently relieved from the burthen of any stated establishment, and was not required to furnish travellers at the common rate. Notwithstanding therefore all our assertions that we were on the business of government; notwithstanding our _boyouroultee_ or public orders, (and others more immediately from the _Musselim_ of _Carahissar_, in whose jurisdiction the place is) we were obliged to comply. Yet the horses for which we had paid so largely and unusually were too bad to carry us further than twelve miles; we were obliged therefore to unload the baggage, and rest them on a fine pasturage in an open part of the mountains. Our course had been N. 50 W. During our ride we traversed forests of pine trees, (intermixed with hazels, oak-bushes, and a variety of other plants) here and there forming most beautiful pictures. In some places the wood had been burnt down; and the countrymen were ploughing the land between the old trunks, where probably they would sow rye. The people here cut their trees about five feet from the ground, burning them a little, and then applying the hatchet. 3d. We had not however long taken possession of our station, and our cattle had not long indulged on the fat pasture that extended itself around, before a party of armed Turks, some on horseback and some on foot, came to us and desired us to withdraw our horses from the grass, for it was the property of their village. This startled the Persians, who swore that the grass was common property, for that it was the gift of God, and that their horses had as much right to feed upon it as any other: the Turks, however, soon made them understand, that the usages of their several countries differed in this respect: one of them at the same time remarking, “You might as truly say, that corn, goats, cows, and sheep are common property, for they are all, as well as grass, the gifts of God.” The peasants here indeed take much pains with their grass, which they cut and dry into hay, and store up for the winter: whereas in Persia, grass is unappropriated; and even barley is open to the King’s people; for we used to turn our horses into the barley fields, where, in the King’s name and right, they devoured all around, while the poor cultivator did not dare to say a word to us. We were no longer in Persia, and therefore obeyed the summons; and departed an hour after sun-set to seek a fresh pasturage. We rode for five hours through thick woods of pine trees beautifully enlightened by the moon, which rose an hour after we had mounted. We again stopped, and in a charming valley fed our cattle till morning dawned; when we proceeded, and in four hours reached the village of _Isker Sou_. From the general direction of our road, we averaged probably about N. 70 W. on a distance which might be twenty-seven miles. Three hours before we reached _Isker Sou_ is the large village of _Kizzil Javeran_, high on the mountain on the left; and afterwards on both sides a number of villages, the small wooden houses of which are scattered unconnectedly in various directions on the declivities and summits of the hills. The people build their houses entirely of wood, laying trunks of the pine trees horizontally one over another, and fitting their extremities at the angles by notches and holes. About five miles from _Isker Sou_, on the left of the road, is a rock completely insulated among green fields. The substance is a hard grey granite, in which is excavated, certainly with great labour, a chamber nine feet square, with a seat and two recesses. On the left of the inside on entering is a figure, which, from its resemblance to a Cross, induced me to suppose that the spot, in which it appeared, had been the retreat of some of the primitive Christians. Our Bosnian Quixote had been missing since the preceding evening; and we felt a general apprehension that he had fallen a prey to the Turks, who warned us from their pasture. He was late in preparing to follow us, was encumbered with two horses, and with trappings so numerous, that notwithstanding his warlike appearance he would have presented an easy conquest to any attack; above all, he was known to carry much gold. But his life was in fact uninjured, and he rejoined us in a subsequent part of our route. The poor creature was now and then wont to sing some of his patriotic songs, which are of a peculiarly doleful and melancholy harmony; and every time he begun his lay it happened that rain fell soon after. I unluckily told the Persians, who were too credulous and superstitious not to believe me, that the singing of the people of _Bosnia_ invariably draws down rain: so that the poor fellow’s strains, whenever he attempted to renew them, were afterwards stopped by the joint force of all his comrades. The people of _Isker Sou_ informed me, that for six months of the year the snow lies on the ground. The night indeed which we passed in their village was so sensibly cold that all our warmest clothes were brought into use, before we could get ourselves tolerably comfortable. In a general view of our route, I should think that we had been rising for some time. The country was in a state of internal warfare, which however did not interfere with the passage of strangers. In the village there was then from _Janik_ one of JUSUFF PACHA’S _Tuffenchee Bashees_, or captains, who with fifty followers was feeding at the expence of the peasantry. CHAPPAN OGLU was the principal object of terror in the neighbourhood; his troops had lately fired the _Bazar_ of _Niksar_, which is under the jurisdiction of HAZNADAR OGLU, Governor of _Janik_. 4th. of July. From _Isker Sou_ we went to _Niksar_. We were seven hours on the road on a bearing of West, which, from the unequal surface of the country, may be reckoned at twenty-one miles. About one mile and a half from _Isker Sou_ we came to a wooden bridge over a small stream, which is the termination of the Government of _Arz-roum_; when therefore a _Pacha_ is appointed, the ceremony of sacrificing is performed at this spot. After this we passed several villages on all sides, but totally abandoned by their inhabitants, who had taken refuge in the different countries against the depredations of the _Delhis_, and the occasional visits of the soldiers of CHAPPAN OGLU. There is a village immediately at the pass (where we entered the mountains); and here commenced a series of mountain scenery, of the wildest and most romantic character. No description is adequate to paint the brilliancy and luxuriance of vegetation, and the picturesque forms of this region; and few imaginations are sufficiently fertile to supply the idea of a spring in these mountains. Trees of every denomination grow here in the wildest profusion, whilst their roots are embalmed by the odour of myriads of flowers. The oak here is but an indifferent tree; but there are walnut and plane-trees, pines and firs of a fine growth. Yet lovely as the spring was here, the cold on the mountains is said to be intense in winter; and even where we crossed the highest part of the range we were enveloped some time in clouds, which came from the North, and which now and then broke in frequent and sharp showers. The descent to _Niksar_ continues for three hours, and in some places is rapid. The road winds through the thickest shrubbery, and at its extremity is a collection of lofty plane-trees, which form a fine shade to recruit the traveller after the tedious length of the hills. About an hour before we reached _Niksar_ we discovered the town, situated in a valley, and, in the back-ground, a plain watered by the _Kelki Irmak_, the stream which we had followed under another name near _Carahissar_, and which empties itself into the river of _Amasia_, and thus is carried into the Black Sea. The approaches to _Niksar_ exceeded, if possible, in beauty and rich vegetation those to _Carahissar_. The corn here again was quite ripe, and we got cherries and mulberries. _Niksar_[44] is a long town crowned by a ruined fort of considerable extent; the walls and towers appear works of the Saracenic age, and at a distance still constitute a picturesque object; though they might now afford but a sorry and impotent defence. A stream from the hills rushes through the valley, and turns the wheels of many mills for cutting the pines into planks. The houses here are no longer terraced; their roofs are mostly of wood, shelving and covered with tiles. 5th. From _Niksar_ to _Tocat_ is nine hours, on a bearing of S. 60 W. a distance which I place at thirty miles. On quitting the town the road continues through a variety of fine landscapes, and then comes to the banks of the _Kelki Irmak_, which here flows from S. to N. After much delay, and an ineffectual attempt to ford, we passed this river in a boat, which could receive at once only a few of our party, and a small portion of our equipage, and which was still more unequal to the numbers of the peasantry crowding into it, anxious to cross the water, with hoes, sickles and spades to their daily labour on the opposite side. We then traversed a very rich country, the yellow appearance of which announced the approach of harvest. In the plain were large plantations of rice. We now entered the pass between the mountains which leads to _Tocat_, and which here bore W. from _Niksar_. On the right is a small village; the pass then narrows into a road delightfully shaded by a wild profusion of trees, whilst a continual rushing of water over a number of small cascades, refreshes the air, and gives a new charm to the scenery around. At the extremity of this pass are one or two villages; and the road afterwards quits the shade of the trees, and crosses a more open country. Three hours before we reached _Tocat_, we came to the bed of a river, flowing in the direction of our road, and enlivening a rich country of corn, which was then all ripe. On the right of the road, about four miles before the end of our journey, is a rock with excavated chambers[45]; one of which has an ornamented front. Soon after we had a view of the great town of _Tocat_, situated in the hollow of two mountains, in its first appearance considerably diminished below its real size. As we approached, we crossed the river over a large and solid bridge of five arches; and then came to a paved road, shaded here and there by the foliage of immense walnut-trees. The surrounding territory is very rich in corn, besides a number of enclosures abounding in fruit-trees of every description. We eat here, as at _Carahissar_, the largest and finest cherries that I ever saw. The _Musselim_ of this place is appointed at _Constantinople_. The person, who at the time of our arrival filled the office, took no part in the quarrels of the chiefs, who were fighting all around him; and seemed indeed to care little about his own government. When it was announced to him that an _Elchee_ from Persia was about visiting his town on the way to the presence of his sovereign, and required his good offices; he said, that the _Elchee_ if he chose might take up his lodgings in a _caravanserai_; that he should have as many horses as he might want to convey him away; but as for the rest, he himself could do nothing more for us. We had hitherto experienced, in general, more hospitality, but we now accordingly took up our quarters in a _caravanserai_ on the _Maidan_, and very conveniently lodged ourselves and cattle. 6th. _Tocat_ is situated on the declivity of three hills, whose bases join. To the Westward it is overlooked by the ruins of a fort, so completely dilapidated, that its remains are scattered unconnectedly over the surface of the rock on which they stand. To the north is a large open spot or _Maidan_; on one side of which is an excellent _caravanserai_ called the _Vaivoda-Khan_, and on the other, a very good and well-built mosque. In the centre of the town there is another mosque of equal beauty. The town is said to contain about twenty thousand houses, or one hundred thousand inhabitants. The _bazars_ here are very numerous, and every thing common to Turkey and its wants seemed to be here in plenty. The Armenian merchants complained to us indeed of the great dearth of trade, and particularly of that part of it which is connected with the mines. Those mines, which are at _Kebban_, eight days journey from _Tocat_, and nearer to _Malatia_ than to any other great town, produce, (besides silver which is sent to _Constantinople_,) between one hundred and one hundred and fifty thousand _okes_ of copper annually, which comes unwrought to _Tocat_, and is there made up in cakes. The works indeed connected with copper, and which occupy about three hundred shops, are the only particular manufactures, for which the town is noted. From these the copper wares are dispersed through all parts of Turkey. In the evening of the 7th we continued our journey. We left the city on the same road by which we had entered; and, crossing the bridge, traversed a plain about five miles broad and fifteen long, where the harvest was fully ripe, over one of the richest corn countries that can be imagined. The distance of our stage to _Turkhal_ was about twenty-five miles, on a general bearing of W. This large village comes abruptly to the view, and is remarkable principally as being built about a high rock, which stands isolated from the surrounding mountains, and on the extreme summit of which is the ruin of a fort. The village itself extends round the rock to the Westward. The _Tozzan Irmak_ that flows from _Tocat_, passes close to the place from S. to N. At _Turkhal_, though we were housed in a _caravanserai_ (there called _khan_), our expences were defrayed by the _Cazi_ of the place. He had been informed of the treatment which we had received from the _Musselim_ of _Tocat_, and told us that he would spend his hundred purses rather than we should experience a similar reception from his hands. Finding ourselves however uncomfortably situated in the _caravanserai_, (where, besides our baggage and servants, were our horses) we sought refuge in the garden of a hospitable Turk, who permitted us to spread our carpets on a raised platform under a tree, and helped us without limit to the mulberries and apricots which grew around. But we had not sat there long, before we were surprised by a heavy shower of rain and hail, which obliged us once more to retire to our heated _caravanserai_. There are very large water wheels here, which are used for irrigating the gardens and fields of the place, and which are turned by the fine river that runs through the village. Close to the mosque is a large corn mill, which also is worked by two large wheels. We proceeded from _Turkhal_ in the evening, and travelled for the distance of six hours. On passing through two masses of rock, which in the obscurity of the night were extremely grand, we espied a strong light, illuminating a hut and two or three lofty pine-trees. This was one of the guard-houses, called _durand_, which are stationed at the interval of about four hours, and are common to the territory of CHAPPAN OGLU. They are at once places of security and rest. There is generally a party of eight or ten men kept in them to watch over the safety of the roads. This one, which we were approaching, was peculiarly picturesque. The _Tatars_, the _Mirza_, and I, dismounted from our horses; whilst we permitted the rest of our caravan to proceed. We entered an enclosure of stone-walls, built at the foot of a high pine-tree. In one corner blazed an immense fire. An old Turk, who received us, immediately spread goat’s-skins for our seats; whilst a young man prepared to give us coffee. He first placed the water to boil on the outer-embers of the fire, and then begun to pound the coffee in a wooden vase, which he continued with much activity to a sort of musical stroke, until the whole was beat into an impalpable powder. He then put the pounded coffee into the water, and boiled it up three or four times; when he poured it into his coffee cup, kept neatly bright, on a circular platter. We then resumed our march, and in six hours from _Turkhal_ made a halt at a large _caravanserai_ where we slept in the open air until the morning. The _caravanserai_ was an extensive building, of strong materials and in good repair. Besides ourselves there were many peasants with their carts drawn by buffaloes, who were waiting the dawn of day to proceed on their journey. Our route led over a mountainous country, till we descended towards _Amasia_, through a narrow pass bordered on each side by rocks of a surprising size. The opening was not seen, until we were close upon it, when it formed a beautiful and curious picture. The approaches to _Amasia_ from this side are very striking. On the right is a long chain of heights, which appear in many places to have been worked by the hand of man. Close to the road, and at the foot of these mountains, is a deep channel cut into the rock, which extends at least two miles, and is traced up to the river. It is unquestionably the bed of an aqueduct, and has been the work of immense labour, for the masses, through which in some places it is carried, are of a prodigious thickness. On the left in the valley below, are detached houses, embosomed in gardens and orchards. These are planted with fruit-trees of every kind, and when we passed, were in full perfection. In this direction the city of _Amasia_ is hardly seen until almost its very entrance. The approach is extremely grand; and every step prepares the stranger for a view which his imagination has already pictured as sublime; and which realizes every expectation. CHAP. XVIII. AMASIA TO CONSTANTINOPLE. AMASIA: EXCAVATIONS--MARCIVAN--OSMANJIK--PRECIPICES: ROAD OF THE GENOESE--TOSIA--THE DELHIS--CHERKES: REMAINS--STORM--GEREDÉH--IMPORTANCE OF THE TATARS--PERSIAN DRESS--INSCRIPTION--BOLI: FOREST: GUARDS OF THE MOUNTAINS: TIMBER FOR THE ARSENALS--LANDSCAPES: KHANDACK; OUTLAWS--SABANJA: CAUSEWAY; LAKE--ISMID--GEVISA--CONSTANTINOPLE. _Amasia_ is situated in the recess of an amphitheatre of strong featured lands, which arise almost abruptly from the banks of a beautiful stream, the _Tozzan Irmak_, that winds majestically at their roots. The houses are built on either side, on the gradations of the declivities; and the town extends itself all around. On the North, situated in the highest and most conspicuous part of the mountains, is the castle, which appeared to me much in ruins; and on the same portion of land, just upwards from the boundaries of the town, are five very conspicuous monuments cut into the rock. I crossed the river over a stone bridge, and ascended the mountain in which they were excavated, escorted and guided by a young Turk. We passed by the ruins of a fort built upon a projecting part of the range, and came to three excavated chambers. The first has a triangular ornamented front. The others have platforms before them, and a vestibule cut into the rock behind. We then proceeded on towards the left, and arrived at the two largest excavations. A path of about three feet in breadth, cut deep within the front of the mass into the appearance of a covered gallery, and guarded by a parapet wall of solid rock, leads along the side of the mountain. One of these monuments is a mass of hard granite twelve paces square, severed completely from the mountain by an interval (about four feet broad) all around and above it, and excavated into a chamber. The other contiguous and last monument has no passage behind or around. These chambers are said to have been the retreats of ST. CHRYSOSTOM;[46] but I could discover no inscription upon them, which might throw any light upon the subject. In the castle above indeed, my young conductor told me there were not only inscriptions but sculptures; but my time would not permit me to ascend, and I had now only a momentary leisure to enjoy the beauty of the view; where was the town arranged all about me, the river winding at my feet and struggling under numerous water wheels, and the whole scenery enriched by the last rays of the setting sun. The minarets of many mosques, (of which one near the river is a very fine building,) break the sameness of the flat-tiled roofs. The inhabitants of _Amasia_ are distinguished for their urbanity and attention to strangers; and their women particularly are celebrated as the fairest and most engaging of _Asia Minor_. Of this I had but a single and chance opportunity to form a judgment: in riding through the streets, I saw an unveiled female who was joking at the door of her house with a black slave girl, and who was more beautiful than any whom I had long seen; nor as I passed did she shrink from my observation, for our curiosity was equal. We had a lodging assigned to us in the dwelling of an opulent Turk, close on the banks of the river. He had three brothers who lived in three houses contiguous to his own, and who severally came to pay their respects to us. They were all fairer than any Turks or Asiatics whom I had ever seen. Their manners were peculiarly mild and agreeable, and they treated us with the greatest civility. They spoke in raptures of their own city, although none of them had ever seen any other place. I was anxious to reach _Constantinople_ as soon as possible, and resolved therefore to leave the Persian Envoy to follow at his leisure, and to proceed myself with increased expedition. Taking fresh horses then, I set off from _Amasia_ at the close of the night. There is an ascent of two hours towards _Marcivan_; and then, as far as I could judge in the dark, the road leads through one uniform plain. The total distance from _Amasia_ is reckoned twelve miles, which we had travelled two hours before the sun rose. [11th.] _Marcivan_ abounds with walnut-trees, and is surrounded by corn fields, which, as we were leaving the place at break of day, were animated by the reapers. Four hours from _Marcivan_, on the left of the road is the large village of _Haji Kieu_, where the great caravan roads from _Smyrna_, _Angora_, &c. meet. Shortly after we came to a house where travellers usually stop; but the inhabitants had now fled to the mountains, in consequence of the passage of the _Delhis_; and we found only one old man, who brought us some _yaourt_ and cold _pillau_, and some bread that had been concealed. Then again proceeding, we struck into a steep mountain pass, at the foot of which led a torrent strewed with immense fragments of rocks, that (by an earthquake, or by the washing away of the soil beneath them) had been dislodged from the heights around: and vast masses, which seemed to threaten our destruction as we passed, were still sustained only by large poles or trunks of trees. After this pass we entered into a rich but limited plain, thickly studded with trees of every kind, and abounding in corn. At its extremity we stopped at a delicious grove of immense walnut-trees beautifully watered. In this charming spot was encamped a _bayrack_ or company of soldiers going from _Marcivan_ on their road towards _Constantinople_. The passage of this species of troops is not dreaded by the country, as they are composed of respectable men, who go to the war through a spirit of religion. From an eminence on the road we first discovered the rock of _Osmanjik_, forming a striking point amid the green and lively scenery of the plain. On this aspect no part of the town of _Osmanjik_ appears, except a few houses on the skirts of the rock. The bridge, indeed, which leads out of the place is a conspicuous object in the view. On a nearer approach, that which at a distance appeared an immense black mass is found to be broken into several detached heights, all of the same species of stone, and all originally connected by the art of man into one impregnable fortress. The walls and turrets, which still cover the various surfaces, appear the remains of Saracenic work. _Osmanjik_ in its present state is only a large village; the distance from _Marcivan_ is reckoned a march of fourteen hours. The plain around is cultivated principally with corn and vines; it is thickly wooded and well watered by the _Kizzil Irmak_, the ancient _Halys_, in its course to the W. The river is a deep yellow bordering on the colour of sand, and very much troubled. We crossed it over a well-built bridge of fourteen arches, the materials of which (still white and fresh) attest that it was a structure of the best times of the Government. Four arches on the left are dry, the earth having encroached upon the bed so substantially, that houses and gardens exist now where the water once flowed. The passage of the _Delhis_ through this place was marked with peculiar acts of hostility. The inhabitants, who found themselves outraged by their insolence, actually came to blows with them; and, when at length the troops departed, for several days kept closed the wooden gate on their bridge, until the soldiers were completely out of their neighbourhood. We departed from _Osmanjik_ about an hour before sun-set, and paced the banks of the _Halys_ as far as our next stage _Haji Hamza_, called eight hours from _Osmanjik_. The scenery of the river appears to partake of every quality which can make landscape admirable. Very fine lands rise above it; along which, still following the stream in all its windings, the road is carried, presenting to the travellers at every reach new and striking pictures. Here and there we came to fine collections of walnut-trees; and then crossed large plantations of rice, which, for the facility of irrigation, were situated immediately on the borders of the water. At about two hours from _Osmanjik_ we turned to the left, and ascended a very steep part of the mountains, on a broad paved road, which, as far as the dusk of the evening permitted me to observe, seemed good. On reaching the extreme eminence, I perceived that we were on the brink of an immense precipice, under which the river was winding; and that we were enclosed on all sides by stupendous heights. The obscurity and stillness of the night gave a solemnity to the scene which I cannot describe. We continued along this precipice, viewing the same grandeur of scenery for some time, but in perfect security: for we were travelling on a road of a smooth and easy surface, and guarded on the side of the danger by a parapet wall. My _Janizary_ told me that the road was cut into the vivid rock by the Genoese. He was probably right in the materials, as in the present age nothing but rock would have been in so good order: perhaps he was right also in the founders, to whom he ascribed the original work; but the darkness prevented my forming any judgment of the correctness of his information. We came to _Haji Hamza_ in the dead of the night. The post-house is on the banks of the river. There are few other habitations, except indeed the fort. We had scarcely taken the rest of an hour, when we were again on our horses, on the road to _Tosia_, called a distance of twelve hours. We came to _Tosia_ about four hours after sun-rise, after having met several caravans, the mules of which were the finest that I had seen in the country. In fact, the mules of Turkey, and particularly in this part of it, are much larger and finer limbed than any of the sort in Persia. So that the _Mirza_, when we were travelling together, was on the point of buying several as a present for the King, declaring that His Majesty had none of equal beauty. _Tosia_ is a large town situated among beautiful environs on the slope of a hill, and presents itself in its whole extent intermixed with several handsome mosques. The post-house is just on the skirts of the town. We proceeded from _Tosia_ to _Coja Hissar_, distant eight hours. On leaving _Tosia_ we entered on an amphitheatre of land, rising in gentle acclivities all around, cultivated more richly than I can describe. The bed of the valley was one layer of corn fields, fenced off by hedges of evergreens and fine trees. We then came to large plantations of rice, and extensive tracts of vineyards. The road was beautifully shaded on both sides, until we came to a station of guards of the mountains, where we entered their waste district, and quitted the cultivation. We reached _Coja Hissar_ about three hours before sun-set. I went into the coffee-house attached to the post-house; and after having eat some soup and meat-balls,[47] I laid myself down to sleep. We had heard that two thousand of the _Delhis_ were encamped in the neighbourhood, about two hours distant from the place; and accordingly determined to pass them in the night. Little sleep is necessary to the body: when I was awakened by my _Janizary_, just at the dusk of the evening, I thought that it was the grey of the morning, and that I had slept through the night; and I upbraided him therefore with laziness, for not having proceeded as we had agreed the night before. I felt as refreshed with the three hours rest, as if I had slept undisturbed through a whole night, although I had taken no sleep since I had left _Amasia_, except what had been forced upon me when on my horse. Though sleep will certainly overcome us in defiance of all our efforts, a few minutes suffice; and when the strongest paroxysm is over, refresh indeed as much as hours in bed. We are seldom aware how little food and how little sleep are necessary for health and strength. When we left _Coja Hissar_ the weather portended a storm. Dark clouds were gathering over the mountains; and as the night closed, we now and then only got a glimpse of a star. This proved very favourable to us, for we had not rode long before we discovered the numerous fires of the _Delhis_ that illuminated the whole of the country to a considerable distance. They were encamped on the opposite side of the river to that on which our road lay, so that guarded by the water and by the darkness, we passed them without being challenged by a single one. On the 13th, about one o’clock in the morning, we reached _Carajol_, a distance of eight hours; and departed again to _Carajalar_, distant four hours. It is remarkable that the country from _Carajol_ is entirely destitute of trees; losing, as it were by magic, all that variety of foliage which characterizes the preceding region. We were detained at _Carajalar_, from the morning till the evening, by a deficiency of horses. Although we gave five _piastres_ for the hire of each, yet it was not till we had witnessed a scene of strife and contention amongst the villagers, in which there was some blood shed, that we were supplied. The post-house had been broken up for some time past; and the burthen, in consequence fell upon the people, who, in their several turns, furnished the travellers with horses at the rate of five _piastres_ each; though on every emergency there was a similar difficulty to enforce the regular levy in succession. As I was waiting for my horses, a deputation from this village returned, which had been sent to the Chief of the _Delhis_ for the purpose of offering him a certain sum of money, in case he did not remain there with his troops longer than one night. The object was attained, though I could not learn the amount of the stipulated payment. In this manner the _Bey_ commanding the _Delhis_ enriches himself during his march. At length, after having collected my horses from various quarters, I departed for _Geredéh_, distant sixteen hours. At six hours from _Carajalar_ is a large town called _Cherkes_, situated in a plain, environed by some pretty groupes of trees. It is surrounded by a wall, and on entering one of the gates, I casually observed on the outside a Greek inscription in good character, carved on a stone which formed the lowermost part of the arch. On quitting the place I noticed on the road side, at several intervals, shafts of small columns terminated on either side by a plinth and tores, and apparently erected as monuments in places of burial; for all around were spread other blocks of stone, more obviously designed to cover graves. As the night closed we deviated from the road to avoid _Hamanlee_, the town and fortress of a man (HAJEE AHMET OGLU,) who, being a rebel to the Porte, is always in arms; and whose parties (patroling the hills in watch for his safety) infest the whole country, and sometimes have not spared travellers. Instead, therefore, of ascending the mountain, we turned to the left through a valley. There was every appearance of a storm as the night fell; and our apprehensions were soon realized. We were overtaken in the open country by one of the severest tempests of rain, thunder, and lightning, that I ever witnessed. Our horses refused to proceed, and turned their backs instinctively to the storm. The whole country was lighted by the flashes, which, ceasing at intervals, left us in impenetrable darkness. I can bear witness in this instance to the excellence of English broad cloth, a cloak of which preserved me from the heaviest torrents of rain, whilst my _Janizary_, who had a Turkish cloak made of a species of felt, was drenched from head to foot. After the storm had expended itself, we proceeded, till we reached the skirts of a village, where we fed our horses, and slept for an hour on the wet grass. 14th. The morning broke with unusual splendour, and introduced a most romantic country to us. We had now ascended to a region, the elevation of which was marked very sensibly by the increase of the cold, and by the tardiness of vegetation in comparison to that of the plains below. The peasantry were here ploughing the ground; and some delightful patches of cultivation were interspersed amongst the ranges of pines and other forest trees, that covered the summits and enlivened the declivity of the mountains. _Geredéh_ is a large town; at the entrance is a very extensive tannery. The shops and coffee-houses of the _bazars_ seemed also well peopled by a great number of well-looking Turks, sitting down and enjoying themselves with their pipes. We had been taught to apprehend here also a second detention for horses, from the great number of _Tatars_ who had been passing. One of them indeed had just preceded us; and had left us a part of his meal of fried eggs and soup. The _Tatars_ look upon themselves as great personages on the road; and expect proportionate attention at the post-houses, which, as I observed, was scarcely ever denied to them. The _Tatar_ who accompanied me was so tenacious of this consequence of his class, that he always took the best things for himself, and treated me as his inferior. Whenever he arrived, a soft seat and a cushion were spread for him, and, as he lighted his pipe, a dish of coffee was prepared for him; whilst to me he transferred an indifferent seat and the second dish. The fact is, indeed, that my appearance bespoke very little of the master; and I could hardly wonder therefore that the _Tatar_ was treated with all the respect which I might have expected as due to myself. My black skin cap was become very dusty; my silk trowsers were all torn; my Persian boots were soaked with rain and twisted under the heel; whilst my coat and great coat were all in dirt and in rags. As I did not wish to travel in my own character, knowing how extravagantly _Frangees_ (and Englishmen in particular) are made to pay, I was well content to pass for a Persian: and the little notice that was thus taken of one looking so miserable, gave me liberty to walk about and make my observations at my ease. Of all this contrast of our appearance however, my _Tatar_ profited; travelling as a gentleman at my expence, whilst I as easily passed for his attendant. [Illustration: _PLATE XXIX._ _N^o. 6. From Boli._ _N^o. 1. From Shapour p. 87._ _Two Colossal figures on horseback: figures on the right._ _N^o. 3. Sculptures at Nakshi Rustam p. 127._ _Greek Inscription on the rock under the Horses belly nearly obliterated: then the following_ _N^o. 2. From the first Sculpture to the N. at Nakshi Rustam p. 126._ _N^o. 4. Inscription on the Windows of the Rock p. 128._ _N^o. 5. Inscription at Mesjed Madré Suleiman, p. 144._ _Published by Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme & Brown, May 1^{st}, 1811._] From _Geredéh_ to _Boli_ is twelve hours. On quitting _Geredéh_ we crossed one of the most beautiful regions that I had ever seen. It was a continual garden of vineyards and corn-fields, shaded by walnut and oak trees, growing here to a greater size than any that I had hitherto found in the country. At very frequent intervals, on each side of the road, were large collections of blocks of stone, of different shapes, squares, oblongs, and pillars of five or six feet high: several with Greek inscriptions upon them. That these spots were ancient places of burial is more certain, because there are now mixed among them many modern tomb-stones. There are two inscriptions near the _durand_ or guard-house: one, on a column on the left of the road; and one, inserted in a wall on the right. I did not care for the chance of decyphering them to stop the rapid progress of our journey, (for we now went generally on a full gallop;) but on coming up to a very conspicuous pillar on the side of the road near a fountain, I could not neglect the opportunity of copying it, (see plate XXIX.) while our horses were drinking. It was terminated by a cross, which was an evidence that the monument had some connection with the primitive Christians. I wished much to have taken the other inscriptions; as, in general, they seemed legible; but I found that any notice of Greek was incompatible with the character of a Persian, and might have excited a suspicion of my disguise. As we approached _Boli_, the beauty of the country and the richness of cultivation increased. The plain, in which the town is situated, is quite a garden; and was then displaying all the lively green of the height of spring, except where the ripened corn broke in upon the general verdure. The quantity of rain, that had so lately fallen, had left this brilliant freshness on nature; but, even without this extraordinary supply, there is never any dearth of water. _Boli_, on the side by which we approached it, is not seen until we enter its very streets, as it is situated behind a hill. It is a large place surrounded by an open palisade, which indeed is its only defence. From the appearance of the streets and _bazars_ the place is well peopled. As we galloped into the town in the true haste and style of couriers with our _surujees_ (or conductors), making a kind of hideous noise to announce our approach, a company of Turkish soldiers, with colours flying (and preceded by a man beating a sort of little kettle drum tied to his middle) entered at a very slow and admirably-contrasted pace. We departed from _Boli_ in the evening; and, having quitted its delightful plain, begun to wind among mountains, and entered the large forest to which _Boli_ gives its name. Through the whole there is a fine causeway made by some pious Mussulman[48], which is a sufficient guide to the traveller if he will only follow it through all its windings. The _Tatars_ prefer the side to the road itself; though the path which they thus make for themselves may be full of water and mud. We chose the same, even when it was dark; for of the two evils, the fatigue of wading is less to the horses and mules, than that of scrambling and stumbling over the pavement. Having rode six hours through the forest we reached a small wooden hut, the station of the guards of the mountains. Here we determined to wait till morning, as my _Tatar_ told me that the forest grew so much thicker as we advanced, that in so dark a night it became dangerous to proceed. We unloaded therefore our baggage, and seated ourselves among a party of a dozen Turks, the chief of whom, a merry fellow, did the honours of his hut very agreeably. He was seated in the corner, and his men were strewed around him on the floor. Pistols, swords and muskets, and every implement of a soldier, were hung along the walls. Whilst the oldest of the party made some coffee for us, the youngest took down a rude guitar from a peg, and broke the stillness of the night by a song, to which he applied the whole force of his lungs, and which did not ill express the wild life of himself and his companions. I attempted to compose myself to sleep in a corner, but the heat of an immense wood-fire had given so much animation and impertinence to the fleas and vermin of the hut, that I was obliged to take refuge in an open shed on the outside, where I slept very soundly till the morning. 15th. As the morning broke, we proceeded on our journey, and penetrated the deeps of the forest. The road, in some of its windings through the rich woodland, presented some of the most fanciful and picturesque landscapes that the imagination of a painter could wish. I remarked some of the finest specimens of ash, elm, plane, poplar, larch and beech; with, now and then, some oaks larger than any that I had ever seen in Asia. This forest, which extends over a vast tract of country[49], supplies an unceasing source of timber to the arsenals of _Constantinople_. Their mode of felling the tree is susceptible of much improvement; for they first burn it towards the root, (by which they injure the finest part of the wood) and then apply the axe. In our progress we overtook immense spars which were dragged by buffaloes, and by slow journies are thus brought to _Constantinople_. Each end is supported on a light carriage of two wheels; but it requires all the prodigious strength of the buffaloe (and no other animal is equal to the attempt) to be able to cope with the difficulties which the extreme badness of the roads in the rainy season presents. We heard the howling of wolves all around us; and their great numbers are sometimes fatal to those travellers, who risk themselves at night through the wilds of the forest. _Khandak_, our next stage, twelve miles from _Boli_, is famed for the ferocity and wild freedom of its inhabitants. It is a village situated in the very heart of the forest, and its first appearance presents all the beauty that an intermixture of wood, water, cultivation, and buildings can combine. The low houses, with their shelving roofs nicely tiled, at the foot of lofty trees, (with partial openings here and there, where murmured a stream of pure water); still more enlivened by the most picturesque looking men and women, really formed a landscape which a CLAUDE, a HOBBIMA, or a RUYSDAEL would have envied. We soon discovered however the temper of the inhabitants: all the men and even boys of ten years old, wore a brace of pistols, and a large knife in their girdles; and displayed countenances more expressive of savage hardihood than I recollect to have ever seen. This horde of desperadoes is extremely obnoxious to the Porte; but, entrenched in their woods, they bid defiance to _firmans_ or _Capidgi Bashees_. Within these few years (and the fresh appearance of the houses attests the fact) an officer from _Constantinople_ was sent with a large body of men to surprise the inhabitants, and either to destroy them or take them prisoners; but they had notice of the design, and fled into the fastnesses of the woods, leaving their homes as the prey of the invaders, who immediately burnt them to the ground, destroying all the poor creatures that happened to fall into their way. No sooner however had the troops of the Porte quitted the territory than the natives returned, cleared away the smoking rubbish, and rebuilt their houses, as if nothing had happened. 16th. We were here obliged to pay five _piastres_ a horse to proceed to _Sabanja_, distant twelve hours. As we departed from _Khandak_, the road begun gradually to open, and presented to us extensive tracts of cultivation. We came to a long causeway of wood, formed indeed only of trees thrown across and so completely out of repair, that we passed it in many places at the hazard of our lives. At its termination (several hours from _Khandak_) there is a wooden bridge of considerable extent, but a part of it had fallen; and we were obliged therefore to ford the river over which it is built, and which was broad but not deep or rapid, although much rain had lately fallen. We followed a cart dragged by buffaloes across the stream, and got in safety over it. After the passage of the river we reached the borders of the beautiful lake of _Sabanja_, surrounded on all sides by the most enchanting scenery; its distant mountains and waters dying away in the softest tints on the horizon. We traversed its shores for nearly three hours, passing lands the fine projections and woods of which reflected in the water below the most beautiful pictures. _Sabanja_ is a place situated in a very thick wood, and notorious equally for the impudence and the independance of its inhabitants. We were not long detained at the post-house; and departed for _Ismid_, hoping to reach it before the close of night, as the road was reported unsafe after a certain hour. Although it was too dark to analyse the beauties of the plain towards _Ismid_, yet the general outline of the country was sufficiently discernible to impress me with an idea of its beauty and magnificence: and something also I gained by the solemn and dubious light of evening, as it softened and harmonized the whole landscape. It was, however, entirely dark when we crossed the long causeway that leads into _Ismid_. The plain was here and there illumined by the fires of the caravans that had encamped for the night. We put up at the coffee-house adjacent to the post, and early in the morning departed for _Gevisa_, distant nine hours. _Ismid_ is a large town most delightfully situated on the declivity of the mountain bordering on the branch of the sea, that forms its deep and beautiful gulph. In my rapid progress I could just ascertain that the place contained some well-built houses, and some in situations that must have commanded fine and extensive views of all its scenery. The water is so girt around with high mountains that it appears a great lake; but the imagination is soon undeceived by remarking the large boats which navigate it, and which I soon recognized to be those of _Constantinople_ and the _Bosphorus_. My anxiety to reach the end of my journey was now increased; and I stopped not to examine the antiquities of _Ismid_.[50] At about four hours from _Ismid_, having in many parts of the road paced the shores of the sea, we reached a small village situated on the very borders of it. Here were passage-boats to _Constantinople_, and many persons were going. I preferred, however, the surer route, and continued with my post-horses to _Gevisa_, ascending a steep road near an old and ruined fortification. _Gevisa_ is a small town with a good mosque and neat minarets nicely white-washed. The country around it was little cultivated and less wooded, so that it excited in me no other interest than that which its vicinity to the capital might give. Yet, in any other circumstances than those of my eagerness to reach _Constantinople_, I should not have overlooked the delight of searching for the tomb of HANNIBAL. I now however, made every haste to get to _Scutari_ before dark, but I did not succeed, and was obliged to pass the night in a coffee-house on the borders of the _Bosphorus_. The next morning, the 18th July 1809, I crossed from _Scutari_, and took up my abode in _Pera_, having completed the journey from _Teheran_ in two months and ten days, in which time I had not once slept out of my clothes. CHAP. XIX. CONCLUSION. PERSIAN OPINIONS OF TURKEY--MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, THE ENVOY, ENTERTAINED BY MR. ADAIR: INTRODUCTION OF THE SUITE TO THE MANNERS OF EUROPE--THEIR ACCOMMODATIONS TO OUR USAGES--CONTRASTED WITH THE TURKS--DIFFERENCE OF THE NATIONAL CHARACTER--ADVANCES OF PERSIA--DEPARTURE FROM TURKEY--THE PERSIANS AT SEA--CONVERSATIONS WITH THE ENVOY: ON THE DRESS, BEAUTY, OCCUPATIONS, AND EDUCATION OF THE WOMEN OF PERSIA. In a short time after my arrival, the Persian Envoy and his suite rejoined me at _Constantinople_. The splendour of the scenery, and the great novelty of every object about that city, did not seem to strike them with the surprise that I had expected. Few people are more sensible than they are to any thing, that is new and extraordinary; and few more curious and inquisitive. I could therefore only attribute their apparent indifference to the downright jealousy which they entertain of the Turks. Often when (struck with the beauties of the very fine tracts of country which we were passing) I have attempted to make them join in my feelings of admiration, they merely yielded a cool assent; always endeavouring to lessen my ardour by saying, “what is the use of such country, if it be without order?” And they considered almost as a gross national insult any comparison between the arid unshaded mountains of Persia, and the splendid foliage and rich vegetation of the Turkish dominions. As, however, they were very keenly alive to the beauties of nature, and enjoyed much the shade of trees and the refreshing sound of running water; and as such spots recurred constantly during the course of our journey, they could not restrain their expressions of delight, though they always added at the same time, “What a pity this charming country is in the hands of these people! If we had it, (and God grant we shall) what a paradise it would be.” I frequently visited the MIRZA ABUL HASSAN at _Scutari_. The windows of his apartment had a fine view of the great extent of _Constantinople_, the _Seraglio_ point, the shipping in the harbour, the palaces of _Dolma Baghehe_, and part of the Sultan’s fleet, (consisting of two three-deckers and five seventy-fours, at their anchorage) and all the activity spread over the _Bosphorus_ by the numerous vessels of all descriptions rowing about in every direction, altogether forming the most beautiful picture that an imagination the most fertile could picture to itself; and contrasted in the strongest manner with the misery, dulness, and sterility of _Teheran_ and its surrounding scenery. Whenever I called his attention to it, he seemed to shrink from the observation; and if I talked of the Turkish fleet, he said, “who can look at any ships, after he has seen English ships?” Indeed, he was so little disposed to compliment the Turks, that when the _Caimakan_, being desirous to inspire him with a grand idea of the naval force of the Sultan, sent a Turkish officer to conduct him near the fleet, the Persian replied, “I have seen English ships much finer than any thing that you can show me.” Yet in cases where no national jealousy intervened, whenever hospitality and kindness were shewn the Persian, I must do him the justice to add, that he never omitted to make the strongest acknowledgments of them; and, I believe, the fullest returns in his power. The most trifling attention never appeared, from the general conversation and temper of him or his people, to be thrown away upon them. The Envoy always spoke in raptures of the kindnesses which he had received in India, mentioning the names of his friends every time with an increased delight, and apparently with an unfeigned sincerity. During the _Mirza’s_ residence at _Constantinople_, he was invited by Mr. ADAIR to an entertainment, given on the occasion, and consisting of a dinner under tents at the _Buyukderé_ meadow, and a ball and supper at night, in a house borrowed for the purpose. The _Mirza_ did not seem at all astonished at the introduction of ladies into the society of men, as he had already witnessed our customs in the English settlements in India: but his attendants, who had just left the very innermost parts of Persia, by one common consent collected themselves together in a corner, and eyed every thing with the most anxious astonishment and attention. Their natural loquacity seemed to have quite forsaken them, and they sat with their mouths wide open, and eyes full-staring, and uttered not a single word. When the hour of dancing arrived, the _Mirza_ entered the ball-room, escorted by all his servants. There his people were more than ever in amaze, particularly when the whole assembly was in motion. Of all the dances the Waltz excited the most wonder and perhaps apprehension, for one of them quietly asked my servant in Turkish, “Pray does any thing ensue after all this?” In the national character of the Persian, the most striking difference from that of the Turk is perhaps the facility with which he adopts foreign manners and customs. I remarked two instances during our stay at _Constantinople_: the first occurred one morning when I went to visit the _Mirza_, where one of his servants took off his cap and saluted me by a bow in our fashion: again, at a ball, several of his attendants took off their caps and sat bald-headed, from the supposition that it was disrespectful in European company to keep the head covered, whilst they saw every one uncovered. There were many other accommodations to our usages which would never have been yielded by a Turk; such as eating with knives and forks, sitting at table, drinking wine, &c. The _Mirza_ himself told me that when he was in _Calcutta_, he wore leather-breeches and boots. I am sure then that if the Persians had possessed as much communication with Europeans, as the Turks have had, they would at this day not only have adopted many of our customs, but, with their natural quickness, would have rivalled us in our own arts and sciences. Unlike the Turks, they never scruple to acknowledge our superiority, always however reserving to themselves the second place after the English in the list of nations: whereas the Turk, too proud, too obstinate, and too ignorant to confess his own inferiority, spurns at the introduction of any improvement with equal disdain from any nation. The great changes that are now making in the military system in Persia, particularly by the Prince Royal in _Aderbigian_, will in a very short time so much influence the general character and disposition of the people, that they will scarcely be recognizable. Ever since their late wars with Russia, and their political connections with Europe, the effect produced has been most striking: and a person of excellent authority, who was in Persia during the time of KERIM KHAN, affirmed, in my hearing, that the nation could scarcely be considered the same. From _Constantinople_ we went to _Smyrna_, where we remained till we quitted Turkey. On the 7th September 1809, the _Mirza_ and his servants went on board the _Success_, Captain AYSCOUGH, to proceed to England. The people of _Smyrna_ gathered in crowds to see him. The yards were manned; and he was honoured with a salute of fifteen guns, which (as soon at least as it was over) gave him no little satisfaction. He soon accommodated himself to the manner of a ship, sleeping in a cot, and eating with a knife and fork. He did not miss a single opportunity of informing himself on every thing which he saw on board; and whatever he learned, he carefully noted in a book. His attendants seldom complained, except sometimes of the badness of the water, the hardness of the biscuit, and the want of fruit. I was struck with their natural ignorance of relative distance: they had been ever accustomed to calculate distance by _menzils_ or day’s journies; and they were surprised to find it impossible to continue such reckoning. A world of water seemed to them incomprehensible; and one of them gravely said to me--“This is quite extraordinary: this country of your’s is nothing but water!” The Persians were particularly astonished, that women and little boys went to sea. The _Mirza_ seeing some women on board the _Success_, exclaimed, “Is it possible! if I were to tell our women in Persia that there were women in ships, they would never believe me. To go from one town to another is considered a great undertaking taking amongst them; but here your women go from one end of the world to the other, and think nothing of it. If it were even known in my family that I was now in a ship and on the great seas, there would be nothing but wailings and lamentations from morning to night.” Among the many things which struck the Persians as extraordinary on board the ship, was the business of signals. They looked very much inclined to believe, that I was telling them untruths, when I said, that at two _fursungs_ distance they might ask any questions from another ship, and receive an immediate answer: and that when we should reach England, our arrival would be known in London in ten minutes, and every necessary order returned before we could get out of the ship. All these things the _Mirza_ carefully noted down in his book, ever exclaiming, “God grant that all such things may take place in my country too!” When we arrived at _Malta_ we were not permitted to land on account of the quarantine; a very mortifying prohibition to the Persians, who had no greater wish than to set foot once again on shore. I could make the Envoy indeed comprehend the nature of quarantine laws; but his people were not so tractable, and frequently suggested their fears to him, that he might not be allowed to land even in England. He spoke seriously to me:--“It is well that I have already seen your countrymen, and know many of their regulations; for, if any other Persian had been in my place he would have required instantly to return back to his own country.” They were much delighted with the exterior of _Malta_; and particularly with the quantity of shipping in the port. On the left of the harbour, there is a very fine building begun by BUONAPARTE, intended as a hospital. They seemed mightily astonished that so superb a building should be the habitation of the sick. Those, indeed, who have been accustomed to live under an arbitrary government, and to see acts of despotism committed every day, look with contempt, rather than with admiration, upon the establishments of a free and liberal government; and ridicule objects by which the promoter apparently and directly gains nothing. We talked of female dress. I asked the Envoy what effect the visit of an European woman dressed in her own way would produce in Persia. He replied, that “if the King were to see her, He would probably order all his _Harem_ to adopt the costume, and that every other man would follow his example, and enforce a fashion, which is not only so much more beautiful, but so much less expensive than their own. Their women are clothed in brocade and gold cloth, which is soon spoilt; or at least which is always cast off, whenever they hear that a new cargo arrives from Russia.” I asked him if he had seen any handsome women in _Constantinople_: he replied, that he had seen none so beautiful as those of Persia. “They were fair indeed, but they wanted that carnation on their cheeks, which is called the _numuck_ or salt of beauty; and which is the second requisite of female perfection. The first is large black eyes with brows very much arched.” A tame antelope was then playing about the cabin close to me, when the _Mirza_ said, “Do your poets ever use the simile so constantly applied by ours, ‘eyes like the stag?’ The frequency of that image will prove the value which we attach to the object.” I desired him to tell me the principal occupations of the women in the Harem. He complied: “They sew, embroider, and spin: they make their own clothes; and my wife even used to make mine: besides that, they superintend all the domestic concerns of the house; they keep an account of the daily expences; distribute provisions to the servants; pay their wages; settle all disputes between them; manage the concerns of the stable; see that the horses have their corn; and, in short, have the care of all the disbursements of the house. The King’s mother had more business than can be described. She had the controul of all her son’s _Harem_, which might consist altogether of more than a thousand women: and you may well conceive the trouble which they could give.” When I suggested the difficulty of a woman transacting so many occupations, without seeing any other man than her husband, and asked how she could settle any business but that of the _Harem_ itself? and how she could succeed even in that without seeing the men servants? He replied, that “in the households of Persia there is always an officer called a _Nazir_, with whom the wife daily arranges all that relates to the male part of the establishment, to whom she pays the wages of the others; and who is accountable to her.” As a necessary preparation for the duties which thus devolve upon them, the women of Persia learn to read and write: as children they are sent to school with the boys, and when too old to be permitted to go unveiled, their education is finished at home by female _Mollahs_, who attend them for the purpose. They do not, however, like European women, learn music and dancing: these arts are taught to slaves only, who practise them for the amusement of their owners: and the wives never sing or dance, except perhaps at the wedding of a brother or sister. The King has this right over all the women of his realm, that they must appear unveiled before him. THE ARAB PIRATES. [_p. 44._] The Arabs in every age, have been alike distinguished for a spirit of commerce and of plunder: and were early and great navigators, both as merchants and as pirates. In the time of MAHOMED there existed a predatory tribe, whose chief is described in the _Koran_, according to EBN HAUKAL,[51] as “the King, who forcibly seized every sound ship.” This empire is said to have been founded prior to the time of MOSES; and if the continuance of the same occupations on the spot be a proof of the identity of the people, it may be traced to the Arabs of the present day. The Portuguese power was often violated by these pirates:[52] and in the same age the English interests in the East were so much endangered by them, that one of the Agents in Persia (who had all indeed successively made representations on the necessity of sending an armed force to destroy them) declared, that “they were likely to become as great plagues in India, as the Algerines were in Europe.”[53] Some of these ships had from thirty to fifty guns:[D] and one of their fleets, consisting of five ships, carried between them one thousand five hundred men.[54] Within the last few years, their attacks have been almost indiscriminate; nor had they learnt to respect even the English colours, as the instance in the text, and the subsequent capture of the _Minerva_, Captain HOPGOOD, proved too well. The British government however, knowing the intimate connection of these pirates on the coast with the _Wahabee_,[55] proceeded in the suppression of the evil with cautious judgment; and when, by the extension of these outrages to themselves, they were driven to vindicate the honour of their flag, and to extirpate their enemies, they regarded all the ports, which had not actually included the British within their depredations, as still neutral; and endeavoured to confine their warfare to reprisals, for specific acts of violence, rather than to commit themselves generally against the _Wahabees_, by extending the attack to those of that alliance who, amid all their piracies, had yet not violated the commerce of England. We might indeed thus separate the _Joassmee_ tribe from the _Wahabee_, for we had already, in a formal treaty, recognised them as an independant power; though perhaps for all other purposes, they might be considered as identified. The strength however of the _Joassmees_ alone was very considerable. The ports in their possession contained, according to a well-authenticated calculation, in the middle of the year 1809, sixty-three large vessels, and eight hundred and ten of smaller sizes; together manned by near nineteen thousand men. This force was increasing; the pirates, in a fleet of fifty-five ships, of various sizes, containing altogether five thousand men, had, after a fight of two days, taken the _Minerva_, and murdered almost all the crew: in the next month a fleet of seventy sail of vessels, (navigated severally by numbers rising from eighty to one hundred and fifty and two hundred men) were cruizing about the Gulph and threatening _Bushire_: and the chief of _Ras al Khyma_ (the _Roselkeim_[56] of the text, p. 44,) whose harbour was almost the exclusive resort of the larger vessels, had dared to demand a tribute from the British government, that their ships might navigate the Persian Gulph in safety. Our forbearance was now exhausted, and an expedition was sent from _Bombay_, under Captain WAINWRIGHT, and Lieutenant-Colonel SMITH, of His Majesty’s sea and land forces, to attack the pirates in their ports. The first object was _Ras al Khyma_. The armament, after a short siege, carried the place by storm, destroyed all the naval equipments, and sparing the smaller vessels, burnt the fifty large ships which the harbour contained. They proceeded to the ports of the Arab pirates on the Persian coast, and completed the destruction of all their means of annoyance. They then attacked _Shinass_, one of their harbours on the Indian ocean. The defence of this place was most heroical; and was conducted indeed for the _Joasmees_, as was subsequently learnt, by a favourite and confidential general of SAOOD IBN ABDOOL UZZEER, the chief of the _Wahabees_. When on the third day of the siege, the few survivors were called upon to surrender, they replied, that they preferred death to submission; and when the towers were falling round them, they returned upon their assailants the hand-grenades and fireballs before they could burst. Twice Lieutenant-Colonel SMITH ceased firing, to endeavour to spare the unavailing effusion of their blood; till at length, when they were assured of being protected from the fury of the troops of our ally the _Imaum_ of _Muscat_, which had co-operated with us, they surrendered to the English. The expedition then scoured all the coast a second time, to destroy any fragments of that pirate power, against which it was directed; and extirpated in every quarter all the means of annoyance which the _Joassmees_ possessed. There was indeed another force of another tribe, which might eventually grow up into a formidable enemy; but this was distinctly under the protection of the _Wahabee_, who had invested its chief with the title of _Sheik al Behr_, or “Lord of the Sea;” and till it marked its hostility to us by joining in the attacks upon our commerce, it was judged expedient not to confound it in one indiscriminate warfare; but rather to open a communication with this particular chief, and through him to the _Wahabee_ himself, advising the one to prohibit the piracies of his dependants, and requiring the other to respect the flag of England. In answer the _Wahabee_ observed, “The cause of the hostilities carrying on between me and the members of the faith, is their having turned away from the Book of the Creator, and refused to submit to their own prophet MAHOMED. It is not therefore those of another sect, against whom I wage war, nor do I interfere in their hostile operations, nor assist them against any one; whilst under the power of the Almighty, I have risen superior to all my enemies.” * * * “Under these circumstances, I have deemed it necessary to advise you that I shall not approach your shores, and have interdicted the followers of the _Mahomedan_ faith and their vessels, from offering any molestation to your vessels: any of your merchants therefore, who may appear in, or wish to come to my ports, will be in security; and any person on my part who may repair to you, ought in like manner to be in safety.” * * * “Be not therefore elated with the conflagration of a few vessels, for they are of no estimation in my opinion, in that of their owners, or of their country. In truth then war is bitter; and a fool only engages in it, as a poet has said.” The want of timber has always been felt so much by the people of the two Gulphs, and of the Western coast of the Indian ocean, that a check on their supplies from the Malabar coast, which Brigadier-General MALCOLM very seasonably suggested, will probably keep down the future growth of the pirate power. The fleet of the Soldan of Egypt, which was destined to relieve Diu, was formed of Dalmatian timber, transported overland to the arsenals of _Suez_;[57] and even some of the houses at Siraff, on the Gulph of Persia,[58] were formed of European wood. In the seventeenth century, the Arabs of _Muscat_, who subsequently formed connections on the Malabar coast to procure timber, obtained permission from the King of _Pegu_ to build ships in the ports of his country.[59] If therefore the importation of foreign wood were cut off, the Arabs could hardly, without extreme difficulty, maintain a naval force. SHAPOUR. [_p. 86._] The city of _Shapour_ derived its name from the monarch who founded it,[60] SAPOR, the son of ARTAXERXES, and the second Prince of the _Sassanian_ family. In his reign it was probably one of the capitals of Persia; and for some ages continued to be the chief city of that district of _Persis_ Proper, which was connected with his name, the _Koureh Shapour_ of EBN HAUKAL.[61] The great province in which it was included, had been particularly favoured by CYRUS, and his dynasty: it was their native seat, and contained their palaces, their treasures and their tombs. When their empire was overthrown, this portion was still administered by a race of native princes,[62] who, after an interval of five hundred years, revived their pretensions to the throne of CYRUS,[63] and re-established in their ancient seats, the religion and the empire of the _Caianian_ Kings. The Princes of the house of _Sassan_, who thus came forth from it as from the cradle of their strength, regarded it as the original and favourite appanage of their crown; and marked their peculiar connection with it by imposing their names on its four districts,[64] a division which, amid all the revolutions of their dominions, is even yet recognized.[65] Here, therefore, the revival of the worship of fire, the great object of their dynasty, was established more generally and more permanently, than in other parts of their monarchy; for in the tenth century, when the Mahomedans had been three hundred years in possession of Persia, “no town or district of _Fars_ was without a fire-temple;”[66] and the division of _Shapour_ in particular, contained two at least of the four temples which EBN HAUKAL has particularised in the province.[67] In this district accordingly, which was connected with the house of CYRUS and of SASSAN by so many ties, and in _Susiana_, which was alike the favourite of both dynasties, we may expect to find the most splendid remains of their greatness. Both provinces have been explored very imperfectly, as travellers have been confined to the regular road; and no European has enjoyed those opportunities of observation and enquiry, which a residence in the country alone can give. _Persepolis_ itself might probably have been unknown, if it had not been passed in the line from _Shiraz_ to _Ispahan_; but the ruins of _Pasagardæ_,[68] of _Darabgherd_,[69] and of _Jawr_,[70] in _Fars_; as well as those of _Susa_, of _Ahwaz_, and of _Shooster_, in _Khuzistan_, are almost unknown. The whole of the plain of _Merdasht_, the hollow Persis of the ancients, as well as the part more immediately surrounding _Persepolis_, contained, as CHARDIN believed, a continued succession of ruins; “Je southaiterois que quelque habile curieux allât passer un eté a _Persepolis_, à la decouverte de toutes les ruines de cette fameuse ville. Les gens du pays assurent que ces ruines s’etendent a plus de dix lieues à la ronde.”[71] _Shapour_ itself is an instance of the very limited knowledge of Persia which we possess, beyond the immediate line of a common route. It is situated only a very few miles from the road, yet it has been passed by every traveller from TAVERNIER and THEVENOT, down to SCOTT WARING, without a suspicion of its present existence. It certainly retained a share at least, of its political importance after the fall of the house of SASSAN. It contained a mosque as well as a fire-temple, in the time of EBAN HAUKAL;[72] and probably like other great cities of the East, suffered less from the first violence of the Arabian invasion, than from the successive wars of native dynasties, and from the gradual decay to which the declining population and exhausted wealth of the empire consigned all the works of their former greatness. Still _Shapour_ appears to have survived these causes of desolation, and to have deserved a place among the cities of Asia, at the end of the sixteenth century, for it occurs in a table of latitudes and longitudes in the _Ayeen Acbaree_.[73] From that time nothing more is known of it: its position indeed is marked in a map of the year 1672;[74] and its name, on the authority of Oriental geographers, is repeated by D’ANVILLE as the capital of the district. But no European traveller had described its actual state, or alluded to its history; and the first account of those sculptures, which yet render it an object of interest, was conveyed to us in a short note, added by Sir HARFORD JONES from his own observations, to the second edition of Dr. VINCENT’S _Nearchus_, p. 391. The Eastern monarchs have often commemorated the great exploits of their reigns by the foundations of cities. CYRUS is thus said to have built _Pasagardæ_, to celebrate his overthrow of the Median empire; and ARTAXERXES, on the spot where he had defeated ARTABANUS, the last King of the Parthians, raised the city of _Jawr_.[75] Succeeding princes of his house, as BAHARAM[76] and SHAPOUR D’HULACTAF,[77] severally raised _Kermanshah_ and _Casvin_, to immortalize particular acts of their history. It is probable therefore that SHAPOUR the first, who is described by the Orientals as the founder of great cities,[78] and acknowledged by all to have built _Shapour_, imposed his own name upon that which he destined to record the most brilliant of his successes: and that the city of _Shapour_ accordingly, was the memorial of the defeat, captivity, and servitude of the Emperor VALERIAN. The architect of such a work would naturally select his ornaments from the subject in which his plan originated; and the sculptures at _Shapour_ might therefore be supposed to contain some prominent allusions to the Roman war. The triumphs of that war are almost unremembered in the history or the traditions of the Orientals; and the only records of the victories of SAPOR, which are left in Persia, are the sculptures on the rocks of _Shapour_ and _Nakshi Rustam_: and though, like every other work, of which nothing is known, they are referred by the modern Persians to the fabulous exploits of RUSTAM the HERCULES of their country, the internal evidence of their design is sufficient to appropriate them to their real and historical objects. That in fact the triumphs of the house of SASSAN, are represented both at _Shapour_ and at _Nakshi Rustam_, can hardly be contested. That in one of the sculptures, the royal figure on horseback is SAPOR himself, and that the Roman suppliant before him is the Emperor VALERIAN, is probable almost from the first view of the delineations; is strengthened by the history of the spot where they are found; and is confirmed by the identity of the principal figure here, with one bearing an inscription in the name of SAPOR,[79] at _Nakshi Rustam_. Such a subject would naturally be suggested to the artists of SAPOR, and while the Roman chariot and standard among the fragments, and the Roman dress of the suppliant alike mark in the sculpture the humiliation of VALERIAN, the _Sassanian_ costume of the Prince on horseback, the double diadem, and the very expression of his face, (which is that of the medals ascribed to SAPOR by DE SACY,[80]) concur in the designation, and supply the figure of the conqueror. It may appear scarcely necessary to have added one line of explanation, as the internal evidence of the sculpture itself may seem to fix its history. But DE SACY[81] has considered all the subjects at _Nakshi Rustam_, and consequently their duplicates at _Shapour_, as representing one subject only, the conquest of the Parthians by ARTAXERXES: and on this theory he has regarded the suppliant as ARTABANUS, the last King of the Parthians, and the victor as ARTAXERXES. It is due to such a man as DE SACY, to differ from him with hesitation, and to state the grounds of difference fully. The engravings of CHARDIN, LE BRUN, and NIEBUHR, which alone were before DE SACY, are so entirely unworthy of the originals, that the conclusion to which he was led was almost unavoidable; but if he, who has done so much with imperfect materials, had enjoyed the opportunity of examining the full and characteristic distinctions preserved in Mr. MORIER’S Sketches, he would have separated the subjects of the sculptures, into those which commemorate the Parthian victories of ARTAXERXES, and those which were similarly destined to immortalise the Roman triumphs of SAPOR. The Plate, No. X. may be assumed then to represent SAPOR in the act of receiving the submission of VALERIAN; and that marked No. XIX. to display him in his triumphal splendour. The fragments, No. XII. contain some of his Roman spoils; and the head to which the text alludes, page 89, in describing the hall of audience of a great King, is possibly that of CHOSROES, King of Armenia,[82] who was murdered by SAPOR, after an unavailing war of thirty years; and whose fall therefore may be commemorated as an object of importance in the series of the exploits of SAPOR. The Plates No. XV.[83] and No. XIX. though probably from the works of the same sculptor as the last, record the events of an earlier date; and delineate in different views the contest for the crown of Persia, which was waged between the last of the Parthian monarchs and ARTAXERXES, the founder of the house of SASSAN. Of this history, as it is connected with the sculptures at _Shapour_ and _Nakshi Rustam_, it is sufficient to observe that, according to an inscription on the spot, explained and confirmed by DE SACY,[84] ARTAXERXES was the son of BABEC, the _Satrap_, or perhaps the hereditary Prince of _Persis_ Proper, under the empire of the ARSACES.--ARTAXERXES was the grandson of SASSAN;[85] from whom, rather than from himself, his dynasty, like that of the _Seljukians_ from the grandfather of their founder,[86] has been denominated. Others on the contrary, as the _Lubb al Tarikh_ in DE SACY,[87] and the authorities on which Sir WM. JONES relied,[88] assume SASSAN a shepherd, to be his father by the daughter of BABEC: and others again expand the whole genealogy into romance.[89] VAILLANT[90] lavishes on ARTAXERXES and his birth, all the bitterness of reproach; “infimæ sortis vir, sordidissimo loco natus, sceleratus, injustissimus.” So regularly however has this reproach followed success, that half the Eastern conquerors, as the _Bouide_ sultans, the house of TOGRUL SHAH, GENGHIZ, TIMUR, the _Othman_ race, &c. have in their turns been represented as springing from the lowest origin; and a story, almost the same indeed as that attached to the birth of CYRUS, has been recorded of ARTAXERXES, and forms a new point of resemblance in their history.[91] That, however, the father of SAPOR was not a man of very obscure descent, may be inferred from the silence of _Moses_ of _Chorona_, who in the ninth or tenth century appears as the partizan of the ARSACIDES; as well as from the positive assertion in the inscription[92] at _Nakshi Rustam_, that he was the son of a king; an assertion which might have been safely made in his name in a distant age, but which would hardly have been hazarded by himself in a public and triumphal record, if its fallacy had been familiar to all his contemporaries. He assumed also in his own name, and that of his father, the divinity which had been attached to their Kings by the ancient Persians, and which was continued by the Parthian monarchs. The royalty however claimed by ARTAXERXES in the inscription, was certainly limited to his own native Persis, which in fact was always included in the dominions of the Parthian Kings; though the immediate rule may have been resigned to a descendant of the _Caianian_ family. The provinces of the monarchy were administered by eighteen Satraps, to whom the Parthian Kings, like the Moguls, had gradually resigned almost all the power of the empire; and who, to justify in their nominal superior, the title of the King of Kings, severally assumed the regal dignity themselves: as in the polity of modern Persia, according to NIEBUHR,[93] inferior officers are called _Khans_ and _Sultans_, titles of Majesty in other countries, to exalt the predominant power of their universal ruler, the _Padishah Buzurk_. ARTAXERXES, like many other founders of Eastern dynasties GENGHIZ,[94] TIMUR,[95] NADIR SHAH,[96] might ground his rebellion on the plausible pretext of the ingratitude of his sovereign; but while he supplanted the ARSACIDES in the empire, he recognised their superior interest in the affections of the people; and assumed their epoch, their language, and their name;[97] that his subjects might regard themselves rather as transferred to a different heir, than as subjugated to a new and unconnected race of conquerors. He accordingly styles himself ARSACES, in the coin preserved by VAILLANT, and destined probably for the Western and Mesopotamian provinces: and SAPOR continued the designation, though in the coins circulated in the Eastern Persia, which DE SACY[98] has decyphered, both Princes confirm to the corresponding genius of the country, relinquish the Greek and restore the native language, revive the symbols of the worship of fire, and connect themselves there also with the original prejudices of the people. Possibly the title thus adopted by the first Princes of the SASSANIDES, was retained even to the middle of the fourth century; for AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS describes the family on the throne of Persia as ARSACIDES;[99] an assertion which GIBBON seems to contradict as very careless and inaccurate, but which may perhaps be reconciled with the truth of history, by supposing, that even when the ancient line of the Parthian Kings had ceased to reign for more than one hundred years, the house of SASSAN retained their title of ARSACES, which still favoured the national pride of a great part of their people, and which was connected so long and so gloriously with the general history of the empire. All the details of these sculptures confirm their history, but it is scarcely necessary to do more than allude to them. The lion held by a chain in one of the scenes at _Shapour_, may be emblematical of a conquered nation; or perhaps the literal historical representation of a real auxiliary in the warfare of the Parthians:[100] “Et validos Parthi præ se misere liones, Cum ductoribus armatis, sœvisque magistris.” BRISSONIUS however adds to this quotation the question, “Sed quis veritatem à poeta ut ab historico exigit?”[101] Notwithstanding however the incredulity thus implied, and the ridicule of LUCIAN, who describes the Parthians as using dragons for the same purpose;[102] it is possible that this sculpture may be admitted as evidence of the fact. The dress of the royal characters may be similarly illustrated; the turreted tiara of ARTABANUS, is perhaps the πλημα πιυργωτον described by STRABO[103]; the tiara of ARTAXERXES, which extends over the cheeks, is thus mentioned by JUVENAL,[104] and thus represented in the medals of VAILLANT and DE SACY. The exuberant hair of SAPOR is likewise an historical fact: it was indeed the costume of the house of ARSACES as well as of SAPOR. This might be learnt from their coins, but it is more familiar from the allusion of VESPASIAN, when he replied that the comet was not ominous to _him_, but regarded rather the King of the Persians, “cui capillus effusior.”[105] The diadem of Persia was distinct from the tiara, and was itself “quod omnibus notum non est,” said BRISSONIUS, p. 68, “nihil aliud quam candida fascia, qua Regum frons precingebatur.” This he proves from LUCIAN; but more decisively by the story of FAVORINUS, who, when POMPEY bound his leg up with a fillet, said, “it mattered not on which part of the body he bore the diadem.” Many of the royal customs of ancient Persia are still observed in Abyssinia, as BRUCE has collected them; and the fillet is still worn as the diadem. The ring then to which the text alludes, and which is described as such by NIEBUHR,[106] is certainly as DE SACY observed,[107] the diadem of the disputed empire. In the coins of the ARSACIDES, this diadem,[108] with flowing redimicula, recurs frequently as presented to the sovereign by the genius of a city,[109] a _Pallas_,[110] or a _Victoriola_;[111] and in the Greek coins which the two first Princes of the SASSANIDES struck for their _Mesopotamian_ provinces, the same diadem is offered to them.[112] It is probable therefore that the object extended over SAPOR, by the figure in the air, is the same wreath or diadem, which in his coins he is receiving; a Grecian image, which was perhaps adopted by the Parthian monarchs from the SELEUCIDÆ, whom they succeeded, and descended through the ARSACIDÆ to ARTAXERXES and his son. This image is therefore not sufficient to assign the work to Grecian hands: the classical merit however of the whole sculptures renders it probable that they were executed by European artists, whom SAPOR may have taken in the train of VALERIAN, or those whom in his invasion of Asia Minor, he may have carried off into the heart of his own empire. Possibly by a refinement of cruelty he may have consigned the erection of this memorial of their warfare, to his captive VALERIAN; for a tradition at _Shooster_ attributes to that monarch the superintendance of SAPOR’S other works at that city, and the construction of the edifice there, which was destined for his own prison. GIBBON,[113] as MILNER has observed,[114] is perhaps the only author who ever doubted the nature of the treatment which VALERIAN experienced from SAPOR. Less prejudiced minds might have drawn from the fact, that these cruelties are noticed in a speech of the Emperor GALERIUS, to the Persian Embassadors,[115] the better inference, that almost in the very days of their execution, the perpetration of these indignities was known to all the Roman world; and those who recollect the opportunities of knowing the Christian character which VALERIAN enjoyed, and the disgraces which crowded round him, when against that knowledge he persecuted the Christians, may admit the providential interposition of the Almighty in thus vindicating his own cause on the oppressor, and in reversing a light and a prosperity so abused. SAPOR is said to have placed his foot on the neck of VALERIAN when he mounted his horse, and after a long captivity to have flayed him alive. This treatment, however it may differ from the conduct which a European conqueror might display to his captive, is not sufficient to discredit the story; and might be paralleled, in ignominy at least, by many instances in the East. GENGHIZ KHAN threw the victuals from his table even to a woman, a captive queen, the proudest monarch whom he had conquered.[116] The _Carmathian_ Prince who advanced against _Bagdad_, tied the Lieutenant of the _Caliph_ MOCTADI with his dogs:[117] and the iron cage of TIMOUR, (which is doubted, only because TIMOUR does not himself record it) is a familiar illustration; of which the idea was not confined to that instance, for BADUR, King of _Cambay_, prepared a cage to convey one of the Portuguese heroes to the Great Turk.[118] But there is a nearer precedent: the Persian monarchs have the unrivalled honour of alone taking two Roman Emperors; and ALP ARSLAN, who enjoyed the fortune of SAPOR, remembered perhaps his treatment of his prisoner; and though in his subsequent conduct he resembles our own Black Prince, and forms a striking contrast to the sequel of SAPOR’S conduct, yet, when his captive first appeared before him, he is said to have planted his foot on the neck of the Emperor.[119] The dynasty of the SASSANIDES, though the commencement of the historical age of Persia;[120] and as such comparatively less obscure in Oriental writers, than the preceding period,[121] is yet, as D’HERBELOT remarked,[122] involved in great difficulties. The darkness of the intermediate age from the death of ALEXANDER to the accession of the house of ARSACES, and through the greatness of the Parthian empire, is confined principally to the East; and from the hereditary connection of the SELEUCIDÆ, and their successors with the Greeks of Asia, is relieved by the Western authorities, whose testimonies have been collected with so much research by VAILLANT, and confirmed by the medals of the ARSACIDÆ. But this light is lost in the middle of the third century; nor perhaps could a more difficult portion of ancient history be selected than the succeeding dynasty, a period nevertheless probably the most brilliant, in the foreign relations of Persia, of any since the extinction of the sovereignty of DARIUS, and at the same time the most fortunate in the internal prosperity and resources of the empire. The task was suggested to VAILLANT,[123] who had so ably executed the Parthian annals, but he resigned it to the adviser, and it was left undone. The deficiencies of European materials are not supplied by Oriental authorities. The value of the Mahomedan accounts of ancient Persia, may be estimated by their omission of the success of SAPOR, the most splendid in the whole period of which they treat. GIBBON[124] has already remarked from D’HERBELOT, that the modern Persians know nothing of the capture of a Roman Emperor; and it may be added, that though it appears from Mr. MORIER, p. 201, that a Persian of the present day was acquainted with the event, yet neither MIRKHOND,[125] nor KHONDEMIR,[126] nor the _Tarikh_ published by Sir WM. OUSELEY, allude to it. Whatever then may be the deficiencies or even the contradictions of the Greek historians in writing on the affairs of Persia, they are still probably the best authorities on which we can rely. The contemporary classics possess no one disadvantage, which is not shared by the later _Mahomedans_; they are alike writing on the history of a people, whom the Greeks hated as enemies, and whom the _Mussulmans_ despised as infidels, and whose language was probably equally unknown to both; but to the Greek authors these defects were in a certain degree qualified by their comparative nearness to the events which they recorded; while the _Mussulmans_, in treating of the history before the time of MAHOMED, were writing the annals of a conquered and contemned race, in an age when its language, polity, and religion were alike forgotten. It is therefore astonishing that DE SACY should have selected MIRKHOND, an author of this class, to accompany his own able memoirs on the antiquities of Persia. Whatever may be the relative superiority of MIRKHOND to other Oriental annalists, the value of his authority is in itself very low, and is sufficiently depreciated by the internal evidence of his own work. He begins his account of the _Sassanian_ kings by saying that the MESSIAH was born in the reign of ARDESHIR or ARTAXERXES, the first Prince of that house, whose reign which did not commence till the two hundred and twenty-sixth year after CHRIST.[127] He continues, that ARDESHIR received a message from the MESSIAH, and secretly professed his religion. Independently of the gross fabulousness of the chronology, the story itself is totally abhorrent to every other evidence, by which it is clear that ARDESHIR, so far from professing or favouring a foreign religion, regarded the revival of the native worship as the glory of his reign; and combined in one re-establishment the religion and the empire of ancient Persia.[128] The idle tale of the birth of his son SAPOR,[129] is another proof of the manner in which the imagination of an Eastern historian has supplied the defects of his materials; if indeed it be not derived from the story of ASTYAGES in HERODOTUS. Without discussing the probability of the fact or the accuracy of the chronology, it is impossible to conceive that an author could learn so much without knowing more; and that at the interval of one thousand two hundred years he could have ascertained the most private history of an Eastern Prince, when he is ignorant of his public exploits; or that he could have given a genuine account of SAPOR from his birth to his death, when he never once alludes to the Romans, or notices, however transiently, the most celebrated event in the life of his hero, and in the history of his country. SECOND VISIT TO SHAPOUR, _APRIL, 1811._ “We proceeded over the plain to the Southward and Westward, to see what a peasant called the _Kaleh_ or Castle, and the _Mesjed_ or Mosque, which are large conspicuous buildings seen from almost all parts of the plain. These we found to be Mohammedan structures, excepting part of an ancient wall or buttress, and a column, with a square fallen capital, that are to be seen in the former, and of the same age as the edifices at _Shapour_. In the square of this ruined castle we found some little black tents of the wandering tribes; from the good folks of which we got some _dong_ or butter-milk, of which they drink large quantities at this season. We surprised them by asking them if they had any _Poul Kadeim_ or ancient money; to which they answered, very ingenuously, that they had neither new nor old. The fact is, that old coins are more frequently found amongst these sort of people than amongst any other; for if they find any, the favourite wife generally has them suspended with her other trinkets, in a necklace around her neck. When old coins or money out of use fall into the hands of town’s people, traders, shopkeepers, or such like, they generally melt it down immediately, and get it recoined. In all our researches for old coins, we have been unsuccessful, and it has only been by the greatest chance that we have now and then got a _Sassanian_ or an _Arsacian_ medal. A man brought what he called a collection of old coins to the Embassador: they consisted of a _Reaal_ of the age of SHAH ABBAS, a _Cuffic_ piece of money, a gold coin of the worst time of the middle ages, and an English halfpenny.” NOTES. _Chatters, p. 37._]--The _Shotters_ of FRYER; the _Shatirs_ of HANWAY. CHARDIN gives a long and curious account of a display, which he calls “la fête du _Chater_, on valet du pied au Roi.” Voyages, tom. ii. 46, edit. 1711. The King’s _Chaters_ dressed richly but differently, (car en Perse on ne sait ce que c’est de Livrée,) were the masters of the feast. Those who are superior in their profession can dance well; an occupation indeed which, in the East, is considered so little suitable to persons of a higher rank and character, that a Persian who was in Paris in the minority of LOUIS XIV. and saw the young King dancing, exclaimed, “c’est un excellent _Chater_.” The prize of the exploit recorded by CHARDIN, was the honour of being admitted the chief of the _Chaters_ of the royal household; and the effort was, between the rising and the setting of the sun, to take up twelve arrows singly from a tower at the distance of a league and a half (French), and return with each to the place of starting: in this manner the _Chater_ run thirty-six leagues in fourteen hours. Nevertheless, says CHARDIN, this was not equal to a feat still remembered, in which the twelve arrows were taken up in twelve hours. TAVERNIER was present at the greater performance to which CHARDIN alludes. See his voyages, tom. i. p. 438-40. _Geography of Persia, p. 48._]--OLIVIER (tom. v. c. vii.) describes Persia as a great table-land, supported on every side by high mountains. The space thus enclosed is a depressed level, as the courses of the rivers prove; which, according to a former remark of of D’ANVILLE, never penetrate through the mountains to the sea, but stagnate or evaporate in deserts of sand. (VINCENT’S Nearchus.) Still its absolute elevation is very great: at _Shiraz_, in 29° 36´, there is much snow in January and February, though it is half a degree more to the south than _Cairo_; and _Ispahan_ is too cold for the orange tree, though it grows well at _Mossul_, four degrees more to the north, and twice as far from the sea: and in _Mazanderan_, which is in a much higher latitude, but on a level considerably below the table land of Persia, the sugar cane, which will not grow at _Shiraz_, comes to maturity four months sooner than in the West Indies, OLIVIER, tom. v. p. 218, 233. On the capability of Persia to supply Russia with sugar and cotton, see OLIVIER, p. 336. _Grampus, possibly the whale of ARRIAN, p. 50._]--The whales in the Indian ocean have been celebrated from the time of PLINY; and Sir HARFORD JONES, in a note to VINCENT’S Nearchus, mentions them high up in the Persian Gulph: it is probable therefore that the bones, of which the houses on the coast were constructed, were those of real whales. _Kharrack, p. 52._]--The island of _Kharrack_ at one time excited considerable interest; when it was seized and fortified by the Baron KNIPHAUSEN. The motives of his enterprise are very unimportant, although it may be added, that the heroical character in which he appears in IVES, as the founder of a new settlement, is somewhat reduced in the “Free Merchants’ Letters,” of JOSEPH PRICE, p. 172. It is sufficient that even in its first days this colony was dependant on a neighbouring island (_Corgo_), and the main land of Persia for its provisions. NIEBUHR indeed relates the singular and fatal stratagem connected with this supply. The _Sheik_ of _Bushire_, who furnished these necessaries to _Kharrack_, was at war with the _Sheik_ of _Bunder-righ_, and as the Dutch were alike involved in the hostilities, the communications between the island and _Bushire_ were often carried on by night. The _Sheik_ of _Bushire_ profited by this circumstance; and putting poultry into two armed ships, sent them against two galvettes, laid up under the walls of the citadel: “A l’approche de l’isle on secuoit les cages pour faire crier les poules, et la sentinelle Hollandoise entandant ces cris de la volaille crut que c’etoit les vaisseaux _d’Abu schähr_ (_Bushire_), and qu’il etoit inutile d’eveiller les autres matelots.” Descr. del Arabia, p. 280. This success was soon followed up, and the Dutch were expelled from the island. IVES recommended to our government the possession of _Kharrack_. Voyage, p. 226: but independently of the precariousness of its supplies, NIEBUHR mentions the mortality among the Europeans there, though he adds indeed, that they died “moins pas l’air mal sain de l’isle, que pas leur maniere de vivre,” p. 281. It was an early object of the French government. By a treaty signed at Paris, and negociated by M. PYRAULT at _Bassora_, KERIM KHAN, the Regent of Persia, engaged to cede _Kharrack_; but, the suppression of the French East India Company intervened, and the object was neglected. It was again surrendered by the treaty of 1808, and in the intermediate time, when he was himself sent by the Directory as a secret agent, OLIVIER observes, that the Persian government would have repeated the cession. His conclusion is remarkable; the object would have been advantageous to us, says he, “si nous avions voulu serieusement nous etablir en Egypte; si de la nous avions voulu porter nos vues de commerce sur le golfe Persique, sur _Bassora_, sur _Bagdad_; si nous avions voulu reprendre un commerce actif avec l’Inde; si nous avions voulu ouvrir des communications entre l’isle de France, Mascate, and Bassora.” Tom. v. p. 157. _Ormuz, p. 52._]--When OLIVIER, was in Persia, the _Imaum_ of _Muscat_ was negotiating with the Persian government the cession of _Ormuz_ to him. Tom. v. p. 157. That island as well as _Gombroon_, is now in his possession; though he accounts for the customs to the King of Persia. _Pearls, p. 55._]--A belief in the influence of the rain on the formation of pearls, which NIEBUHR mentions as prevalent among the Arabs in his own days, (Descr. de l’Arabie) and among their ancestors in the time of BENJAMIN of _Tudela_, six hundred years ago, may be traced up clearly to the time of PLINY, if not much earlier. (Lib. ix. c. xxxv. see c. li. and the note from ARISTOTLE.) The Apologue of SADI is a beautiful illustration of the Eastern opinion. BRUCE says, “it is observed that pearls are always the most beautiful in those places of the sea, where a quantity of fresh water falls. Thus in the Red Sea,” &c. (vol. v. p. 226, app.) and it may be added, though the facts prove little without knowing the relative positions, that _Bahrein_, one of the most fertile pearl banks in the world, is likewise celebrated for the most extensive submarine springs of fresh water. See on those springs, IVES’S Voyage. NIEBUHR, p. 286. See also TEIXEIRA, in Mod. Univ. Hist. vi. 80. HOLE in his curious illustration of SINDBAD, regards these springs as the origin of “the river of fresh water that issued from the sea.” Sixth Voyage. _Horses, &c. p. 63._]--The custom of tying horses by the leg in the stable, is traced in Persia even to the time of XENOPHON. Anab. lib. iii. c. 245. At the introduction of the Russian Embassador to SHAH HUSSEIN, the horses of the King of Persia were displayed in state as the procession passed: “they were all tied to a rope fixed to the ground at the extremities by a stake of gold, near which lay a mallet of the same metal for driving it. According to the custom of Persia the hind feet also were fastened to a rope, to prevent kicking.” BELL, vol. i. p. 100. _Elauts, p. 77._]--The wandering tribes have in every age constituted a considerable portion of the population of the Persian and Turkish Empires. In Asia Minor they are called _Turcomans_; in Assyria and Armenia, _Curds_; in _Irak_ and Fars, _Elauts_; the _Vloches_ of HERBERT, p. 129, (by some considered the _Eluths_ or _Oigurs_.) Their general character is the same; and they have continued to follow the same hereditary occupations with unbroken regularity. EBN HAUKAL estimates the numbers included in their _zems_ or tribes in _Fars_ alone at five hundred thousand families, p. 83. _Lion on the tomb, at Derees, p. 85; see also, p. 94_, &c.]--On the meaning of such an emblem, see NIEBUHR’S Doubt in his chapter on _Shiraz_, tom. ii. _Bazar-a-Vakeel_, p. 100.]--SCOTT WARING reckons the length of this great work of KERIM KHAN, at half a mile! FRANKLIN, at a quarter of a mile, p. 58; and a later authority at between seven and eight hundred yards. _P. 104._]--The Story of CHEIK CHENAN, may remind the reader of the Lay of ARISTOTE. _The Bend-emir, p. 124._]--The Prince, from whose dyke thrown across it, the _Bend-emir_ is asserted to have taken its name, is sometimes said to be EMIR AZAD A DOWLAH, one of the _Buiya_ Sultans; and as the river occurs in the route of BARBARO, 1472, within seventy years after the reign of TIMUR, as the “_Bindamyr_,” it is probable that it acquired that name from the earlier Prince. On the word _Bund_, see a note in VINCENT’S Periplus, p. 157; and MOOR’S Female Infanticide, p. 110, &c. _Persepolis, p. 129._]--The first account of _Chehel Minar_, that was brought to Europe after the revival of learning, occurs in the travels of JOSAPHAT BARBARO, Embassador from the State of Venice to the Prince whom he calls ASSAMBEI, (who may be recognised indeed as the “USAN CASSANES,” “of some called ASYMBEIUS,” in KNOLLES, p.409;) but who is better known as the UZUN HASSAN or CASSAN of D’HERBELOT. The rarity of the volume in which these travels are contained may justify the insertion of an extract, Aldus, 1543. JOSAPHAT BARBARO does not suspect that he is describing the _Persepolis_ of the Classics; and labours therefore to find in the sculptures at _Chehil Minar_, something which may rather accord with the Hebrew origin assigned to it by one of the traditions of the country. In the bridge leading over the _Bend-emir_ he had already discovered a work of SOLOMON; and he proceeds to point out, among the representations on the rocks, the figure of SOLOMON himself. Again, instead of RUSTAM, the HERCULES of Persia, or rather instead of the real heroes, ARTAXERXES and SAPOR, whom that name has supplanted at _Persepolis_, JOSAPHAT BARBARO perceives in a colossal image on horseback, the figure of SAMSON. The being in the air, which some have conceived to be the soul of a departed monarch, and which recurs in the engravings of the tombs by LE BRUN and CHARDIN, is thus described: “Sopra di tutte e una figura simile a quelle nostre che noi figuriamo Dio padre in uno tondo; laqual ha uno tondo per mano, e sotto laqual sono altre figure piccole,” fol. 51. 6. He continues; among the lesser figures there is one, who has on his head a Pope’s mitre, “una mitria di Papa;” and has his hands extended, apparently as if he would give his benediction to those beneath him, who are looking up to him in fixed expectation of the said blessing. Near SAMSON are several other figures dressed in the French mode, “alla Francese,” and having long hair. M.I. The description is curious, and characteristic of the age; but even in the seventeenth century, TAVERNIER in the same manner fancied that he saw in the Sassanian sculptures at _Kermanshah_, priests, surplices, and censers, tom. i. 316. This indeed was almost the earliest account that had been given of the spot; and therefore, this error is more excusable. But now, when so much has been written on the subject, (whether the sculptures be the works of SEMIRAMIS or of the Sassanian Kings?) and more particularly when DE SACY has definitively proved by the inscriptions, that the figures are connected with the history of the latter Princes of the house of SASSAN; we may be surprised that M. DE GARDANNE should have overlooked their design; and instead of recognising an object that had been illustrated by his countryman with so much learning, should pass it in his journal with the single remark: “Plus loin sur un rocher élevé, on voit une croix et les douze Apôtres sculptés.” p. 83. Every nation has some proverbial expression of number, and “forty” seems popular in the East. Thus the palace of _Ispahan_ is the _Chehil Sitoon_; and another built in imitation of it, at _Moorshedabad_, is called by the same name. _Seir Mutagherin_, i. 301. _Chehil minar_ therefore signifies an indefinite number of pillars, whether more or less than forty; but even with all the allowance, which this expression may require, it is probable that in the time of SADI, six hundred years ago, the pillars standing at _Persepolis_ amounted really to forty. CHARDIN, tom. iii. 138. The remains at _Persepolis_ are designated by another still more comprehensive form, “_Hazar Sitoon_,” the one thousand columns. DE SACY, p. 1. If the fragment engraved in the Archœologia, from the original transmitted by RICHARD STRACHEY, Esq. to his father, be really of the size of that original, as the notice affirms, and if it formed part of the series of sculptures, we may thence learn the average proportions of the subjects at _Persepolis_. Archœol. xiv. app. 282. But LE BRUN sent over an entire figure from the reliefs; see the close of his work. _Ispahan, p. 159._]--_Ispahan_ had been for ages one of the greatest cities of the East, and was possibly the _Aspa_ and _Aspadana_ of the ancients. In 1472 it contained one hundred and fifty thousand souls; a number which, according to BARBARO, was but the sixth of its former population. It had declined in political importance till SHAH ABBAS transferred thither the seat of Empire from _Casvin_. It rose rapidly to a second greatness: in extent it almost covered the plain. It was itself twenty-four miles in circumference, and according to CHARDIN, “a dix lieues à la ronde, on comptait quinze cents villages.” Tom. iii. 83. CHARDIN thought its population equal to that of London, and fixed it at six hundred thousand souls. TAVERNIER, almost at the same time, comparing it with Paris, says, it has but one-tenth of the population. (See on the relative population of Paris, London, and _Rhages_, Sir WM. PETTY’S Essay.) TAVERNIER is clearly wrong, and certainly much more inaccurate than the other extreme of one million and one hundred thousand, stated by the European merchants in _Ispahan_. Yet there is an error probably in both the larger estimates. The number of houses in CHARDIN’S estimate is a fixed standard, thirty-eight thousand: at fifteen in a house, the amount would not equal the population which he assigns as the lowest number; and it would require more than twenty-eight in a house, to justify the larger calculation. OLIVIER indeed remarks on another occasion, tom. v. 163, that “on doint compter en Perse au moins 7 ou 8 Persans par maisons;” but though this is much higher than the average of Europe, and much higher than Mr. MORIER has calculated throughout his travels, (with the single exception of _Bushire_), it will not give much above half the estimate of CHARDIN. It may perhaps be observed that the numbers in _Ispahan_ during the _Affghan_ siege, and which are variously stated from seven hundred thousand to a million, will confirm the general accuracy of the former statement; but it should be recollected, that the amount on that occasion was swelled by the fugitives from the whole country. OLIVIER reckoned the inhabitants of _Ispahan_ in his days at fifty thousand; its habitable circumference was reduced to a diameter of two miles; and he was riding for half an hour through the ruins which surrounded it. Tom. v. 175, 179. GARDANNE hears that the ruins extend for a march of more than four hours, p. 70. A later statement indeed gives the present population at two hundred and fifty thousand. But even in the decay in which OLIVIER found it, it retained sufficient evidences of original greatness to excite the liveliest sensations: “Tout ce que nous vimes, tout ce qu’on nous dit, tout ce que nous supposâmes nous en donna la plus grande ideé: tout nous persuada qu’elle fut sous les SOPHIS une des plus belles, des plus riches, des plus peuplées de l’Asie.” P. 180. _SHAH ABBAS drinking wine, p. 165._]--GIBBON says, that “in every age the wines of _Shiraz_ have triumphed over the laws of MAHOMED.” In fact however, the use of spirituous liquors in general has depended, in Persia as in Turkey and other Mahomedan countries, less on the precepts of the _Koran_, than on the will and character of the reigning Prince. PIETRO DELLA VALLE gives a curious account of the alternations in the use of inebriating liquors, which the difference in the individual habits of the Sovereign produced in his day in the court of Persia: and TOURNEFORT remarks the same effect in Georgia; “of all nations the greatest wine drinkers.” Tom. ii. lettre vi. Eastern monarchs indeed, in this as in other points, have considered themselves unfettered by the prohibitions of the _Koran_: “Kings are subject to no law;”--“Whatever they do, they commit no sin,” were the maxims by which SHAH HUSSEIN, the last of the SEFFIS, was seduced into drunkenness. (Mod. Univ. Hist. vi. p. 22.) The exclusive prerogatives of an absolute Prince were, however, best exemplified in Hindostan. JEHANGEER, as we learn from his own commentaries, was accustomed to drink of the strongest spirits, a quantity equal in weight to ten _seers_ a day; while (as PETER the Great, and the rising PETER of the South Seas, TAMAHAMA, in TURNBULL’S Voyage, have done since) he issued as a standing regulation of his government, an order for the prohibition of spirituous liquors, and every thing else of an intoxicating nature, throughout the whole kingdom, “notwithstanding that I had myself,” he adds, “from the age of eighteen to thirty-eight, been constantly addicted to them.” Extracts by JAMES ANDERSON, from the _Toozuké Jehangeer_, Asiat. Miscell. vol. ii. p. 77. To evade the prohibition of wine, the Orientals have had recourse to compositions infinitely more inebriating: these are “the mixed wine,” “the strong drink mingled of the Scriptures;” see LOWTH’S ISAIAH, p. 12-13, p. 231, &c. See a Chapter of KÆMPFER, fasc. iii. obs. 15. The liquor thus substituted in Persia is the _Cocnos_ of DELLA VALLE. ABBAS the First, when he drank wine, drank it as in the text, publicly: for a purpose, as a contemporary traveller observes, like that of AGATHOCLES in DIODORUS of discovering the real character of his guests. DELLA VALLE, tom. ii. 341. See the entertainment in HERBERT, p. 171: “Most friendly ABBAS puld our Ambassador downe, seated him close to his side, smiling to see he could not sett (after the Asiatique sort) crosse-legd, and calling for a bowl of wine, dronke his Master’s health, at which the Ambassador uncoverd his head; and to complement beyond all expectation the Potshaugh,” (the _Padishah_) “puld of his turbant; by discovering his bald head, symbolising his affection; and after an houres merriment departed.” This object of ABBAS was again similarly attempted by SHAH SULEYMAN. Mod. Univ. Hist. vol. vi. 16. SHAH SEFFI in a caprice chose to prohibit tobacco, and executed two foreign merchants for disobeying the order, as SULTAN MURAD did in Turkey for the same offence. RYCAUT, p. 59; see p. 43, against wine. SHAH SEFFI himself drank to excess; but having in a fit of intoxication killed one of his wives, he published a mandate through all his dominions, that no one should drink wine; and that the Governors should stave all the casks and spill the liquor wherever it was found. Mod. Univ. Hist. vol. v. p. 471-2, p. 475. SHAH HUSSEIN, vol. vi. 21, prohibited wine by his first act, though he afterwards was tempted to indulge in it; but when BELL was in Persia, the King was still sober and devout, and drank no wine, which in consequence was not used by his court. BELL, i. 107, see p. 116. NADIR SHAH and KERIM KHAN permitted the use of wine: but AGA MAHOMED, “cruel, feroce au dela de toute expression, faisait ouvrir le ventre à ceux de ces sujets Musulmans qui etaient accusés de boire du vin.” OLIVIER, tom. v. p. 136. _Mourtchekourd, p. 176._]--The difficulty of ascertaining a fact in the ancient history of Persia, may be estimated by the contradictions in a very modern period, in an event of extreme importance, and in the relations of contemporary authors. The battle of _Mourtchekourd_, which decided the fate of Persia, was fought, according to JONES’S Life of NADIR, on the 13th November, 1728. OTTER, who accompanied an Embassy to NADIR, says November, 1730. GARDANNE, the French Consul, who was at _Ispahan_ at the time, says November, 1729. See OLIVIER, vol. v. p. 375. _P. 186._]--Of the King of Persia’s own poems, see a specimen in SCOTT WARING. See also GARDANNE, p. 76. _Lion and Bear, p. 187._]--In BELL’S time, there were two lions at the court of Persia, who couched to the Embassador as he passed, p. 100-1. When the Greek Embassador was presented to the CALIPH MOCTADER, A. D. 917, “one hundred lions were brought out, with a keeper to each lion.” GIBBON, 4to. v. p. 420. _Introduction, p. 128._]--BELL’S description is striking, “at our entry into the hall, we were stopped about three minutes at the first fountain, in order to raise the greater respect; the pipes were contrived to play so high, that the water fell into the basin like thick rain. Nothing could be distinguished for some time; and the _Schach_ himself appeared as in a fog. While we moved forward, every thing was as still as death.” vol. i. p. 103. _ZEIN LABADEEN, p. 176._]--The ZAIN LABADEEN, called in the text the brother of HOSSEIN, is probably ALI, his youngest son, called afterwards ZEIN ALAB’BEDDIN, “the ornament of the religious.” Mod. Univ. Hist. vol. ii. p. 101. FRANKLIN, p. 180. _Punishment of Theft, p. 204._]--This was a punishment inflicted by the Emperor AURELIAN. GIBBON, i. p. 355. _P. 217._]--GARDANNE complains in the same manner of the publicity of Persian diplomacy. “Les Gardes, les Secretaires, les curieux sont presens. Nous avons souvent demande de les faire eloigner, mais les Ministres gardent toujours du monde. On ne peut pas rester seul avec eux.” Journal, p. 54. _Teheran, p. 224._]--It is interesting to trace the progress of a capital. At about the same distance from _Rhages_, (at which the present city of _Teheran_ may be placed from the remains of _Rey_) appears the town of _Tahora_, in the Theodosian tables: a sufficient presumption that _Teheran_ itself had an original and independant existence, and did not rise only from the ruins of the greater metropolis. Its continuance as a contemporary city cannot now be traced distinctly; it may indeed have borne a different name in Eastern geography, as it is the _Teheran_ or _Cherijar_ of TAVERNIER. It re-appears however under its present name in the journey of the Castilian Embassadors to TIMUR, at a period when the greatness of _Rey_ was still very considerable. At the end of two centuries, PIETRO DELLA VALLE re-visited it. He calls it the city of planes; tom. ii. 390: the soil is probably particularly adopted to the tree; for OLIVIER mentions one in the neighbourhood that measured round an excrescence at the root, seventy feet; tom. v. p. 102. About the same time with DELLA VALLE, HERBERT described it fully. It is the _Tyroan_ of his travels. TAVERNIER notices it more perhaps from the materials of others than from his own observation, tom. i. 313: and CHARDIN speaks of it only as “petite ville.” Tom. ii. p. 120. Its name occurs with scarcely a line of comment, in a route given by HANWAY, vol. i.; and though it was a place of some interest in the reign of NADIR, its actual state cannot be collected with any certainty till the accession of the present dynasty. It had long indeed been the capital of a province; and its name had been frequently connected with objects of importance in the history of the last two centuries; yet it owes its more immediate pre-eminence to the events of the last few years. It had been so much destroyed by the _Affghans_, (when after the battle of _Salmanabad_ they invested it, in the hope of seizing SHAH THAMAS, who had retired thither) that AGA MAHOMED, the late King, may be considered as almost its second founder. Its nearness to his own tribe and province; the facilities of raising instantaneously from the wandering tribes around it a large force of cavalry; and its central situation between the general resources of his empire and the more exposed frontiers, combined to justify his choice of _Teheran_ as the capital of Persia. It has risen rapidly. In 1797 OLIVIER describes it as little more than two miles in circumference, and of the whole area the palace occupied more than one-fourth. Tom. v. p. 89. In 1809, it is stated to be between four and a half and five miles round the walls. The population, according to OLIVIER, even with all the encouragement which AGA MAHOMED afforded to settlers, and including his own household of three thousand persons, amounted in 1797 to only fifteen thousand persons. GARDANNE describes it, ten years afterwards, as having more than fifty thousand inhabitants during the winter; though he notices the almost total desertion of the city during the heats of summer. Journal, &c. p. 55. In one of Mr. MORIER’S routes in the Appendix, _Teheran_ is represented as containing twelve thousand houses, a better estimate of its size than the number of inhabitants. _Ark, p. 225._]--_Ark_ is obviously, _Arx_. _Impress, p. 225._]--This impress was by no means peculiar to Persia. Many instances might be given from our own history down to the reign of ELIZABETH: but it is sufficient to refer to those connected with the subject in the text. HENRY VI. pressed minstrels “in solatium regis;” almost the very act of the King of Persia. EDWARD VI. thus supplied his choir, (BARRINGTON on the Statutes, p. 337); and in the reign of ELIZABETH, under one of the commissions to take up all singing children for the use of the Queen’s chapel, TUSSER, the author of the Five Hundred Points of Good Husbandry, was impressed. See LYSONS’S Environs of London, vol i. p. 92. “Thence for my voice, I must no choice, Away of force, like posting horse For sundry men, had placards then Such child to take,--” _Female Officers, p. 225._]--SERADJ ED DOWLAH had a female guard of Calmucks, Tartars, Georgians, Negroes and Abyssinians. (_Seir Mutagherin_, vol. i. p. 146.) NASSUREDDEEN peopled a city entirely with women; all the officers being of that sex. He is said to have had fifteen thousand women. (GLADWIN, Hist. of Indostan, vol. i. p. 114.) It is very possible that some such caprice of an Oriental despot may have given rise to the cities of men and women on different sides of the Ganges, of which we read in PALLADIUS, p. 9; and St. AMBROSE, p. 54: at the end of BYSHE’S “PALLADIUS de Gentibus Indiæ,” and not very improbable that it may have produced the tradition so common in the early travellers, of the islands of men and women, and perhaps the whole fable of the Amazons. See of the islands the Arabian travellers of RENAUDOT, MARCO POLO, lib. iii. FRA MAURO in VINCENT’S Periplus, p. 671. See a curious note on the word _Hamazen_, “all women,” in MOOR’S Infanticide, p. 82. _Fall in HAFIZ, p. 229._]--It is scarcely necessary to refer to more ancient divination; but the resemblance between the Persian trial and that of the _Sortes Virgilianæ_ must occur to every reader. The Mahomedans have another oracle in the _Koran_, which they consult in the same manner: and the Jews had similar recourse to the Scriptures of the Old Testament. SALE’S _Koran_. Prelim. Dissert. § iii. p. 69. The authority of VIRGIL (and indeed, though less currently, of HOMER also,) remained in full force to the middle at least of the seventeenth century, as in the first instance the appeal of CHARLES I. and Lord FALKLAND sufficiently proves: JOHNSON’S Life of COWLEY, p. 13. Even the Bible was thus opened for divination. Ars Magica, 1638, p. iii. _Rags on Bushes, p. 230._]--This superstition was noticed in Persia by one of the earliest travellers, JOSAPHAT BARBARO, 1474, fol. 45, and was explained by him on the principle that (such was the scarcity of wood in the country) even a bush was a miracle. M. I. _Change of Names, p. 230._]--The renaming of SHAH SEFFI, who then became SHAH SOLEYMAN, is related fully by CHARDIN and TAVERNIER; and in its ceremonies is not perhaps easily paralleled; but in its essential circumstance, a change of name from a belief in the unluckiness of the first, it may be supported by an example in our own history: when JOHN of Scotland took the name of ROBERT III. (see HENRY’S History, vol. viii. 372, from FORDUN;) because the Prince, who had borne the former appellation, had been unfortunate in the annals of the country. In the family of CATHERINE DE MEDICIS; EDWARD-ALEXANDER became HENRY III.: HERCULES became CHARLES IX. &c. See a note in the Life of CARY, Earl of Monmouth, p. 39. The Jews thus changed their names. _Herrings, p. 231._]--The herrings of the Caspian are described by P. H. BRUCE. Memoirs, p. 261. TOOKE speaks of “a fish resembling a herring.” CATHERINE, II. vol. ii. p. 56. _Coals, p. 231._]--MARCO POLO speaks of a combustible stone found in China; which is obviously coal. EBN HAUKAL mentions in Ferghaneh, “a stone that takes fire and burns,” p. 250; compare however, p. 272, which seems to imply a more distinct knowledge of coal. _Demawend, p. 231._]--The distance to which according to the text, it is visible is paralleled by that at which Sir WM. JONES observed the _Chumalury_ mountains from _Bhaugalpore_. This distance is stated by him at two hundred and forty-four miles: but he adds, that the object might be seen much further. (Note in Lord TEIGNMOUTH’S Life of Sir WM. JONES, p. 253.) Another account gives the first distance from _Bhaugalpore_ at two hundred and fifty miles. P. H. BRUCE, (Memoirs, 282) saw _Ararat_ from _Derbend_ at a distance of at least two hundred and ten geographical miles, equal to more than two hundred and forty British measure, in a straight line by the compasses on Major RENNELL’S map. EBN HAUKAL mentions that _Demawend_ may be seen fifty _farsang_ round, (perhaps one hundred and seventy-five miles.) He adds, “I have not heard that any man ever ascended to its summit;” p. 172. HERBERT indeed relates his ascent (Travels), but OLIVIER can describe only an ineffectual endeavour. Tom. v. p. 125, &c. The difficulties which he encountered, seem to rival those of TOURNEFORT in the attempt to scale _Ararat_. Tom., ii. 357, &c. The fable of a plant which tinges the teeth of sheep with gold, is not confined to _Demawend_: it is attached to their favourite mountains by different nations, and may thus be traced to Mount _Lebanon_; to Mount _Elewnd_, &c. and the plant, which is convertible into gold, is found, if an alchemist may be believed, in the mountains of _Yemen_: it was supposed indeed by the Arabs, to constitute the real object of NIEBUHR’S Voyage. Description de l’Arabie, p. 123. A mountain so vast, and of a form so peculiar, was naturally connected with the traditionary mythology of the country: and accordingly _Demawend_ was believed to cover with all its weight ZOHAK, the usurper in the earliest dynasty of their empire. See CHAMPION’S _Ferdusí_. _Rey, p. 232._]--The ruins of _Rey_ have never been described by any European traveller: if a brief and nameless notice of them by TAVERNIER, tom. i. 313, (who had no suspicion of their history, and perhaps never saw them,) can be considered an exception. From the Oriental authorities indeed he was enabled to compile a table of latitudes and longitudes; and to insert _Rey_ as 35° 35´ lat. 70° 20´. long. Tom. i. p. 404. But even the position of the ruins appears imperfectly known to CHARDIN; and they were sought in vain by one of the latest and most intelligent of his successors, OLIVIER, who looked for them considerably too much to the south. See tom. v. p. 160-1. GARDANNE, who was at _Teheran_, allots to _Rey_ only three lines; nor indeed does he state distinctly that he was writing from his own observation. Yet his account, however imperfect in itself, is striking in its close. “A l’est de _Teheran_, ruines de _Rey_, ancienne _Rhages_, et patrie de HAROUN EL RACHID. Les Persans disent que _Rey_ avoit trois millions d’habitans. _Le mot Revolution explique toutes les Calamités._” P. 72. The history of _Rhages_ requires no illustration in the days of its greatness; and that greatness, with more than the fortune of other cities, has twice revolved. Its second rise under the Mahomedans, has indeed been less traced than its first origin, though it was the birth place of HAROUN EL RESCHID, and one of the favourite seats of his magnificence. It was then one of the capitals of the _Buiya_ Sultans; see DE SACY, Memoires, &c. p. 145, 147, &c. And was taken by MAHMUD, of _Ghizni_, when he destroyed their dynasty. Mod. Univ. Hist. iii. 195. It was subsequently one of the two great cities of the empire of the _Seljukians_; and as such demanded by the Emperor ROMANUS, who in the decline of the Roman power, imitated all the insolence of its greatness. With the Parthians and the Persians, his predecessors had indeed often used this tone of presumption, and as often failed in the wars of which it was the prelude. Thus CRASSUS, when he was marching to his own destruction, told the Parthian Embassadors that he would give his answer at their capital: JULIAN, in the midst of his own unhappy expedition, replied to the overtures of SAPOR, that he would himself visit the Persian court; and thus ROMANUS, with an insolence unparalleled and intolerable, required from ALP ARSLAN, before he would listen to any terms, the surrender of _Rey_, one of his capitals. The sequel of each event is too familiar to be noticed. _Rey_ still remained one of the greatest and most flourishing cities of the East; _Ispahan_, _Nishapour_, and _Bagdad_, alone rivalling it. EBN HAUKAL, in the tenth century, describes it fully; but in his day, though the commercial and civil greatness of the city was at its height, its defences had declined; and the wall around the suburbs was falling to decay; p. 176, p. 157, p. 172. Nevertheless it survived more revolutions; it was a very considerable city when it was taken by GENGHIZ KHAN, PETIT DE LA CROIX, p. 277: and still, two centuries afterwards, it was one of the seats of the government of SHAH ROKH, the son of TIMUR. Mod. Univ. Hist. v. 394. From his death, which happened there A.D. 1146, it ceases to maintain a conspicuous place in the history of Persia; and is now venerable only in the remains of its ancient grandeur. _Taxation by hides, p. 236._]--This measure of taxation was not uncommon; it is sufficient to add, that it still seems to regulate the collection in other parts of the East: for in some extracts from MAHOMED SADUCK’S Journey to _Cabul_, it is said that “_Herat_ extends from the city of _Ferah_ to _Khaf_ and _Backhury_. Twelve lacks; supposed to be the net produce of as much land as twelve thousand pair of bullocks can plough, all expended in civil and military establishments.” _The noose, p. 243._]--The noose was _Rustam’s_ ancient implement of war. _Lamb Skins, p. 246._]--The most valuable lamb-skins are perhaps taken prematurely from the ewe killed for the purpose. The fabulous supplies of the _Barometz_ (“the vegetable lamb” of DARWIN, Loves, canto i. 282) were perhaps invented by the Tartars to conceal from their European traders the cruelty of the practice. BELL denies the existence of the _Barometz_, vol. i. 43, which however is well established, though its properties may be doubted. P. H. BRUCE, in his Memoirs, p. 336, asserts the fact that the ewes are killed before parturition for the sake of the lambs; the skins of which are then in their greatest beauty, with the hair lying “in short smooth pretty curls.” The trade is very profitable to the _Nagayan_ Tartars, who sell the best for ten shillings. CHARDIN mentions some in his day at fifteen franks. The wool even of those whose lives are spared for a fortnight, lies in waves, and resembles a piece of damask, the lamb having been guarded from its birth by linen sewed round it. TOOKE’S Nations of Russia, vol. ii. 136, 267. _Shalwars, p. 247._]--“When they go a hunting, they wear _Shalwars_, or long trowsers which reach up to the arm pits, into which they cram all their clothes; and a _Kerguisian_ in this dress may be taken at a distance for a monstrous pair of breeches on horseback.” TOOKE’S Russia, ii. 280. _Mountains between Teheran and Tabriz, Chap. XIV._]--The mountains seen in this direction were in the middle ages the seats of the Dilemites; the subjects of HASSAN, _Sheik al Jebal_, HASSAN “the chief or the old man of the mountains,” whose power is familiar to every reader, and from whose name the word _assassin_ has been derived, with an evil import, in half the modern languages of Europe. The constant recurrence of the tale of his enchanted palace in the old travellers, MARCO POLO, HAITHON, &c. is sufficient evidence of some general foundation in truth. HOLAKOU, the son of GENGHIZ KHAN, routed out the _Hassanites_. _Tourchiz, p. 265._]--This place occurs in the route of FORSTER, who mentions _Mesched_, as said to be one hundred miles north-west of _Turshish_. Vol. ii. p. 154. It was held at that time by ABEDULLAH, an independant Persian chief, p. 165; but FORSTER, who spent above a fortnight in the town, does not allude to any wealth deposited there. In MAHOMED SADUCK’S journey, the capital of the district of _Turshiz_ and _Co Surkh_, is called _Sultania_, which is probably the _Sultanabad_ of FORSTER, another name for the old town of _Turshiz_. P. 165. _Miaunéh, p. 268._]--At this spot died the celebrated traveller THEVENOT. See the note of his death, tom. v. GARDANNE says, “Ses Papiers et ses livres furent, dit on, enlevés et gardés par le Cadi.” P. 41. _Number of oxen to a plough, p. 275._]--It is curious to trace in TOURNEFORT the encrease in the number of cattle thus employed, as he advances into Georgia: near _Arz-roum_, they will yoke three or four pair to one plough, p. 213; near _Cars_, ten or twelve, p. 216. Still farther on, in Georgia itself, fourteen or fifteen pair, p. 224. Vol. ii. of the translation. _Prince Royal of Persia, p. 279._]--The character of ABBAS MIRZA, Prince of _Tabriz_, is so striking in Oriental history, that every support, which can be given to the accuracy of the description, is important. GARDANNE confirms some of the more remarkable traits in the text: “Il veut relever sa nation, et il a l’ambition de la gloire militaire. S’il perd un General on un Guerrier, il dechire ses habits et donne les marqués de la plus vive douleur. Il a perda dernièrement des enfans, et n’a temoigné aucun chagrin. Pour expliquer cette indifference, il faut connaître les mœurs. Nous demandons à un grand Seigneur le nombre de ses enfans. Il répond naïvement qu’il n’en sait rien, se tourne du côté de son Secrétaire et le lui demande; celui ci répond: dix-sept.” p. 36. The following anecdote is connected with the French character; it occurs in the account of an entertainment given to the French Mission by the Prince’s Minister. “Après le repas, les danseurs font des tours de force. Le Vizir nous dit: mon maitre n’aime pas les danseurs, il les a tous chassès de _Tauris_. J’ai appellé ceux-cé des villages voisins, ayant appris de l’Ambassadeur de Perse, que ce divertessement était agréable a votre nation.” P. 37. See others, p. 38-9. _Ships on the Caspian, p. 287._]--Every reader of HANWAY will recollect the extreme importance which NADIR attached to the formation of a fleet in the Caspian, where the famous JOHN ELTON was induced to become his Admiral. The dock-yards in the Persian Gulph must import all their timber from India; but the southern shore of the Caspian contains on the spot the amplest supplies. The turbulent character of the Arabs of the Gulph, induced NADIR SHAH to meditate their removal from their own country; and their nautical skill and experience suggested to him the idea of transplanting them profitably into the provinces along the Caspian, and replacing them in their ancient seats by the people whom they thus dispossessed. But all his projects were overwhelmed in the confusion which followed his death; and the only naval power, (with the exception of a few small vessels against the Turcomans), which Persia had ever formed in the Caspian, was thus annihilated. NADIR SHAH collected a fleet in the Gulph also; and made _Bushire_ the port of _Shiraz_. NIEBUHR, tom. ii. p. 75. Here he had assembled from twenty-two to twenty-five ships, built for him at _Bombay_ and _Surat_, &c.; but these were all neglected and dispersed at his death. _Language of Ghilan, p. 288._]--_Ghilan_, the country of the ancient _Gelæ_, was, according to EBN HAUKAL, p. 174, the level tract along the Caspian, of that province, which in its mountainous parts was called _Dilem_. Now _Dilem_ was with _Media Inferior_, _Mazanderan_, and the countries between the Caspian and the Tigris, one of the original seats of the _Pehlavie_. _Heeren_. Act. Soc. Gotting. tom. xiii. _Dilem_ was also a retreat of that language. In the breaking up of a great empire, the institutions of the conquered race always linger in the extremities. The Caucasus, the country of _Derbend_, _Segestan_, and _Kerman_, thus sheltered the ancient language and religion of Persia: and thus the mountains of _Dilem_ retained till the tenth century, the worship of fire; and perhaps, therefore, the _Pehlavie_, with which that worship had been connected. EBN HAUKAL observes of _Taberistan_, the adjoining tract, “they have a peculiar dialect, neither Arabick nor Persian: and in _many_ parts of _Deilman_ their language is not understood.” In a country separated by these circumstances, and by its local situation from the rest of Persia, it is not improbable that there may still exist some traces of a distinct language: and as to the imperfections incident to the want of written memorials, Sir WM. JONES, in his Discourse on the Arabs, has prepared us to think that Dr. JOHNSON’S reasoning is too general. _The Cookery of the Turcomans, p. 290._]--Their cookery is something like that of the Arabs described by CAPPER. There is a full account of the two hordes, the Eastern and Western Turcomans, in a note by the French editor of the Genealogical History of the Tatars, p. 535-8. See also TOOKE, ii. 93. Their wealth in money in every age has been very great; because, like the Arabs, and every other pastoral people on the confines of great civilized empires, they sell the necessaries of life, and will not buy the luxuries. LA ROQUE, p. 157, remarks accordingly, that in the time of PLINY, the riches both of the Romans and of the Parthians were melted down among the Arabs. HARMER’S Observations, vol. i. p. 122. CHARDIN in his MSS. notes in HARMER, says, that they are like ABRAHAM, “very rich in cattle, in silver, and in gold.” _CHAP. XVI._]--The country from _Tabriz_ and _Arz-roum_ may almost be considered as new ground in European description. GARDANNE is the only other traveller who has traced this route, (Journal, &c. p. 21-35); but the information which he collected in his passage is so limited, that he appears to know nothing of the Lake of _Shahee_; or rather in travelling along its shores, he confounds it with that of _Van_, which is at least one hundred miles from the spot where he places it; p. 35. The country between _Arz-roum_ and _Tocat_ is described by TOURNEFORT, tom. ii. and by TAVERNIER, tom. i. p. 12-19: and as one of the great roads from _Bagdad_, &c. falls in at _Tocat_, the further progress to Constantinople is continued on Mr. MORIER’S line, by TAVERNIER, i. 1-12. OTTER ii. 330-357. HOWELL, p. 102-132. JACKSON, p. 203-236. ABOO TALEB, ii. 256-264. GARDANNE, p. 114-119; see also p. 1-13. _Khoi, p. 299._]--The singularity of the walls of _Khoi_, is noticed by GARDANNE, with a more singular illustration: “_Qu-oye_ est entouré de murailles et de tours, et ressemble exactement aux gravures de _Jerico_ que l’on voit dans les Bibles.” P. 34. _Ararat, p. 306._]--The height of _Ararat_ can best be understood by considering the distance at which it may be seen. CHARDIN mentions that it is visible at _Marant_: tom. i. p. 253; BRUCE, that he saw it at _Derbend_, Memoirs, p. 282; STRUYS, whom OLIVIER well characterises as “Romanesque,” describes his ascent to visit a sick hermit at the top, p. 208, &c.; but TOURNEFORT, one of the first of travellers, has stated so fully the difficulties of his own attempt, that probably they have never yet been overcome. The mountain is divided into three regions of different breadths; the first, composed of a short and slippery grass or sand “aussi facheux que les Syrtes d’Afrique,” is occupied by shepherds; the second, by tygers and crows; the remainder, which is half the mountain “est couverte de neige depuis que l’arch y arreta, et ces neiges sont cachées la moitié de l’année sous les nuages fort epais. Les tygres que nous apperçumes ne laissérent pas de nous faire peur,” p. 358. It was impossible to go forwards and penetrate to the third region; and not easy to go back: at length, utterly exhausted, they reached the bottom, “nous rendîmes graces au Seigneur d’en être revenus, car peut-être que nous serions perdus ou que nous serions morts de faim sur cette Montagne,” p. 371. If these were the sensations with which TOURNEFORT regarded his enterprise, the common belief of the country may well be admitted, that no one ever yet ascended the _Ararat_ of the Armenians. _P. 317._]--_Hassan Cala_ is the ancient _Theodosiopolis_. D’ANVILLE, Geogr. Anc. vol. ii. p. 100. _Arz-roum, p. 320._]--This city has been more generally written, _Erz-roum_, as CHARDIN, &c.; but from the definition assigned to it by TOURNEFORT, tom. ii. p. 257, 276, and adopted by D’ANVILLE, Geogr. Anc. tom. ii. 99; that of the _Arza_ of _Rum_, (the Asia Minor occupied by the Roman Empire) the present reading is established. The plain, in which it is built, is included by TOURNEFORT, p. 325, in that district, which he regards as the site of the terrestrial paradise. Yet the cold of a region so elevated as that which contains the springs of the _Euphrates_ and the _Araxes_ must be extreme: nor can the beauty of the spot be at all assisted by forest scenery; Mr. MORIER has observed the scarcity of wood, and TOURNEFORT says, that there is no fuel but pine wood, and that is brought two or three days journey, p. 259. _Arz-roum_ was an early Christian bishoprick, in its civil history it was alternately subject to the Empire of Constantinople and _that_ of Persia. In the eleventh century it stood a siege of six days, when the assailants, expecting that it would be relieved, sacrificed their hopes of booty, and set fire to the place, consuming in it so many, that, with the destruction in the six previous days, swelled the total loss of lives to one hundred and forty thousand. In the thirteenth century it appears as the ARGYRON of MARCO POLO. The city contained in TOURNEFORT’S time (1700) eighteen thousand Turks, six thousand Armenians, and four hundred Greeks. The Jesuits reckoned eight thousand Armenians, and one hundred families of the Greeks. The present population is estimated by GARDANNE at one hundred and thirty thousand, p. 21. In the former commerce of Asia Minor it was, “le passage et le reposoir de toutes les marchandises des Indes.” TOURNEFORT describes the influence of the French; and seems pleased that the Turks pay more regard to the recommendations of the King of France, than to those of the Mufti of Rome. _Mama Khatoun, p. 327._]--A spot near _Mama Khatoun_ is suggested by TOURNEFORT as the scene of the great battle between MITHRIDATES and POMPEY. _P. 356._]--_Geredéh_ is the _Carus_ of the Romans. R. _Canal from the Lake Sabanja, p. 360._]--The ancient Kings of Bithynia had left unfinished a canal from the _Nicomedian Lake_, the modern _Sabanja_. The younger PLINY, when Governor of the province, recommended the undertaking to TRAJAN. PLIN. Epist. x. 46. TRAJAN, in reply, desires him to take care that the lake be not exhausted by letting its waters into the sea. Ep. 51. PLINY, Epist. 69, suggests sufficient in answer to prove that this danger might be obviated; though his project, however practicable or profitable, was never realized. TRAJAN’S Letter, 70. At the end of sixteen centuries it was revived by the Grand Vizir, KUPRIGLI. It was destined to communicate with other rivers, and to open a water carriage into the centre of those immense forests, which in every age have supplied the arsenals of Constantinople. But the project was sacrificed to a timely bribe offered by those who had monopolized the conveyance of the timber by land; and KUPRIGLI, at the eve of the accomplishment, was deprived of the glory of completing that which PLINY and TRAJAN had projected in vain. APPENDIX. APPENDIX, No. I. _MONEY IN PERSIA._ (THOSE IN ITALICS HAVE ONLY A NOMINAL EXISTENCE. ACCOUNTS ARE KEPT IN _DINARS_ AND PIASTRES.) 5 _Dinars_ = 1 _Ghauz_. 20 _Dinars_ = 1 Beestee. 25 _Dinars_ = ½ Shahee. 50 _Dinars_ = 1 _Shahee_. 500 _Dinars_ = 10 _Shahee_ = ½ Groush. 1,000 _Dinars_ = 20 _Shahee_ = 1 Groush[130]. 1,250 _Dinars_ = 1 Real[131]. 2,500 _Dinars_ = 50 _Shahee_ = 1 Ashreffee. 10,000 _Dinars_ = 10 Piastres = 1 Tomaun. 3 _Shahee_ = 1 Shahee[132]. 4 _Shahee_ = 1 _Abassee_. 8 Shahee = 1 Real or Rupee[133]. 100,000 Rupees = 1 Lack. APPENDIX, No. II.--1. _ROUTES IN PERSIA._ ITINERARY FROM BUSHIRE TO SHIRAZ,[134] WITH THE POPULATION AND TRIBUTE. -------------------+--------+--------+------------+ | Houses.|Tomauns.|Kherwars.[135]| -------------------+--------+--------+------------+ | | | | BUSHIRE to | | | | ALICHANGEE[136] | 150 | 60 | 900 | Ahmediéh | 170 | -- | -- | Sermel | 200 | -- | -- | Eesevendee | 100 | -- | -- | Khosh Aub | 100 | -- | -- | BORAZJOON | 2000 | 260 | 5600 | DAULAKEE | 1000 | 600 | -- | KHONAR TACKTA | -- | -- | -- | Khisht | 600 | 660 | 660 | KHAUMARIDGE | 500 | -- | -- | Derees | 1000 | 150 | -- | KAUZEROON | 4000 | 2500 | 2500 | ABDOUI | 800 | 320 | -- | DESHT-E-ARJUN | 600 | 160 | 100 | KHONÉ ZENIOUN | 25 | -- | -- | BAGH SHAH CHERAGH | -- | -- | -- | SHIRAZ | 12,000 | -- | -- | ZERGOON | 1000 | 160 | 600 | MIRHAUST GAUN | -- | -- | -- | Persepolis | -- | -- | -- | In the plain are } | -- | 3500 | 5000 | sixty villages } | | | | SEEWUND | 170 | -- | -- | KEMEEN | 1000 | 700 | 1000 | MORGHAUB | 1000 | 300 | 700 | DEIBEED | 100 | 60 | -- | KHONÉ KHORRÉH | -- | -- | -- | SURMEK | 1000 | -- | -- | ABADÉH | 1000 | -- | -- | SHOOLGISTOUN | 100 | -- | -- | YEZDIKHAUST | 600 | 120 | 120 | MAXHOUD BEGGY | -- | -- | -- | KOMESHAH | 6000 | 3000 | 4000 | MAYAR[137] | 200 | 100 | 100 | ISPAHANEK | 150 | 40 | 40 | ISPAHAN | 80,000 | 70,000 | 50,000 | GEZ | 500 | 400 | 300 | MOURCHEKOURD | 300 | 200 | 200 | KOHROUD | 200 | 200 | 100 | Kashan | 5000 | 3500 | 3500 | NUSSERABAD | 250 | -- | -- | KOOM | 3000 | 2500 | 1200 | POOL DALLAUK | -- | -- | -- | KINAR-A-GIRD | 600 | -- | -- | TEHERAN | 12,000 | -- | -- | -------------------+--------+--------+------------+ APPENDIX, No. II.--2. ITINERARY FROM KOOM TO SULTANIEH.[138] -----------------+----------------+----------------------------------- Miles. | |Houses. |Fur. | | |Tomauns. | Hours.| | | |Kherwars. -----+-----+-----+----------------+----+----+----+-------------------- 26 | 6 | 6 | _Mudjd-abad_ | 40 | 50 | 40 | In going from _Koom_, | | | | the _Teheran_ road is left, which | | | | goes more to the eastward. At three | | | | _fursungs_ from _Koom_ the celebrated | | | | enchanted hill, called “_Gedden | | | | gelmez_,” i. e. _who goes and never | | | | returns_, is passed. Near _Mudjd-abad_, | | | | crossed a small river running east. | | | | | | | 36 | 9 | 8 | _Daung_ A small village| At two _fursungs_ from | | | | _Mudjd-abad_, pass a fort called | | | | _Turragnareen_, and some streams of | | | | water, and on the right a village. | | | | _Sauva_, a considerable town, is five | | | | _fursungs_ from _Mudjd-abad_: two or | | | | three miles on the left, near _Daung_, | | | | saw a distant range of mountains to | | | | the N. covered with snow. | | | | | | | 45 | 12 | 10 | _Sakisabad_ | 150| 150| 300| Six _fursungs_ from | | | | _Daung_, passed a round caravanserai | | | | called _Jeeb_. It is situated at the | | | | entrance of hills, on leaving the plain | | | | of _Daung_. After passing the hills, | | | | descended into the large plain, in | | | | which _Casvin_ is said to be situated; | | | | here are a number of small villages. | | | | Wind fresh from the N.W. which is | | | | called, _Baad Gagazgoon_, from a place | | | | of that name, from which quarter it | | | | blows.[139] | | | | | | | 26 | 7 | 5 | _Bostanuk_ | 150| 150| 200| _Bostanuk_ is in a | | | | very extensive plain, with many | | | | villages and cultivation. The people | | | | talk Turkish. | | | | | | | 8 | 8 | 6 | _Khorremderéh_ | 400| 300| 400| More villages and more | | | | cultivation than before. Through the | | | | ravine, in which this village is | | | | situated, runs a small river. | | | | | | | 20 | 8 | - | _Sultaniéh_ | - | - | - | The Royal camp: halted | | | | eight miles from the camp. | | | | | | | -----+-----+-----+----------------+----+----+----+-------------------- APPENDIX, No. II.--3. ITINERARY FROM SULTANIEH TO BAGDAD, FROM DR. JUKES’S JOURNAL. -----------------+---------------+------------------------------------ Miles. | |Houses. |Fur. | | |Tomauns. | Hours.| | | |Kherwars. -----+-----+-----+---------------+----+----+----+--------------------- | | | _Sultaniéh._ | | | | | | | | | | | 8 | 2½ | 2 |_Kooshabad_ | | | | Marching west from | | | | _Sultaniéh_, passed through mountains. | | | | | | | 8 | 2½ | 2½ |_Beejaeen_ | 300| 150| 150| The road led across a | | | | plain; passed a considerable village | | | | on the plain. There is a running | | | | stream near _Beejaeen_. | | | | | | | 11 | 3½ | 3 |_Jereen_ | 150| 60| 40| More villages. | | | | | | | 18 | 5½ | 5 |_Arpadurrasi_ | 250| 150| 100| Crossed the bed of a | | | | river, after leaving _Jereen_. At two | | | | _fursungs_ passed some defiles; and | | | | continued on an ascent all the rest | | | | of the march. Soon after _Jereen_, | | | | we came into the country of the | | | | _Karaguzloos_. | | | | | | | 16 | 4½ | 4 |_Surla_ | 300| 200| 200| First part of the road | | | | was on a plain; on the right hand | | | | were two or three villages. During | | | | the latter part of to-day’s march, | | | | saw the famous mountain of _Alwund_. | | | | | | | 24 | 6½ | 5½ |_Hubbadraheng_ |2000| 600| 500| Passed through the | | | | village _Dumma_. Many villages | | | | besides. | | | | | | | 7 | 2 | 2 |_Veean_ | 150| 100| 100| The country about | | | | here looks prosperous. | | | | | | | 20 | 6 | 5 |_Joureekan_ | Large Village| The country | | | | cultivated, and villages. From the | | | | summit of a hill, had a view of the | | | | fertile plain of _Hamadan_. | | | | | | | 3¼ | 1 | 1 |_Hamadan_ | | | | _Shevereen_ is a | | | | village three miles from _Hamadan_. | | | | _Hamadan_, situated at the | | | | foot of the east side of the | | | | mountain of _Alwund_. Many | | | | streams fall from _Alwund_ | | | | into the plain. _Alwund_ | | | | appears at a distance to be | | | | one long range of mountains. | | | | I am assured the length of | | | | _Alwund_ Proper is not more | | | | than three _fursungs_ in | | | | length; and is distinct from | | | | the northern range. Through | | | | the interval between these two | | | | ranges, leads the road to | | | | _Kermanshah_. | | | | | | | 12 | 3 | 3 |_Zagha_ | 400| 300| 200| Many villages all | | | | around. | | | | | | | 12 | 3 | 3 |_Asadabad_ | 600| 500| 400|One _fursung_ from | | | | _Zagha_ came to a pass in the | | | | mountain. Many streams from the | | | | hills. There is a village one mile | | | | within the pass: and near to | | | | it, is a caravanserai, which | | | | is the boundary of the | | | | district of the _Karaguzloos_. | | | | Our march then continued for | | | | three miles through the hills, | | | | and then opened the following | | | | view: plain of _Hamadan_ to | | | | the Eastward; to the Westward | | | | the plain of _Asadabad_, | | | | surrounded by the mountains | | | | and the village of | | | | _Asadabad_, considerably | | | | beneath us; to the Northward, | | | | the distant mountains of the | | | | _Courdistan_; and to the | | | | Southward those of | | | | _Looristan_. From here to the | | | | plain, the descent was four | | | | miles. | | | | | | | 24 | 6 | 6 |_Kungavar_ |1000| 800| 500| This village is | | | | situated on the north side of its | | | | plain. | | | | | | | 18 | 4½ | 4½ |_Sahna_ | 400| 300| 300| Passed by one or two | | | | villages: springs of water on the | | | | side of the mountain. Plain well | | | | watered. Near to the village | | | | of _Sahna_, we crossed two | | | | other considerable streams | | | | which seemed to descend from | | | | the hills that form the N. | | | | side of the plain. | | | | | | | 16 | 4 | 4 |_Beesitoon_ | | | | From _Sahna_ two or | | | | three miles, our road led up the | | | | plain; then it took a more southerly | | | | course. The streams of | | | | yesterday uniting, form a | | | | considerable river, and we | | | | kept by the banks of it all | | | | day. Near to the famous | | | | mountain of _Besitoon_, we | | | | crossed a bridge, over a | | | | river, that takes its rise in | | | | the N. W. mountains on our | | | | right, and joined the river | | | | before mentioned. The river | | | | that runs down this valley is | | | | called the _Chum-chumal_, | | | | from a village of the same | | | | name. Here are characters | | | | sculptured like the | | | | Persepolitan. | | | | | | | 15 | 3½ | 4 |_Hissar Sefeed_| | | |Road over an | | | | uncultivated plain; to the left a | | | | small running stream. The river of | | | | yesterday seemed to take a | | | | more S. direction among the | | | | mountains; and we lost it | | | | after leaving the valley of | | | | _Busitoon_. We saw | | | | _Kermanshah_, and encamped six | | | | miles from the town. | | | | | | | | | |_Kermanshah_ | | | | One hour and a | | | | half leaving our encampment, | | | | crossed a good bridge of | | | | seven arches, over the | | | | river which was running | | | | to the south, and said to | | | | join those that run down | | | | the valley _Kusistoon_, to | | | | form the _Shooster_ river. | | | | The _Tauk-e-Roustan_ is in | | | | the north range of | | | | mountains about seven | | | | miles from _Kermanshah_. | | | | The river in the plain to | | | | the N. of the town runs | | | | south, and joining with | | | | that from _Sahna_ and | | | | _Besitoon_, adds its stream | | | | to the large _Shooster_ | | | | river. They call this | | | | river _Kara Sou_: it is | | | | said to take its rise in | | | | the mountain of | | | | _Kourdistan_, forty | | | | miles to the northward of | | | | _Kermanshah_. | | | | | | | 14 | 3 | 3 |_Maheedasht_ | 20| | | Seven miles from | | | | _Kermanshah_ descended | | | | into the plain of | | | | _Maheedasht_. | | | | | | | 20 | 5 | 5 |_Haroonabad_ | 100| 60| 5| Plain of _Haroonabad_; | | | | is well watered. Crossed a | | | | bridge soon after quitting | | | | the village. The bed of | | | | the river large. | | | | | | | 18 | 5 | 5 |_Kerrund_ | 300| 200| 200|The mountains at | | | | _Kerrund_ contract, and leave an | | | | open space at the | | | | distance of seven miles | | | | further on; through which | | | | the road descends into the | | | | Turkish territory. | | | | | | | 30 | 8 | 7 |_Pool-e-Zohaub_| | | |Seven miles from | | | | _Kerrund_ is the pass that | | | | separates Persia from | | | | Turkey.--_Zohaub_ is a | | | | large town, not far | | | | distant from the bridge | | | | called _Pool-e-Zohaub_, | | | | where we encamped. | | | | | | | 20 | 4 | 5 |_Kasr-e- |Small | |Piastres| | | | Shereen_ |Place.| | 3000 | The _Alwund_, | | | | which takes its rise in the | | | | mountains of _Kerrund_, runs near | | | | _Kasr-e-Shereen_. | | | | | | | | | | | | | | 18 | 5 | |_Khanakee_ |2000| |8000|Built on the banks | | | | of the _Alwund_: here is a good | | | | bridge. | | | | | | | 18 | 5 | |_Kizzil Robat_ |1500| | | And the revenues | | | | rented for twelve thousand five | | | | hundred and six piastres. | | | | | | | 17 | 5 | |_Shahrevan_ |1000| |20,000 | | | | | | | 30 | 8 | |_Bakoobah_ | | | | The Alwund river | | | | here is very considerable. 35 | 9 | |_Bagdad_ | | | | | | | | | | | =====+=====+=====+===============+====+====+====+===================== APPENDIX, No. II.--4. ISPAHAN TO BAGDAD. +---------+-------------+ |Fursungs.| | +---------+-------------+ | 3 | Anooshervan.| | | | | 4 | Chal Seeah. | | | | | 6 | Dur. | | | | | 7 | Dehhak. | | | | | 8 | Koukek. | | | | | 4 | Khomehee. | | | | | 6 | Imauret. | | | | | 6 | Hissar. | | | | | 7 | Mehrabad. | | | | | 7 | Pur Syeh. | | | | | 4 | Kenghaver. | +---------+-------------+ APPENDIX, No. II.--5. ROUTE FROM BUSHIRE TO CONGOON. +-----------+---------------+ | Fursungs. | | +-----------+---------------+ | 6 | Mir Abdullah. | | | | | 5 | Deh Ranzee. | | | | | 5 | Kaukee. | | | | | 6 | Baudouleh. | | | | | 5 | CONGOON. | +-----------+---------------+ APPENDIX, No. II.--6. ROUTE FROM SHIRAZ TO BEHBAHAN. +-----------+---------------+ | Fursungs. | | +-----------+---------------+ | 5 | Jouyoum. | | | | | 4 | Kholar. | | | | | 3 | Deh Ali. | | | | | 3 | Pouli Dousack.| | | | | 3 | Pouli Mourd. | | | | | 5 | Fahleeyaun. | | | | | 4 | Seraub Seeah. | | | | | 3 | Bausht. | | | | | 8 | Dougoumbedan. | | | | | 8 | BEHBAHAN. | +-----------+---------------+ METEOROLOGICAL JOURNAL, KEPT AT BUSHIRE BY DR. JUKES, JUNE 1807. ------+---------+--------------+-------------------------------+ Day. | Hour. | Thermometer. | Wind and Weather. | ------+---------+--------------+-------------------------------+ June. | | | | 5th | 6 A. M. | -- |Cool breeze from the land. | | 1 P. M. | 90° |N. W. | | | | | 6th | 6 A. M. | -- |Haze. | | 2 P. M. | 91 |Fresh N. W. all the day[140] | | | | | 13th | 6 A. M. | 80 |Pleasant and more moderate. | | 2 P. M. | 84 |Evening hazy. | | | | | 14th | 6 A. M. | 80 |Very hazy. | | 1 P. M. | 84 |Light N. wind through the | | | | day.[141] | | | | | 15th | 5 A. M. | 80 |Light N. wind and very | | | | hazy. | | 2 P. M. | 85 | | | | | | 16th | 5 A. M. | 80 |Do. blowing rather fresh | | | | at night. | | 2 P. M. | 86 | | | | | | 17th | 5 A. M. | 80 |Pleasant N. breeze. In the | | | | evening but little wind, | | 2 P. M. | 87 | and at night warmer than | | | | I have felt it for some | | | | time.[142] | | | | | 18th | 5 A. M. | 83 |Light N. wind; hazy during | | | | the morning. | | 2 P. M. | 89 |Fresh from the N. W. during | | | | the evening. | | | | | 19th | 5 A. M. | 84 |Rather fresh from the N. W. | | 4 P. M. | 90 |At night strong from the | | | | N. W. | | | | | 20th | 5 A. M. | 83 |Fresh: at night fresher: | | 3 P. M. | 86 | since the N. W. begun on | | | | the 18th, it has constantly | | | | blown harder during the | | | | night; and somewhat lulled | | | | during the day. This evening | | | | extremely hazy, and | | | | at sun-set, the sun quite | | | | obscured.[143] | | | | | 21st | 5 A. M. | 83 |Light N. air: fresh at | | 4 P. M. | 87 | night and exceedingly | | | | hazy. | | | | | 22d | 5 A. M. | 83 |Do.: at sun-set atmosphere | | 3 P. M. | 87 | clearer: night serene. | | | | | 23d | 5 A. M. | 84 |Calm, and the warmest morning | | | | in the season, light W. | | | | breeze during the day. The | | | | island of _Kharrack_ | | | | distinctly seen from the | | | | plain, and from Concord | | | | lodge.[144] | | | | | 24th | 5 A. M. | 83 |Light N. W. hazy. | | 3 P. M. | 87 | | | | | | 25th | 5 A. M. | 84 |Do. | | 3 P. M. | 88 |At night, light breeze from | | | | the land. | | | | | 26th | 6 A. M. | 84 |Warm morning: hazy. | | 3 P. M. | 89 | | | | | | 27th | 5 A. M. | 83 |Light N. W. | | 3 P. M. | 88 |Pleasant: cool breeze at night | | | | from the land. | | | | | 28th | 5 A. M. | 83 |N. breeze. Extremely warm | | 2 P. M. | 91 | at night: breeze from the | | | | southward. | | | | | 29th | 5 A. M. | 85 |Calm, and very warm.[145] | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | July. | | | | 3d | 5 A. M. | 85 |N. light: very hazy morning. | | 2 P. M. | 91 | | | | | | 4th | 5 A. M. | 84 |North: cool breeze from the | | 3 P. M. | 92 | land at day-break. | | | | | 5th | 5 A. M. | 85 |N. warm in the morning. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 6th | 5 A. M. | 85 |South; in the evening the | | 3 P. M. | 95 | south W. sprung up. | | | | | 7th | 5 A. M. | 84 |South, light: night very | | 3 P. M. | 95 | close. 98 in the country. | | | | | 8th | 5 A. M. | 83 |North: land breeze cool at | | | | day-break. | | 2 P. M. | 95½ |Sun set very thick: sun | | | | hazed. | | | | | 9th | 5 A. M. | 91 |North; fresh. | | 2 P. M. | 93½ | | | | | | 10th | 5 A. M. | 90 |North: pleasant; very hazy. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 11th | 5 A. M. | 89 |North all day; at night, | | 3 P. M. | 93½ | breeze from the land: very | | | | hazy. | | | | | 12th | 5 A. M. | 89 |N. light: very warm at night. | | 3 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 13th | 5 A. M. | 92 |S. light; great haze. Sun | | 2 P. M. | 95 | seen only half an hour after | | | | it was risen. | | | | | 14th | 5 A. M. | 89 |W. light; hazy, close, and | | 2 P. M. | 96 | somewhat cloudy. | | | | | 15th | 5 A. M. | 90 |N. light; great haze: cool | | 2 P. M. | 95½ | on account of the north | | | | breeze. | | | | | 16th | 5 A. M. | 92 |North: hazy. | | 3 P. M. | 96 | | | | | | 17th | 5 A. M. | 91 |North: sun set cloudy. Night | | 2 P. M. | 96 | close. | | | | | 18th | 5 A. M. | 90 | S. E.--during the day S. W. | | 2 P. M. | 96 | Heavy dew. | | | | | 19th | 5 A. M. | 89 | N. W. great dew at night. | | 3 P. M. | 96 | | | | | | 20th | 5 A. M. | 90 | South; fresh; hazy. At Mr. | | 3 P. M. | 96 | BRUCE’S house 100, | | | | very close. | | | | | 21st | 5 A. M. | 90 | South; oppressively hot. | | 3 P. M. | 96 | | | | | | 22d | 5 A. M. | 89 | S. W. fresh. | | 2 P. M. | 96 | | | | | | 23d | 5 A. M. | 89 | S. W. These southerly | | 3 P. M. | 96 | winds are unusual. | | | | | 24th | 5 A. M. | 89 | S. W. very hazy. | | 2 P. M. | 96 | | | | | | 25th | 5 A. M. | 88 | South West. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 26th | 5 A. M. | 87 | S. W. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 27th | 5 A. M. | 87 | S. W. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 28th | 5 A. M. | 88 | S. W. | | 2 P. M. | 96 | | | | | | 29th | 5 A. M. | 88 | S. W. light; very close, and | | 2 P. M. | 96 | oppressive. | | | | | 30th | 5 A. M. | 90 | Greater heat than yesterday. | | 2 P. M. | 98 | Yet it blew N. and we did | | | | not feel the heat so much. | | | | | Aug. | | | | 1st | 5 A. M. | 91 | North; light fresh. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 2d | 5 A. M. | 91 | N. fresh. | | 2 P. M. | 96 | | | | | | 3d | 5 A. M. | 90 | N. fresh. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 5th | 5 A. M. | 89 | N. cooler in the day, but | | 2 P. M. | 94 | closer at night. | | | | | 6th | 5 A. M. | 89 | N. Atmosphere clearer. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | Mountains visible. | | | | | 7th | 5 A. M. | 89 | North. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 8th | 5 A. M. | 88 | N. strong. Early at night | | 2 P. M. | 9 | wind from the south. | | | | | 9th | 5 A. M. | 88 | N. W. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 10th | 5 A. M. | 87 | North. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 11th | 5 A. M. | 87 | Rather south. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 12th | 5 A. M. | 87 | S. W. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 13th | 5 A. M. | 88 | N. W.; extremely hazy. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 14th | 5 A. M. | 88 | N.; at night light E. breeze. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 15th | 5 A. M. | 86 | S. during the day. At night | | 2 P. M. | 94 | cooler than for three months| | | | past. | | | | | 16th | 5 A. M. | 87 | S. W. great dew at night. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 17th | 5 A. M. | 88 | N. W. in the evening. Morning | | 2 P. M. | 95 | calm; and oppressive heat. | | | | | Aug. | | | | 19th | 5 A. M. | 90 |N. breeze. Nights cool and | | 2 P. M. | 95 | pleasant. | | | | | 20th | 5 A. M. | 87 |N. W. hazy. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 21st | 5 A. M. | 84 |Cold morning. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 22d | 5 A. M. | 82 |N. W. unusually cold for | | 2 P. M. | 92 | the season, in the morning: | | | | saw the mountains. | | | | | 23d | 5 A. M. | 83 |Saw the mountains. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 24th | 5 A. M. | 84 |Colds becoming frequent, | | 2 P. M. | 93 | from the cold nights. | | | | | 25th | 5 A. M. | 83 |S. Dew at night. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 26th | 5 A. M. | 85 |S. Heavy dew at night. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 27th | 5 A. M. | 83 |S. W.; very hazy and great | | 2 P. M. | 93 | dew. | | | | | 28th | 5 A. M. | 82 |Evening and morning, thick | | 2 P. M. | 92 | fog. During the day S. | | | | breeze. | | | | | 29th | 5 A. M. | 85 |S. W. Oppressive day. | | 2 P. M. | 93½ | | | | | | 30th | 5 A. M. | 87 |S. W. Warm and oppressive: | | 2 P. M. | 94 | hazy. | | | | | Sept. | | | | 1st | 5 A. M. | 83 |South. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 2d | 5 A. M. | 85 |S. W. Dew at night. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 3d | 5 A. M. | 86 |S. W. Hazy. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 4th | 5 A. M. | 86 |S. W. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 5th | 5 A. M. | 86 |S. W. | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 6th | 5 A. M. | 85 | | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 7th | 5 A. M. | 84 | | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 8th | 5 A. M. | 84 |N. light winds. | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 9th | 5 A. M. | 84 |West; light; very warm | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 10th | 5 A. M. | 88 |N. W.; light | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 11th | 5 A. M. | 83 | | | 2 P. M. | 94 | | | | | | 12th | 5 A. M. | 85 | | | 2 P. M. | 95 | | | | | | 13th | 5 A. M. | 85 |S. Evening cloudy. Oppressive | | 2 P. M. | 95 | heat. | | | | | 14th | 5 A. M. | 86 |S.; a very unusual day at | | 2 P. M. | 95 | this season. Wind increased | | 5 P. M. | 84 | from the S. during the | | | | morning, and blew hard | | | | till two P. M.; lulled quarter| | | | of an hour; shifted to | | | | the N.; blew very hard, | | | | with lightning and thunder. | | | | Rain; dull; and at five | | | | P. M. vast column of sand | | | | from the E. announced a | | | | gale. The thermometer | | | | sunk eleven degrees. Rain, | | | | thunder, and immense | | | | lightning. Night: pleasant | | | | breeze during the night, | | | | from S. and E. | | | | | 15th | 5 A. M. | 83 |S. fresh; cool and pleasant. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 16th | 5 A. M. | 83 |N. light. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 17th | 5 A. M. | 83 |N. W. hazy. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 19th | 5 A. M. | 84 |N. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 20th | 5 A. M. | 83 |N. pleasant. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 21st | 5 A. M. | 83 |N. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 22d | 5 A. M. | 83 |N. 9 P. M. cool E. breeze. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 23d | 5 A. M. | 82 |N. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 24th | 5 A. M. | 81 |N. fresh: mountain clear: | | 2 P. M. | 93 | land wind. | | | | | 25th | 5 A. M. | 82 |N. Fresh at night: hard from | | 2 P. M. | 93 | the N. W. | | | | | 26th | 5 A. M. | 85 |N. W. More moderate. | | 2 P. M. | 93 | | | | | | 27th | 5 A. M. | 82 |N. _Baad-e-Suba_, cool from | | 2 P. M. | 93 | the mountains. | | | | | 28th | 5 A. M. | 80 |East. Cool. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 29th | 5 A. M. | 80 |S. light. | | 2 P. M. | 90 | | | | | | 30th | 5 A. M. | 80 |S. Close. | | 2 P. M. | 90 | | | | | | Oct. | | | | 1st | 5 A. M. | 80 |Westerly; thick fog and | | 2 P. M. | 90 | extremely wet. Ground | | | | moist, like as with rain. | | | | | 2d | 5 A. M. | 79 |N. W. | | 2 P. M. | 91 | | | | | | 3d | 5 A. M. | 80 |N. W. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 4th | 5 A. M. | 80 |N. fresh: comet, due W. of | | 2 P. M. | 90 | Bushire. 7 P. M. 40 and | | | | 50 above the horizon. | | | | | 5th | 5 A. M. | 80 |N. fresh: mountains clear. | | 2 P. M. | 91 | | | | | | 6th | 5 A. M. | 81 |N. fresh. | | 2 P. M. | 92 | | | | | | 7th | 5 A. M. | 81 |N. fresh: light. | | 2 P. M. | 91 | | | | | | 8th | 5 A. M. | 81 |S. light and warm: | | 2 P. M. | 92 | considerable dew at night. | | | | | 9th | 5 A. M. | 81 |S. W. light _Baad-e-Suba_. | | 2 P. M. | 91 | | | | | | 10th | 5 A. M. | 80 |W. in the day. _Baad-e-Suba_ | | 2 P. M. | 90 | and dews. | | | | | 11th | 5 A. M. | 79 |Do. | | 2 P. M. | 90 | | | | | | 12th | 5 A. M. | 80 |S. E. cool breeze. | | 2 P. M. | 90 | | Oct. | | | | 13th | 5 A. M. | 79 | N. W. fresh and cold. | | 2 P. M. | 85 | | | | | | 14th | 5 A. M. | 78 | N. cool and pleasant. | | 2 P. M. | 85 | | | | | | 15th | 5 A. M. | 78 | N. pleasant. | | 2 P. M. | 84½ | | | | | | 16th | 5 A. M. | 75 | N. hazy mountains. | | 2 P. M. | 85 | | | | | | 17th | 5 A. M. | 74 | N. pleasant. | | 2 P. M. | 84 | | | | | | 18th | 5 A. M. | 74 | East and north. | | 2 P. M. | 84 | | | | | | 19th | 5 A. M. | 73 | North. | | 2 P. M. | 84 | | | | | | 20th | 5 A. M. | 75 | East A. M.; then southerly | | 2 P. M. | 87 | and warmer. | | | | | 21st | 5 A. M. | 74 | East and north. | | 2 P. M. | 85 | | | | | | 22d | 5 A. M. | 72 | North: east and west in the | | 2 P. M. | 86 | morning. | | | | | 23d | 5 A. M. | 74 | E. heavy clouds and little | | 2 P. M. | 86 | rain. | | | | | 24th | 5 A. M. | 76 | East. Clouds; heavy clouds | | 5 P. M. | 86 | to the W. and thunder: | | | | warm. | | | | | 25th | 5 A. M. | 78 | N. fresh. | | 2 P. M. | 85 | | | | | | 26th | 5 A. M. | 76 | N. fresh. Cloudy and pleasant | | 2 P. M. | 84 | | | | | | 27th | 5 A. M. | 75 | N. | | | | | 28th | - - | -- | Went a hunting to the 12th | | | | November. | ------+---------+--------------+--------------------------------+ METEOROLOGICAL JOURNAL, KEPT AT BUSHIRE, NOVEMBER, 1808. ------+---------+--------------+---------------------------------- Day. | Hour. | Thermometer. | Wind and Weather. ------+---------+--------------+---------------------------------- | | | Nov. | | | 2d | 6 A. M.| 69° | S. E. light clouds from the S. | 12 | 84 | Clouds still rising. | 10 P. M.| 77 | Sky wild. Foxes tails: an | | | extraordinary halo round | | | the moon: sultry. | | | 3d | 6 A. M.| 70 | S. E. clouds all over, but | 12 | 84 | light. Very sultry, and | | | wind hot, though not clammy. | 10 P. M.| 80 | | | | 4th | 6 A. M.| 74 | S. E. clouds all over: haze; | 12 | 84 | wind light in the morning, | | | but increased very strong | | | at noon. | 10 P. M.| 81 | Fell in the evening very | | | heavy: clouds in the N. W. | | | with a little lightning. | | | Calm. | | | 5th | 6 A. M.| 65 | N. E. At about three this | 12 | 76 | morning it blew a furious | 10 P. M.| 77 | gale from the N. E. and | | | W. with much thunder and | | | lightning. The rain fell | | | at about half past four, and | | | the wind subsided; it produced | | | a charming coolness | | | in the air. At 12 wind | | | East. | | | 6th | 6 A. M.| 74 | W. clear sky, fresh and cold. | | | Fell ill, and could not observe. | | | 7th | | | Very clear weather: _Halila | | | Peak_, and mountains, seen | | | remarkably plain. | | | 8th | 6 A. M.| 68 | Calm, and rather hazy: light | | | clouds. | 12 | 75 | | 10 P. M.| 76 | Fresh night. | | | 9th | 7 A. M.| 73 | Southerly. Clouds all over, | | | with appearance of rain. | 12 | 80 | Very sultry. | 11 P. M.| 73 | Clear sky and a pleasant | | | evening. | | | 10th | 7 A. M.| 73 | Calm. Fine clear morning. | 12 | 80 | Sultry day. | 10 P. M.| 77 | | | | 11th | 7 A. M.| 73 | Southerly. Sultry: cloudy to | 12 | 83 | the north, and at sun-set | 11 P. M.| 79 | large clouds over _Halila | | | Peak_ emitting much lightning. | | | At about 7 P. M. it | | | blew fresh from the clouds, | | | and at about ten o’clock in | | | the morning a most violent | | | storm of thunder and lightning | | | from the N. W. with | | | much rain. | | | 12th | 12 Noon.| 76 | W. very fresh. Still many | | | clouds. | 10 P. M.| 74 | N. W. clear evening; at sun-set | | | the sky looked rainy | | | with clouds all over. | | | 13th | 6 A. M.| 67 | N. beautiful clear weather, | | | and cold. | 1 P. M.| 73 | N. | 11 P. M.| 70 | N. fine clear night; cold: | | | slept with a blanket and | | | coverlid. | | | 14th | 6 A. M.| 64 | N. fine clear weather: saw | | | the first snows on the N. E. | | | mountains. | 12 | 71 | N. W. | 11 P. M.| 72 | Clear weather. | | | 15th | 6 A. M.| 64 | N. W. delightful morning, | | | fresh and pleasant. | 12 | 72 | Some few clouds at the close | 11 P. M.| 73 | of the evening. The night | | | quite clear. The stars shining | | | with peculiar brilliancy: | | | Orion, Arcturus, and the | | | Pleiades quite splendid. | | | 16th | 6 A. M.| 65 | Calm. Fine morning. | 11 P. M.| 75 | Light airs. Warm. | | | 17th | 6 A. M.| 67 | Light airs, and calms. | 12 P. M.| 75 | Cloudy. | | | 18th | 6 A. M.| 68 | Warm and pleasant. | 12 | 77 | S. if any thing, cloudy. | 11 P. M.| 74 | Wind hot, and strong; appearances | | | of a southerly | | | wind. | | | 19th | 6 A. M.| 67 | N. very light breeze. | 12 | 76 | W. in the evening much appearances | 11 P. M.| 76 | of blowing, and | | | many clouds. | | | 20th | 6 A. M.| 67 | N. fine clear morning. | 1 P. M.| 75 | Light breeze. | | | 21st | 7 A. M.| 67 | N. W. fresh: night cold, but | | | very clear. | 12 | 74 | N. W. | | | 22d | 7 A. M.| 65 | N. W. cold and bracing. | 12 | 74 | N. W. warmer. | 11 P. M.| 67 | | | | 23d | 7 A. M.| 63 | N. W. calm weather. | 11 P. M.| 67 | N. W. light breeze. | | | 24th | 6 A. M.| 63 | S. W. very cloudy, and appearance | 12 | 75 | of rain. Clouds | 10 P. M.| 73 | gathered at sun set in the | | | N. W. quarter. | | | 25th | 6 A. M.| 70 | S. E. morning very thick, | 1 P. M.| 67 | and lightning in N. W. | 10 P. M.| 68 | Clouds all over portending | | | storm and wind: N. breeze. | | | 26th | 6 A. M.| 67 | S. E. blew very fresh in the | 12 | 73 | night from the N. E. and | | | N. W. with rain and occasional | | | thunder: in the morning | | | blew fresh, and many | | | clouds. N. W. | 10 P. M.| 67 | N. W. | | | 27th | 7 A. M.| 63 | N. W. very cold; slept with | | | two blankets. | 11 P. M.| 65 | Ditto. | | | 28th | 6 A. M.| 60 | S. | 11 A. M.| 66 | S. W. and shifting about. | 11 P. M.| 67 | S. W. clouds all over, and | | | appearances of rain. | | | 29th | 6 A. M.| 60 | Snow seen very plain. | 2 P. M.| 69 | | 10 P. M.| 67 | S. W. | | | 30th | 7 A. M.| 64 | Southerly. Clouds all over: | | | at sun-set a cloud covered | | | _Halila Peak_: at night | | | clouds rising from the N. E. | | | Dec. | | | 1st | 7 A. M.| 64 | Westerly. Calm and serene. | 2 P. M.| 73 | | 11 P. M.| 70 | | | | 2d | 7 A. M.| 65 | Easterly. Fresh from the | | | mountains. | 2 P. M.| 73 | S. at noon, fine weather. | 11 P. M.| 70 | S. night clearer: light clouds, | | | evening hot. | | | 3d | 7 A. M.| 65 | East. Light breeze. | 2 P. M.| 73 | Westerly at noon; warm day. | 11 P. M.| 70 | Warm: evening pleasant. | | | 4th | 7 A. M.| 66 | East. | 2 P. M.| 70 | S. W. strong at 10 o’clock: | | | heavy clouds. | 11 P. M.| 74 | Clouds in the evening: gathered | | | in the northward, | | | dispersed with a light squall | | | and lightning. Clouds from | | | the southward at eleven at | | | night. | | | 5th | 7 A. M.| 70 | S. a light squall at night: | 2 P. M.| 73 | morning cloudy, but cleared | | | up after. | | | 6th | 7 A. M.| 65 | N. fine clear weather. | 2 P. M.| 70 | | 11 P. M.| 68 | | | | 7th | 7 A. M.| 64 | E. in the morning, wind from | 2 P. M.| 70 | the land; delightful clear | 11 P. M.| 68 | weather. | | | 8th | 7 A. M.| 64 | N. rather calm. | 11 P. M.| 72 | A most charming moon light. | | | 9th | 7 A. M.| 74 | Calm. A warm day. Very | 11 P. M.| 72 | fine sun-rise and sun-set. | | | 10th | 7 A. M.| 69 | N. W. strong Cold: haze. | 1 P. M.| 70 | Continued to blow fresh. | 11 P. M.| 67 | | | | 11th | 7 A. M.| 61 | Cold morning. | 2 P. M.| 69 | S. W. very light. | | | 12th | 6 A. M.| 61 | Cold. | 2 P. M.| 66 | N. W. light. | 11 P. M.| 64 | | | | 13th | 7 A. M.| 60 | East. Fine morning. Haze | | | over the mountains. | 11 P. M.| 65 | | | | 14th | 7 A. M.| 59 | Northerly. Very fine clear | 1 P. M.| 65 | weather, and cold. | | | 15th | 7 A. M.| 59 | Clear weather. | 11 P. M.| 63 | S. W. sprung up, with a haze | | | all over. Warm. | | | 17th | 9 A. M.| 65 | _Alichangee._--S. W. Great | | | clouds in the evening portending | | | storm: during the | | | day very warm. | | | 19th | 6 A. M.| 65 | S. Pleasant day. Great haze, | 2 P. M.| 70 | and the mountains just | | | looming. | 11 P. M.| 60 | A charming breeze. | | | 20th | 7 A. M.| 54 | Fine clear morning. | | | _Borazjoon._ | | | 21st | 8 A. M.| 57 | | 1 P. M.| 66 | Dead calm under the mountain: | | | hot wind sprung up, | | | and curled up books, paper | | | and ivory instruments. | | | 22d | 6 A. M.| 51 | _Daulakee._--This place, | | | situated under the mountains, | | | is reckoned hotter than | | | _Borazjoon_. | | | 23d | 6 A. M.| 51 | _Khisht._--S. cloudy all over. | 12 | 61 | _Khaumauridge._--Latitude | | | by meridional observation, | | | 29°. 33´. 55´´. | 8 A. M.| 56 | Fine clear night. Orion more | | | beautiful than ever. | | | 24th | 6 A. M.| 44 | Wind from the E. very cold. | 9 P. M.| 54 | _Kauzeroon._--Clear and beautiful | | | weather. | | | 25th | 6 A. M.| 42 | | | | 26th | 6 A. M.| 40 | E. cold. | 3 P. M.| 56 | Vale of _Abdoui_. | 8 P. M.| 45 | Light clouds. | | | 27th | 7 A. M.| 39 | Very cold: fires in our tents. | | | Great coats. | 2 P. M.| 44 | _Desht-e-arjun._--West. Very | | | cold: snow in the mountains, | | | falling from very thick | | | clouds a little on the plain. | | | 28th | 7 P. M.| 34 | West. Worsted stockings | | | and three blankets. | | | 29th | 7 P. M.| 30 | _Khoné Zenioun._--Freezing | | | in the tents with a fire in | | | them. | 2 P. M.| 47 | _Bagh shah Cheragh._--West. | | | Snow fell, and water strongly | | | frozen. | | | 30th | 2 P. M.| 45 | _Shiraz._--Fine clear weather. INDEX A _Abadéh_, village of, p. 150 ABBAS, SHAH, p. 163. 165, 166. 168. 175. 180. 213. 267, 268, 269. 271. 287. 290 ABBAS MIRZA, the Heir Apparent of Persia, p. 109. 241, 242. 252. 266 --character and anecdotes, p. 279-84. 303. 307. 366 _Abdoui_, valley of, p. 93 ABDUL ASSIZ (SAOOD IBN ABDOOL UZZEER) chief of the _Wahabees_, p. 222 ABDULLA AGA, _Musselim_ of _Bussorah_, p. 12 ABDULLA AGA, a rebel _Courd_, p. 310. 315 ABDULLA KHAN, _pro-Mehmandar_, p. 122 ABDULLA RESOUL, _Sheik_ of _Bushire_, p. 10, 11, 12 --history of, p. 15-28 _Abhar_, town of, p. 256 _Aderbigian_, silver mines, p. 238 --boundaries enlarged, p. 266 --revenue, p. 284 Administration of the provinces of Persia, p. 49 --of the districts, p. 235 --offices sold, p. 237 Adventure at _Pool Dallauk_, p. 181 --at _Alwar_, p. 318 _Affghans_, p. 33. 50. 153. 155. 168 _Affshars_, p. 240 _Aga_, a Tartar title, p. 235 AGA BESHEER, the Queen’s chief eunuch, p. 104. 118 _Aga Kemal_, village of, p. 176 AGA KHAN, p. 148 AGA MAHOMED KHAN, King of Persia, p. 181. 211. 214. 218. 221. 238. 239. 242. 267. 290 _Agajik_, village of, p. 305 _Agatch_, Turkish measure, p. 305 _Agatch degnis_, “Sea of Trees,” p. 359 _Agi_, river of, p. 293 Agriculture, at _Bushire_, p. 60. 78 --in _Aderbigian_, p. 300-1 --in Asia Minor, p. 331, 332. 334. 339 _Agri dagh_ or _Ararat_, p. 306 _Ahmadiéh_, village of, p. 76 _Ak Caléh_, p. 326. 330 _Ala dagh_, mountains near _Diadin_, p. 311 _Albores_, mountains near _Teheran_, p. 177. 183. 227, 228 _Ali Capi_ gate, at _Ispahan_, p. 168 _Alichangee_, village of, p. 71 ALI MIRZA, Prince of _Shiraz_ --See HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA _Ali Shah_, village near _Tabriz_, p. 293 _Ali Shah_, _ark_ of, at _Tabriz_, p. 278 _Aliverdy Khan_, bridge of, p. 213. 268 _Alwar_, adventure with the Aga of, p. 318 _Amasia_, approaches to, p. 347 --chambers in the rock, p. 348 --people, 349 _Ameenabad_, p. 154 _Ameen-ed-Dowlah_, p. 185. 190. 195, 196. 199. 201. 204. 205. 211. 213. 239. 250. 251 Animals (of the _Dashtistan_) p. 62-7 --combats of, p. 119, 120. 209 Antelope, eyes of the, p. 369 Aqueducts, ancient, at _Shapour_, p. 86 --at _Persepolis_, p. 131. 135 _Arabah_, wheeled cart, p. 300, 315. 326 _Arab_ tribes on the coast of Persia, p. 16, 50 --at _Shooster_, p. 252 --throughout the kingdom, p. 240 --pirates, p. 371 _Ararat_, mountain of, p. 306. 308. 315 “_Arctomys_” of LINNÆUS, p. 260 _Araxes_, river, now the _Bend-emir_, p. 124 --another, now the _Arras_, p. 317 _Ark_, fortified palace, p. 207. 225. 259 _Armaghanéh_, village of, p. 262 Arched roofs at _Derees_, p. 85 --at _Abadéh_, p. 151 --at _Mesjid Madré Suleiman_, p. 146 Armenian clergy in _Ispahan_, p. 161 --churches at _Julfa_, p. 168 --merchant, p. 225 --people at _Arz-roum_, p. 322 --inscription, p. 329 ARRIAN, p. 146 _Arsingan_, p. 332 _Arubah_, cape, p. 3 “_Arz-beg_,” lord of requests, p. 69. 76 _Arz-roum_, p. 320 --ancient and present state, p. 322 ASHREFF, the second _Affghan_ king, p. 168. 175 _Ashreff_, town of, p. 288 _Ashtola_, island of, p. 4 ASHER KHAN, Persian Embassador in Paris, p. 334 Asparagus, wild, p. 330 “Asses Ears,” points of land, p. 9 _Asterabad_, p. 288 Astrology of _Bushire_, p. 69. 73 --of _Tabriz_, p. 291 _Atesh Gau_, p. 234 ATTABEK SHAH, p. 102 _Auk-kend_, village of, p. 264 B “_Backshish_,” vails, p. 323 _Bagh Shah Cheragh_, p. 97 _Baghwarder_, latitude near it, p. 152 _Bahram_, fort of King, p. 150 _Bahrein_, p. 52, 53. 62 _Baibort_, district of, p. 331 BAIRAM ALI KHAN CADJAR, p. 100. 108. 122 _Bairam_, feast of the, p. 40 --_Corban Bairam_, p. 154 “_Baklavah_,” cake of honey, paste, &c. p. 324 _Bakouba_, p. 284 _Baktegian_, lake of, p. 124 _Baktiar_ tribe, p. 240. 242 --body guard of the Prince at _Shiraz_, p. 110 --mountains, p. 160 “_Balconah_,” customary present to an embassador, p. 35 _Balouches_, from _Crotchey_ to Cape _Monze_, p. 5. 49, 50 _Balouchestan_, p. 49 _Bang_, cape, p. 50 Barley, p. 262. 266 --open to the King’s people, p. 256 _Barnhill_, the, p. 7 _Bayazid_, city of, p. 306 _Bayrack_, p. 350 _Bazars_ of _Bushire_, p. 57 --of _Shiraz_, p. 102 --of _Ispahan_, p. 170 Beards in Persia, p. 166 --dyed, p. 231 --process of dying, p. 247 _Bebehan_, city of, p. 49 _Beglerbegs_, p. 49 --See p. 235 --of _Ispahan_, p. 160. 162. 172 _Benak_, spice plant, p. 92 _Bend-emir_, river, ancient _Araxes_, p. 51 --course of, p. 124 _Bendes_, p. 61 _Ben Gieul_, [of the _Euphrates_, see map] of the _Araxes_, p. 317. 326 _Bisgoush_, mountains of, p. 270 BLACKER, Lieutenant, p. 2 BLANKET, Admiral, p. 33 Body-Guard, of the King, p. 242 _Bokhara_, blue beards in, p. 247 --Silver from, p. 238 _Boli_, p. 357 --forest of, p. 358 _Bombay_, departure from, p. 2 _Bombareek_, cape and rock of, p. 6 Boots in Persia, p. 246 _Borazjoon_, village of, p. 76 _Bosnia_, native of, p. 324. 340 Bottle of sugar candy broken before the Envoy’s horse, p. 84. 97. 124 Bridges at _Ispahan_, p. 162. 213 Broad cloth, excellence of English, p. 355. _Brodies_ from _Monze_ to Cape _Jasques_, p. 5 BRUCE, Mr. Assistant Resident at _Bushire_, p. 10. 11. 32. 33. 37. 51. 52. 69. 206, 218 --sent to India, p, 219. 240 Buffaloes, p. 359 Bullion, price of in Persia, p. 238 _Bund-emir Timoor_, p. 124 --_Bund Kohrood_, p. 177 --at _Ispahan_, p. 213 BUONAPARTE, Treaty with Persia, p. 216 --conduct of the Persians, p. 251 --his hospital at _Malta_, p. 368 _Busheab_, island of, or _Khoshaub_, p. 7 --pearls on the shoal, p. 53 _Bushire_, arrival in the roads, p. 10 --landing in Persia, p. 12 --militia of, p. 13 --history of the _Sheik_ of, chap. ii. p. 15-28 --description of the town, p. 56-8 Bustard, p. 61. _Bustion_, cape, mine and fort at, p. 51 C _Cadjar_, dynasty of, p. 150 --tribe of, p. 241 CAMPBELL, Mr. Surgeon to the Mission, p. 2 Captives among the _Turcomans_, p. 289 _Cara-ainéh_, village of, p. 303 _Carahissar_, beautiful scenery, p. 334 _Caraja_, p. 332 _Carajalar_, p. 354 _Carajol_, p. 354 Caravanserai, p. 81, &c. --at _Yezdikhaust_, p. 153 --at _Maxhood Beggy_, p. 154 --at _Mayar_, p. 157 --at _Gez_, p. 175 --at _Saidabad_, p. 272 Carpets, Persian, p. 166 Caspian sea, p. 290 --ships on, p. 287 _Casvin_, city of, p. 253-4 _Catabee_, Persian dress, p. 99. 245 Causeway (of SHAH ABBAS), p. 287, 358, 360 Cavalcade, on the journey to _Teheran_, p. 69-70 _Ceylon_, pearl of, p. 53 _Chahar Bagh_, p. 162. 170 Chairs at _Ispahan_ like those of _Persepolis_, p. 162 CHAPPAN OGLU, p. 341. 346 _Chappow_, inroads of the Turcomans, p. 289 CHARDIN, p. 126. 129. 168, 169, 170-1. 206. 230, 243. 277 Charts, errors in the, Persian Gulph, HEATHER, p. 7 --MACCLUER, p. 9. 373 “_Charwarder_,” chief Muleteer, p. 70 “_Chatters_,” running footmen, p. 37. 69. 212. 246 _Chedaughee_, tribe of, p. 268 _Chehil-minar_, (_Persepolis_), p. 129 _Chehil-sitoon_ at _Ispahan_, p. 164 _Chehil-ten_ at _Shiraz_, p. 105 CHENAN, story of SHEIK, p. 105 _Chenar_ tree, p. 104, &c. Cherries in Asia Minor, p. 335. 338. 344 _Chiflik_, p. 330 “_Choppers_,” couriers, p. 64. 181 “_Chorbah_,” soup, p. 324 Christians, tombs of ancient, p. 329. 357 --retreats of, p. 240. 243 CHRYSOSTOM, _St. John_, p. 349 _Chubar_, town of, coast of _Mekran_, p. 5 Climates various in Persia, p. 49 --of _Bushire_, p. 61 --of _Teheran_, p. 227-9 --see Appendix Coals, in _Mazanderan_, p. 231 COARE, Mr. dies at _Bushire_, p. 47 _Coflan-kou_, mountain of, p. 267 Coinage in Persia, p. 238 _Comana Pontica_, p. 343 “_Conchas_,” long trays, p. 116 _Congoon_, town and _Sheik_ of, p. 7, 8. 49 --pearl bank, p. 55 _Constantinople_, splendour of the scene, p. 363 Cookery of the _Turcomans_, p. 289 Copper, trade in, at _Tocat_, p. 345 _Corbal_, p. 124 _Corban Bairam_, feast of, p. 154 CORBETT, Capt. H. M. S. _Nereide_, p. 2. 11 Cormorants on trees, p. 64 Cotton at _Hallila_, p. 59 --in Persia, 231 _Cotul_, p. 76 Court of Persia, ceremonies of, p. 286 Cow dung as fuel, p. 251. 272 Cranes, p. 305 Cufic inscription at _Reshire_, p. 59 --at _Rey_, p. 233 --at _Sultaniéh_, p. 258 --on the bridge over the _Kizzil-ozan_, p. 267 --at _Mama Khatoun_, p. 328 --at _Arz-roum_, p. 322 _Curdistan_ robbers, p. 303. 307. 310. 312. 315. 326, 327. 330 _Currimabad_, ancient _Corbiana_, p. 233 Cypresses at _Shiraz_, p. 103, 104 CYRUS? tomb of, p. 145 D Danish establishment in the Gulph of Persia, p. 51 _Darabgherd_, note, p. 124 _Dashtistan_, p. 16. 48. 76-7 _Dasti_, district of, p. 39. 51 _Daulakee_, p. 77, 78. 82. 160 DAVIS, Capt. GEORGE, H. M. S. _Sapphire_, p. 2. 44. 64 _Deerogha_, p. 82 _Dehnar_, p. 179 _Dehsis_, p. 261 _Deibeed_, p. 147 _Delhis_ of the Turkish army, p. 325. 327. 353-4 _Deli-baba_, village of, p. 315 _Demawend_, mountain of, p. 177. 183. 231 --fables connected with it, p. 232 “_Dereea Kulzum_,” the Caspian, p. 290 _Derees_, town of, p. 84, 85 _Dereyah_, capital of the _Wahabees_, p. 222 _Derveishes_, p. 32 (TALAMASH, as a _Derveish_, p. 33) 82. 104 _Dewan Khonéh_ at _Shiraz_, p. 108 --at _Ispahan_, p. 166 --at _Teheran_, p. 188 --at _Sultaniéh_, p. 260 “_Dherna_,” see note, p. 33 _Diadin_, town of, p. 309. 329 Diplomacy of Persia, p. 198-201 --publicity of, p. 216 _Diu_, Portuguese colours on the fort of, p. 2 Divers in the Pearl Fishery, p. 54 Division of time in Persia, p. 41 “_Dochter_” mountain, p. 93 Dog of the _Balouches_, p. 50 --_Kofla Dog_, p. 64 “_Dogoosheh_” slit cap, p. 150 “_Dolmah_,” p. 324 Dome of the mosque at _Sultaniéh_, p. 258 --domed buildings, p. 279 Dress of Persia, p. 243-8 “_Dungaree_” linen cloth, p. 26 _Durand_, guard house, p. 346. 357 Dutch painters in the service of SHAH ABBAS, p. 168 Duties of customs, p. 297 Dwarf wrestlers at _Shiraz_, p. 119 E Earthquakes at _Casvin_, p. 254 --at _Tabriz_, p. 277, 278 --at _Tasouj_, p. 297 “_Eels_” or tribes, p. 288 _Effendi_, p. 20 _Egmaun_, port of, p. 44. 373 _Elauts_, encampments of, p. 77. 231. 262. 301. 304. 308 --reception in their tents, p. 308-9 “_Elkhee chee_,” master of the mares, p. 304 EMIN AGA, Governor of _Arz-roum_, p. 323 --created a _Pacha_, p. 332 English letter from a Persian, p. 31 --compare, p. 203 Entertainments given to the Envoy by the new governor of _Bushire_, p. 73 --at _Shiraz_, by the Minister, p. 111-6 --by the _Mehmandar_, p. 118 --at _Ispahan_, by the _Beglerbeg_, p. 172 --at _Teheran_, by the Prime Minister, p. 194 --by the King, 207 --at _Tabriz_, by the son of the Minister, p. 285 --at _Arz-roum_, by the Governor, p. 323 --at _Caraja_, by the _Aga_, p. 333 Etiquettes of Persia, p. 285 _Euphrates_, sources of, p. 306 --eastern river, p. 309, 310, 311 --western, p. 325. 329 European dress and discipline introduced into Persia, p. 30. 32. 108. 184. 188. 207 Excavated rocks, p. 340. 343 Executioner, chief see _Nasakehee Bashee_ Extortion of the _Derveishes_, p. 32 F _Failee_ tribe, p. 240-2 _Fakir_, p. 194 “_Fall_” in HAFIZ, p. 229 _Farz_ or _Farsistan_, p. 7. 49 --administration of, p. 110 --frontier, p. 153 _Fasa_, _Bolouk_ and city of, p. 233 FATME, tomb of, at _Koom_, p. 180 --sister of HOSSEIN, p. 195 _Fauces Hyrcaniæ?_ p. 287 Female household at _Teheran_, p. 225 FERDOUSI, p. 186 _Ferosh Bashee_, p. 68. 70 FERRAJOULA KHAN, _Nasakchee Bashee_ of the King, p. 204. 207. 261 Filial respect in the East, see p. 111 --see at _Tabriz_, p. 286 Fire-altar, p. 121 Fire temple near _Persepolis_, p. 128 --at _Mesjid Madré Suleiman_, p. 146 Fire-works at _Shiraz_, p. 113 --at _Ispahan_, p. 172 --at _Teheran_, p. 207. 210 Fire-eater at _Shiraz_, p. 112 _Firman_ of Persia, p. 231 _Firouzabad_, ruins of, p. 234 Fleet of the _Imaum_ of _Muscat_, p. 7, 8 --of the _Joasmee_ pirates, p. 44 Fly-flap, p. 126 Fox, white, at _Bushire_, p. 64 “_Frangistoun_,” Europe, p. 193. 253 _Frat_, see _Euphrates_ Frenchman passing for a _Derveish_, p. 33 French in Persia, p. 10. 30. 42. 190. 123. 212 --French treaty, p. 216 --dismissed from Persia, p. 218. 220 Fruit at _Bushire_, p. 61 --at _Teheran_, p. 230 _Fursung_, p. 171, &c. --see p. 149 G GALEN, authority of, in Persia, p. 230 GALLEY, Mr. Resident at _Bushire_, p. 50 GARDANNE, General, p. 42. 219, 220 Gardens in Persia; at _Kauzeroon_, p. 92 --at _Shiraz_, p. 105, &c. Gate of the palace, business transacted at, p. 216 _Gauzir-seng_, town near _Teheran_, p. 251-2 Genoese, works of the, p. 352 _Geredéh_, p. 356 _Germania_, _Kermania_, or _Carmania_, p. 49 “_Germesir_,” p. 49 --again, p. 270 _Geroustan_, mountains of, p. 267 _Gez_, near _Ispahan_, p. 174 _Ghilan_, silk of, p. 231 --language of, p. 288 _Giaours_, works of the, at _Arz-roum_, p. 322 --again, p. 337 “_Gika_,” ornament of rank, p. 208 _Girid_, game of, p. 77 _Gombroon_, (_Bender-Abassay_, p. 31), p. 51 _Goudar_, tribe of, p. 288 “_Goulams_,” slaves of the King’s body guard, p. 243 _Goush Khonéh_ at _Ispahan_, p. 172 _Grabs_, Arab vessels, p. 8 Grampus, possibly the whale of ARRIAN, p. 50 Grass, common property in Persia, p. 339 Greek church at _Arz-roum_, p. 322 --inscription at _Nakshi Rustam_, &c. _Guadel_, cape and town, p. 4. 50 _Guebreabad_, p. 177 _Guebres_ in Persia, p. 234 _Gulistan_, p. 213 Gum Tragacanth, p. 231 _Gumuck Khonéh_, p. 332 “_Gumrukchee_,” Collector of the Customs, p. 323 _Guzarat_, land of the, p. 2 H HAFIZ, tomb of, p. 104 --his odes sung, p. 114 --Derveish of the tomb, p. 143 --superstition connected with his works, p. 229 _Haji Hamza_, p. 352 _Hakim_, the governor of a city, p. 235 _Halissé_, crown lands of Persia, p. 238 _Hallilah_ peak, p. 9 --village of, p. 59 _Halys_, river, p. 352 _Hamadan_ (_Ecbatana_, p. 233) Prince of, p. 208 _Hamamlee_, p. 355 HANNIBAL, tomb of, p. 352 _Haooz Sultan_, p. 182 _Harem_, the _Podargus_ of ARRIAN, p. 52 _Harem_, royal, at _Ispahan_, p. 166 --at _Teheran_, p. 225 --supplied by the _Ameen-ed-dowlah_, p. 239 Hares eaten by the Persians, p. 230 “_Hasht-behesht._,” eight Paradises at _Ispahan_, p. 163 _Hassan Caléh_, p. 317-8 Hawks at _Bushire_, p. 64-5 Head dress in Persia, p. 246 “_Heft-ten_,” pleasure-house at _Shiraz_, p. 104 _Henna_, used in dying beards, p. 231 HERBERT, Sir THOMAS, p. 5, note, 137 Herring, from the Caspian, “King of Fishes,” p. 230 _Hieratemis_, of ARRIAN, p. 52 _Hodja_, schoolmaster, p. 333 Honey of _Kauzeroon_, p. 93 --of _Shiraz_ and _Teheran_, p. 230 “_Hoobara_,” bustard, p. 61. 65 Horse of the _Dashtistan_, &c. p. 62 --of the _Turcomans_, p. 62. 289 --character of the Arab and Persian horses, p. 63. 82 --races, p. 210 --horses painted, p. 210 --horsemanship of the Prince Royal, p. 280 --of the Persians and Turks, p. 281 Hospitality of the _Turcomans_, p. 289 HOSSEIN, ceremonies of the death of, p. 194-7, see p. 216 HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA, Prince of _Shiraz_, p. 109. 117. 192 --his present to the King, p. 208 Hot wind on the coast of _Mekran_, p. 6 --in the Gulph of Persia, p. 7 Hot springs at _Hassan Kaleh_, p. 318 --at _Ilija_, p. 325 --near _Kuley Hissar_, p. 338 Household of the King of Persia, p. 217. 239 --female, p. 225 _Hummocks_ of _Kenn_, Gulph of Persia, p. 9 I-J JAFFER ALI KHAN, English Agent at _Shiraz_, p. 29 --English letter from, p. 31 --character of, p. 43 --see p. 189. 192 JAFFER KHAN, King of Persia, p. 16 “_Jan-baz_,” one who plays away his soul, p. 242 _Janik_, port of, p. 338. 341 _Janizaries_, p. 31 _Jasques_, cape, p. 6. 48, 49. 124 “_Jelowdars_,” grooms, p. 64. 69 _Jemidars_ of the Envoy’s guard, p. 194 JEMSHEED, p. 125. 129. 140. 167 JEMSHEED’S _Harem_, p. 142 JENGHIZ KHAN, portrait of, p. 167 --took _Rey_, p. 233 --plundered _Sultaniéh_, p. 259 _Jerboa_, p. 64 --description of, p. 65-7 Jewels of the King, p. 214 “_Jezaerchi_,” men who use blunderbusses, p. 30 _Joasmee_ Pirates capture the _Sylph_, are defeated by the _Nereide_, p. 44-6. 58 --destroyed, see note at the end, p. 371 JONES, Sir HARFORD, Envoy Extraordinary, _passim_, see conduct throughout the negociations, p. 199-203 _Jooyum_, district of tobacco, p. 19 JOUANNIN, M. p. 220. 264. 280 JUKES, Dr. p. 37. 52. 69. 229 _Julfa_, suburb of _Ispahan_, p. 168 JUSUFF, _Pacha_, Grand Vizier, p. 336. 338. 341 IBRAHIM, _Hajee_, Vizier of AGA MAHOMED KHAN, p. 211. 210 --put to death by the present King, p. 221 IBRAHIM PACHA, governor of _Bayazid_, p. 306 Ice (reservoir of) at _Shiraz_, p. 123 --at _Teheran_, p. 228 Ichthyophagi, on the coast of _Mekran_, p. 50 _Ilija_, warm springs at, p. 325 _Imaum_, parish priest, p. 333 Indian figures at _Shapour_, p. 90 Indigo in Persia, p. 231 Inscriptions at _Tahrie_, p. 51 --at _Reshire_, p. 59 --at _Shapour_, p. 87 --at _Nakshi Rustam_, p. 126-7 --gilt at _Persepolis_, p. 137 --at _Mesjed Madré Suleiman_, p. 144 --at _Rey_, p. 233 --at _Sultaniéh_, p. 258, see p. 263. 267 --at _Mama Khatoun_, p. 328 --at _Cherkes_, p. 355 --at _Boli_, p. 357. see plate xxix Introduction to the Prince at _Shiraz_, p. 107 --to the King at _Teheran_, p. 186 --again, p. 214 Inundation, p. 213 _Irak_, animosity of the people of, to those of _Fars_, p. 157 _Iris_, river, now the _Tozzan Irmak_, p. 343 _Ish Agassi_, master of the ceremonies at _Shiraz_, p. 100. 108 --at _Teheran_, p. 188 _Isker Sou_, village of, p. 340 Islands in the Gulph of Persia, p. 6. 52 ISMAEL BEG, a favourite at _Shiraz_, p. 118. 120 ISMAEL BEG DAMGAUNEE, a favourite at the Court of _Teheran_, p. 216. 243 _Ismid_, ancient _Nicomedia_, p. 361 _Ispahan_, p. 159-173 --reception of the Envoy, p. 161 --extent of the city, p. 161 --general view, p. 169 --inundationat, p. 213 --people of, ridiculed at _Shiraz_, p. 114 --character of, p. 241 _Ispahanek_, village of, p. 157. 159 _Istakbal_, p. 76, &c. (see p. 85, at _Kauzeroon_,) at _Shiraz_, p. 97, &c. _Istakhar_, distinct from _Persepolis_, p. 129 K _Kabob_, roast meat, p. 324 --shops at _Ispahan_, p. 171 _Kaduck_, a finer cloth, p. 156. 231 _Kalaat_, dress of honour, p. 26 --at _Shiraz_, p. 120 --at _Teheran_, p. 216 --numbers distributed by the King, p. 205 _Kalaat poshoon_, near _Shiraz_, p. 123 _Kaleoon_, water pipe, p. 13, &c. 55 --_Kaleoon_ of state, at _Shiraz_, p. 109 --at _Teheran_, p. 214 _Kamchaucks_, the, p. 290 _Kamouncha_, a species of violin, p. 113, see p. 225 _Kanauts_, aqueducts, p. 147, &c. --making, p. 253 _Kara Colagh_, p. 330 _Kara guzlou_, tribe, p. 37. 122 “_Kara Khader_,” black tents, p. 288. 302 _Kara Sou_, river, p. 325 --another, p. 337 _Karatch_, village near _Teheran_, p. 250 _Kashan_, p. 177 --well at, p. 178, note --manufactures, p. 231 --character of the people, p. 241 _Katif, El_, pearl bank at, p. 53 _Kauzeroon_, p. 83. 92 _Kaveer_, p. 182 _Kelki Irmak_, p. 337. 342 _Kelounter_, the revenue collector, p. 235 _Kemeen_, village near _Persepolis_, p. 143 _Kenn_, Island, gold dust in the torrents, p. 52 KERIM KHAN, Regent of Persia, p. 101 --his works at _Shiraz_, p. 101-7. 221 --treasures of, p. 238 KERIM KHAN, bearer of the King’s letter, p. 95 _Ket Khoda_, the chief of a village, p. 235 _Khalcal_, district of, p. 284 _Khaloet Khanéh_, private hall of audience at _Teheran_, p. 188 --at _Sultaniéh_, p. 260 _Khan_, a military title, p. 235 _Khan_, a caravanserai, p. 345 _Khandaek_, village of, p. 359 --character of the people, p. 360 _Kharrack_, island of, p. 53, 54. 69 _Kharrack_, town on the coast of Persia, p. 51 _Khaumaridge_, p. 83, 84 KHELEEL KHAN, _Hajee_, p. 39 _Khenna_, a dye, p. 231. 247 _Khisht_, plain of, p. 80, 81 _Khoi_, city and plain of, p. 298 _Khona Kergaun_, p. 147 _Khonéh Khorréh_, p. 148 _Khorassan_, Prince of, p. 241, see _Mesched_, p. 208 _Khoresser_, (Gulph of Persia), p. 51 _Khorremderré_, p. 256 _Khosh amedeed_, p. 39. 96, compared with the _Khosh gueldin_ of the Turks, p. 313, see p. 189 _Khosh aub_ (see _Busheab_, p. 7), near _Bushire_, p. 76 _Khour-e-Shootur_, river, near _Koom_, p. 180 _Kinar-a-gird_, p. 182, 183. 250 King of Persia, marble throne, p. 188 --throne of the --peacock, p. 191 --appearance and character, p. 191 --dress, p. 192. 212. 214 --conversations, p. 190. 212. 215. 218, 219 --condescension and kindness to the Envoy, p. 219-20 _Kishmis_, Island of, Gulph of Persia, p. 6 _Kizzil Ozan_, river of, p. 266. 287 _Kohrood_, town and valley of, p. 176 _Komeshah_, p. 155 _Konar-a-tackta_, p. 81 “_Koola-frangee_,” Frank’s hat at _Shiraz_, p. 106. 117 --at _Teheran_, p. 214. 218 --at _Sultaniéh_, p. 260 _Koom_, city of, p. 179 --ruins a holy city, p. 180 --manufactures, p. 231 --see p. 289 _Koran_, village of, p. 251 _Kuley Hissar_, p. 337 _Kulzum_, see of, p. 290, note _Kummund_, noose used in war, p. 242 _Kunjurs_, daggers, p. 112, &c. 125. 245 KUPRIGLI, Grand Vizier, p. 358 “_Kymack_,” clouted cream, p. 326 L _Lacs_, tribe of the, p. 240 Landed property hereditary, p. 237 Landscape scenery, (see at _Tabriz_, p. 294,) at _Mama Khatoun_, p. 327 --at _Chiflik_, p. 330 --at _Carajar_, p. 331 --_Cara Hissar_, p. 334 --_Kuley Hissar_, p. 338 --near _Nicksar_, p. 341 --_Coja Hissar_, p. 353 --_Boli_. p. 359 _Langarood_, village of, p. 179 Language of Persia, p. 262. 271. 288 _Laristan_, p. 49 Latin inscription at _Armaghanéh_, p. 263 LE BRUN, p. 106. 129. 133, 134. 136. 243 Letters from JAFFER ALI KHAN in English, p. 31 --from the King of Persia, p. 95. 149. 183. 219 --from the King of England, p. 160 --from the Governor General, p. 219 --letter from a Persian to the Envoy in English, p. 203 LINNÆUS, note, p. 260 Lion of Persia, p. 62. 64 --at _Shiraz_, p. 120 --at _Teheran_, p. 187 --combat with an ox, p. 209 --lion in stone over a tomb at _Derces_, p. 85 --at _Desht-e-arjun_, p. 94 --at _Komeshah_, p. 156 --at _Sihin Caléh_, p. 257 --at _Khoré_, p. 301 Liquorice, wild, near _Persepolis_, p. 129 LOANE, Mr. prisoner among the pirates, p. 44 “_Lokmah_,” paste puff, p. 324 _Looties_, mountebanks, p. 209, 210 LOOTF ALI KHAN, p 16. 181 _Lycus_, ancient, now the _Kelki Irmak_, p. 337 M _Maaden Kebban_, names at, p. 329. 344 _Macis_, mountain of _Ararat_, p. 306 MAHOMED ALI KHAN, Prince of _Hamadan_, p. 208 MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN KARAGUZLOU, p. 37. 41 --sent from _Shiraz_, p. 122 MAHOMED HOSSEIN KHAN, _Ameen-ed-dowlah_, p. 166. 170-1 --his house, p. 184 --visits the Envoy, p. 185 --receives the Envoy, p. 195. 199 --present to the King, p. 208. 210, 211. 216. 221 MAHOMED HUSSEIN KHAN MERVEE, p. 188 MAHOMED JAFFER, vice Governor of _Bushire_, p. 25, 26, 27. 38 MAHOMED KHAN, _Mehmandar_ of _Shiraz_, p. 123 MAHOMED NEBEE KHAN, Persian Embassador to _Calcutta_, p. 23 --history of, note, p. 23 --Governor of _Bushire_, p. 23. 25. 27. 71. 73. 75 MAHOMED ZEKY KHAN, the _Mehmandar_, p. 42. 69. 118. 122 _Maidan Shah_, at _Ispahan_, p. 169 MALCOLM, Brigadier General, p. 23. 31. 83. [p. 199.] _Maleeat_, original right of the crown, p. 236 _Malta_, p. 318 _Mama Khatoun_, village of, p. 327 --tradition of its foundation, p. 328 _Mama Selemeh_, p. 6 _Manastour_, village of, p. 329 MANDELSLOE, p. 133. 136 Marble of _Tabriz_, p. 104, 105. 163. 278 _Marcivan_, p. 350 Mares, herds of, p. 263, 304 _Marmot_, p. 260 Mat-houses of _Guadel_, p. 5 “_Maun_,” 7¼lbs. p. 92. 110 _Maxhood Beggy_, p. 154 _Mayar_, p. 157 _Mazanderan_, p. 287 “_Meals_,” clubs, p. 85 Medicine of Persia, p. 229 _Medressé Shah Sultan Hossein_ college, at _Ispahan_, p. 163 --_Medressé Jedéh_, p. 164 MEER SAKEE, p. 177 _Mehmandar_, office of, p. 36. 73. 293 --appointed to the Mission, p. 42. 101 _Mekran_, coast of, p. 3-6. 49 Melons at _Sayin_, p. 174 _Memméh Sunni_, p. 82 _Meraughéh_, town of, p. 278 Merchants of Persia, p. 237 _Merdasht_, plain of, p. 49. 124 --covered with antiquities, p. 125 _Mesched_, Prince of, p. 208 _Meshed Omoun_, p. 143 _Mesjid Madré Suleiman_, p. 144 _Miaunéh_, village of, p. 266-70 Military establishment of Persia: at _Shiraz_, p. 110 --at _Teheran_, p. 240 --at _Tabriz_, p. 282 --see p. 241 --and generally, p. 240 --at _Zengan_, p. 261 --military qualities, p. 281. 366 Mineral springs, p. 78 Mines of silver, p. 238 --of iron, p. 283 --of lead, p. 284 _Minou_, on the Gulph of Persia, p. 49 _Miri_, p. 338 _Mirza_, hereditary title of Persia, p. 234 MIRZA ABUL HASSAN, late Envoy to the Court of London, p. 36. 149. 353. 364 --history of, p. 220-3 MIRZA BOZURK, minister at _Tabriz_, p. 282 MIRZA HASSAN, son of MIRZA BOZURK, p. 285 MIRZA REZA, Embassador to BUONAPARTE, p. 193. 216. 253 “_Mirza_ of _Nusserabad_,” p. 178 _Moharrem_, p. 173. 180. 188 --ceremonies of, p. 194-7 _Mollah Suleiman_, p. 315 _Monze_, cape, p. 5 “_Moobarek_,” p. 6 _Moodjdeh_, p. 332 _Moodjdéhlook_, p. 42. 93 _Moran_, cape, p. 3 _Morghaub_, p. 143. 147 Mosques of _Shiraz_, p. 102 --of _Ispahan_, p. 170 --of _Teheran_, p. 225 _Moss_, village of, p. 329 “_Moss_,” curdled milk, p. 252 Mountain Robbers, p. 83 _Mourchekourd_, battle of, p. 175 “_Mujlis_,” an assembly, p. 206 Mules, p. 353 _Mullak al mote_, p. 183 _Muscat_, Imaum of, p. 7 --pearl trade of, p. 53 Music, p. 113, 114 _Musseldom_, cape, p. 6. 51 N _Nabon_, cape, p. 7 --pearl shoal, p. 53 NADIR SHAH, p. 16 --portrait of, p. 165 --victory of, p. 175 --death, p. 221 --treasures, p. 265 _Nakshi Rustam_, (see p. 89), p. 125-9, see p. 201 _Naptha_, springs of, p. 78 --applied to the skins of camels, p.78 --flame little calid, p. 113 _Narangistoun_, green house at _Ispahan_, p. 167 _Nasakchee Bashee_, chief executioner, office of rank under the Prince at _Shiraz_, p. 19 --under the King at _Teheran_, p. 204. 207 --conduct to the Mission, p. 34 NASR OALAH KHAN, minister at _Shiraz_, p. 101, 102, 110. 117 _Nautilus_, cruiser, attacked by the pirates, p.43 _Nazir_, p. 201. 369 _Negaristan_, summer palace at _Teheran_, p. 227 Negociations begun at _Bushire_, p. 29. 34. 37. 41 --at _Shiraz_, p. 117 --at _Ispahan_, p. 159 --at _Teheran_, p. 198-203, see p. 212-3. 216 NERCIAT, M. p. 220. 280 _Neshki_ character, p. 59 NIEBUHR, p. 16, note 133. 135 _Niksar_, ancient _Nescæsarea_, p. 342 Nitrous acid, p. 78 _Nokara Khonéh_, near _Persepolis_, p. 125 --at _Ispahan_, p. 170 --at _Teheran_, p. 209 _Noory_ tribe, one of the new-modelled corps, p. 30. 42 _Norooz_, eve of, p. 204 --history and ceremonies of the, p. 204-6, see p. 237. 240 NOROOZ KHAN, master of the ceremonies at the Court of _Teheran_, p. 184. 188 _Nowri_, village of, p. 255 _Nusserabad_, p. 178 O _Okes_, of copper, p. 345 OLEARIUS, p. 136. 287 OLIVIER, p. 16, note _Oman_, province of, p. 8 OMAR, name of, p. 62 --_Omar Coushen_, day of, p. 249 Omen of a serpent, p. 316 _Ormuz_, island of, p. 52 _Oroumi_, town of, p. 305 _Osmanjik_, town of, p. 352 _Otour_, river, p. 298 OTTER, p. 359 OUSELEY, Sir GORE, Bart. p. 36 Oxen, used in ploughing, p. 261. 275 --as beasts of burthen, p. 300 P _Pacha_, mode of investiture, p. 332 Paintings in Persia, at _Shiraz_, p. 105, 106 --at _Ispahan_, p. 165. 167 --at _Teheran_, p. 192. 227 _Pak-har_, the servant of the _Ket Khoda_, p. 235 --palaces of the King at _Shiraz_, p. 107 --at _Ispahan_, p. 164-8 --at _Teheran_, p. 187. 226 --at _Sultaniéh_, p. 260 _Palma Christi_, at _Shapour_, p. 92 Partridges on trees, p. 64 --“_Toowee_,” desert partridge, p. 77 _Pasagardæ_, p. 145 Passage of the mountains, p. 80. 82 _Passangoor_, village of, p. 179 Pavilion of the clock, p. 170 Peacocks, favourites in Persia, p. 214 Pearl fishery, p. 44 --described, p. 52-6 --two kinds of pearls, p. 53 --mode of speculation, p. 53 --divers, p. 54 --consistency of the pearl, p. 55 “_Peera Zun_” mountain, p. 94 _Peish-kesh_, a tax, the “benevolence” of Persia, p. 237 _Peish-namuz_, chief priest, p. 33. 40 Penmanship, importance of, in Persia, p. 217 PENNANT, note, p. 260 _Peréh_, near _Khoi_, p. 300 _Persepolis_, first view, p. 129 --description, p. 129-137, see p. 201 _Persepolitan_ character, at _Tahrie_, p. 51 --at _Mesjid Madré Suleiman_, p. 144 --at _Fasa_, p. 234 Persia, outlines of the geography, p. 48 Persian dress, p. 38. 243-8 --horse equipage, p. 38 --horses, p. 62-3 --riding, p. 77. 82 --skulls, p. 77 --national character compared with the Turks, p. 362-6 --their voyage, p. 367 Persian Secretary taken by the Pirates, p. 45 _Pesani_, city of, note, p. 4 Pigeons, abundance of, p. 123 --see p. 155 _Pile Rud-bar_, pass of, p. 287 _Pillau_, p. 324 Plough near _Bushire_, p. 60 --near _Sultaniéh_, p. 261 --near _Tabriz_, p. 275 _Podargus_ of ARRIAN, p. 52 Poet, the chief, p. 185-6. 195 _Pool Dallauk_, p. 180. 213 _Pool Hajoo_, at _Ispahan_, p. 170 _Pool Khan_, bridge over the _Bund-emir_, p. 124 Poplars, almost the only wood of _Aderbigian_, p. 274. 277 Population of Persia, p. 155. 240 --of _Ispahan_, p. 171 --of _Tabriz_, p. 284 --of _Khoi_, p. 299 --of _Arz-roum_, p. 322 Portuguese establishments at _Guadel_, p. 4 --at _Cape Bustion_, p. 51 --at _Reshire_, p. 59 _Posmee_, cape, p. 4 Post-houses, established through the north of Persia, p. 269-70 --see p. 354 --in Turkey, p. 357 _Pour-bunder_, in the _Guzarat_, p. 2 Presents, custom of, in Persia, p, 205. 36. 73. 101. 121 --anecdote at _Komeshah_, p. 156 --from the Prince at _Shiraz_, p. 97 --again, p. 120 --from the King of England, p. 186 --from MIRZA SHEFFEEA, p. 194 --from the King of Persia to the Envoy, p. 204. 215 --to his court, p. 205 --presents to the King, p. 208 --to the Envoy, p. 204 Princes of Persia, p. 121. 192. 210 --their numbers, p. 226 --their presents to the King, p. 208 --Prince of _Shiraz_ --see HOSSEIN ALI MIRZA _Purtun_, p. 326 Q _Qujar_, (see _Cadjar_), p. 241 _Quoins_, islands of the, p. 6 R Races at _Teheran_, p. 210 _Ramazan_, fast of, p. 40, 41 Rams, combat of, at _Shiraz_, p. 119 --at _Teheran_, p. 208 Ranks in Persia, p. 234 Rate of travelling, p. 181 _Rayats_ of Persia, p. 235 _Reshire_, ruins of, p. 10 --described, p. 58 _Resht_, manufactures at, p. 231 Resident’s guard at _Bushire_, p. 58 Revenue of Persia, p. 236 --of _Fars_, p. 110 --of _Aderbigian_, p. 284 --of _Khalcal_, p. 284 --of _Khoi_, p. 299 _Rey_, ruins of, ancient _Rhages_, p. 232 _Rhadars_, stations of, p. 82. 96. 123. 296 RICHARDSON, on the _Norooz_, p. 205-6 Road, ancient, p. 232 _Rocknabad_, stream of, p. 123 _Rodo-dendron_, p. 92 _Rhohella_, p. 160 Roman figures at _Shapour_, p. 87. 88. 90. 127 “_Roo sefeed_,” “_roo seeah_,” p. 31 Rope dancers at _Shiraz_, p. 111 --at _Teheran_, p. 208 _Roselkeim_, p. 44 Russian war, p. 30. 93. 211. 255. 276. 291 --prisoners at _Shiraz_, p. 118 RUSTAM, p. 140. 201 S _Sa-atabad_, pavilion of, p. 162 _Sabanja_, lake of, p. 360 --town, p. 361 Sacrifice of bullocks at _Bushire_, p. 75 --of a lamb in Asia Minor, p. 341 _Sader_, a tax, p. 237 _Sahat_, measure of an hour, p. 305. 326 SAL BEN SAL, pirate chief, p. 44 _Salmas_, sculptures at, p. 299 Salmon, from the Caspian, p. 231 SALTER, Captain, p. 50 Salt soil, p. 174. 227. 293 --salt desert, p. 179. 183, 184 _Savock Bolagh_, ancient _Shererivan_, p. 296 _Sagim_, village near _Ispahan_, p. 174 Sculptures at _Shapour_, p. 87-91 --at _Nakshi Rustam_, p. 125-8 --at _Persepolis_, p. 129-36 --near it, p. 137-9 --at _Sultaniéh_, p. 259 --at _Salmas_, p. 299 _Scutari_, p. 362 SEALY, Lieutenant of the _Ternate_, p. 69 _Sefer_, month of, p. 213 SEFFIS, Princes of the house of, p. 153. 155. 157. 162. 165. 168. 175, 177. 230 --works of, p. 227. 233. 254. 271-2. 268 _Seidoun_, village of, p. 142 _Seiks_, p. 50 _Seraub_, effect of the vapour, p. 294 “_Ser-baz_,” one who plays away his head, p. 242 “_Ser-kecheckchee_,” p. 242 _Sertes_, cape, p. 51 _Sewund_, village of, p. 142 --river of, p. 129. 137. 142 SHAH THAMAS, p. 162 _Shah Zadé Freng_, p. 167 _Shahee_, lake of, p. 278. 294-5 _Shapour_, river of, p. 82 --city, p. 84 --visited, p. 85 --sculptures, p. 87-91 --theatre, p. 91 --subterraneous passages, p. 92 --sculptures compared with those near _Persepolis_, p. 126, 127. 139, see p. 201 Shawls of _Kerman_, p. 231 --of _Cashmire_, p. 246 _Shebester_, town of, p. 295 Sheep skins, p. 246 SHEIK ALI KHAN, one of the King’s sons, p. 253 SHEIK NASR, of _Bushire_, history of, p. 16 --mode of summons to his standard, p. 17, 18. 77 _Shem-Iroun_, village of, p. 213 SHERIDAN, Mr. THOMAS HENRY, p. 1, 2. 69 _Sheyahs_ and _Sunnis_, p. 57. 62. 157 _Sheyran_, district of, p. 332 Ship-building, p. 283 --ships on the Caspian, p. 287 _Shiraz_, approach to, p. 97 --entrance, p. 100 --description of, p. 102-7 --departure from, p. 122 --trade of, p. 231 SHIRLEY, Sir ROBERT, note, p. 5 _Shoolgistoun_, village of, p. 152 _Shooster_, city of, p. 221, 222. 231 _Seah Daleh_, village of, p. 257 _Seah Dehan_, village of, p. 257 Silk of _Ghilan_ and _Mazanderan_, p. 231 SIMMONS, Captain, p. 58 Singular exhibition of a negro, p. 112 _Sin Sin_, caravanserai at, p. 179 SKEINE, Captain, p. 52 Sleep, little necessary, p. 353 SMITH, Mr. HANKEY, Resident at _Bushire_, p. 33 Smoking in Persia, _kaleoons_, p. 13 --apparatus, p. 70 --ceremonies, p. 286 _Smyrna_, p. 366 Soap wort, p. 183 “_Sofra_,” p. 74 SOLEIMAN, the Caleph, p. 145 --the Shah of Persia, p. 230 SOLOMON, p. 149 SONNINI, on the _Jerboa_, p. 65-7 Soundings in the Gulph of Persia, p. 9 Sphinxes at _Persepolis_, p. 130. 133. 135 Spoons as a musical instrument, p. 113 Sports of the _Bairam_, p. 41 Springs under the sea, p. 52 Storm at _Bushire_, p. 60 --at _Khona Korréh_, p. 148 --in _Aderbigian_, p. 302 --at _Arz-roum_, p. 326 --near _Caraja_, p. 334. 337 --at _Cherkes_, p. 355 _Success_, frigate, p. 366 Sugar candy, bottles of, broken in honour of the Envoy, p. 84. 97. 124. 143 _Sultaniéh_, ruins and tomb of, p. 257 --new city, p. 259 _Sunnis_, p. 50. 57. 62. 157 Superstitions, of Indian sailors, p. 6 --of Persia, p. 62. 213. 230 --Hafiz, p. 229 _Surat_, pearl market at, p. 53 _Surmek_, p. 149 “_Surujees_,” conductors, p. 357 Swallow, white, at _Bushire_, p. 61 Sweetmeats, p. 13. 72. 171, see p. 208 SMITH, Major L. F., p. 1 T _Tabriz_, city of, p. 276-9 --marble of, p. 104, 105, 163. 278 _Tahrie_, ruins and sculptures at, p. 51 _Takht-a-Kadjar_ at _Shiraz_, p. 107 --at _Teheran_, p. 226-7 _Takht-a-Jamsheed_, p. 129 _Takht-a-tovos_; throne of the peacock, p. 191 _Takht-e-ravan_, letter, p. 158. 161. 180. 187, 188 TALAMASH, M. singular story of, note, p. 33 Tamarisk trees, p. 76 TAMERLANE, bund of, p. 124 --portrait of, 167 _Tangistoun_, p. 51 _Tasonj_, village of, p. 297 _Tatars_, p. 332. 356 _Teheran_, p. 180-2 --first view, p, 183 --description of, p. 224 --unwholesome, p. 229 --contrasted with _Constantinople_, p. 364 _Tekmis_ p. 231 --qu. _Tehmeh_, p. 245 _Tengui Ali Acbar_, near _Shiraz_, p. 106. 122 --near _Sultaniéh_, p. 257 _Tengui Turkoun_, mountain pass, p. 84 Tents, comforts of, p. 302 Terraced roofs at _Arz-roum_, p. 321 _Thaubet_, the, Governor of a town, p. 235 Theatre, remains of, at _Shapour_, p. 91 Theft, punishment of, in Persia, p. 204 Throne of the King of Persia, marble, p. 188 --of the peacock, p. 191 _Tigris_, source of the, p. 325 Timber, mode of felling, p. 339. 359 TIMUR BEG, history of, p. 313 Tobacco, monopoly of, p. 19 _Tocat_, p. 344 _Tomaun_, nearly equal to a pound sterling, p. 21 Tomb of the son of KERIM KHAN, p. 103 --of HAFIZ, at _Shiraz_, p. 104 --tombs at _Nakshi Rustam_, p. 125. 128 --at _Persepolis_, p. 132 --at _Mesjed Madré Suleiman_, p. 144 --tomb of CYRUS? p. 145 --of SHAH REZA, near _Komeshah_, p. 156 --tomb near _Kohrood_, p. 177 --of IMAUM REZA, p. 180. 256 --of his sister, p. 180 --of his son, p. 249 --of a wife of IMAUM HOSSEIN, p. 233 --of SULTAN MAHOMED KHODABENDEH, at _Sultaniéh_, p. 257 --of SHEMSÉ, near _Khoi_, p. 300 --ancient tombs at _Moss_, p. 329 --at _Cherkes_, p. 355 --at _Boli_, p. 357 _Tombs_, the, islands, p. 6. 43 _Tosia_, p. 353 _Tourchiz_, capture of, p. 265 _Tozzan Irmak_, river, p. 343. 345 Trade of Persia, see p. 237. 239 Travelling, rate of, p. 181 --mode of, p. 292-3 Treasures of the King of Persia, p. 238. 265 Treaties signed, p. 201-3 --former treaty of Persia with France, p. 216 _Trebisonde_, p. 322. 332 Tribes of Persia, p. 240 Tribute of Persia, p. 236-8. 240 Tumbling, p. 112 Tumuli, or _Tapé_, p. 251 _Turcomans_, p. 77. 288-90 _Turcomen Cheyee_, village of, p. 270 _Turkhal_, p. 345 Turkish soldiery, (see _Delhis Bayrack_), p. 358 --navy, p. 364 --entertainment, p. 323 Turks and Persians, p. 362-6 _Turpah Caléh_, siege of, p. 312 --reception at the castle of, p. 313-4 V _Van_, city and lake of, p. 296. 303 _Verdistan_, cape, p. 9. 43 --shoal of, p. 53 VINCENT, Dr. p. 3. 52 Vines in Persia, p. 251. 253 --mode of cultivation at _Tabriz_, p. 277 _Vishna_, sour cherry, p. 338 Visit, Persian, p. 13. 39-40. 72 Volcanoes, near _Saidabad_, p. 273 --near _Tabriz_, p. 277 --volcanic matter, p. 305 W _Wahabees_, p. 52. 222. 372 “_Waky_,” landed property in Persia, p. 237 _Waltz_, p. 365 Water of _Bushire_, p. 60 --of _Teheran_, p. 229 Water-cresses, p. 227 Water-mill, ancient custom attached to, p. 240 Weather at _Bushire_, p. 61 --at _Teheran_, p. 230 --at _Arz-roum_, p. 326 Well, p. 175 --marvellous at _Kashan_, p. 178 Wheeled carriages, p. 300 Wigs of the ancient Persians, p. 89 WILLOCK, Cornet HENRY, now Lieutenant Commander of the Body Guard, p. 1, 2. 37. 69. 118. 187 Wind chimnies at _Bushire_, p. 57 Wine in Persia, p. 166 Wolves, p. 359 Women of _Bushire_, p. 61 --of _Diadine_, p. 310 --generally, of Persia, p. 368-70 --education of, p. 369 --beauty, p. 368 Wood, scarcity of, (in the Gulph), p. 147 --at _Ispahan_, p. 160 --in _Aderbigian_, 272 --near _Arz-roum_, p. 326 --abundance of, in Asia Minor, p. 334, &c. p. 359 --compare, p. 354 Wrestlers; at _Shiraz_, p. 119 --at _Teheran_, p. 209 Y “_Yakné_,” Irish stew, p. 324 “_Yaourt_,” curdled milk, p. 252 “_Yeduk_,” a led horse, p. 38 _Yezd_, marble of, p. 188 --shawls and stuffs of, p. 208 _Yezd_, Prince of, p. 208 _Yezdickhaust_, p. 152 --town and valley of. YEZID, the CALIPH, in the celebration of the _Moharrem_, p. 195-6. 216 _Youngali_, village of, p. 311-2 YUSUFF BEG, at _Shiraz_, p. 101 --query ISMAEL BEG, p. 118. 120 Z _Zaiande-rood_, river of _Ispahan_, p. 160. 168. 174 --overflows, p. 213 ZAIN LABADEEN, Brother of HOSSEIN, p. 196 ZAIN LABADEEN, Chief Secretary and Private Minister to the Prince at _Shiraz_, p. 100. 117. 122 “_Zapté Shah_,” property forfeited to the King, p. 237 ZAUL KHAN, Governor of _Khist_; his history, p. 80 _Zauviéh_, village of, p. 301 Zebra at _Vienna_, p. 193 _Zeira_, village of, p. 82 _Zenana_, p. 166 Zengan, village of, p. 261 Zergoon, plain and town of, p. 124 “Zomboorek,” artillery on camels, p. 108 --at _Teheran_, p. 210 ZOROASTER, works of, p. 234 _Zund_, dynasty of the Royal Family of, p. 150. 243 THE END. J. G. BARNARD, PRINTER, SKINNER STREET, LONDON. WORKS PRINTED FOR LONGMAN, HURST, REES, ORME, AND BROWN, PATERNOSTER-ROW. A COLLECTION of VOYAGES and TRAVELS in EUROPE and ASIA, being portions of a General Collection of Voyages and Travels; forming a complete History of the origin and progress of discovery, by Sea and Land, from the earliest ages to the present time. Preceded by an Historical Introduction, and critical Catalogue of Books of Voyages and Travels, and illustrated and adorned with numerous Engravings. _By John Pinkerton_, Author of “Modern Geography,” &c. In 10 vols. 4to. with Engravings. Price 22_l._ 1_s._ bds. ⁂ The remainder of the work, containing the descriptions of Polynesia, Africa, and America, will be brought forward in similar detached portions, for the accommodation of persons who may prefer this mode of publication. The publication in monthly parts will, however, be continued as before. EXPLORATORY TRAVELS THROUGH the WESTERN TERRITORIES of NORTH AMERICA: comprising a voyage from St. Louis, on the Mississippi, to the source of that river, and a journey though the interior of Louisiana and the north-eastern provinces of New Spain. Performed in the years 1805, 1806, 1807, by order of the government of the United States. _By Zebulon Montgomery Pike_, Major 6th Regt. U. S. Infantry. In 1 vol. 4to. with two large maps, price 1_l._ 16_s._ bds. ⁂ In these Travels, Major Pike has thrown important light upon the Geography of a vast and interesting tract of country never before explored, and ascertained from actual observation the course and sources of the chief rivers of North America, including those of the Mississippi, the Yellow Stone River, (one of the main branches of the Missouri), the Arkansaw of Louisiana, and the great Rio del Norte of New Mexico. POLITICAL ESSAY on the KINGDOM of NEW SPAIN, containing Researches relative to the Geography of Mexico, the Extent of its Surface and its political Division into Intendancies, the physical Aspect of the Country, the Population, the State of Agriculture and manufacturing and commercial Industry, the Canals projected between the South Sea and the Atlantic Ocean, the Crown Revenues, the quantity of precious Metals which have flowed from Mexico into Europe and Asia since the Discovery of the New Continent, and the Military Defence of New Spain, by Alexander de Humboldt, with physical Sections and Maps founded on Astronomical Observations and Trigonometrical and Barometrical Measurements. Translated from the original French. _By John Black._ In 2 vols. 8vo. Price 1_l._ 18_s._ boards. A VIEW OF SPAIN; comprising a descriptive Itinerary of each Province, and a general Statistical Account of the Country; including its Population, Agriculture, Manufactures, Commerce and Finances; its Government, Civil, and Ecclesiastical Establishments; the State of the Arts, Sciences, and Literature; its Manners, Customs, Natural History, &c. _By Alexander de Laborde._ Translated from the French. In 5 vols. 8vo. with an Atlas of the Roads of Spain, and other Maps of the Country, &c. Price 3_l._ 13_s._ 6_d._ bds. THE GEOGRAPHICAL, NATURAL, and CIVIL HISTORY of CHILI. Translated from the Original Italian of the _Abbe Don J. Ignatius Molina._ To which are added, Notes from the Spanish and French Version, and two Appendixes, by the English Editor. In 2 vols. 8vo. with a Map of the Country. Price 13_s._ bds. A VIEW of the ANCIENT and PRESENT STATE of the ZETLAND ISLANDS; including their Civil, Political, and Natural History, Antiquities, and an Account of their Agriculture, Fisheries, Commerce, and the State of Society and Manners. _By Arthur Edmondston, M. D._ In 2 vols. 8vo. illustrated by a Map. Price 18_s._ bds. A DESCRIPTION of the FEROE ISLANDS, containing an Account of their Situation, Climate, and Productions; together with the Manner and Customs of the Inhabitants, their Trade, &c. Translated from the Danish. _By the Rev. G. Landt._ In. 8vo. illustrated with a Map, and other Engravings Price 12_s._ in boards. The HISTORY of the ORKNEY ISLANDS. _By the Rev. George Barry, D. D._ Minister of Shapenshay. The 2d Edit. with considerable Additions and Notes, by the Rev. Mr. Headrick. In one vol. 4to. illustrated with an accurate and extensive Map of the whole Island, and eleven plates of the most interesting objects they contain. Price 1_l._ 11_s._ 6_d._ in boards. VIEW of the RUSSIAN EMPIRE during the Reign of Catharine II. and to the close of the Eighteenth Century, &c. &c. &c. Containing an accurate Description of the Government, Manners, Customs, Religion, Extent, Boundaries, Soil, Climate, Produce, Revenue, Trade, Manufactures, &c. &c. of the several Nations that compose that extensive Empire. _By W. Tooke, F. R. S._ 2d Edit. In 3 large vols. 8vo. Price 1_l._ 11_s._ 6_d._ in bds. LETTERS from CANADA; written during a residence there, in the years 1806, 1807, 1808, showing the present State of Canada, its Productions, Trades, Commercial Importance, and Political Relations. Illustrative of the Laws, the Manners of the People, and the Peculiarities of the Country and Climate. Exhibiting also the Commercial Importance of Nova Scotia, New Brunswick, and Cape Breton; and their increasing Ability, in conjunction with Canada, to furnish the necessary supplies of Lumber and Provisions to our West India Islands. _By Hugh Gray._ In Octavo, with a Map. Price 12_s._ boards. PRESENT STATE of the SPANISH COLONIES; including a particular Report of Hispaniola, or the Spanish part of Santo Domingo; with a general Survey of the Settlements on the South Continent of America, as relates to History, Trade, Population, Customs, Manners, &c. with a concise Statement of the Sentiments of the People on their relative situation to the Mother Country, &c. _By William Walton, jun._ Secretary to the Expedition which captured the city of Santo Domingo from the French, and resident British Agent there. In 2 vols. 8vo. Price 1_l._ 4_s._ boards, illustrated with a Map of Santo Domingo, a Head of Ferdinand the Seventh, &c. &c. TRAVELS in SOUTH AMERICA during the years 1801, 1802, 1803, and 1804; containing a Description of the Captain-Generalship of Caraccas, and an Account of the Discovery, Conquest, Topography, Legislature, Commerce, Finance, and Natural Productions of the Country; with a View of the Manners and Customs of the Spaniards and the Native Indians. _By F. Depons._ Translated from the French. In 2 vols. 8vo. with a Map of the Country. Price 1_l._ 1_s._ The TRAVELS of CAPTAINS LEWIS and CLARKE, from St. Louis, by way of the Missouri and Columbia Rivers, to the Pacific Ocean; performed in the years 1804, 1805, and 1806. By Order of the Government of the United States; containing Delineations of the Manners, Customs, Religion, &c. of the Indians; compiled from various authentic Sources and original Documents; and a summary of the Statistical View of the Indian Nations, from the official communication of _Meriwether Lewis._ In 8vo. illustrated with a Map of the Country inhabited by the Tribes of Western Indians. Price 9_s._ boards. LETTERS written during a short Residence in SPAIN and PORTUGAL. _By Robert Southey._ In 2 vols. foolscap 8vo. A new Edition, corrected and amended. Price 10_s._ 6_d._ in boards. A TOPOGRAPHICAL DICTIONARY of ENGLAND; exhibiting the various Subdivisions of each County into Hundreds, Lathes, Wapentakes, &c. The Valuations in the King’s Books; the Patrons of the Ecclesiastical Benefices; and the Tutelary Saint of each Church.--The Distance and Bearing of every Parish or Hamlet, from the nearest Post Office Town.--Markets.--Fairs.--Corporations.--Free Schools.--The Situation and Description of Monasteries, and other religious Houses.--Members of Parliament.--Assizes and Petty Sessions.--Collected from the most authentic Documents, and arranged in Alphabetical Order. _By Nicholas Carlisle._ Fellow and Secretary of the Society of Antiquaries of London. In two thick vols. 4to. Price 5_l._ 5_s._ in boards. NORTH WALES; including its Scenery, Antiquities, Customs, and some Sketches of its Natural History; delineated from Two Excursions through all the interesting Parts of that Country, during the Summers of 1798 and 1801. _By the Rev. W. Bingley, A. M._ In 2 vols. 8vo. 2d Edit. with a new and accurate Map, Frontispieces, and several favourite Welsh Airs. 1_l._ 1_s._ boards. TRAVELS in ASIA and AFRICA, including a Journey from Scanderoon to Aleppo, and over the Desert of Bagdad and Bassora; a Voyage from Bassora to Bombay, and along the Western Coast of India; a Voyage from Bombay to Mocha and Suez in the Red Sea, and a Journey from Suez to Cairo and Rosetta, in Egypt. _By the late Abraham Parsons, Esq._ In 4to. Price 1_l._ 5_s._ in boards. TRAVELS in ICELAND, during the Summer of the Year 1810. _By Sir George Steuart Mackenzie, Bart._ Fellow of the Royal Society of Edinburgh, &c. &c. &c. With Maps and a number of Engravings, many of them finely coloured, in one volume, 4to. price 3_l._ 3_s._ bds. FOOTNOTES: [1] See Chapter XII. p. 220-3. [2] The Editor is further responsible for the account of the pirates, and of _Shapour_; and for the notes, except those within inverted commas, which are taken from MSS. of Mr. MORIER. [3] The _Cadjars_, according to OLIVIER, are a tribe of Turkish origin, who took refuge in Persia under the reign of SHAH ABBAS I. and received there the name of _Cadjars_ or fugitives. See FOSTER, ii. 198. The historians of NADIR SHAH mention (as one of the chiefs of that tribe, in the time of SHAH TAHMAS,) FUTTEH ALI KHAN. OLIVIER states that in 1723 he was nominated to the government of _Mazanderan_; and that, when NADIR SHAH assumed the crown, he resisted his authority, was defeated and killed. In JONES’S NADIR, lib. i. c. xi. there appears a FETHALI KHAN, whose history accords better with the allusion in the text, p. 242. Compare the PHATALI KHAN of BELL, vol. i. and FRASER’S NADIR SHAH, p. 89. His eldest son was MAHOMED HASSAN KHAN, whose pretensions and rise and fall are stated fully by OLIVIER, vol. vi. 13-17-82, and whose history, (under his various names of BABA KHAN, MUMTAZ KHAN, FULTRA ALLA KHAN, &c.) is noticed in FRANKLIN, p. 299. IVES, p. 220. FOSTER, vol. ii. 199. TOOKE’S CATHERINE, ii. 60, SCOTT WARING, &c. &c. [4] ISMAEL was said by his first patron, ALI MERDAN KHAN BACKTYARI, to be the son of SEYD MOUSTAPHA, by a daughter of SHAH HUSSEIN. OLIVIER, vi. 21. He was the pageant recognised by three several competitors; he was first proclaimed King by ALI MERDAN, again in 1756, by KERIM; and a third time, in the same year, by MAHOMED HASSAN, who, like his immediate rivals, and like NADIR, still in his first successes professed himself to be the slave of the rightful monarch. [5] “He made no scruple of avowing that in his youth he pursued the occupation of a robber; and that his fore teeth had been demolished by the kick of an ass which _he_ had stolen and was carrying off.” FOSTER’S Travels, vol. ii. p. 241. [6] The treaty forms the Appendix to General MALCOLM’S Political History of India, p. 533-549. [7] The _Malana_ of VINCENT’S NEARCHUS, p. 197. HORSEBURGH notices it very slightly, “in coasting to the westward from _Hinglah_, another point called _Muran_ is discerned.” p. 231. “Directions, &c.” [8] The log of the Nereide, Sept. 26th, seems to refer to it, as “the above island.” [9] In 1581, the Portuguese (according to their historian FARIA y SOUSA) after having surprised and burnt “the beautiful and rich city _Pesani_,” destroyed “_Guadel_, not inferior.” _Asia Portuguesa_, vol. ii. 373. They appear to have had afterwards a settlement there themselves; vol. iii. p. 416; which before 1613 had probably been resumed from its European possessors, for HERBERT in passing it, observes, “beware by Sir ROBERT SHERLYE’S example of Cape _Guader_ *** an infamous port and inhabited by a perfidious people. Under pretext of amity they allured SHERLYE and his lady ashoare, A. 1613; where but for a Hodgee that understood their drift and honestly revealed it, they had been murdered with NEWPORT their captaine; and merely to play the theeves with them.” Herbert’s Travels, p. 113. Ed. 1638. [10] JACKSON mentions in 1797 one of his ships, which carried upwards of a thousand men.--Journey, p. 8. [11] Probably the ruins of Reshire. [12] NIEBUHR, who allots a separate chapter to these Arab powers (“etats independans aux environs du Golfe Persique”) attracts our attention to their fate principally by the remark, “En un mot, le gouvernement et les mœurs de ces Arabes ressemblent beaucoup a ceux des anciens Grecs.” But he adds, “mais ils manquent d’historiens pour decrire leurs guerres et pour celebrer leurs héros: voila pourquoi ils ne sont pas connus hors de leur pays.” Description de l’Arabie, p. 270. [13] The event is related by OLIVIER. Voyage, tom. vi. p. 215. [14] Extract from a translation of the History of the ZUND Family, from the death of KERIM KHAN to the accession of AGA MAHOMED KHAN KADJAR by ALI REZA IBN ABDUL KERIM of _Shiraz_. [15] “Consisting of the Arab tribes of _Dumoag_, _Beenee Hajir_, _Hyat Daaod_, and others.” [16] HANWAY limits the functions; “the officer who makes seizures,” vol. ii. p. 372: see also ABDUL KURREEM, p. 14. Both authorities connect rank and importance to the situation. In the East, indeed, the duties even of an executioner appear to have been held in very different estimation from that which is attached to them in Europe. “Les Bourreaux en Georgie,” says TOURNEFORT, “sont fort riches, et les gens de qualité y exercent cette charge; bien loin qu’elle soit reputée infame, comme dans tout le reste du monde, c’est un titre glorieux en ce pays-là pour les familles. On s’y vante d’avoir eû plusieurs bourreaux parmi ses ancestres, et ils se fondent sur le principe qu’il n’y a rien de si beau que d’executer la justice, sans laquelle on ne sçauroit vivre en seûreté. Voilá une maxime bien digne des Georgiens.” Tom. II. 311. “ARIOCH, the Captain of the King’s Guard,” (of _Babylon_, DAN. II. 14.) is yet stiled by the _Chaldee_ in the margin, “Chief of the Executioners or Slaughter-men.” [17] “_Jooyum_ is the district where the Tobacco grows, and it is understood that the trade there is managed by its proprietor dextrously and profitably.” [18] “The _Sheik_, indeed, had given cause of complaint to Brigadier-General MALCOLM before the arrival of His Majesty’s Mission.” [19] “He was originally a _Moonshee_, who got his bread by transcribing books and writing letters for money. He taught Sir HARFORD JONES, when a young man at _Bussora_, to read and write Arabic and Persian. He afterwards became a merchant, selling small articles in the _Bazar_ at _Bushire_, and being fortunate in his early trade, extended his speculations still more largely and successfully: till, when an embassy to _Calcutta_ was projected by the King of Persia, he was enabled to appear (according to the report of his countrymen) as the highest bidder for the office, and was consequently invested with it. Having enriched himself enormously by his mission, he has yet never failed to complain before the King, of the evil stars which, by leading him to accept such a situation, had reduced him to beggary.” [20] When AMURATH I. instituted the _Janizaries_, a celebrated Dervish pronounced this blessing over the new corps: “Let them be called Janizaries (_Yengi Cheris_, or new soldiers) may their countenance be ever bright! their hand victorious! their sword keen! may their spears always hang over the heads of their enemies! and wheresoever they go, may they return with a _white face_.” GIBBON’S note illustrates the text by the Roman phrase, Hic _niger_ est, hunc tu, Romane, caveto. Vol. VI. p. 320, 4to. [21] “A circumstance, connected with the more permanent superstitions of Persia, occurred during the first part of our stay at _Bushire_, which may be worth mentioning. A _Derveish_ settled himself for many days at the door of the Assistant Resident’s house, and did not quit it till he had extorted from the Envoy a donation of ten rupees. These men wander about from place to place; and, as their demands are sanctioned by long usage, they levy wherever they go, their established dues.[*] Mr. BRUCE told me, that on his first arrival in the country, a _Derveish_ came to him and asked the sum of ten piastres; he was refused, but he persisted that he would not depart till he should receive it. He accordingly stationed himself at the door, and commenced his conjuring, crying ‘_Hag, Hag, Hag_,’ unceasingly for days and nights, till he had worked himself up into a frenzy, in which his cries became quite horrible. To get rid of such a nuisance, Mr. BRUCE was glad at last to pay the price which his tormentor originally charged. Mr. MANESTY, the East India Company’s Resident at _Bussorah_, was attacked more formidably, and defended himself with more perseverance, but without better success. A _Derveish_ demanded a hundred piastres, and being of course refused, settled himself at the door, and remained there two years, when Mr. MANESTY was at last forced to yield, and paid the full sum required. [*LORD TEIGNMOUTH, in an interesting Paper in the Asiat. Res. IV. p. 334-5, mentions a similar custom (“_sitting Dherna_”) in a different religion. “Brahmins even in _Calcutta_ have been known to obtain charity or subsistence from the Hindus, by posting themselves before the door of their houses, under a declaration to remain there until their solicitations were granted.” The religious mendicants of India have sometimes assembled in a body of 5000 men.] “From Mr. BRUCE also I learned the following more curious tale. Mr. HANKEY SMITH since he has been the Resident at _Bushire_, was told that a _Derveish_ wished to see him: but believing that he was one of those, who make these tours of licensed pillage through the country, he desired that the man might be sent away with the customary and unavoidable donation of a few piastres. He was informed however, that his visitor was no common _Derveish_; that he was in fact the _Peish-namaz_ (the Chief Priest) of _Bushire_, and a man of corresponding reputation among his people. The stranger was accordingly admitted and received with every civility. In a second visit he asked so many questions about _Calcutta_, Mr. HASTINGS, and his trial, and other subjects which were equally new in the conversation of a _Derveish_, that the Resident candidly told him, that he believed him to be no Mussulman. The conjecture was well-founded: the _Peish-Namaz_ immediately acknowledged that he was a Frenchman of the name of TALAMASH; that he had served the English government under Mr. HASTINGS, and having received some disgust, had quitted _Calcutta_; and since that time had done nothing but travel. He had been all over India, thence to Cashmire, and had resided a long time at _Cabul_ in the court of ZEMAUN SHAH; and had traversed the greater part of Persia, in every place imposing himself upon the people as the devoutest of the true believers. He was a very intelligent man, and had particularly made himself master of all the secrets of the _Affghan_ politics, and had acquired a possession of the languages so complete and correct, that the finest native ear could detect no foreign accent. Probably no European ever saw so much of Asia, or saw it to such advantage. From _Bushire_ he went to _Bahrein_, where also he was made the _Peish-Namaz_. From _Bahrein_ he proceeded to _Surat_; where his varied and accurate knowledge of the manners, customs, and languages of all the different nations and classes in the mixed population of that city, divided, according to Mr. BRUCE, the opinions of the people; and made the Arabs claim him as an original Arab; the Persians, as a Persian; and the Mussulmans of Hindoostan as equally their own. From this place M. TALAMASH addressed the English government of India, and conveyed to them more particularly his knowledge of the views of the _Affghan_ court: but his communications did not receive the attention which he expected, and being left without the hope of employment again in India, he repaired to the _Mauritius_. There he associated with a band of adventurers like himself, fitted out a small vessel as a privateer, and went into the Red Sea. But here he fell in with the _Leopard_, Admiral BLANKET; and thinking her an Indian ship, made an attempt to board her, and was of course taken. He was then sent to Bombay, and thence got once more to the _Mauritius_, from which time nothing more has been heard of him. “This is a very rare instance of the successful assumption by an European of an Eastern character. I have known, in Turkey, several renegado Englishmen, who could never sufficiently disguise themselves to be taken for original Mussulmans.” It must be understood, however, that TALAMASH is believed to have been born at _Constantinople_, of a French father indeed, yet from his earliest youth to have been unfettered by a conformity to European usages. [22] See the note on their destruction, at the end. [23] “This account is from the mouth of a Persian; it may therefore not be uninteresting to contrast it with the statement in the log-book of the _Nereide_. “H. M. S. _Nereide_, Thursday, 21 Oct. 1808. “At 9. A. M. saw two dows standing towards us under Arabian colours. 10.30. saw a strange sail S. S. E. Employed working up junk, &c. Noon: the above vessel past us, which proved to be the Honourable Company’s schooner _Sylph_. P. M. moderate breezes and fine. 1.30. observed the dows haul-up and board the schooner; in studding sails, and haul’d our wind in chase of them: by this time they had the schooner in tow. Tacked occasionally to close. At 4. got within gun-shot and commenced firing. 4.30. observed the schooner’s tow-rope gone, supposed by our shot; still keeping a constant fire on the dows. 5.30. shot away one of the dow’s yards. At 6. ditto, firing whenever the guns would bear: observed the schooner make signals of distress, and fire guns. The crew immediately deserted the dow when the yard was shot away, and went on board the other; continuing firing within musket shot round grape and musketry; hailed her repeatedly, but received no answer. At 8. ceased firing; the dows apparently sinking: made sail for the schooner: at 9. hove-to, and sent a boat for the commander of the schooner; he being severely wounded, gave Lieutenant C---- charge of the schooner, but returned with a seapoy severely wounded.” [24] See Plate VI. [25] See Plate VII. in which they are incidentally introduced. [26] That the same custom prevailed anciently in the East may be inferred from ST. MATTHEW xxii, 2-4. ST. LUKE xiv. 16. 17. [27] In the Journal this is the first notice of the _Istakball_, which so frequently recurs in the future progress of the mission, as an honorary assemblage called forth to receive a distinguished traveller, and to conduct him in his passage. [28] “I have frequently amused myself in feeling their skulls, to ascertain if they are as soft now as when HERODOTUS described them; but I never yet found one that was not hard and impenetrable.” [29] See the notes at the end. [30] Plate IX. which marks the situation of some of the sculptures. [31] See the Fragments. The horse, the chariot, and the cavalry. Plate XII. [32] “From the groves of orange trees at _Kauzeroon_, the bees cull a celebrated honey.” [33] Niebuhr calls it Tchinar Raddar; he encamped there. Tom. II. p. 91. [34] The _Bend-emir_ or _Araxes_ is said to fall into the large lake of _Baktegian_, near _Darabgherd_. R. [35] ---- the rest entire, Shone with a glossy scurf, undoubted sign, That in his womb was hid metallic ore The work of sulphur. PAR. LOST. I. 670. [36] Of this view, a part is selected in plate XXII. [37] “At _Kashan_, according to the second Minister of the kingdom, who seemed devoutly to credit his own story, is a well, which _we_ did not see. There is a descent of six months to the bottom, and in the different stages of the journey the traveller comes to plains and rivers. Some have gone down and never appeared again. These are tales which to a Persian are not incredible, though they will not believe that the streets of London are lighted, or that there are in Europe houses seven stories high.” [38] Richardson’s Dissertation, 8vo. p. 184. [39] It appears to be the Earless Marmot of PENNANT, p. 135; the Arctomys of LINNÆUS, p. 145. [40] In GRANT’S fine and characteristic sketch of the conquests of NADIR, he is led to ----“Media’s vales, Where Health on _Tabriz_ breathes with all her gales.” _Restoration of Learning in the East_, 1805, p. 87. The same derivation of the name from the qualities of the situation is given by Sir WILLIAM JONES--“_Tab_ signifies a _fever_, and _riz_ is the participle of _rêkhten_ to _disperse_. There was an ancient city which stood nearly in the same place, and is called Ταβρὶς by PTOLEMY.”--_Description of Asia subjoined to the “Histoire de Nader Chah:” Works_, Vol. V. p. 570. [41] “The sea of _Kulzum_,” is more appropriated by the generality of Eastern authors to the Arabian Gulph, to which, indeed, it is said to be attached, from the place of the same name on the shores; yet it is applied to the Caspian in a Persian map copied in the Oriental Collections, Vol. III. p. 76: and KHOJEH ABDULKURREEM, while he states that “the proper sea of _Kulzum_ is in the Turkish empire,” admits that “the people of _Ashreff_” affix the name to the Caspian, p. 94. London Edit. 1793: and in a note to ABULGHAZI KHAN’S History of the Tartars, the French Editor mentions it as the general designation among the Persians. p. 645. [42] See before p. 317. The same name seems to be applied to the sources of the _Euphrates_ and of the _Araxes_; which both rise on opposite directions from the same mountains. [43] It is the ancient _Lycus_. [44] The Turks in their way have retained so many ancient names, that _Neocæsarea_ may be easily recognised under the name of _Niksar_.--D’ANVILLE, Geogr. Anc. tom. ii. p. 34. It is interesting as the city and bishoprick of ST. GREGORY THAUMATURGUS; who found there but seventeen Christians, and left there but seventeen Pagans. He resolved to build a church in his city:--“Ce qui n’estoit pas extraordinaire en ce temps la, et on avoit toute liberté d’en bastir sous Philippe, qui commença a regner en 241. _Mais celle ci est la premiere dont l’histoire nous donne une connaissance certaine et expresse._”--TILLEMONT, Memoires Eccles: de VI. Premiers Siecles. Vol. III. p. 329-30. [45] This is possibly a part of the celebrated _Comana Pontica_, which is placed upon the _Iris_, the modern _Tozzan Irmak_.--See D’ANVILLE’S Geogr. Ancienne 1768. tom. ii. p. 38. The Christians of the country pointed out to TAVERNIER some excavations in this district, as the retreats of ST. JOHN CHRYSOSTOM. Tom. i. p. 13. [46] St. JOHN CHRYSOSTOM--possibly in his last exile and wanderings, A. D. 404-7. See MILNER’S “History of the Church of CHRIST.” Vol. II. p. 291-3. [47] “_Chorbah_, soup; _Dolmah_, meat-balls, in vine leaves.” [48] It was made by the celebrated _Kuprigli_, the Grand Vizier. See TAVERNIER, Tom. I. p. 7. [49] It is called the _Agatch Degnis_, or “Sea of Trees.” See its extent in OTTER. Tom. II. [50] The ancient _Nicomedia_. [51] SIR WILLIAM OUSELEY’S EBN HAUKAL, p. 12. p. 95. [52] STEVENS’S FARIA Y SOUSA, vol. iii. p. 30, &c. [53] BRUCE’S Annals of the East India Company, vol. iii. p. 198. [54] BRUCE, iii. 649. 169. In 1715 the _Muscat_ fleet consisted of one ship of seventy-four guns, two of sixty, one of fifty, and eighteen from thirty-two to twelve guns; besides smaller, &c. Captain HAMILTON, East Indies, i. p. 76. Modern Universal History vi. 46. [55] The first mention of the _Wahabees_, is in NIEBUHR, Description de l’Arabie, p. 17, p. 296-302: and GIBBON first noticed the singular co-incidence, that they sprung from the same province, _Nedsjed_, in which MOSEILAMA the great contemporary adversary of MAHOMED, had propagated his faith, vol. v. p. 277. It may be added, that the _Carmathians_, who triumphed over the _Mahomedans_, like the _Wahabees_ of the present day, and like them took _Mecca_, (and plundered it indeed much more effectually than their successors are said to have done) in the same manner took possession first of the provinces on the Persian Gulph. See GIBBON, v. 449. SALE’S Koran, p. 184. D’OHSSON, Tableau de l’Empire Ottoman, tom. i. p. 105. [56] It is not clear that _Egmaun_ is rightly placed in the text, p. 44. Our late expedition has furnished us with a knowledge of the Persian Gulph, which will rectify many important errors. The coast from _Khor Hassan_ is said to have been laid down forty-eight miles too much to the south. [57] FARIA Y SOUSA, _Asia Portuguesa_, by STEVENS, vol. i. p. 135. [58] See RENAUDOT’S “Anciens Relations.” [59] BRUCE’S Annals of the East India Company, vol. iii. p. 649. [60] EBN HAUKAL, p. 82. [61] EBN HAUKAL, p. 89. The _Sabûra_ of GOLIUS AD ALFRAGANIUM, quoted by VINCENT; _Nearchus_, 2d edition, p. 329. [62] STRABO, lib. xv. p. 708. In DE SACY, “Memoires sur diverses Antiquités de la Perse,” 1793, p. 34. [63] Anct. Univ. Hist. xi. 66. ARTAXERXES demanded from the Romans the cession of all the provinces which CYRUS had possessed; but SAPOR II. his descendant and successor, advanced still higher pretensions, and claimed all the country to the river _Strymon_, in Macedonia, the original boundary of DARIUS HYSTASPES. [64] Compare however the division of EBN HAUKAL, p. 82. [65] NIEBUHR says otherwise, tom. ii. p. 166; but Sir HARFORD JONES, who had better opportunities of ascertaining the fact, asserts it. VINCENT, p. 329, p. 485. [66] EBN HAUKAL, p. 85. [67] EBN HAUKAL, p. 95. [68] _Fasa._ See the text, p. 233. PIETRO DELLA VALLE, tom. iii. 333. [69] _Darabgherd._ See EBN HAUKAL, p. 94, p. 133-4. PIETRO DELLA VALLE, tom. iii. 336, 571. TAVERNIER, i. 395. [70] _Jawr_ or _Firuzabad_. See the text, p. 234. EBN HAUKAL, p. 101. See OTTER, i. 191. SCOTT WARING was there, p. 106, but passed it with a very slight notice. [71] CHARDIN, ii. p. 167. LE BRUN was at _Persepolis_ for three months; but he seems to have confined himself principally to the ruins of the palace. [72] EBN HAUKAL, p. 90, p. 95. [73] 86° 55´ long. 30° lat. Vol. iii. p. 53. [74] “_Sehabur_,” in a map of Persia in BUNO’S _Cluverius_, 1672, p. 547. [75] EBN HAUKAL, p. 101. [76] DE SACY, p. 238-9. [77] Ancient Universal History, xi. 159. [78] MIRKHOND in DE SACY, p. 289. See the Ancient Univ. Hist. p. 151. vol. xi. [79] The figures are the same, not in detail, but in general circumstance. Both are engraved in this volume, plates x. xx. See the explanation of the inscription taken from NIEBUHR, tom. ii. pl. xxvii. DE SACY, p. 31, &c. see also p. 69. [80] DE SACY indeed, in the suite to his “Memoire sur les Medailles des Sassanides,” p. 203-10, assigns all the medals on Plate VI. to SAPOR II. and those on Plate VIII. to SAPOR III. but the resemblance is so strong, (particularly in No. 3. of Plate VI.) between the figure on the coin, and that in the sculpture No. X. that the identity can hardly be doubted; and that the figure in the sculpture is SAPOR I. may be inferred from the inscription at _Nakshi Rustum_, as well as from the general history. [81] “Si l’on compare tous ces bas-reliefs, on sera porté a conjecturer qu’ils ne doivent avoir tous qu’un même objet.” DE SACY, p. 66; see p. 69. [82] GIBBON, i. 326, 4to. [83] A fac-simile at _Nakshi Rustam_, p. 125-6, of that subject already noticed at _Shapour_. [84] P. 30, &c. [85] DE SACY, p. 167. Ancient Universal History, xi. p. 146. [86] GIBBON, vol. v. p. 654. Modern Univ. Hist. iv. p. 79. [87] P. 32. See the Ancient Universal History, vol. xi. [88] History of Persia: Works, vol. v. p. 600. [89] DE SACY, p. 32-3. [90] VAILLANT, pref. p. vii. 389. [91] MIRKHOND in DE SACY, p. 275. Ancient Universal History, xi. 146. [92] DE SACY, p. 30, &c. υαυιος θεου παπακου βασιλεως. See MOSES of CHORONÆ, quoted in DE SACY, p. 168. [93] NIEBUHR, ii. p. 83. [94] PETIT DE LA CROIX, p. 37. [95] Institutes, p. 25, 27. [96] FRAZER’S Life, p. 81. of ARTAXERXES, see GIBBON, vol. i. p. 201, 4to. [97] VAILLANT. [98] DE SACY, Memoire sur les Medailles des Sassanides, p. 166. [99] In GIBBON, vol. i. p. 238. [100] LUCRETIUS, lib. v. These references are taken from BRISSONIUS, “De Regio Persarum Apparatu.” Edit. Lederlini, 1710. [101] BRISSONIUS, p.732. [102] LUCIAN, in BRISSONIUS. [103] STRABO, lib. xv. [104] JUVENAL, Sat. vi. [105] SUETONIUS, in BRISSONIUS, p. 82. [106] BRUCE, vol. iii. p. 267, 276. [107] NIEBUHR, tom. ii. p. 98-134. _Persepolis_ and _Nakshi Rustam_, &c. [108] DE SACY, p. 67. [109] VAILLANT, “Arsacidarum Imperium,” p. 364, p. 366. [110] PALLAS, “Peculiaris dea Macedonum Pallas,” p. 8. to ARSACES I. again, p. 16. [111] _Victoriola_ to ARTABANUS I. p. 31. [112] To ARTAXERXES, p. 391, to SAPOR, p. 394. [113] Vol. i. p. 331, 4to. [114] MILNER’S History of the Church of Christ, vol. i. p. 427. p. 445. p. 478-9. VALERIAN was destroyed by the treachery of MACRIANUS, (GIBBON i. 327) the very man, at whose instigation he had perverted his power to persecute the Christians. [115] GIBBON himself records this speech, vol. 1. p. 451. [116] PETIT DE LA CROIX, Life of GENGHIZ, p. 276. [117] GIBBON, vol. v. 4to. p. 451. [118] A.D. 1537. FARIA “_Asia Portuguesa_,” by STEVENS, vol. i. p. 405. [119] GIBBON, vol. v. p. 664. [120] DE SACY, pref. p. v. DE GUIGNES. MSS. of the King of France, ii. p. 140. English Edit. GIBBON, i. 4to. p. 256. [121] Ancient Universal History, vol. xi. p. 142, &c. [122] D’HERBELOT, in Sir WM. OUSELEY’S Epitome. [123] VAILLANT, Arsac: Imperium, p. 389. [124] GIBBON, vol. i. 4to. p. 331. [125] MIRKHOND, in DE SACY, p. 282-90. [126] KHONDEMIR, in Ancient Universal History, vol. xi. p. 151. [127] MIRKHOND, in DE SACY, p. 273. [128] DE SACY, p. 42. A. C. 226, according to VAILLANT: Tab. Chronol. [129] MIRKHOND, p. 282-6. [130] This appears the piastre in value. “A piastre is about two shillings British.” “Average exchange between Persia and India, one hundred and thirty piastres for one hundred rupees.” [131] “Containing two _miscals_, six _hehod_ of silver. None of the coins that are struck in Persia have any alloy.” [132] “The present shahee takes its name from the shahee of the SEFFIS, but has increased in value owing to the rise of silver. They have no coin of greater amount than the tomaun, except it be a very large piece which the King has struck for the luxury and magnificence of his own treasury, and which is equal to one thousand tomauns, or ten thousand piastres.” [133] As there is some obscurity, the whole passage in the original is subjoined here: 8 Shahee = 1 Real or Rupee. 4¼ Reals = 1 Ditto. 2½ Reals = 1 Ditto. [134] The population throughout is stated at five persons to a house. [135] This is the tribute paid in produce. A _kherwar_ is one hundred _mauns_ of _Tabriz_; each _maun_ being seven pounds and a quarter English. [136] The places in small capital letters are the stages. [137] Two roads; one by _Orchíene_, the other by _Ispahanek_. [138] Extracted from Dr. JUKES’S Journal of Mr. MANESTY’S route. [139] See p. 255. [140] Strong N. W. from the 6th to the 13th, with little or no intermission: great dust. [141] Water melons, musk melons, and figs in season; and plenty of them. [142] The weather does not appear so hot as in former seasons. [143] I have not remarked such a haze in former times. I have scarcely seen the mountains of Persia since the latter end of May. [144] I have seen it one or two days before in this month, but I do not recollect to have seen it during the winter, or when the atmosphere is very clear. [145] _Bushire_; grapes good and plentiful; musk and watermelons, and figs. * * * * * Transcriber’s note: Obvious typographical errors and inconsistencies have been silently corrected. Differences in spelling between index and body have been made consistent as has hyphenation, but other variations in spelling and punctuation remain unchanged. A number of items in the index are out of order, and some are not present in the text. This has not been changed. Plate X. in the list of plates has been changed from Sculpture at Shapour to Rock at Shapour to correspond with the image. The layout of Appendix II-2 and II-3 has been altered to reduce the required page width. *** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A JOURNEY THROUGH PERSIA, ARMENIA, AND ASIA MINOR, TO CONSTANTINOPLE, IN THE YEARS 1808 AND 1809 *** Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will be renamed. Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™ concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. START: FULL LICENSE THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project Gutenberg™ License available with this file or online at www.gutenberg.org/license. Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the United States and you are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when you share it without charge with others. 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any country other than the United States. 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, copied or distributed: This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this eBook. 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™ trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™ License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™. 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project Gutenberg™ License. 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided that: • You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.” • You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ works. • You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of receipt of the work. • You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works. 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. 1.F. 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE. 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further opportunities to fix the problem. 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any Defect you cause. Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™ Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from people in all walks of life. Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org. Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws. The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with the IRS. The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate. While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who approach us with offers to donate. International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate. Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. Most people start at our website which has the main PG search facility: www.gutenberg.org. This website includes information about Project Gutenberg™, including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.